summaryrefslogtreecommitdiff
diff options
context:
space:
mode:
authornfenwick <nfenwick@pglaf.org>2025-02-06 23:35:05 -0800
committernfenwick <nfenwick@pglaf.org>2025-02-06 23:35:05 -0800
commit0c78ad3c3df98fe888837005968b06164e6d4743 (patch)
tree475223645f830e4b57cfd99870f6f4de3aab690d
parent34aaa55c7bbdb2352e93af0fa66c10ba4fff1265 (diff)
NormalizeHEADmain
-rw-r--r--.gitattributes4
-rw-r--r--LICENSE.txt11
-rw-r--r--README.md2
-rw-r--r--old/54371-0.txt10164
-rw-r--r--old/54371-0.zipbin179581 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/54371-h.zipbin717504 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/54371-h/54371-h.htm12141
-rw-r--r--old/54371-h/images/cover.jpgbin282636 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/54371-h/images/frontis.jpgbin90258 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/54371-h/images/p070.jpgbin78541 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/54371-h/images/p169.jpgbin74044 -> 0 bytes
11 files changed, 17 insertions, 22305 deletions
diff --git a/.gitattributes b/.gitattributes
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..d7b82bc
--- /dev/null
+++ b/.gitattributes
@@ -0,0 +1,4 @@
+*.txt text eol=lf
+*.htm text eol=lf
+*.html text eol=lf
+*.md text eol=lf
diff --git a/LICENSE.txt b/LICENSE.txt
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..6312041
--- /dev/null
+++ b/LICENSE.txt
@@ -0,0 +1,11 @@
+This eBook, including all associated images, markup, improvements,
+metadata, and any other content or labor, has been confirmed to be
+in the PUBLIC DOMAIN IN THE UNITED STATES.
+
+Procedures for determining public domain status are described in
+the "Copyright How-To" at https://www.gutenberg.org.
+
+No investigation has been made concerning possible copyrights in
+jurisdictions other than the United States. Anyone seeking to utilize
+this eBook outside of the United States should confirm copyright
+status under the laws that apply to them.
diff --git a/README.md b/README.md
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..5a7a692
--- /dev/null
+++ b/README.md
@@ -0,0 +1,2 @@
+Project Gutenberg (https://www.gutenberg.org) public repository for
+eBook #54371 (https://www.gutenberg.org/ebooks/54371)
diff --git a/old/54371-0.txt b/old/54371-0.txt
deleted file mode 100644
index 721cd41..0000000
--- a/old/54371-0.txt
+++ /dev/null
@@ -1,10164 +0,0 @@
-The Project Gutenberg EBook of With Force and Arms, by Howard R. Garis
-
-This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and most
-other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no restrictions
-whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms of
-the Project Gutenberg License included with this eBook or online at
-www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the United States, you'll have
-to check the laws of the country where you are located before using this ebook.
-
-
-
-Title: With Force and Arms
- A Tale of Love and Salem Witchcraft
-
-Author: Howard R. Garis
-
-Release Date: March 16, 2017 [EBook #54371]
-
-Language: English
-
-Character set encoding: UTF-8
-
-*** START OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK WITH FORCE AND ARMS ***
-
-
-
-
-Produced by KD Weeks, David Edwards and the Online
-Distributed Proofreading Team at http://www.pgdp.net (This
-file was produced from images generously made available
-by The Internet Archive)
-
-
-
-
-
-
-------------------------------------------------------------------------
-
- Transcriber’s Note:
-
-This version of the text cannot represent certain typographical effects.
-Italics are delimited with the ‘_’ character as _italic_.
-
-Footnotes have been moved to follow the paragraphs in which they are
-referenced.
-
-Minor errors, attributable to the printer, have been corrected. Please
-see the transcriber’s note at the end of this text for details regarding
-the handling of any textual issues encountered during its preparation.
-
-[Illustration:
-
- “I DREW MY SWORD, AND WITH THE HILT GAVE SEVERAL BLOWS ON THE DOOR.”
-]
-
-------------------------------------------------------------------------
-
-
-
-
-
- WITH FORCE AND ARMS
-
-
-
-
- A TALE OF LOVE AND
- SALEM WITCHCRAFT.
-
-
-
-
- BY
-
- HOWARD R. GARIS.
-
-
-
-
-
- --------------
-
- NEW YORK:
- J.S. OGILVIE PUBLISHING COMPANY,
- 57 ROSE STREET,
- 11 Paternoster Building, London.
-
-
-
-
- --------------
-
- Copyright, 1908, by J.S. Ogilvie Publishing Company.
-
- All Rights Reserved.
-
- Copyrighted in Great Britain.
-
- --------------
-
-------------------------------------------------------------------------
-
-
-
-
- PREFACE.
-
-
-The showman, crying his attractions, lifted up his voice at the flap of
-his tent. So, at this, the entrance to that which is within, those who
-stop to read may gain a hint of what is beyond. Only a little, though,
-to whet your appetite and make you wish for more, it is to be hoped.
-
-So, then, this is a tale of love, of witchcraft, and of fighting. A tale
-of a brave man, and as brave a maid. Herein may be found the doings of
-witch-finders, Puritans and Indians. Also there is set down the struggle
-of two men for the love of a woman, and it may be learned who won. You
-may read of the lifting of the great rock, of the killing of the
-serpent, of the battle at the fort, of the trial of death, and the
-bursting of the mighty press. This much and more, until the tale is at
-an end.
-
-The author hopes you, reader, and the many of you who make up the
-public, will like the story. He has tried to make it interesting. If it
-serves to help you pass a pleasant hour or two, the writer will have
-accomplished his purpose.
-
-So, then, having had patience thus far, you may enter, and read.
-
- H. R. G.
-
-
-
-
- CONTENTS.
-
- PAGE
- CHAPTER I.
- The Governor’s Commission 9
-
- CHAPTER II.
- Of the Scarlet Snow 20
-
- CHAPTER III.
- The Trial 32
-
- CHAPTER IV.
- How I Cast the Knife 41
-
- CHAPTER V.
- Of the Stone by the Brook 51
-
- CHAPTER VI.
- Lucille 63
-
- CHAPTER VII.
- Of the Horseman on the Beach 72
-
- CHAPTER VIII.
- The Battle at the Fort 82
-
- CHAPTER IX.
- How the French Took Pemaquid 96
-
- CHAPTER X.
- The Man at the Inn 111
-
- CHAPTER XI.
- A Man and His Wife 123
-
- CHAPTER XII.
- The Time of Peril 130
-
- CHAPTER XIII.
- In Salem Gaol 140
-
- CHAPTER XIV.
- A Sentence of Death 150
-
- CHAPTER XV.
- Peine Forte et Dure 161
-
- CHAPTER XVI.
- How We Broke Gaol 172
-
- CHAPTER XVII.
- The News Nanette Brought Me 183
-
- CHAPTER XVIII.
- How the Eagle Sailed 192
-
- CHAPTER XIX.
- How I Found Lucille 204
-
- CHAPTER XX.
- A Watch in the Night 216
-
- CHAPTER XXI.
- Of the Voyage of Lucille 227
-
- CHAPTER XXII.
- A Duel on the Sands 240
-
- CHAPTER XXIII.
- Shadows in the Night 256
-
- CHAPTER XXIV.
- How Simon Kept His Oath 267
-
- CHAPTER XXV.
- In the Name of the King 282
-
- CHAPTER XXVI.
- The Last Fight 294
-
- CHAPTER XXVII.
- Simon 306
-
- CHAPTER XXVIII.
- The End of Captain Amherst 316
-
- CHAPTER XXIX.
- An Order from the King 328
-
- CHAPTER XXX.
- Love, Honor and Obey 338
-
-------------------------------------------------------------------------
-
-
-
-
- WITH FORCE AND ARMS.
-
- ----------
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER I.
- THE GOVERNOR’S COMMISSION.
-
-As I left the presence of His Excellency I encountered, in the doorway,
-a man who was entering with every appearance of haste. We came against
-each other full tilt. For the moment the shock threw us apart.
-
-“Zounds! But you are a clumsy fellow!” he exclaimed, limping toward me,
-the expression of pain on his face showing that I must have hurt him.
-“Could you not look whither you were going? You stepped on my foot like
-a very horse,” and the words came testily.
-
-He scowled as he prepared to pass by me.
-
-My hand was on my sword, for he was most insulting.
-
-“Sir!” I exclaimed, “for the pain I have caused you I am regretful. As
-for ‘clumsy fellows,’ look to yourself, sir!”
-
-My weapon was out on the instant. He was not a second behind me. The
-steel blades crossed with a clash.
-
-“What is this, sirs?” cried Sir William Phips, Massachusetts’s Governor,
-whose room I had just left. He hastened toward us.
-
-“What mean you two, with your swords out in the Council Chamber, like a
-pair of swashbucklers over a card game? Put them up at once, you Captain
-Amherst; and you, also, Sir George. You are both at fault. This must go
-no further; do you hear? If it does, you may reckon with me on the
-quarter deck.”
-
-My opponent and I were startled. Somewhat abashed, he whom the Governor
-called Sir George, sheathed his weapon, I following his action.
-
-I looked at the man. He was tall and well built. His clothing was of
-good quality, with fine lace and ruffles; his sword a trusty blade, set
-in a hilt, studded with red stones. On his face there was a haughty
-look, yet withal, a trace of sadness. He gazed sharply at me, seeming
-about to put a question, but the Governor was beckoning him, and he
-passed me without a word, scowling darkly, into the chamber of His
-Excellency. Then I went out.
-
-There came a time, afterward, when I wished with all my heart, that our
-swords had come into use, that day; a time when I would have given much
-to have seen him dead before me. But there was another way.
-
-I felt within my jacket to see if my papers were safe, for on them, now,
-depended my good fortune. I had come to Boston town without friends, and
-almost on a forlorn hope, for England was no longer a safe place for me,
-with a relentless enemy following close on my heels at every step. My
-mission had succeeded better than I had dared to hope, and I was leaving
-now, carrying with me a captain’s commission, duly signed and sealed by
-His Excellency. I also had a letter of introduction to one, Samuel
-Willis, a tavern keeper at Salem.
-
-Of the things which had come to pass before I found myself in Boston
-town, in the year of grace 1692, I will relate none for the present. At
-any rate here I was, Captain Edward Amherst, in age not yet a score and
-a half, in stature say a bit over six feet; in weight--but there, you
-will doubtless have more than enough of me ere I have finished.
-
-Sufficient to say that I was a soldier by trade, and one of fortune, by
-necessity, and that I sought service in their Majesties’ American
-Colonies. I had left London eight weeks ago, bearing letters to Governor
-Phips, from old comrades in arms, some of whom had sailed the seas with
-him. Arriving in Boston I had put up at the inn, and had sought an
-audience with His Excellency, which interview was just over, with the
-ending I have described.
-
-When I was ushered into the presence of Sir William I explained in few
-words why I came, and what I wanted. He extended his hand for my
-letters, and, when he had them, he gave me no more heed for a time, but
-read the missives. I watched his face as he scanned the pages, the while
-he kept up a running fire of comments.
-
-“Ha! Tyler Anderson,” he said, “I know him well. He has a steady hand,
-and can use a cutlass famously. Sir Arthur Kent, too; a sly rascal with
-the women. Bob Frenchard; he never could get enough of fighting. John
-Powell; little Nat Edwards, also. Why, man, you might have all Boston as
-far as I am concerned, with these letters. You are very welcome,
-Captain. Now what can I do for you?”
-
-“Much,” I answered, surprised and pleased at his welcome; and then I
-told him what I desired; a soldier’s chance to mend his fortunes.
-
-“How would a Captain’s commission, on this side of the water, suit you?”
-he asked, when I had finished. “You tell me that was your rank before.”
-
-“I would desire nothing better,” I said warmly.
-
-“It is yours, then,” was the reply, and he drew out a parchment,
-partially covered with writing.
-
-“You probably have heard of the activity of the French and Indian enemy
-on our borders,” said the Governor, while he prepared a quill. “We are
-about to proceed against them. You have come at a time when certain
-currents are like to drift you just where you want to go; into the thick
-of the fight.” Then he opened his ink horn.
-
-I listened for a while to the scratching of his quill. It was some time
-before he had finished, and, looking up he handed a folded parchment
-across the table to me.
-
-“There is your commission, Captain,” he said, rising. “As for your
-instructions, they are, in brief, these. You are to ride to Salem town,
-and enlist a company of one hundred men. Drill them well, against the
-time when we shall unite, and smite the French Philistine and his Indian
-allies, with fire and with sword. We will rake them fore and aft. An
-expedition against Canada is timed for this season next year. I hope it
-will be more successful than the one I led two years ago, for indeed
-that was a grievous failure, though, of a truth, it was against heavy
-odds.”
-
-I had heard of the manner in which Frontenac had scattered Phips and the
-English fleet sent against him, but I held my peace; for failure is no
-happy subject with any man. Sir William told me in few words that
-Admiral Sir Francis Wheeler was expected to arrive in March, with his
-fleet from the Caribbee Islands. Governor Phips had undertaken to raise
-small companies of men throughout the Colony, to act with the Admiral on
-his arrival. This much he told me, then, bidding me a pleasant farewell,
-and wishing me success, he took up his quill again, to indicate that the
-audience was at an end.
-
-My encounter with the man in the doorway passed from my mind, as I
-descended the steps of the Town Hall, and trudged along the street, to
-where I had stabled my mare Kit. With busy thoughts of what might be
-before me I led Kit out of the door, leaped into the saddle, and was off
-at a round trot, in the direction a lad pointed out as leading to Salem.
-
-Of a truth, I was away now to seek my fortune in this new land, and, I
-hoped, with the promise of as many adventures as ever befell a knight of
-old. So, over hill and across dale I rode, soon leaving behind the
-pleasant town and the outlying farm lands. I had not gone many miles ere
-the snow, which had been threatening since morning, began to fall from
-the dull, leaden sky, piling up on the white covering of previous
-storms. The flakes sifted down, lazily at first, but soon began to
-gather more thickly as the wind rose, so I urged the mare on by spur and
-voice, determined to reach Salem by night, if I could. Now the snow came
-down ever quicker and faster. It swirled and swished, and blew in
-drifts, until I was fain to stop, look about me and see where I was. I
-pulled the mare up as I reached the top of a little hill, and peered
-through the clouds of cutting flakes for some sight of the road, which,
-it was evident, I had lost some time ago. Kit would have turned tail to
-the wind, but I pressed my knees against her sides, and held her to the
-blast. There was little hope in going back, perhaps less in proceeding.
-
-But I decided to continue in the hope of coming to some shelter, and I
-patted the mare on the neck to set her going again. She lurched forward
-into a drift so deep that it well nigh covered my knees as I sat in the
-saddle, and my boots were filled with snow through their wide, gaping
-tops.
-
-“Steady, girl!” I shouted, for, indeed, less voice could scarce have
-been heard. We were fairly lost now, and for the last hour had been
-wandering back and forth across country, I knew not how far from the
-road. I did not see a single landmark in the stretch of whiteness, my
-only hope having been that I might keep the right way. Kit began to
-back, seeking to rid herself of the cutting wind, and I had hard work to
-force her to stand. Should I turn to the left, to the right, or keep
-straight on? The wind seemed to blow less fiercely from the south, so I
-swung Kit about in that direction, pulled her to the left, and urged her
-on.
-
-She responded nobly, and reared, rather than stepped out of the snow
-bank. Her fore feet struck solid ground, and then, feeling the hard road
-beneath her hoofs, she pulled herself forward. We had struck the right
-path at last, and, after hours of fierce weather-beating, like a ship at
-sea, lost in a storm, we were fairly homeward bound, on the way to Salem
-town.
-
-I rode on more quickly now, settling my hat firmer on my head, and
-pressing the leather lining against my benumbed ears. My collar scarce
-kept the snow and wind from my neck, and every half mile or so I was
-obliged to drop the reins and, after feeling that my sword had not
-dropped off in some snow drift, knock my hands together to bring their
-fingers some little warmth.
-
-Verily, I thought that the road would never lead me to the friendly
-tavern of Master Samuel Willis, who, as I had heard in Boston, provided
-refreshment for man and beast. And surely no two stood more in need of
-it than Kit and myself that cold February day.
-
-A fiercer squall and gust of wind than any that had proceeded, fairly
-brought the mare to a stand. I lifted my hat a bit, held my interlocked
-fingers before my eyes, and peered ahead. Dimly, like a speck of black
-on a white sheet, that a dame might spread on the grass to bleach, I saw
-in front a house.
-
-“May that be the tavern,” I quoth, and, with a heart that smote me a
-trifle, for she had traveled far and well that day, I dug the spurs into
-Kit’s flanks. She leaped through the drifts, and, at length, when she
-could make no more progress, I found myself before the snow-heaped steps
-of Salem Inn.
-
-The wind, shunted off by a corner of the building, beat less fiercely at
-this point, and the roar was somewhat subdued. I drew my sword, for I
-could not reach the door knocker from where I sat on Kit’s back, and
-with the hilt gave several blows on the oak.
-
-“Who’s without?” came a woman’s voice from within.
-
-“A friend; Captain Edward Amherst,” I cried. “Open in the King’s name,
-if for no other reason.”
-
-Now ere I had ceased speaking the heavy door swung inward, revealing
-such a warmth and such a snug, homelike appearance, and, withal, letting
-out such savory odors, that poor Kit whinnied in anticipation of what
-might be her share of the feed. As for myself, I threw one leg over the
-saddle, leaped to the ground, strode to the door, and went inside. I
-shouted to a stout serving man, snugly ensconced in the chimney corner,
-to look after the mare, and then I approached the blazing fire.
-
-“The Lord defend us! Goliath and the Philistines are upon us!” cried out
-Mistress Willis, for she it was who had opened the door.
-
-I turned toward her. Now, of a truth, I am not overly large. But, with a
-stout leather jacket on, my sword by my side, and heavy boots on my
-legs, I did look big to the good dame’s eyes. Yet I stood not so much
-over six feet, when in my woolen hose, and, in girth, full many a
-comrade, of times past, whose body rests beneath the bogs of Sedgemoor,
-in Somersetshire, was larger. Yet, in all modesty do I say it, there
-were none who were of greater strength in shoulders or arms, and that,
-with a wiry and supple wrist, stood me in good stead at sword play.
-
-“Neither Goliath nor a Philistine am I,” was my answer, while I let the
-genial warmth get nearer to my bones as I cast hat and jacket into a
-corner, “but an Essex man by birth and breed. But, mark you, Mistress,”
-I went on, “if I do not get a mug of ale, and a bit of roast beef soon,
-I will be nothing at all, for I lost my road early this morn, and no
-bite nor sup has passed my lips since. Thus I am half starved. So bustle
-about----”
-
-“Aye, ‘bustle about’ it is,” answered she, repeating my words, though in
-no great anger. “Bustle about is all I’ve done since sunrise. What with
-Willis away all day, attending on Dr. Clarke; with the snow, and only
-one serving man, I have scarce time to----”
-
-“Peace,” said I, for I never loved a woman’s tongue when it ran in that
-strain, “peace, and bring the ale and beef. You may talk afterward if
-you like. I can listen better then.”
-
-Mistress Willis looked at me a minute, as if she would reply, but she
-came to another conclusion, ceased her clatter, and bustled about to
-such good advantage that she soon had on the table a plate of smoking
-hot beef, and some cakes of yellow corn meal, with pats of golden
-butter. There was also a stone mug of good ale. I gulped down a big
-drink of it, and, when the flavor of it had mellowed me, and the warmth
-gone clear down to my toes, I did drink again, this time to the health
-of Mistress Willis. For, though I like not a woman’s tongue when they
-talk over much, I know the value of being in their good graces. And so I
-ate and drank, and ate again, until I felt the cold leave me, and the
-memory of the biting wind and driving snow of an hour before was
-forgotten. I leaned back in my chair, and looked all about me, while the
-fire in the big chimney place flickered and spluttered; the hickory logs
-smelling like sweet nuts, and cracking with the heat, as a teamster
-snaps his whip on a frosty morning.
-
-I let my eyes take in the room, with the oak beams overhead, blackened
-by smoke, the heavy tables and chairs, and the clean sanded floor. It
-was getting on toward night now, and the wind had died out. I was alone
-in the room, but I could hear Mistress Willis walking about in the
-apartment overhead, and giving some orders to the servant. I rose from
-my chair somewhat wearied, wishing that the inn keeper would return, so
-that I might meet him, and seek my bed. I walked to the window, noting
-that the moon had risen, and that the snow had ceased. As I looked
-through the casement I started, and doubted whether my eyes beheld
-aright, for I saw a sight of more than passing strangeness, and one
-that, for a time, struck terror to my heart.
-
-The snow, which had been as white as a fleecy cloud, was now as red as
-blood beneath the silver moon!
-
-At the same time I saw, coming toward the inn, at top speed, three men
-who ran on, never once halting to glance behind them.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER II.
- OF THE SCARLET SNOW.
-
-
-There was a clatter on the stairs as Mistress Willis came down, her face
-white as the snow had been. She saw the red mantle from an upper window,
-and came to stand beside me, with fright in her eyes.
-
-Together we watched the three figures, her breath coming like that of
-one who had run far, her heart thumping against her ribs. For myself,
-the first start over, I recalled that once before I had seen snow like
-that. Learned men said small Arctic plants in floating clouds, or tiny
-insects, had dyed the white flakes crimson. Yet in the town of Salem,
-that night, that a red shadow of doom portended, was the dread in every
-heart.
-
-Nearer and nearer came the three men. Their boots cast up the snow,
-blood red on top and white beneath, so that their path was marked like a
-pale streak of dawn athwart a morning sky. They reached the inn door,
-and burst into the room scarce stopping to raise the latch. The shorter
-of the three, whom I took to be Master Willis, by reason of his
-good-natured face, from which even fear had not chased all the jollity,
-cried out:
-
-“Oh, Lord, deliver us! ’Tis the snow of blood, and the witches of the
-air have sent it upon us. Of a truth they be demons of darkness; those
-who will be on trial to-morrow,” and he fell to murmuring a psalm tune
-in a high pitched, quavering voice, crowding the while into the chimney
-corner, where he could not see the red snow.
-
-Now I was sore puzzled by all that had happened, although I set but
-small store by the crimson flakes. The talk of demons of darkness, and
-witches of the air, came with an odd sound to my ears. The more so as I
-had heard that these New Englanders were a plain, practical people, much
-given to prayers and pious works. To hear Master Willis prate of
-mysterious beings, then, made me wonder what had come to pass. The three
-men, and the wife of Willis, were huddled together now, one of them
-occasionally glancing with awestruck eyes out of the window.
-
-“There is one comfort, though,” muttered the inn keeper, “the witches
-will be no more after to-morrow, as their trial is set for then, and
-there will be a short shrift, when once the honorable judges have passed
-sentence.”
-
-“’Tis none too soon,” put in Mistress Willis. “Had the doers of
-witchcraft been hung or burned to-day, this evil would not have fallen
-upon us. Who knows what else may follow. These are troubled times,” and
-she glanced uneasily out of the window again.
-
-I had been forgotten in the sudden terror, and I stood in the far corner
-of the room, waiting until I might have some attention. Seeing that I
-was like to stay there some time without notice, so firmly had the fear
-laid hold of the company, I stepped from my place, and, as I saw the inn
-keeper’s eyes turn toward me, I spoke:
-
-“Master Willis,” I began, but I had scarce uttered the words than the
-mistress screamed, and the three men turned, as if to flee from the
-room. Verily, I believe they took me for a witch. Had not the logs in
-the fireplace blazed up then, showing who I was, there is no telling
-what might have happened.
-
-Mistress Willis gave a sigh of relief while the tavern owner and his
-companions stared at me.
-
-“Lackaday! I had clear forgotten you,” said the matron. “’Tis some one
-to see you, Samuel Willis.”
-
-“Me?” repeated her husband.
-
-“Captain Edward Amherst, at your service,” said I, bowing slightly. “I
-bear a commission from His Excellency Sir William Phips, and I was
-bidden to seek this inn, and to make it my headquarters for a time. I
-also have a letter from Sir William for you, Master Willis.”
-
-“Ha! ’Tis a strange time to get a letter,” ejaculated mine host, taking
-the missive I held out. “And I can scarce break the seal from the
-trembling of my hand over this visitation of wrath that has come upon
-us.”
-
-However, he managed, after several attempts, to crack the wax. Then,
-candles having been brought, he read what Sir William had addressed to
-him.
-
-“You are very welcome, Captain,” said Willis, “though you come, indeed,
-at a grievous time. Sin, woe and misery are abroad in the land. We are
-threatened by the French and the Indians from without, and by horrid
-witchcraft within. ’Tis enough to make an honest man believe the end of
-the world is nigh. But, of a truth, you are welcome. We have been
-expecting that some military authority would be sent to Salem, to make
-ready for an aggressive movement.
-
-“Rumor has already been busy,” he went on, “talking of the blow we are
-to strike at the enemies of the Crown in the American Colonies. How we
-are to swoop down, by land and by sea, on the French in Canada. I see by
-this that you are authorized to raise an hundred good men at arms in
-Salem town.”
-
-“If it be possible,” I said.
-
-“I believe it will be no hard task to get them,” responded Willis. “What
-think you, Dr. Clarke, or you, Master Hobbs? Though you are more versed
-in physic, doctor, and you in wheelwright lore, Master Hobbs, than in
-feats of arms. As for me, I can point a fowling piece, or a rifle, with
-no trembling hand, and at sword play I used not to count myself the
-worst of our militia,” and the inn keeper drew himself up proudly, and
-made one or two passes at an imaginary foe.
-
-“Now that you know my errand, enough is spoken of it for the time,” I
-said. “Tell me, what bodes this talk of evils abroad in the land; of
-spirits and witchcraft? The red snow I count not for much, having seen
-the same happening in the north of France once on a time. ’Tis but
-passing; a mist of tiny Arctic plants, a flight of forest insects, even
-a glint of red sun through a hidden cloud may cause it.”
-
-“Nay,” came in deep tones from Dr. Clarke. “Talk not lightly, young man,
-of that which you wot little. Know you, that this day I have been called
-in to minister to Elizabeth Parris, and Abigaile Williams, the daughter
-and niece, respectively, of our good Dominie, Samuel Parris. Verily the
-children be possessed by witches of the air, for their actions were most
-strange. They bore no marks, yet they continually cried out that witches
-ever thrust pins in their flesh. And Mistress Parris told me how pins
-were cast up from the children’s throats, though I saw not the
-instruments of torture, they having been removed before my arrival.
-Sometimes the children were at peace, and, on a sudden they would cry
-out that the witches were at them again though at no time were the
-spirits visible to me.”
-
-“How did you then learn who the witches were?” I asked in some
-curiosity.
-
-“’Twas easily done,” replied the physician, “for in their fits the
-children cried out the names of those who were tormenting them. They
-spoke of Tituba, an Indian servant in the same house with them, and of
-one, Marie de Guilfort, a maid, living not far off. These two, they
-said, had appeared to them, and thrust pins and needles into their
-bodies.”
-
-“And what was done with the two thus accused?” said I.
-
-“What would you have?” interposed Willis. “The law of our Colony
-prescribes death for all who, whether male or female, practice
-witchcraft.”
-
-“Even so,” went on Dr. Clarke. “These two, having been named as witches,
-and Mistress Parris, affirming on oath, for the children, the witches
-were seized by the constables, and now lie in Salem gaol. To-morrow is
-the trial day in the Oyer and Terminer Court. And, if further proof was
-needed that the two were witches, this scarlet snow is more than
-enough.”
-
-“That will pass,” I said, yet I wondered, with a strange feeling in my
-heart, what evils might portend. Little did I guess what perilous times
-were ahead; when no man’s nor no woman’s life was safe. When the false
-fear of witchcraft stalked abroad in the land like a horrid spectre,
-slaying, burning, hanging and crushing.
-
-“See!” cried Hobbs, the wheelwright, pointing to the window.
-
-The red glow outside was fading away, and the moon shone peacefully on
-the fast whitening snow. Slowly the angry red died out, seeming to sink
-down into the earth, and with it went some of the fears of those in the
-room.
-
-“’Tis wonderful! Never before did my eyes behold such a feat of
-witchcraft,” said the inn keeper.
-
-Then, as we watched, the scarlet covering disappeared entirely, leaving
-the scene as peaceful as the day had been stormy. It was close on to
-nine o’clock now, and Dr. Clarke and the wheelwright began to make plans
-for going home.
-
-“I suppose, Hobbs, that you do not mind going around by the mill with
-me?” suggested the physician. “’Tis at best a lonesome place, and,
-though I have no fears, still one man may be no proof against witches.
-What say you, Hobbs?”
-
-“If I go by the mill with you,” protested the wheelwright, “I will have
-to pass alone over the bridge whereon, only to-day, Tituba was taken.
-Nay, Dr. Clarke, I’ll go by the back road to my home, if it please you.”
-
-“But, Hobbs,” urged the man of physic, “the road over the bridge is
-bathed in moonlight, besides----”
-
-“Enough, I’ll not go,” replied the other. “Was it not near the mill that
-the other witch was observed to be plucking flowers last summer? Who
-knows but she has cast a spell over the place?”
-
-Verily the two would never have screwed up courage to go home, had not
-Willis urged that he was about to close his tavern. So they were forced
-to make a start.
-
-I peered out of the window to see which ways they took. Dr. Clarke
-continued in his endeavor to convince Hobbs that the road by the mill
-was the best, but the wheelwright was stubborn. Suddenly he turned and
-ran across the snow toward his home. Left there alone in the night, the
-physician faced about also, and, glancing behind him, as if he feared to
-see the Devil, he sped on toward the mill.
-
-I was tired and sleepy after my ride, so, with a word to Willis I lost
-no time seeking my chamber; one of the few that the tavern boasted of.
-My head was filled with plans for leading men once more to battle. For I
-loved the strife of war, the clash of steel on steel, the smell of
-powder, and the shouts of foes and comrades. Well, I was soon to have my
-fill of it, though I dreamed not that I would have to fight with such
-foes as presently beset me.
-
-The sun was shining when I arose in the morning, to dash cold water on
-my face and hands from an ice-ribbed basin in the corner, for the night
-had been cold, and there was no heat in the room. Yet when I emerged I
-found the sunlit air warm, and it seemed as if Nature had forgotten her
-fierce, boisterous mood of yesterday. Willis greeted me as I came from
-the stable, whither I had gone to see that Kit had had her full measure
-of corn.
-
-“’Tis little you can do to-day,” he said, “for this cursed witchcraft
-has so laid hold of men that talk of war and fighting will scarce
-interest them now, even though the battle be against their mortal foes,
-the French and Indians.
-
-“A magistrate and a jury will try the two witches to-day at the court
-house. Since you have nothing better to do come there with me. ’Twill be
-a sight, I warrant, you have never seen before. Nor have I, though
-stories of how, in days gone by, witches were tried in Boston have come
-down to me from my father.”
-
-“Who are the two called witches?” I asked, when breakfast, for which I
-had a great relish, was finished. While I fastened on my sword,
-preparing to follow the inn keeper, he answered me.
-
-“One, the elder woman,” he said, “is Tituba, an Indian slave, and there
-is little doubt that she is a witch. I make no bones but she is familiar
-with Satan, for I dare not look her in the eyes, yet I count myself
-afraid of little on this earth. The other, were she not a witch, I could
-well be sorry for, as she is beautiful to look upon; a girl almost. Yet
-it but proves how the evil one can use even beauty to gain his ends.
-Marie de Guilfort is the name of the young witch. She is a French
-Huguenot, who, with her cousin, Lucille de Guilfort, and the latter’s
-father, M. Louis de Guilfort, came to Salem some five years back. The
-old man died, not being able to withstand the rigors of our winters, and
-the two girls have since lived alone, with an old servant to see after
-their wants. Both of them are more than passing fair to look upon. Is it
-not a pity that in such a body, in one so young and lovely, there should
-be a soul sold to Satan?”
-
-“You saw the purchase made, then?” I asked with some spirit, for I did
-not like the positive tone of Willis.
-
-“What purchase?”
-
-“Of the soul of the one you call Marie de Guilfort?”
-
-“No man did,” he answered, half angrily. “Yet it cannot be doubted. For
-did not the child say that Marie tormented her with pins? And how could
-these be thrust, Marie not being present, unless the Devil helped her?”
-
-I shrugged my shoulders, for I thought it was little use to argue with a
-mind that laid stress on such points.
-
-“Will the child’s testimony, and that of the mother, be enough to
-convict the girl of witchcraft?” I went on, rather curious to know how
-they managed such affairs in New England.
-
-“There will be other witnesses,” said Willis, “and enough to bring the
-matter to a close.” We were at the court house steps now, and I ceased
-my talk to observe what was going on.
-
-The crowd was there before us. They pushed and swayed about the narrow
-doorway, moving first this way and then that. It was a strange
-assemblage. None in it was laughing. There was no jesting, no calling
-from one to another. Instead there was a calm quietness about it, a set,
-serious look on the faces that partook of a sense of a duty to be
-performed--one that could not be shirked. Into the room, with its high
-ceiling and dark oaken beams overhead, the people swarmed, making but
-little confusion. After some crowding and quiet jostling, Master Willis
-and I managed to obtain seats near the door. We had scarcely gotten into
-them before the tavern keeper, peering up, whispered:
-
-“There goes Stephen Sewall, the clerk. Note how proudly he bears his ink
-horn and quills. He seems to know not any one now, though only yesterday
-he begged me to trust him for a glass of ale, and I did so. There come
-the jurors,” added Willis, “and, see! The prisoners! The witches!”
-
-“I see them not,” I said looking all about. There were a few women
-present, but none of these seemed to be in custody.
-
-“Farther to the left,” said Willis, “mark where Constable George Locker,
-and his companion, Jonathan Putnam sit?”
-
-“Aye, I see.”
-
-“Note the two women next to them?”
-
-“Yes.”
-
-“They be the witches. Lord prevent that they cast their eyes this way!”
-and back the inn keeper shrank into his seat.
-
-One of the prisoners was a young girl, as fair as one could wish. The
-other was an Indian woman, as dark as the brown bark of a pine tree. The
-maid sat with downcast eyes, and deadly terror written in every line of
-her shrinking form. The eyes of the Indian roved about, looking boldly
-at the people, as if she bid defiance to her enemies.
-
-I noted that across from me a woman, or rather a maiden, sat with her
-head bowed on the rough bench in front of her. A cloak concealed most of
-her figure, and the hood of the garment was drawn up over her head. From
-this covering a dark ringlet of hair had escaped, and rested lightly on
-her white cheek. Her little hand, with the pink nails showing against
-the white flesh, grasped the edge of the seat tightly.
-
-I nudged Master Willis, and asked in a low tone who she was. He did not
-hear me, for just then the court criers entered, calling loudly for
-silence. There was a pause, and then, slowly, and with becoming dignity,
-the dark gowned judges made their appearance.
-
-“Their Honors, Judges John Hathorne and Jonathan Corwin,” said Willis.
-“The trial will begin directly now.”
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER III.
- THE TRIAL.
-
-
-The cries of “Silence” by the constables were some time in being of
-effect, so anxious were the people without to get in. The efforts of
-those inside to secure places of vantage was also the cause of some
-confusion and noise, but, at length, order was obtained. The learned
-looking judges, with their wigs and gowns, whispered to each other, and
-then to the clerk. There was some passing of papers back and forth among
-them, and then Clark Sewall, clearing his voice importantly, read from a
-parchment he held:
-
-“Indictment of Tituba, the Indian, and of Marie de Guilfort. The jurors
-for our Sovereign Lord and Lady, King William and Queen Mary, do present
-that you, Tituba, the Indian, and Marie de Guilfort, in the county of
-Essex, upon the 26th day of February, in the fourth year of the reign of
-our Sovereign Lieges, rulers, by the grace of God, over England,
-Ireland, Scotland and France, King and Queen, defenders of the faith;
-divers other days and times, as well as before and after, certain
-detestable arts called witchcraft and sorceries, wickedly and
-feloniously, hath used, preached, exercised, at and within the township
-of Salem aforesaid, in and upon and against Elizabeth Parris and
-Abigaile Williams. By which said wicked arts the said children are hurt
-and tortured, afflicted, pined, consumed, wasted and tormented. And also
-for sundry acts of witchcraft, by the said Tituba and Marie committed
-and done before and since that time, against the peace of our Sovereign
-Lord and Lady, their Crown and dignity, and against the forms of
-statutes in that case made and provided.”
-
-All this the clerk read, scarce pausing for breath, and, when he had
-finished, a sound like a great sigh went up from the people.
-
-“Terrible! Oh, most terrible!” whispered Willis.
-
-“Out upon you,” I exclaimed. “’Tis naught but a lot of high sounding law
-terms. Master Sewall has a pretty trick of rolling them off his tongue.”
-
-I glanced at the prisoners, who had been led to chairs on the high
-platform near the judges’ desks. She, who was called Marie, looked
-straight over the heads of the crowd, right down to where I sat. Her
-eyes roved on past me to the shrinking form of the maiden at my right.
-The latter raised her head, her eyes dim with tears.
-
-While I watched her lips moved, as if in prayer, and she stretched out
-her arms to the beautiful girl on the stand.
-
-“Who is the maid at our right?” I asked of Willis.
-
-“’Tis Lucille, the cousin of Marie,” he answered.
-
-Just then Lucille turned her head, and her eyes met mine. Full half a
-minute we gazed at each other, and though I know not the import of the
-message that came from her eyes, it was like one that would make me do
-her bidding, even though death stood in the way.
-
-The indictment having been read the witnesses against the accused were
-called. The mother of Elizabeth mounted the stand, and began giving her
-testimony in a dull, monotonous tone.
-
-She told how the two children were of a sudden stricken into fits one
-day, which illness Dr. Clarke was not able to allay. Then the children
-cried out that some one was thrusting pins in them. Dr. Jacobs related
-how he had been called in, and, finding no evident cause for the
-ailments, had concluded, with Dr. Clarke, that the girls were possessed
-by witches. How the learned men arrived at this conclusion they said
-not.
-
-Then came strange testimony. Dr. Jacobs told how he had cautioned
-Mistress Parris to hang the children’s blankets near the fireplace at
-night, burning whatever fell therefrom. A great toad dropped out, the
-woman said, and a boy caught the reptile up with the tongs, and threw it
-in the fire. It exploded with a noise like gun powder, and the next day
-Tituba was found to be burned on the left cheek, which made it plain
-that she had changed herself into a toad for the purpose of tormenting
-the children. What further proof was wanting? If there was it would seem
-to have been furnished by the girls themselves.
-
-They were brought into court, trembling and shrinking back. And then,
-suddenly, with mine own eyes, I saw them fall down in strange fits, the
-like of which I had never seen before. They cried that pins and knives
-were being stuck into them by Marie and Tituba. Though how that could be
-I fathomed not, for the hapless women never moved from their seats. But
-a murmer went around, and the judges, nodding their heads, looked grave.
-
-Next Farmer John Sloan related how he was removing his hay from the
-meadow, using three carts.
-
-“And, your Honors,” he said, “when I passed Tituba’s house one of the
-wheels touched her gate post, and she muttered an evil spell against me.
-After that the cart was overturned, though the road was without ruts.
-Coming from the field on the next trip the cart did somehow fasten
-itself between two gate posts, so that they had to be cut away ere the
-cart could be drawn through. Yet neither the wheels nor the sides nor
-any part of the cart did touch the posts.”
-
-“’Tis enough,” broke in Judge Corwin. “Do you question the prisoners,
-Judge Hathorne. Let not the day of judgment be stayed. A great evil is
-upon the land, and must be purged away.”
-
-Judge Hathorne asked Tituba what evil spirit she had familiarity with,
-and whether she had ever seen the Devil.
-
-Then of a sudden she rose in her chair. She let her eyes rove over the
-room, while the whole assemblage, judges, jurors, and all save myself,
-cowered in their seats.
-
-“Aye,” she shrieked, “aye, I have seen him. He came to me in his chariot
-of fire, and bade me serve him. I dared not say him nay. Also have I
-seen two rats, a red one and a white one. And they did command that I
-pinch the children. Aye, the rats did carry me to them like a spirit of
-the air, and I pinched them and thrust sharp pins in them. Aye, the
-Devil! the Devil! the Devil!”
-
-And then the creature ceased, and shrank back in her chair, crooning
-away in her own tongue. The judges on their benches shuddered, and many
-near me whispered:
-
-“She is a witch, indeed.”
-
-Next their honors turned toward Marie, and a sound like a great deep cry
-came from the maiden near me. I half started from my seat, and had a
-mind to draw my sword, to do what I could to rescue the beautiful girl
-who seemed to me to be as innocent as the flowers. But even as I rose,
-scowling looks met me at every side. Some of the constables hastened in
-my direction, and Master Willis, with a quick motion, drew me back into
-my seat. Clearly the town folks were witch-mad, and would brook no
-interference with their doings. I listened to what the judge was saying.
-
-“Are you a witch?” he asked of Marie. But she did not reply.
-
-“Answer,” commanded the clerk. “Tell his Honor if you be a witch.”
-
-Then in a voice that, though it was weak from fear, yet which seemed
-like the tinkle of a silver bell, sad and sweet, came the reply:
-
-“I am no witch indeed. You who have known me since I have lived among
-you know me for but a harmless maid.”
-
-“True enough; she was kind to me when my child was sick unto death,”
-said a woman near me. But the terror of the scarlet snow of the night
-before had seized on the minds of all, so that they could not see the
-truth.
-
-“Confess, and ye die not,” said Judge Hathorne. He leaned over toward
-Marie, a trace of pity on his face. But Marie only looked down at her
-cousin, whose lips were moving in silent prayer. “Will ye not confess,
-and save your soul?” persisted the judge, in some anger at the manner in
-which the fair prisoner ignored him.
-
-“I can speak in the presence of God, safely, as I may look to give
-account another day,” said Marie, “that I am as innocent of witchcraft
-as the babe unborn.”
-
-There was a murmur in the crowd, but it was quickly hushed. The Indian
-woman was swaying back and forth in her chair, mumbling away, and now
-and then breaking out into a wild melody. Some near me said she was
-singing her death song as is the custom of that race.
-
-The judges motioned the jury to retire, and, while they were out I sat
-looking at Lucille. Her body was shaking with sobs. Marie, on the
-contrary, did nothing but sit and stare away into vacancy, with wide,
-unseeing eyes, like a beautiful statue.
-
-It seemed but a short time ere the jury was back again. Once more the
-constables proclaimed silence. The jurors took their seats. There were
-the usual questions and answers, and then the leader said:
-
-“We find Tituba, the Indian, and Marie de Guilfort guilty of
-witchcraft.”
-
-“And the sentence of this court is that you both be taken hence and
-hanged by the necks until ye both are dead, and may God have mercy on
-your souls,” came from the judge.
-
-The fatal words scarce were uttered when Lucille rose from her seat. Her
-face was the color of the white snow outside. She reeled, and would have
-fallen, had I not sprang toward her, catching her in my arms, and
-carrying her to the fresh air without. I held her, hardly knowing what
-to do with the lovely burden, until some women, who had hastened from
-the court room came up and relieved me. Then like one in a dream I made
-my way to the tavern. I was aware of a multitude following the prisoners
-to the gaol, crowding about the unfortunates, as if rejoicing at their
-distress. Then I left the assemblage behind, and went into the inn,
-where I drank deep of the ale to try and drive from my mind the memory
-of what I had observed.
-
-’Twas but a few hours since I had reached Salem, yet I had seen strange
-sights. I had been near to death, I had been witness to the scarlet
-snow, and I had heard the words of doom pronounced. Truly events moved
-with no little speed in this new land.
-
-The day passed, and I did not leave the inn. The darkness fell. There
-came a confused murmer from the centre of the town. Some men passed the
-tavern, running in the direction of the little hill, whence I had first
-found the right path, in my journey of the night before. They were
-hastening to the place of execution. I went to bed with a heavy heart.
-And I dreamed strange dreams of horrid witches.
-
-I rose as soon as it was light, but, early as I was, the inn keeper was
-before me. He told me the two prisoners had been hung that night, and,
-though I desired greatly to question him concerning Lucille de Guilfort,
-I forebore. However, he spoke of her soon, telling me that she had been
-with her cousin to the last. The gaolers had to drag them apart, when
-they led Marie to the scaffold. After the execution Lucille had gone to
-her home in great distress, attended by some women folks, who vainly
-tried to console her. It made my blood boil to think of the matter, and,
-when my hand fell to my sword hilt, I felt that I would ask no better
-work than to lay about among some of these witch-finders.
-
-But there was other work ahead of me. I must soon begin to plan for the
-raising of my men, as desired by Sir William.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER IV.
- HOW I CAST THE KNIFE.
-
-
-I soon began to take up the threads of the life in Salem, since it was
-like that I would be there for some time to come. Now that I look back
-over it I am constrained to say that in no place had I ever found men
-and women who made of life so serious a business. Yet, with all, there
-was much to admire in them. The witch craze appeared to have passed,
-though it left scars behind, and sad remembrances for some.
-
-I made the acquaintance of many who came to the inn, and learned much of
-the new land and its people. I resolved, as soon as the weather should
-grow milder, to look about and see what sort of soldier material I might
-expect among the recruits. I must also learn something of the country
-roundabout, as well as of the red men of the forest who inhabited it.
-Every day I sallied from the inn, and took long walks. The weather was
-growing mild now, and the snow was melting from off the hills and
-meadows.
-
-There was some hunting to be had, and I often went out with a fowling
-piece, and came back with a brace of partridge or squirrels, that made
-dainty dishes, when Mistress Willis had broiled them over a blazing wood
-fire, or fried them in sweet butter to a delicate brown crisp.
-
-Sometimes as I walked, or hunted or fished, there would come to me a
-memory of Lucille de Guilfort, as I had seen her that day in the court
-room. I had caught but few glimpses of her since, and then she had
-passed me by with a bow, and a little smile, albeit a sad one. Though to
-me she seemed the most lovely maid I had ever seen, I was to her,
-apparently, no more than any one else of the Colony. She bowed to
-Willis, as she did to me.
-
-At times I would sit idly on a woodland bank, my gun across my knees,
-the squirrels playing, unharmed, and not afraid, in the trees above me.
-I pictured to myself Lucille. Her eyes were brown; her hair a deep
-blue-black, as a fine steel rifle barrel might be shaded. Her face was
-like--but what it was like, ’tis beyond me to describe. There was love
-in it, and her lips seemed made to kiss. Her voice was low and clear,
-like a bell, and made one long, when he had once heard her speak to hear
-her again.
-
-But it was little use to dwell on such thoughts, I concluded, for,
-though I would have liked to see her every day, there was but one in
-seven when I might do so of a certainty. That was on Sunday, when she,
-with all the other colonists went up to the little meeting house, on the
-hill. There good Dominie Parris held forth, at no uncertain length on
-the trials and troubles of this world, and on the necessity of saving
-the soul from the Devil and the wrath to come. To my shame be it,
-perhaps, but I am afraid I paid but little heed to the minister, for,
-from my bench I could catch a glimpse of Lucille, and, sometimes, see
-her face when she turned about. Full many a Sunday I sat thus, greatly
-cramped in my body, for my legs ill fitted the small benches, though I
-felt repaid if she but turned her head once.
-
-The dominie would read page after page of the scriptures, and then
-expound them at length, while, beneath the pulpit sat the clerk, turning
-the hour glass, when the sands had run from the top to the bottom. And,
-most often, it was two full turnings ere the sermon was finished.
-Another time it might be three, while, on one weary day (I was
-preciously sleepy too) I recall that the clerk turned the glass four
-times before the lastly was reached. Yet I sat through it all without a
-murmur, for such things a man will do sometimes, when he is not quite
-himself, because of a maid.
-
-Once Cotton Mather, a great preacher from Boston, came to Salem, and his
-text was witchcraft. He warned his hearers to be on their guard against
-witches, who, he said, were abroad in the land. He referred to the
-scarlet snow, and to the two executions that had taken place in our
-Salem Colony. He also related such facts about witches, as had come to
-his knowledge, he said. He spoke so strongly of the powers of the
-witches, that the whole congregation almost was in great terror. Some
-timid folks double barred their doors that night, lest the witches
-should get in. This must have been a precaution of little use, for, if I
-had heard aright the witches did not stop at solid stone walls, to say
-nothing of oak doors. Oh, how foolish it all was, though it did not seem
-so then to many.
-
-So the days went on. I had learned much of the Colony affairs, and made
-the acquaintance of the principal men. I had seen enough to know that a
-goodly company could be raised in Salem, and I dispatched a messenger to
-Sir William with that information.
-
-But as to the throwing of the knife and what followed. I was idly
-strolling through the forest one day when I came to a place where two
-paths diverged. The left led on down past the common and to the grist
-mill, while the other went deeper into the woods. With scarce a thought
-I turned to the right, and walked on into the forest.
-
-The last vestige of snow had gone save from the hill tops, and the air
-was warm with sunlight. The birds were beginning to fly northward, and,
-as I walked, a flock of crows passed over head, cawing to each other.
-There was but little of winter left, and that was fast disappearing.
-
-On and on I traveled, paying small heed to my steps until I found myself
-in a sort of glen, the sides of which rose steeply on either side, while
-the trees, locking their branches above, made it twilight at noonday. I
-came to a halt and looked about me.
-
-Glancing along one side of the ravine I observed naught save the dull
-brown of the shrubs and trees, some of which showed a little green as a
-forerunner of spring. Then my eyes took in the other side of the glen. I
-started in sudden fright, for what I saw made me weak-kneed, it was so
-horrible.
-
-There stood Lucille, with her back against a tree, her soft gray dress
-contrasting with the deep brown of the bark. She was not looking at me,
-and I saw that her gaze was directed to a spot on the ground in front of
-her. Following her glance I saw with terror that the spot was of mottled
-yellow, brown and white. And then I knew it was not a spot, but a great
-snake, coiled, and ready to spring.
-
-Its head waved sideways, with a slow, sinuous motion, and the forked
-tongue ever darted in and out, like a weaver’s shuttle. Lucille, I saw,
-dared not move. One hand was pressed to her heart, while the other
-clasped some flowers she had been to the woods to gather; and the
-blossoms were slowly falling from her nerveless fingers to the ground.
-
-At first I did not know what to do. Move farther I dared not, lest I
-should startle the reptile, and cause it to strike the fatal blow, that,
-for some reason, it was delaying.
-
-Had I a musket I might have shot the snake from where I stood, and I
-thought with regret of the fowling piece I had left at the inn. I had my
-sword, but it was folly to think of stealing upon the reptile, and
-trying to kill it with that. Nor was there much chance that any one
-would pass that way with a gun in time to be of service; for it was
-getting late, and the glen was seldom visited.
-
-Perhaps it was a few seconds that I stood watching Lucille and the
-snake, but it seemed an hour. I could see her slender figure beginning
-to sway, under the baneful influence of the serpent, and I knew that I
-must act quickly. I half drew my sword in desperation, and then I put it
-back. For I knew that ere I could cross half the space between Lucille
-and myself, the snake would strike.
-
-Now, among the Indians that frequently visited Salem, it was one of
-their feats to throw or cast the knife. They would poise a dagger or
-scalping blade on the palm of the hand, holding it in place with the
-thumb. Then they would raise the hand, palm upward. With a sudden
-movement, strong and swift, they would hurl the weapon from them,
-casting it unerringly each time. I have seen them bury it to the hilt in
-a buttonball tree, and in the body of a man, granting that it touched a
-vital spot, the knife would let life quickly out.
-
-I had practiced this trick until, while not as good at it as the
-Indians, I had some skill. So, when I put my sword back, I thought of
-the knife, and I resolved to chance on throwing it at the snake. It was
-but a chance, for I knew that if the reptile was startled it would
-strike quickly, and I recognized the species as one whose bite was quick
-death. But I gripped the knife, and drew it from the sheath.
-
-Slowly I raised the blade above my head. The spotted brown body was
-drawn back, now, and, as Lucille saw that the serpent was about to
-spring, a convulsive tremor shook her body. It must be now or never, I
-thought, and I breathed a prayer that the knife might be speeded on its
-way.
-
-Then straight and swift I threw, the keen weapon leaving my hand like a
-shaft of light. On, on it flew, whirling about in the air, but making no
-sound. As an arrow from the bow it struck the reptile behind its ugly
-head, and, such was the force of the flying knife, that the steel edge
-cut through the snake’s neck, and pinned it to the earth, while the
-spotted body threshed about like a flail among the dried leaves.
-
-Lucille sank down at the foot of the tree as I bounded forward, certain
-now that my cast had been successful. It was the work of but an instant
-to lift her out of the way of the flying body of the snake, for I feared
-that it might, even yet, strike out blindly, but none the less fatally.
-Lucille rested in my arms, her senses having left her for the moment,
-and I carried her to a spring near by, where I revived her with the cold
-water. She opened her eyes a little.
-
-“You are safe now,” I said. She smiled faintly, then shuddered, and
-closed her eyes again. Presently she gazed up at me, and whispered:
-
-“Oh, it was horrible! I shall never forget it!”
-
-I calmed her as well as I could, and she soon recovered her composure.
-She declared that she was well enough to walk home, but I protested, and
-begged that she would allow me to get a cart from a near-by farmer.
-
-“Oh, no,” she answered, “I could not stay another minute in these woods
-now. Let me go with you. I can walk, indeed I can; see,” and she stepped
-out bravely enough, but was forced to stop from trembling and weakness.
-
-Then I insisted that she lean on my arm, which, after some hesitation,
-she consented to do.
-
-“I was after some arbutus,” she said as we walked along, “and it only
-grows in the glen. I had plucked some when, just as I reached for a
-beautiful cluster, I saw the snake coiled before me. And then it seemed
-as if I could not move. My eyes grew heavy, and there was no life in me.
-It began to get dark, and then, and then--all at once I saw a flash of
-light, I heard the hiss of the reptile, and it grew all black, and I
-fell. The next I knew you were bending over me.”
-
-“I thank God,” I said, “that I chanced by here to-day.”
-
-“Aye, ’twas a most fortunate chance,” she answered.
-
-“Mayhap it was more than chance--my fate,” I said softly, and she did
-not reply.
-
-When I had seen her safely to her gateway I bade her good night. She
-held out her hand to me.
-
-“I cannot thank you enough just yet,” she said. “’Tis the second time
-that you have been by when I have needed a friend.”
-
-“I would it were ever so, madame,” I made answer, bowing. She stood idly
-plucking at the arbutus.
-
-“Come some day and see me,” she said, which I might take as an answer to
-my words. “That is, when you can find time from your military duties,
-which, I fear, must be exacting to you.”
-
-“If they were a thousand times more so, yet would I come,” I responded.
-She looked down at the flowers which she still held in her hand. Then,
-on the impulse of the moment she gave me a spray. I have it yet, faded
-and brown. For forty years it has been ever near me, and I would not
-part with it and its memories of the past for all that life holds.
-
-“I shall be glad to see you,” spoke Lucille, after a pause, “though,
-perhaps, ’tis a slight welcome I can give in return for the service you
-have rendered me. Yet it will be from my heart.”
-
-“None could be better,” I said. “I will come.” I could make no other
-answer. I wanted to be by myself and think of it all. For most strangely
-had this maid come into my life, and she had awakened strange feelings
-within me. Something much like love had found me off guard, for a
-surety.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER V.
- OF THE STONE BY THE BROOK.
-
-
-I sat up late in the tavern that night, and to calm my thoughts I drew
-up some notices that I intended to post throughout the town, inviting
-recruits to join my little army. I judged that this would be a good
-time, since it could not be said when we would make the first venture
-against Canada, without waiting for the fleet. The weather was growing
-more and more mild every day now, and flowers and shrubs were beginning
-to show blossoms. The trees were in full leaf, when, one pleasant day,
-having after much labor written on several papers what I wanted to say I
-left the inn to put them up in conspicuous places.
-
-They called upon all good men and true, who so might desire, to enlist
-under Captain Edward Amherst, to fight the French and the Indians. It
-was also noted that some skirmishes might take place before the arrival
-of Sir Francis with his men. The notices, which were posted on the door
-of the church among other places, also set forth that applicants would
-be examined at Salem inn.
-
-Never had a day seemed so pleasant. Birds were singing away trilling the
-first few notes of mating songs. The trees waved their branches in the
-wind as it sighed through them. I felt in my veins the blood beginning
-to tingle, as the sap in the trees swells out the buds.
-
-I finished my task, the while breathing in deep of the balmy air. I
-wanted something, I knew not what. To be acting, fighting, leading my
-men on. I wanted to walk, to run, to leap, to--in short, I suppose, to
-give way to that energy which health brings to every man.
-
-I went on with little thought of where I was going until turning near
-where the old elm stands, down near the dead oak, I found myself in
-front of the house where Lucille dwelt. It was the first time I had been
-so near it since the night I brought her home from the glen. I was about
-to pass on, though I wanted to stop, but scarce dared to. As I dawdled
-past the gate, in two minds whether or no I should make bold and knock,
-I saw her in the garden.
-
-It was too late to draw back now, had I wished to, for she had heard my
-step, and, looking up, she smiled.
-
-“Good day, Captain,” she said.
-
-“Good day to you, Mistress Lucille,” I made reply, and then there was
-silence between us, while I stood there as awkwardly as a school boy,
-though she was as cool as only a maid can be who knows that it is for
-the man to make the next advance. Not that she was altogether at her
-ease, for, by looking closely, I saw a faint tinge of red mounting
-upward in her cheeks.
-
-“You see,” I began, “I come--I hardly expected your words the other
-day--I----” and, then, in desperation, lest I might turn and run in the
-very face of the enemy, I straightened up, drew my good sword and
-saluted her as I would my gracious Queen.
-
-“You have commanded me and I am here,” I said.
-
-Lucille raised her eyes.
-
-“And it needed a command then, Captain?” she questioned.
-
-“Not so, not so,” I hastened to exclaim, seeing that I had made an
-error. “A word, a wish, a look, from you, madame, were enough,” I
-replied in some confusion, almost wishing that I was back in Salem inn.
-
-Once more silence crept between us, while, hardly knowing what I did, I
-opened the gate and walked in to stand beside her. I judge we must have
-been thus for near a minute ere she burst out laughing, and I, perforce,
-joined her mirth. That was an end to solemn silence then.
-
-“Here,” she cried gaily, “if you will not talk you must work,” and she
-thrust a spade into my hand.
-
-Then, at her bidding, I fell to with a will and dug where she pointed
-out. My sword clinked against the garden tool, and I hoped that none of
-my future soldiers would pass by to see in what manner of warfare I was
-engaged. When she thought I had dug enough she permitted me to stop, and
-right glad I was to do so.
-
-“Now sit on the bench beneath the apple tree, while I plant these
-tulips,” was her second command.
-
-I did as she bade me.
-
-“Now talk,” she ordered.
-
-“What shall I say?” I asked.
-
-“Oh, anything, everything. The buds, the flowers, the sun, the Indians,
-the battles you have fought, the war we are to engage in. Why,” merrily,
-“there is no end.”
-
-Then indeed I talked. Of what, I know not, save that ever I saw her
-sweet face before me, and her eyes looking to mine, until I would fain
-have stayed there in that garden forever.
-
-’Twas strange how all my bashfulness had vanished, not that usually I am
-such a fool with the women. So we conversed of many things until of a
-sudden I noted that the sun was going down behind the hills. I jumped up
-from the bench where we had been sitting.
-
-“I quite forgot it,” I exclaimed.
-
-“What?” asked Lucille.
-
-“My dinner,” I answered, aware of a gone and lonesome feeling below my
-belt. “I was to go back to the tavern for it, but, I--I--came this way,
-and----”
-
-“You missed your dinner talking to me,” finished Lucille solemnly.
-“Welladay, Captain, I am indeed flattered. But there, you shall not say
-that I am a hard commander. Come in and sup with me. ’Tis true, I cannot
-make amends for the companionship to be found at the inn, nor can I
-boast of such cookery as can Mistress Willis. Yet if you will but deign
-to grace my humble board ’twill be of my best store that I will set
-before you,” and she dropped a bow to me that had much of sauciness in
-it, and stood waiting for my answer.
-
-I protested that I could not trouble her, that I had no appetite, that I
-must be at Salem inn to meet any recruits that might come this first
-day.
-
-“Very well then, Captain,” she said, with a stately bend of her head.
-“Since you prefer the inn to my poor roof so be it.”
-
-’Twas then that I hastened to make a different meaning to my words, and
-I pleaded that I might even have a crust in her dooryard. That she would
-but suffer me to sit on the threshold, and see her eat. (My, but how the
-hunger gripped me then). Verily I was afraid she would take me at my
-last words. But at length with a merry laugh, she bade me enter the
-house, and, while I sat and watched the lengthening shadows, Lucille and
-the woman servant set the meal.
-
-I forget what it was that I ate. Certain I am that I talked and looked
-at Lucile, more than I used my knife and fork, for I remember that when
-I reached the inn later I had to rout up Willis, and dine again on cold
-meat. But, though the memory of the meal passes, I can see Lucille yet,
-as she sat opposite me then. And of the topics we conversed on, though
-they be in the dim, shadowy past, yet the sound of her voice is in my
-ears still.
-
-That night when I went on my way to the tavern, I found myself humming a
-love song I had heard in England years ago.
-
-The next day several men and youths appeared at the inn to enlist. I put
-their names down, and arranged for them to get arms, which would be sent
-from Boston. While the recruits were not much to boast of in looks they
-lacked not in spirit, which, after all, is the need of a soldier. Like
-some comrades with whom I have fought they seemed to go at fighting as
-they did at their religion, so that psalm tunes, rather than drinking
-songs and jests were heard among my men.
-
-It was not long before enough had enrolled themselves at the inn, and
-then I began to drill them. I appointed as my lieutenants Giles Cory, a
-very muscular, though small man, and Richard Nicols, who had some
-notions of warfare. We marched the men back and forth on the common in
-front of the tavern, putting them through the exercise of arms. Soon
-they began to have quite a martial air and bearing, handling their
-muskets, matches and flints with skill.
-
-Messages came from Sir William now and then, bidding me hasten my
-preparations. I had a goodly store of powder and ball. Flints, matches
-and guns we had enough of, and, also, two small cannon, with the
-necessary ordnance stores, which had been sent from Boston.
-
-After dint of much practice I had my men in what I considered fair
-shape, and I took considerable pride in them. Sturdy fellows they were,
-most of them, stern of face, yet energetic, with a few daring spirits
-among them.
-
-’Twas on a May day, when the air was exceedingly pleasant, that I
-strolled over the meadows, toward the little brook that flowed through
-the fields. Then, coming to the top of a little hill I saw, on the green
-slope, a squad of my soldiers. They were playing at games of strength,
-and, seeing me, stopped.
-
-“Better this than idling at the tavern,” I said. “Keep at it, men, and
-let us see who has the strongest arms.”
-
-“’Twas Lieutenant Cory, Captain,” spoke up Nicols. “He has put us all to
-shame so far. Look you,” and Nicols pointed to a heavy musket. “Giles
-did but grasp the end of the six-foot barrel in his hand, and yet he
-raised the gun out straight, and held it there at arm’s length without a
-tremor.”
-
-I reached for the gun, and did the feat with little effort. It was an
-old trick, and one I had often done before while loitering about camp.
-But the crowd gaped, and, as for Cory, he seemed little pleased that a
-stranger in the town should have equalled his test of strength.
-
-“What else?” I asked, smiling.
-
-Nicols pointed to a barrel of cider that was on the grass.
-
-“A trader brought it in his canoe a while ago,” he said, “and called on
-two of us to help him lift it from the boat. But Cory, with no other
-aid, raised it by the edges, and, holding it close against his breast,
-walked up the hill with it. Never have I seen a man do such a thing
-before.”
-
-Now I was glad to see that my company was to be of men of this stamp,
-not slow to use their strength. For, when by the closeness of the fight,
-sword and musket are of little use, a strong arm is very needful, and
-stands one in good stead, as I well knew.
-
-As a lad I had been fond of feats of muscle. But I had had no time to
-devote to it since coming to Salem. For with the gathering of my
-company, the writing of letters to Sir William, and the reading of his
-in reply, most of my hours had been taken up. Now, it seemed, here was a
-time when I might, without seeming to boast, show my men that their
-Captain was no weakling. So I glanced about that I might propose some
-new test; for to lift the barrel of cider, or the gun, I did not count
-as sufficient.
-
-It chanced that on top of the hill that gently led down to the brook
-there rested a boulder. It was of good size, and, in weight perhaps 400
-pounds, and it was bedded in the earth. To raise it, and cast it from
-one might be no little task, even for one who boasted of strong arms.
-Therefore, seeing no other test that would answer, I pointed out the
-rock to Cory.
-
-“Can you lift and heave it?” I asked. “You are of goodly girth, and the
-stone is not of such great weight.”
-
-Saying nothing Cory walked slowly up the hill, and I saw that he had
-cast aside his jacket and shirt, and stood naked to the waist. I
-marvelled as I looked at his arms and chest. The muscles were in
-bunches, and stood out like hanks of wool on a distaff. Then, as he
-clenched his hands and opened them, to feel if his sinews were limber,
-the muscles played beneath his skin, as ripples do over the face of a
-pool, when the wind ruffles its surface. Still the stone was heavy, and
-if he lifted it and cast it he well might be counted a strong man.
-
-Cory reached the rock, and stood over it a minute. He looked on all
-sides, seeking a fair hold, and, when he had perceived two small
-projections near the ground, where a man’s fingers might catch, he
-spread his legs, and stood astride the rock.
-
-“I make no boast,” he said, looking at me, “and if mortal man may lift
-the weight, then I will move this stone from its bed. Though, doubtless,
-it has not been disturbed for a hundred years.”
-
-He shuffled his feet, seeking a firm and level stand, and then, with an
-intaking of the breath, he grasped the rock, and put forth all his
-strength into a mighty lift. His sinews and muscles stood out under the
-skin, and were like to burst through, but the stone budged not. Once
-again did Cory lift and strain, but no avail. He straightened up.
-
-“’Tis like that no man can move the rock, Captain,” he cried. “Perchance
-it is buried a foot or more in the earth. Yet, if it is to be lifted
-from its bed I will do it,” he added. Once more he took hold.
-
-This time his back fairly arched with the terrible strain, and the
-muscles in it made it as rough as a ploughed field. But, though he
-tugged, and pulled, until the water dropped from his brow, he moved not
-the rock.
-
-“Enough,” I said. “It will surely prove too much for either of us. I
-must choose something more easy. Yet I will have one trial,” I remarked.
-
-Now, then, I placed myself astride of the great stone, as Cory had done,
-and I grasped the two projections. I pulled upward once not with all my
-strength, for I wanted to try the weight. Then, of a truth, I feared I
-had set myself too great a task, for the rock seemed as immovable as the
-earth itself. But once again I lifted upward, and this time I strained
-every muscle I could bring into play. Still the boulder remained in its
-bed.
-
-I thought toward the end of my last effort, that I felt the least
-movement, and this gave me hope that, if I kept on pulling, I might tear
-the rock out. Slowly I pulled upward again, straightening my bent body,
-as the stone gave, ever so little, in its ancient bed. It was now or
-never. I pulled and pulled, until, verily, I feared that my arms would
-come from the sockets.
-
-There was a buzzing in my ears, and, above it, I heard the crowd of men,
-murmuring in astonishment. Up and up I lifted, until, with a great
-heave, I had fairly torn the boulder from the earth. Summoning all my
-efforts until I thought my head would burst from the strain I poised the
-stone above me. It shadowed me from the sun, and was like to crush me
-with its weight. I could scarce see beyond it, because of the bulk. Then
-with a last remaining bit of power, I hurled the stone from me, down the
-hill side, toward the brook. I had lifted the great rock.
-
-As the stone left my hands the murmur of admiration changed to one of
-horror. Brushing the mist from my eyes I saw, at the bottom of the
-slope, Lucille right in the path of the bounding stone. She was walking
-along the brook, and had not seen me throw the rock. A shout from the
-men, for I was too dazed to cry out, caused her to look up. She came to
-a sudden halt.
-
-On the great rock went, by leaps and bounds, from hillock to hillock,
-and she was in its course, unable, from very fear, to move out of the
-way. The stone was now scarce a fathom’s distance from her. In the next
-instant it must strike and crush her, and none of us could do aught to
-prevent it.
-
-When we had all turned our heads away, that we might not see her killed,
-and my heart seemed like to burst through my breast, we heard a great
-noise. It was a roar and a rattle.
-
-The flying rock had struck another, deep bedded in the side of the hill,
-and the impact of the blow had burst both into thousands of fragments.
-With a sound like a cannon shot, these had scattered all about Lucille,
-but not one had struck her. She stood trembling with fright, in the
-midst of the broken stone, while, scarce knowing what I did, I hastened
-down the hill to her. She was walking slowly away when I reached her.
-
-“You were near to death,” I said, much unnerved, for, somehow, her life
-had grown very dear to me.
-
-“The Lord is good,” she replied. “Now, Captain, take me home, for I am
-afraid yet.”
-
-As we left the wondering crowd behind, I heard one say to another:
-
-“’Twas a mighty lift, and none like it was ever before seen in the
-Colony.”
-
-Also I heard Cory remark, though not without respect:
-
-“Our sturdy Captain, who lifts great rocks easily, can be held by light
-chains, it seems. Even a maid’s word.”
-
-And I felt that he spoke the truth, for I knew that I loved Lucille, as
-I had never loved before.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER VI.
- LUCILLE.
-
-
-I count it not strange, nor to my discredit, that I had, and so soon and
-easily perhaps, fallen prisoner to Lucille. It was small time I had ever
-had for love, because my past life had been spent in strife of one kind
-or another. I was at great pains, sometimes, to escape death, and my
-thoughts, in recent years, had been in the way of how to strike the
-hardest blow, and how to take the lightest.
-
-So, it need not be wondered at that, when I had looked a few times into
-Lucille’s eyes, I did what any other soldier, or man, would have done. I
-came to love her. It had grown on me, like the buds on the trees, or the
-flowers on the vines. Yet I had spoken no words of love to her.
-
-Our conversation, when we met, was on topics far removed from the
-feelings that swayed me. The weather, a reference to the affairs of the
-Colony, to the war soon to begin, of the Indians, of that day in the
-woods when I cast the knife, and of that well-nigh fatal heaving of the
-rock.
-
-Sometimes she spoke of herself, and of the sunny land she left to come
-to America. That subject was one to set her cheeks aglow, and make her
-eyes to sparkle. She told me of France, where she had been so happy as a
-girl, and I told her of some parts of it that I had visited. Of her
-reasons for coming to this bleak shore she said nothing, seeming to
-hesitate as we touched on that. All she told me was, that one day her
-father packed up such of his belongings as could be transported, sold
-the rest, and, with her cousin Marie and herself, had come to
-Massachusetts.
-
-There had been many trials, the worst of all being when M. de Guilfort
-became ill, because of the rigors of the winter, and passed away. Once,
-when I told Lucille that her tongue found little difficulty with the
-English words, she blushed and seemed confused. Then, with downcast
-eyes, she said an Englishman had lodged with her father, in Paris, and
-had been her instructor. Whereat I wondered at her confusion, and,
-though I scented some mystery, I said nothing, being content to wait
-until it was made clear.
-
-But I thought it strange that any man with English blood in his veins,
-should teach this French maid to say, “I love, you love, we love,” and
-yet let it end there. But, of a surety, I was glad that he had.
-
-And so it came that I loved Lucille more and more every day. Sometimes,
-when I looked into her eyes, I forgot the errand that brought me to
-Salem, and I would have willingly cast my commission to the winds, for
-the privilege of being near her always. So it is when a man loves, not
-alone with wisdom. And as time went by my love grew.
-
-From moody to gay, and back again to deep despair had my spirit moved,
-until, at length, I resolved to put all to the proof, and learn whether
-I had any cause to hope. So, one pleasant afternoon I put on what best
-garments I had, furbished my sword up, at great labor of muscle, and
-walked to Lucille’s house. With a hand that strangely trembled, yet with
-which I could, at any other time, have found the smallest nick in the
-wall with my sword point, I lifted the heavy iron knocker on the door
-and let it fall. It made a resounding racket, almost like thunder, I
-thought. The serving woman let me into the front room, and I sat in the
-window recess. I was just beginning to wish I had put the matter off
-until another time, when Lucille entered.
-
-“Hast cast any more rocks, Captain?” she asked, smiling.
-
-“Lackaday, no!” I cried, in sudden terror at the thought of one throw I
-had made, not far back.
-
-“I ought to fear you,” she said, “for you are a very Goliath,” and she
-took a seat near the fireplace. Though it was not cold without, a little
-blaze was going and it cast queer shadows, which played about the room
-and on Lucille’s hair.
-
-“My strength was like to serve me a sorry trick,” I ventured. “Had e’en
-a fragment of the rock struck you I should have cast myself into the
-sea.”
-
-“Do not say that,” she responded, “it would have been no fault of yours.
-I should not have passed that way. I saw the men at their games, and
-might have known that there was danger for an onlooker.”
-
-I made no answer, for I had none ready. I did but gaze and gaze at her,
-until my heart was like to thump its way through my stout jacket. Of a
-sudden she looked up, wondering, perhaps, at the silence, and then,
-seeing my eyes fixed on her she dropped her lids while the color came
-into her cheeks like the blush of morn on the petals of a rose. I could
-bear it no longer. Starting to my feet, my sword clattered against the
-casement. Lucille caught her breath, and seemed to shrink away from me.
-
-“Lucille,” I said.
-
-She did not answer.
-
-“Lucille,” I cried again, and the name went from my lips huskily, for my
-throat was parched and dry.
-
-“Lucille,” I spoke for the third time.
-
-“Yes, Captain Amherst,” she made reply.
-
-“Lucille,” I cried, and then, with an effort, such as even the lifting
-of the great rock had not cost me, I blurted out, like a schoolboy:
-
-“I love you, Lucille, better than I have ever loved before. Better than
-life itself.”
-
-It was out now. I crossed the room, and, standing before her, I held out
-my hands, pouring out my story in warm words of love. I cannot recall
-now, nor could I a half hour afterward, what I said. Only I know that as
-I spoke of my passion, Lucille seemed in a fright, at first. And her
-face, that had been flushed, grew pale, and her fingers plucking at her
-gown, trembled. Then, when my rush of words had somewhat subsided, I
-approached nearer and nearer to her, until I could hear her breath, and
-see her bosom rise and fall. I stretched out my arms, and, not waiting
-to see if she said yea or nay, I clasped her to me, my warm kisses
-falling on her lips, her cheeks, her hands.
-
-I could only repeat over and over again that one phrase, “I love you;”
-until, fearful that she might weary of that strain, I paused.
-
-She struggled from my encircling arms, then stood like a sweet flower,
-that the wind had tossed about. Yet never before had she looked so
-lovely to me.
-
-“Have you no answer for me?” I asked.
-
-She did not reply.
-
-“Can you but love me a little?” I inquired softly, anxious now, indeed,
-as a man whose fate hung trembling in the balance. Then the answer came
-back, oh, so softly and sweetly:
-
-“Yes.”
-
-The darkness fell gently, until the ruddy fire shone out with casts of
-grim shadows over the room. I sat beside Lucille, and my heart was big
-with thoughts of love. The darkness was light to me now.
-
-We talked of what the future might hold for us. Of how, when I had
-returned with honors, from the Canadian expedition, we would wed, and
-make our home in this new land. For a time we forgot the terrible
-tragedy that had brought us together, though it was like a little cloud
-in the otherwise bright sky.
-
-The sweetness of her presence was all I thought of then, as I sat beside
-Lucille. I had never known before what it was to love truly. Many fair
-women had smiled at me and I had laughed in return, for I knew that it
-would end there. But now----
-
-More and more dark it grew. Suddenly came a sound of galloping hoofs on
-the road without. Ere we had time to wonder who it might be, for few
-rode so furiously in that time, unless some danger portended, there was
-a knock loud and long at the door. Lucille and I had risen from our
-seats in alarm. The servant hastened to the portal with a candle, and we
-heard, as the oak swung back, the voice of a man:
-
-“Is Captain Amherst within?” the messenger asked.
-
-“He is,” I answered, walking to the entrance.
-
-“Your pardon for this interruption,” began the man, “but I came in
-haste, with a letter for you from His Excellency, Sir William Phips,”
-and the horseman handed me a sealed missive.
-
-Wonderingly I broke the red wax. In the dim light I read:
-
-“CAPTAIN:--The Indian devils are pressing hard and close on our borders.
-Settlers from outlying hamlets have brought word that they gather in
-numbers on the North. It is said that de Vilebon, at St. Johns, is
-urging the red men on, furnishing them food and munitions of war. Could
-he be driven from his stronghold (mayhap no easy task) much good would
-be done the Colony. Proceed with your company, in all dispatch. Kill,
-burn and capture.
-
-“Given under our hand and seal, the seal of His Majesty, the King.
-
- SIR WILLIAM PHIPS.”
-
-Here was likely to be a sudden end to my love making, I thought. I
-turned to Lucille, who had followed me to the door. She had shrunk back
-into the corner, and in her eyes I could see a strange look of horror
-and fright, such as I had never seen before.
-
-From Lucille I looked to the horseman. He stood at the very door, one
-hand holding the bridle. With the other he stroked his moustache, and
-his eyes never left the face of Lucille. By the light of the candle,
-glowing out into the darkness, I could see a mocking smile on his lips.
-
-“Lucille!” I cried.
-
-The horseman never heeded my exclamation, nor did he change his gaze.
-
-“Sir!” I remarked, with a step toward him, my hand on my sword, “who,
-and what are you, that you dare to come----”
-
-I might as well have been a thousand miles away, for all the heed he
-paid to me.
-
-“I have found you, then,” he said to Lucille, with a sneer on his face
-and in his tones. She shrank back farther and farther into the darkness.
-
-I half drew my sword out, determined to punish his insolence speedily,
-but, with never a look at me, making a low, sweeping bow, that included
-both of us, he leaped into the saddle, and was away down the road in the
-darkness at a terrific pace.
-
-“Who was he?” I demanded, turning to Lucille. She put her hands before
-her eyes, as if to shut out some sight that was hateful to her.
-
-“He was--he was----” she began, her voice trembling. “Oh, Edward, mind
-him not. I thought he was some one I had left behind me forever. But I
-must have been mistaken. The candle light played me tricks.”
-
-“But his words? What of them? What meant he?” I persisted.
-
-“I heard nothing that he said,” she replied, as if in surprise, “but
-what of your message?”
-
-[Illustration: “WHO, AND WHAT ARE YOU, THAT YOU DARE TO COME!”]
-
-Then, though I would have pursued my inquiries further, I was recalled,
-by her words, to the missive I held. Briefly as I could, I told her of
-its import. It meant, I said, that I should have to leave Salem very
-soon; in a day or two.
-
-“It will be hard to go from you, sweetheart, when I have only just found
-you,” I whispered. I kissed her, and then, after a little, I went away,
-her caresses warm on my lips; the echoes of her voice sweet in my ears.
-
-Out under the stars I thought of the horseman. Then, with a start, I
-recalled who he was. I had met him in the room of Governor Phips, in
-Boston, some months before. He was the man with the jeweled hilted
-sword, with whom I had so nearly fought, in the doorway, where we came
-together in no gentle fashion. Clearly there was some mystery here.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER VII.
- OF THE HORSEMAN ON THE BEACH.
-
-
-There was little sleep for me that night. I had been expecting a message
-from the Governor, and so had my men in fair shape for a quick movement.
-Two days’ preparations, now, would put us in readiness for the
-expedition.
-
-It was nearly morning when, having dispatched several messengers on
-horses to call in my company from their various homes, I lay down to
-rest. It seemed that I had been on the bed but a half minute, ere the
-sun came shining in through the window, and awakened me.
-
-We had at Salem two sloops that would hold seventy men each. Of stores
-and munition of war there was a plenty. But guns had to be overhauled,
-and ammunition safely packed for transportation. My first care was to
-see that the boats were laden. Corn meal and flour, salted meats and
-fish, provisions of various kinds, and barrels of cider, were slung
-aboard by the crews, and stored in the holds.
-
-In squads of two and three my men began coming in. I detailed my
-lieutenants to look after the muskets, as they were stacked in the
-company room at the inn. All the spare guns that would serve, were put
-on the sloops. Rests for the heavier and old-fashioned weapons, that
-were fired by means of a slow match, were provided, as well as spare
-matches. Bags of extra flints were also taken. The casks of powder, and
-pouches of bullets, were placed out of danger of fire in the magazines
-of the sloops. Throughout all Salem, that day, little was done or talked
-of save what pertained to the coming fight.
-
-The children stood about the streets, forgetting to go to school and
-were not rebuked. With Cory and Nicols, I hurried here and there. Now,
-seeing to it that none but serviceable arms were taken, and again,
-looking to the muster rolls, or replying to the many questions that
-every one wanted answered.
-
-The air was filled with martial sounds. Two boys, barely out of their
-teens, came up to me, as I was trying the locks of a musket. They
-saluted gravely.
-
-“Please, Captain,” said the taller one, “put our names down, and give us
-each a gun.”
-
-“What! To go to the wars?” I asked.
-
-“Yes, sir,” the younger replied. “The Indians killed our mother, and we
-want to kill some of them.”
-
-“Not now,” I said kindly. “When you are a little older you may both go.”
-
-They turned away, sorely disappointed. Indeed the spirit of battle
-seemed born in the children of this land, and they nursed it with their
-mother’s milk. There was much need of it, though.
-
-About noon, two long teams of oxen were seen winding along the road from
-Boston. They drew heavy wagons, on which were two good sized cannon, in
-addition to the small ones we had. There was also a sufficient supply of
-ammunition, and I was very glad of this increase to our power.
-
-Though it cost us no little labor to get these guns aboard, we finally
-accomplished it, and they were placed, one in the bow of each sloop,
-where they could do the most good.
-
-When all this had been done, and it was well into the afternoon, I had a
-chance to sit down and map out my plans. Another letter, with more
-explicit instructions, had come to me from the Governor by the hands of
-a second messenger. In the meantime I had learned somewhat of the man de
-Vilebon, with whom I was to engage, shortly.
-
-Soon after he came to Canada he saw the fierce fighting qualities of the
-red men, and, with much cunning, he made treaties with them, persuading
-them to become his allies. He promised them that the hated English would
-soon be driven from the land, the homes they had builded being allowed
-as plunder for the Indians. It was by such talk as this, and the manner
-in which he consorted in the daily lives and practices of the savages,
-that de Vilebon had won to his side many influential chiefs and their
-followings.
-
-One way the French took to incite the Indians was to pay for the scalps
-of the English settlers. There was a scale of prices, so much for a
-man’s, so much for a woman’s and less yet for the children’s. There were
-other reasons why the Indians preferred to fight with the French and
-against the English. The French almost lived with the savages, adopting
-their mode of dress, painting their faces with the brilliant pigments,
-and wearing the feathered head pieces.
-
-Then, too, the Indians, contrasting us with the French, thought of them
-as brave warriors, who loved swordplay, and fighting, while we English,
-’twas deemed, cared for nothing but raising the crops, which was, with
-the red men the work of their squaws.
-
-So, I found to my sorrow, ere long, that the Indians loved the French
-and were glad to battle against us.
-
-Among the settlers, now, there was much fear of a sudden night attack
-from the forest. Madockewando, Moxus and Egeremet, fierce Indian chiefs,
-whose names were but other words for carnage, treachery and horrid
-massacres, were with de Vilebon, we heard.
-
-To these chiefs and their followers, the French had furnished not only
-guns, swords, powder and bullets, but even food, so that the savages had
-naught to do save fight, which they were ever ready for. De Vilebon had
-established himself at St. Johns, in Nova Scotia, where a fort of no
-mean strength had been thrown up. Approach by either land or sea was not
-easy, I learned from scouts.
-
-Sir William wrote that few men defended the place now, though troops
-were expected in the fall. Could we but be successful against this fort,
-capturing de Vilebon, the spirit of the Colonists would be much
-strengthened, and a blow would be dealt the French forces that would
-teach them and their Indian allies a severe lesson.
-
-My plan for the expedition was to sail to within a few miles of St.
-Johns, and land most of my force. Then the two sloops and their crews
-could sail boldly up to the town, and while menacing it from the sea by
-the boats, I could lead my men to the rear of the fort. I counted on the
-sea attack, if the cannon were rapidly fired, to create such a diversion
-as to detract attention from the rear, and while the enemy was engaged
-against the sloops, I could fall upon the fort with my force and storm
-it. So my plans were laid, and I called my lieutenants and made them
-acquainted with the way matters stood.
-
-Two days, busy ones in truth, were spent in getting ready. I had seen
-little of Lucille in that time, though I much more desired to be near
-her than at the task with which I was engaged. But night, as well as
-day, was filled with work. At length, when I thought all was in
-readiness, and I had looked to my own arms, and had a new edge put on my
-sword, I went out one evening across the meadows to her.
-
-She was waiting for me.
-
-“You have only come to say good bye, I fear,” she said.
-
-“Only for a time, dear heart,” I answered.
-
-“Oh, Edward, if you should not return,” she whispered, softly.
-
-“Would you care, then, so much?”
-
-“Does the flower care when the sun goes down? Does it not droop at the
-close of day, and does it not smile when the light comes again? Do you
-know how I feel?”
-
-“I hope so, dear heart.”
-
-“Then ask not if I care. If you should not come back to me----”
-
-The rest of the sentence was unfinished, for I had her in my arms, and
-her lips could not speak for the kisses I pressed on them.
-
-Long did we talk of what might be held locked in the future, and yet the
-time I was there seemed woefully short. But I knew that I must go now,
-for we had prepared for an early start--Lucille promised to be near when
-the boat should sail, and with that I must be content.
-
-“And now God keep you, dear,” she said bravely, though there were traces
-of tears in her eyes.
-
-“And God keep you,” I said.
-
-Neither of us knew how soon we would be in need of His care. I pressed a
-last good night kiss on her lips, and then, with the look of her dear
-eyes in mine, I went away.
-
-With the rising of the sun all was activity about Salem inn. Many
-details remained to be looked after. The men, few of whom had before
-been with such a large expedition, were much excited.
-
-There was a clattering of swords and muskets; good byes were being
-called out on every side; and some careful men were doing up extra pairs
-of socks that their good dames had provided.
-
-“What canst thou do with that weapon, friend John Post?” called one man
-to another who carried an exceeding heavy and clumsy musket.
-
-“Shoot an Indian or a Frencher for a surety,” answered John.
-
-“Then thou’lt have to get a squad to help ye load and fire it. For if ye
-don’t the Indians would eat you up before you could put match to the
-powder.”
-
-“Never mind, never mind,” responded he with the ancient weapon. “The gun
-did damage to the enemies of His Gracious Majesty, when thou wert hiding
-behind thy mother’s skirt. ’Tis a good arm, and will serve now as well
-as thou!”
-
-A laugh showed that the would-be jester had not hit the mark, and John
-Post marched on, well pleased with his little skirmish.
-
-There were other wordy tilts between the men. Some, having nothing
-better to do for the time, engaged in leaping, running and wrestling, so
-that the inn yard looked like a fair ground. At length I ordered the
-drum beat and the men fell in, after some confusion.
-
-About one hundred in all had responded to the summons, and I formed them
-into two commands, giving Cory one and letting Nicols lead the other. I
-would have a general command over both, and had made arrangements to
-sail on board the larger of the two sloops. Truly it was a goodly sight
-that morning, to see the little Colonial Army marching out, each man
-with his musket well cleaned, and with his bundle of matches, or his
-pouch of flints and ammunition slung by a thong on one side. Stout and
-able-bodied men they were, too, much given to prayer. Yet they need be
-none the less well thought of for that. For I had heard of their earlier
-battles against the Indians, and I knew that a well rounded psalm tune
-stayed not the sword arm, nor weakened the trigger finger. And, as they
-stepped out to march from the inn yard to the sloops, Master Willis, who
-stood on the steps, did lift his voice up in prayer, and after that the
-deep tones of men singing was heard.
-
-Of the God of Israel they sang, pleading that they might be led on to
-battle against the enemy, as were their fore-fathers of old, in the days
-of King David.
-
-The sloops were soon filled. I walked to one side and met Lucille. Our
-parting was brief, for wind and tide served, and we must shortly lift
-anchor. The last words were spoken, and then, with a final embrace, I
-left her. I boarded the vessel and the sails were run up. They filled,
-and we began to gather headway. I stood in the stern, whence I could
-take a last look at the little town and the people on the shores. Amid
-the crowd I saw Lucille. She was looking earnestly after us, and when I
-waved my helmet in a good bye her hand signaled an answer. We were
-fairly off to the wars at last.
-
-Suddenly, coming along the road at a furious gallop, I saw a single
-horseman. He waved over his head a paper. Even at the distance I knew
-him for the same man I had seen in the Governor’s room the day I
-received my commission, and for the messenger who had come from Sir
-William a few nights before. But it was too late to turn back now. The
-horseman spurred on to the beach and waved the paper frantically. It
-might be some message from Sir William, but, if it was important, a boat
-could be sent to overtake us. I snatched up a ship’s glass and turned it
-toward the shore.
-
-“In the King’s name!” cried the horseman, leaping violently from the
-saddle.
-
-“But I am away in the King’s name,” I called back.
-
-Then, while I was watching through the glass, I saw the horseman turn
-about. Lucille had advanced from the crowd and stood, shading her eyes,
-to see the last of us.
-
-As the man caught sight of her, I could see a cruel smile curl the
-corners of his mouth. Lucille suddenly shrank back, as she had that
-night when she saw the messenger in the hallway of her home, and she
-seemed frozen with fear, like unto the day the snake of the glen was in
-her path.
-
-My heart misgave me, and I was half minded to turn back. Would that I
-had been of a whole mind! For, had I been, I would have leaped into the
-sea and gone to her. But I knew not, until afterward, who I left behind
-me there on the sea sands. Of the deadly enemy he was; who caused me to
-strike many a fierce blow for Lucille and for myself ere I conquered.
-And the warfare was not alone that of the sword.
-
-And so I stood, watching the shore fade away, seeing the crowd grow
-smaller, while, as long as I could, I held the glass to my eyes, to
-catch the last glimpse of Lucille.
-
-Then, with no very cheerful heart, I set to work to get matters arranged
-in soldierly fashion.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER VIII.
- THE BATTLE AT THE FORT.
-
-
-Thus we sailed away. Little of account marked our voyage and, at the end
-of the tenth day, we sighted the headland of St. Johns. In the meantime
-I had made no change in my plans, which were to make a feigned attack on
-the fort by means of the sloops, and, while it was going on, to bring my
-main force up and storm the rear.
-
-Now that our journey’s end was at hand, we prepared for what was before
-us. The arms were removed from the chests they had been stored in.
-Ammunition was broken out, and all useless stuff put away below decks.
-In a short time we anchored in a little bay to the south of St. Johns,
-where the sloops might remain a day or two unobserved. From there I
-would lead my men for the detour. It was dusk when we had landed.
-
-We camped that night on the shore. In the morning, when the sun shone
-slanting through the branches of the trees, we pressed on. Our march was
-through the virgin forest. Now we had to cut our way through dense
-underbrush, scaring from their nests the woodland fowl. Sometimes the
-sneaking figure of a wolf would be seen, protesting with a howl against
-the invasion of his home. Once a great bear, again a startled deer,
-crashed through the brush as we approached.
-
-At night we lighted fires, to keep away the wild beasts, which we heard
-howling on all sides of us. And thus we pushed on until the third night
-when we camped in sight of the French watch-fires.
-
-Then we ate a cold supper, nor did I permit any talk or laughter. In
-deep silence we made all in readiness for the attack in the morning.
-Guns that had been wet in fording streams were looked to, and the caked
-powder picked from the pans. Spare flints were placed in pouches, as
-were the bullets, while powder horns were freshly filled.
-
-With the mournful hoot of the owls in my ears, I fell asleep. I awoke
-with the first streak of dawn. The sentinels were called in, the last
-word given, and we were ready for the attack. If Cory, in charge of the
-sloops, was on hand, all would be well. We marched to the edge of the
-forest, and just beyond us was the fort. It was with a heart that
-throbbed with some little excitement that I arranged my men in files,
-and gave the order:
-
-“Forward!”
-
-Out into the open we ran, and I called to the men to separate, that they
-might thereby offer a smaller mark to the enemy.
-
-Looking toward the stronghold of the French, I saw, in the gray dawn,
-the sentinels on the ramparts. They looked down on us in wonder and then
-they shouted a warning and fired their muskets at us. The drum inside
-the fort beat the long roll of the call to arms. We were not to take
-them all unawares.
-
-As we ran on, stooping to gain what little natural cover there was,
-dodging from side to side, I heard the dull boom and the roar of the
-sloops’ cannon, which told me that Cory was on hand.
-
-The fort was now but a few hundred yards away, and I saw that it was a
-place of considerable strength. It was two stories in height, built of
-solid logs. The upper story overhung the lower, so that when the enemy
-came beneath the projection he could be attacked from above.
-
-Outside of the fort was a stout palisade, made of young hickory trees
-bound closely together, after the Indian fashion. The fort could be seen
-above the palisade, as the stronghold stood on a little knoll. I could
-see that the mouths of six cannon were thrust toward us, and they seemed
-like to speak no gentle message.
-
-We were clearly about to meet more than a match for our little force,
-yet I believe that never a one halted or wished to turn back. If we were
-to die, we would die fighting.
-
-On we rushed. Within the fort all was activity now. The roll of the drum
-continued, and the flashes and reports on the side farthest from us told
-me that the fire from our sloops had drawn some answer from the grim
-fort.
-
-I had hoped that the force at St. Johns was a small one, and that, by
-reason of the attack in front, I might get near enough the rear to carry
-the works. But a few minutes sufficed to show how little we had counted
-on the French and Indian fighting abilities. For no sooner had the
-cannon on our sloops and in the fort begun a noisy duel than a double
-score of men poured out from the lower part of the blockhouse and ran
-down the little hill to the stockade.
-
-We were now within good musket range, and I called to the men to halt.
-Then I gave the order to fire. Our band, which had, though advancing at
-good speed, long been in readiness for this, let fly, aiming over the
-top of the palisade. It was a little too great a distance to do much
-damage, yet a few of the bullets that had a trifle more of powder behind
-them than others had, found a mark. I saw two of the French fall and
-roll down the hill, while a third was wounded and had to turn back. An
-answering volley from the fort did some scath among us and three men
-fell, one shot through the leg, and the others through the body so badly
-that there was small hope for them.
-
-Among the men that now swarmed out from the fort like bees from a hive,
-I discerned the half-naked and painted bodies of savage Indians. They
-whooped horribly, and sprang up and down in the air, whirling about.
-They brandished their tomahawks around their heads, and some foolish
-ones threw them over the stockade, thinking, I suppose, that the weapons
-might strike us.
-
-The smoke from the muskets now hid the scene from view, but when the
-wind had blown it aside I saw, by the white cloud that hung over the
-sea, that the sloops were doing their best. Yet I knew they could hope
-to inflict no damage, and the French were likely to find this out
-shortly. That the battle would go against us now seemed probable, but I
-knew our only hope was to fight on, even though the odds were heavy. I
-urged my men to reload quickly. Powder horns poured their black contents
-down the musket barrels. Then followed the bullet, in its greased
-leather covering, and, with a clang of the rammer on top of all, the
-load was in. The clicking of the powder pans as they were sprung open,
-and hammers raised, mingled with the hissing, spluttering sound of the
-slow matches.
-
-Once more we fired, but this time most of our bullets rattled harmlessly
-against the stockade. The volley that answered us laid low two more of
-our men. Clearly this was but a losing fight, and so I resolved that a
-charge, an attempt to storm the palisades, must be made. Could we but
-gain entrance there, a hand to hand conflict might carry the day for us.
-Otherwise we could but stand and be shot at, doing little harm in
-return.
-
-I passed the word to the men, and again they loaded their weapons. I
-counted to have them rush as soon as they had discharged their pieces,
-as then the smoke would hang over us and afford a sort of cover.
-
-“Fire!” I cried, and the bullets flew onward.
-
-Yells from within the stockade told that some had been hit, probably
-through the loops. Immediately I ordered all my men to drop flat on
-their faces. As I expected, the volley from the fort that replied passed
-harmlessly over our heads.
-
-“Now for it!” I cried.
-
-“Forward, in the name of the King, and for the honor of Salem!” was the
-answer from the men.
-
-I was leading the advance, and in less than a minute it seemed to me, we
-were at the stockade. The men strove to climb over, but were fiercely
-beaten back by the French and Indians. Guns were used as clubs now, for
-there had been no time to reload on either side. Man after man of my
-little force was hurled backward from the top of the stockade, some
-suffering grievously. It was cut and slash and thrust with me, without
-stopping to take breath. I was on top of the hickory fence, supporting
-myself by a small foothold on a larger tree than some of the others.
-Those below me, inside the stockade, thrust at me, but I gave back as
-good as they sent, and my sword turned red.
-
-A big Indian, hideous in paint, leaped to the top and struck at my head
-with his keen little axe. I dodged the blow, and the weapon buried
-itself to the middle in a sapling. Then, while he vainly tried to pull
-his tomahawk out, I raised my sword and brought it down on his naked
-head, shearing through his scalp lock and nigh cutting him to the chin.
-He fell back, ugly enough in his death agony, and his hand clutched the
-axe so strongly that it came out from where the wood clipped it.
-
-Now there was a sudden rally to this part of the stockade. I had time to
-see that soldiers were pouring from around the front, or seaward, side
-of the fort, before I leaped back to the ground. This told me more
-plainly than a message that the sloops no longer sufficed to hold the
-enemy’s attention. The whole force of the fort would now engage us. I
-hastily retreated my men, until we had put ourselves beyond musket shot.
-Then we halted to take account of the damage we had received, and to
-plan how we might save ourselves from utter annihilation; for it would
-not be long ere we should have to battle against fearful and heavy odds.
-
-Three of our men had been laid low at the first volley from the fort,
-and two at the second. Then, in the assault on the stockade, several had
-received sword thrusts, which must eventually cause their deaths. A few
-suffered minor hurts, and four were killed outright, so that, in all we
-had been deprived of eleven men. I looked toward the fort. There seemed
-to be some movement inside, and presently the great gate swung open.
-Half a dozen naked savages came out uttering their war cry. Then, while
-my heart turned faint with horror, I watched the Indians approach the
-bodies of our dead that were just without the palisade. There was a
-gleam of steel flashing in the sunlight above their earth-pillowed
-heads, then the bloody scalp trophy was snatched from them; from some
-ere the breath of life had departed. One poor fellow, Peter Rankin (he
-had been next to me when we stormed the stockade), had received a cut in
-the breast from one of the tomahawks. He yet breathed when his hideous
-tormentors stooped over him. As we looked on in anguish we saw Rankin
-rise to a sitting position. The Indian never paused. His knife described
-a quick circle, and the blood red scalp was torn off. Then the savage,
-mercifully, though he did not intend it so, thrust his knife into poor
-Rankin’s heart, and a groan went up from my men.
-
-But in the midst of it a rifle cracked. The Indian threw up his hands,
-one holding Rankin’s scalp, and, with a screech, pitched forward, dead.
-I looked around. Samuel Hopkins, the best marksman in the Colony, had,
-with his gun, crept forward in the grass when he saw the Indians come
-out. He it was who had taken swift vengeance on Rankin’s slayer. The
-groan of the men was turned into a wild cheer, and the other Indians
-fled in confusion to the protection of the stockade, slamming the gate
-behind them.
-
-“There is one devil the less,” said Hopkins as he came back among us,
-and several of his comrades silently pressed his hand.
-
-But it was high time that we looked to ourselves. The hill about the
-fort was black with the French and Indians now. We were outnumbered four
-to one, and it would be useless to continue the fight longer. How to
-escape was now the question. I had an idea that they would not advance,
-and attack us for a little while yet, as our strength was not fully
-known. They would naturally suppose that we had some reserve, and
-probably would not charge us until they saw what this amounted to. If we
-could get to the coast, board the sloops and sail away all might yet be
-well; save for those we had lost. Bitterly as I hated to return to the
-Colony without having accomplished our object, I knew that it was the
-best we could attempt. Perchance we could not even succeed in this.
-
-After a hurried consultation we concluded that our only hope was in
-fleeing along the north side of the fort. On that face it was the least
-heavily cannoned. Also there was a little gully, which, if we could
-enter, might afford some protection from the fire. Once in this, though
-we had to pass a hail of lead, we could gain the shore and signal the
-sloops. It was, at best, but a dangerous and hazardous undertaking, yet
-we must act on that or some other quickly if we ever hoped to see Salem
-again. It was with anxious spirits then that my men began to load their
-guns again for what might be our last struggle. I had them leave behind
-such of their accouterments as could be dispensed with, to enable them
-to travel light. With a rapidly beating heart, though it pulsated not
-with fear, I gave the word.
-
-We started off on the run, as if we intended once more to advance to the
-assault. Then, when within good musket fire distance, we suddenly
-swerved to the left. It was well that we did so, for there was a shout
-from the forces in the fort, and, at the same time a belch of flame and
-smoke, followed by the roar of a cannon that had been pointed so as to
-cover us, had we kept on our course. The shot with which the gun was
-loaded, tore up the earth.
-
-Seeing that this firing did us no harm the men in the fort ran to the
-north side to pick us off as we passed. The rifles began to crack, and
-the bullets to sing about our ears like angry hornets, but my men held
-their fire for closer quarters. Now we were abreast of the northern wall
-of the stockade. It took some little time, however, for the enemy to get
-to the loop holes, and, by a good providence it happened that the cannon
-on that side were not loaded. Running at top speed we pressed on. One
-man fell behind me, shot through the head; another stumbled at my right
-hand, pitched on his face, and, with a gush of blood from the mouth, was
-dead. Three or four were hit but kept on. We had entered the little glen
-now, and were somewhat screened from the musket fire. Just ahead I could
-discern the sea, and, calling encouragingly to my band, I pressed on.
-Ah, if only the sloops were at hand.
-
-“Cory! Cory!” I cried. “Bear off to the right of the fort! Cory to the
-rescue!”
-
-Whether he heard me at the time I know not, but a dull boom from one of
-the sloop’s cannon told me that some on board were still alive. I
-reached the shore and halted to let my command pass me. The fire from
-the fort could reach us here, and every minute it was becoming more
-deadly. Several men were killed. Little clouds of dry sand, caused by
-the striking of the bullets, rose all around us. I glanced to where the
-sloops floated. The sails were set and they forged toward us slowly.
-There was a chance that we might yet be saved. Panting from their run
-the men drew up on the beach. Nearer and nearer came the vessels.
-
-“To the rock, Captain! To the rock!” Cory cried. “We can take you off
-there!”
-
-Then I saw that on our left hand there was a small headland of rock,
-which jutted out into the sea. It went down straight into the depths of
-water, and the top part overhung so that a skillful pilot might sail a
-small sloop beneath, and receive his passengers from the rock above, if
-they would but drop to the deck.
-
-“To the rock, men!” I called, understanding Cory’s plan.
-
-They heard me, but now a new danger presented. The French and Indians
-were making ready to unbar the northern gate, and pour out upon us. Even
-as I looked I saw the first of them coming from the stockade. I called a
-score of the best marksmen, and had them take each a spare loaded rifle
-from their comrades. The other men hurried on, and reached the rock.
-Cory directed his sloop beneath, and I saw that in a short time the men
-could drop to the vessel’s deck. Then the rush of the Indians and the
-French began. The air resounded with the yells of the savages.
-
-“Kneel down!” I cried to the score.
-
-They dropped as one man, and the enemy, thinking we were begging
-quarter, whooped in derision.
-
-“Fire!” I shouted, and I could see, when the smoke had cleared, that the
-enemy had halted in confusion. About half of them had fired in return,
-but we had killed eight of them, while only two of our men died. I
-looked around, and saw that but a few men remained on the rock. Cory’s
-sloop, receiving its load, had passed from beneath. The other vessel
-came up quickly to perform the same office.
-
-Casting aside the discharged guns the recruits leaped to their feet, and
-ran toward the rock. But the enemy had again rallied, and came on with a
-rush. Once more my band knelt down and delivered the last volley at
-short range, as they stood on the rock. The sloop was now beneath. One
-by one the men, taking advantage of the confusion in the enemy’s ranks,
-dropped to the deck.
-
-“Jump, Captain!” called out several.
-
-“I go last,” I answered, drawing my sword.
-
-There was one huge, and fiercely painted, Indian in the lead, having
-outstripped his fellows. Only two of my men were left on the rock now.
-The Indian halted when a few feet away, and fired point blank at me. I
-felt a sudden sting as the bullet went through the flesh of my left arm.
-Then, uttering his whoop, the savage cast aside his now useless gun,
-and, shaking his uplifted tomahawk, rushed at me.
-
-“Jump, Captain,” called one of my men. “We are all off now.”
-
-The Indian raised his sharp little weapon, and it glittered in the air
-above me. While he hesitated only for an instant to concentrate all of
-his force into the blow with a quick motion I passed my sword through
-his body under his upraised arm.
-
-The savage fell forward, dragging the sword from my grasp. I was in no
-mind to lose my bit of steel, so, placing a foot on the Indian’s still
-quivering breast, I managed, with some use of force, to draw out the
-blade. Then I turned, the bullets singing all about me, and leaped from
-the rock, landing square on the sloop’s deck.
-
-There was a shout of disappointed rage behind us, and several shots
-pattered in the water around the sloops. Then the friendly breeze and
-tide carried us out of harm’s way. We had failed to capture St. Johns,
-and the power of de Vilebon was unbroken.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER IX.
- HOW THE FRENCH TOOK PEMAQUID.
-
-
-A stiff breeze soon carried us beyond reach of any shots from the fort.
-But we were in sorry plight. The men were weary, some were badly hurt,
-and all were in low spirits from the failure of our expedition. A new
-danger threatened us now. The sloop I was in had received a cannon ball
-near the water line, and, the sea being somewhat rough the water came
-in, so that it was necessary to man the pumps.
-
-I sent some of my men to help the skipper at this task. The master of
-the craft told me that if the sea got much higher we would founder, and
-it was with anxious eyes that I watched the weather all that afternoon.
-But when the sun went down beneath the waves, in a glory of gold and
-crimson, our hearts were lighter, for we heard the sailors singing, as
-they trimmed the canvas:
-
- “_Red in the mornin’,
- Sailors take warnin’.
- Red sun at night,
- Is sailor’s delight._”
-
-Then, too, the skipper managed to get a spare sail over the rail, and,
-when it was bound with ropes, it somewhat stopped the gaping hole in the
-sloop’s side, and the water came in less freely.
-
-Homeward bound. Of the days which followed we had little heart to take
-note, for our defeat was bitter upon us. On the tenth day after the
-battle at St. Johns, we came opposite Pemaquid.
-
-At this place Governor Phips had begun to build a fort, and he had sent
-a small garrison there. The commander signaled to us as we sailed by,
-and I ordered the sloops to come to anchor until a boat could put off
-from the fort.
-
-I was somewhat surprised to receive from one of the garrison a letter,
-addressed to me from Sir William. He told me that, expecting I would
-stop at Pemaquid, in the event of success or failure, he had sent the
-message there to intercept me. And the import of it was that I was to
-take command of the fort, holding it with the men there, and with such
-of my own men as would volunteer for the service. We might expect to be
-attacked at any time, Sir William said.
-
-Now, though I was heart-weary to be back in Salem it was no part of a
-soldier’s duty to complain, so I briefly told my men of the Governor’s
-letter. Then I proceeded to find what command I would have.
-
-Of those of my original company only fifty were able to be of service.
-But I might not count on all of them, for, of the Salem recruits, only
-those who volunteered were to stay. So I mustered them in line, and gave
-the word for those who wished to fight no more to step aside. I was not
-a little pleased when only eight withdrew from the ranks. With the
-garrison already at the fort this gave me a command of one hundred and
-fifty men.
-
-A few days sufficed to repair the sloops, and they left for Salem,
-bearing a letter from me to Sir William. When the sails were low on the
-horizon we turned to getting the fort in shape to withstand an attack.
-The work was less laborious than that we had recently been accustomed
-to, and we were all glad of the respite. In time we had the place in as
-good state as it could be put.
-
-One day, toward evening, as I sat in the gateway of the fort, I saw, out
-in the woods, a man approaching. His steps were not rapid, and, at
-times, he appeared to stop to gather strength. His actions were so
-strange that I sent one of my men out to see who the stranger was. The
-two met, and my man, linking his arm in that of the other, began to help
-him toward the fort. When they came within hailing distance, Roger
-Toothtaker, whom I had sent, called:
-
-“Ho, Captain, ’tis none other than our old comrade, George Burroughs,
-who was left for dead at St. Johns.”
-
-“Aye, Captain,” said Burroughs, faintly, “that’s who I am.”
-
-Surprised as I was to see Burroughs, I had him taken to my own
-apartments. He recovered a little when I gave him some rum, and I left
-him with some of his townsmen, while I went to see that the sentinels
-were properly posted. Ere I had finished my rounds I was recalled by an
-urgent message from him. He was sitting up when I came to him, and it
-seemed to me as if he had not long to live.
-
-“Look to your fort, Captain,” his first words were, “within a week these
-woods will be filled with the painted and bedecked imps of Satan, led on
-by the French, as cruel as themselves. And the sea beyond will float
-three sloops of war bearing the French ensign.”
-
-“How came you to know all this?” I asked, thinking that the man was
-perchance delirious.
-
-Then he told. First, how, when he had seemingly been left for dead
-before the French fort, he had only been stunned by a spent ball. How he
-had escaped the death meted out to the other wounded he did not know,
-but it probably was due to the shot fired by Hopkins. Burroughs went on:
-
-“When you had gone in the sloops the Indians discovered me and I was
-taken prisoner. Kept within the fort I overheard the plan of the French
-to march against Pemaquid and surprise the garrison. Then I resolved to
-make my escape, and carry you a warning. Many days I waited for the
-chance before it came, but at last, one night I managed to elude the
-guard, and found myself without the palisade.”
-
-Here Burroughs became faint, and we had to give some spirits to revive
-him.
-
-“I struck for the woods,” he continued after a pause, “keeping as near
-to the coast as I dared. Oh, but it was a wearisome journey. After many
-days of hardship and starvation I fell in with a band of friendly
-Indians. They guided me as near as they went to this place. A day’s
-journey back I fell over a cliff in the darkness, and cut my leg so
-badly on the sharp rocks that I feared I could not go on. I well nigh
-gave up in despair, but I managed to rig up a crutch made from the limb
-of a tree, and pressed forward, hoping to be in time. The distance which
-should have taken a day was three times that to me, for I could only
-hobble along. When I caught sight of the fort through the woods I was
-not able to go farther, for I had eaten nothing for three days save
-berries. But thank God, I have come in time.”
-
-The man ceased speaking, and fell back on the rude bed so deathly pale
-that I thought it was all over with him, brave fellow that he was. After
-some time we brought him back to his senses, though he was so weak that
-I knew he could not last long. Then I left him, bidding the men to see
-to his needs. Away from the room, with its smoky candles, and its
-suggestion of death in poor Burroughs’ face, out under the stars, I
-paused to think over what I had heard.
-
-If we were to be stormed from land and sea at once, there was little
-time to prepare for it. We must act promptly, and, with that end in
-view, I called the garrison together by beat of drum and told the men
-what I had heard from Burroughs. I said that it must be a considerable
-force that could successfully attack the fort, and, although our
-position was not of the best from a soldier’s standpoint, it would not
-do for us to give up without a fierce fight. And a fierce battle it was
-likely to be, for Burroughs had said that at least two hundred Indians,
-led by Baron de St. Castine from Penobscot, would be accompanied by the
-French force under Iberville. The latter would attack us from the sea,
-while the Indians would assault the land side.
-
-It showed the spirit of my men, when, after I had told them all this
-they gave three hearty English cheers and dispersed. It made my heart
-feel much lighter. For a little while longer I walked up and down in the
-open. The scent of the woods came to me, and with it the varied noises
-of the beasts and birds therein. I looked up to the stars and whispered
-the name of Lucille. When would I see her again. Perchance never if the
-French and Indians overwhelmed us. Then I was likely with my comrades to
-find a grave in these same woods, and be forgotten by all. But I did not
-let these gloomy thoughts hang over me long. I had my sword by my side,
-the battle was yet to be fought, and I was too old a soldier to give up
-the fight before a blow had been struck. So with this change in my ideas
-I sought my bed.
-
-In the morning I was told that poor Burroughs had died during the night.
-He had not been in his senses, and ever murmured of the terrible journey
-he had taken to warn us. He died, the men said, shouting:
-
-“Here they come, boys, the Frenchers and the Indians. Now strike for
-Salem and the King!”
-
-Burroughs’ death had been looked for, yet it dampened my spirits a bit.
-However, I felt better after breakfast. I reflected that bridges need
-not to be crossed until they lie before one, also that to borrow trouble
-is to have a bad creditor. So I hurried about, here and there in the
-fort, to see wherein our weakness lay.
-
-I made several changes. I had all the inflammable material stored in a
-safe place, and strengthened the magazine by binding logs on the more
-exposed part. Then having seen to it that the cannon were all in good
-order, with a supply of powder and balls at hand, I began drilling the
-men. They practiced at gunnery, for we had plenty of powder, and it was
-as well to let any sulking Indian scout know that we were prepared. One
-of the last thing I did was to write a letter, embodying all my
-adventures, and address it to Lucille. I arranged that if I was killed
-it should be forwarded to her. Then there was little to do but wait for
-the foe. It was not a long delay.
-
-Scouts who had been sent out came back on the eve of the sixth day after
-Burroughs’ death. They reported that they had seen the fires of the
-Indians, who evidently were using but little of their usual
-cautiousness. It was some relief to know that action was at hand, for
-nothing so saps a man’s courage as to sit in idleness and wait for the
-unknown.
-
-We had taken every possible precaution. I doubled the sentinels, and the
-cannon were ready loaded. And the next night, when the watch was
-changing, the Indians came. There were a few shots fired aimlessly, and
-then followed the war cry. It rose and fell on the night air, echoing
-from the hill, and resounding throughout the silent woods. We might
-expect the battle in the morning. I ordered two cannon, loaded with
-small shot, to sweep the bushes before the fort. Though we probably did
-little damage, yet it told them we were awake.
-
-There was little sleep for any of us that night.
-
-Every one was on the alert, for we knew that early dawn would set the
-Indians at us. So we sat in the darkness and watched the fires which the
-Indians kindled beyond rifle shot.
-
-I watched the stars grow dim, and a gray darkness steal over the
-blackness of the night. A cold wind sprang up, and whistled mournfully
-through the trees. The owls hooted, and the wolves howled. Then the
-gray-black became lighter. All the stars were blotted out now, and there
-in the east was a pale streak, which gradually grew larger and larger.
-The dawn was come. With it came the frightful yells of the savages, and
-the crack of their muskets and rifles. They began the attack on all but
-the side of the fort toward the sea, but most of their bullets found
-marks only in the solid logs of the palisades. My men replied, yet,
-likewise, did little execution. I saw de Castine moving about here and
-there among his Indians urging them on, and I called to two of my best
-marksmen to try to pick him off. Once a ball chipped a piece from his
-sword scabbard, but he only looked toward the fort and bowed in mockery.
-
-The woods seemed alive with the red men, and several, with better rifles
-than their fellows, approached near enough to fire through the loops. I
-had three men wounded this way, one so badly that he died in a short
-time. Another was made blind by log splinters knocked into his eyes by a
-bullet. Yet we had not been idle. The cannon were of little use, so
-scattered was the foe, but once a knot of them gathered at the left of
-the fort, about one of their number who had been hit. It was a chance
-that one of our gunners did not miss, and a charge of small shot from
-the cannon was sent hissing into their midst. When the smoke lifted five
-dark forms stretched out on the ground showed what execution had been
-done. After this the savages remained quiet for a time. It was now noon,
-so I ordered a hasty meal served to the company. We were interrupted in
-the eating by a loud cry from one of the sentinels in the fort.
-
-“A sail!” he shouted. “Hasten, Captain; there are ships approaching!”
-
-I ran to the lookout, and there, approaching under a stiff breeze, were
-to be seen two sloops; and the decks were crowded with armed men. I
-could see, also, that on board were several cannon and mortars. Now,
-indeed, was our fight like to be most desperate.
-
-I ordered the cannon facing the sea to be run out of the ports. Then,
-bidding Cory to look to defending the land side, I waited for the sloops
-to come within range. Within a half hour they had stood in nearer to
-shore, and we let fly at them. A few splinters knocked from the bow was
-all the damage we did to one. But the other fared less well, for one of
-our shots slivered the main mast near the deck. A cheer went up from our
-company. In reply the sloops fired two broadsides, and badly smashed one
-corner of the fort, besides injuring four men, and killing one. The
-vessels now drew around a point, and out of range. We could see them
-preparing to land the men and the cannon. I made no doubt that Iberville
-was there in charge of the force.
-
-It was not long before two of the mortars were in position to fire at
-us, some of the balls falling very near our magazine, and I was fearful
-lest that be set on fire and explode. The battle now began in earnest.
-The Indians seeing that the French had arrived, renewed their attack, so
-that we were between two fires. It was rattle and bang on all sides of
-us, and above all rose the fierce yells of the Indians. But our men
-stuck well to their work.
-
-I had to divide my forces, and this left both sides of the fort rather
-poorly defended. Several times we were most desperately put to prevent
-the Indians from swarming over the palisades. They sent several blazing
-arrows on top of the fort, but the logs were green and would not burn
-readily. All the afternoon we fought, only managing to hold our own, and
-when night came, our situation was most precarious.
-
-The French continued to blaze away at us with the cannon, and we could
-see that they were landing more guns, so that the morrow promised to be
-full of peril for my little garrison. I dared not make a sally, for my
-force was too small, and yet we were little in shape to withstand a
-siege. As the darkness grew deeper, the rattle of the muskets and the
-boom of the cannon, and the thud of the balls on the wooden walls of the
-fort ceased. Desperate and weary, the men sought food and rest.
-
-As for me, I was gloomy enough. I saw no hope but to fight on to the
-last. Many had been hurt; several killed. Help might come from Boston,
-but it would scarce reach us in time now. I turned over various
-expedients in my mind, and had dismissed them all, when a sentinel
-called out:
-
-“A white flag, Captain!”
-
-I looked out through a loop, and saw an Indian on the clearing in front
-of the fort. He had a stick, to which a white rag was tied. Approaching
-without the least sign of fear, he knocked at the gate and entered
-boldly when I bade a man let him in.
-
-In his hand, besides the flag of truce, the Indian carried a letter. It
-was from Castine, addressed to me.
-
-I was told that unless the fort surrendered at break of day, it would be
-stormed. We could not hope to hold out, Castine wrote; and, after a
-resistance, he feared the Indians could not be restrained from
-practicing their cruel tortures. A speedy capitulation was advised.
-
-I tore the letter into fragments, and scattered them to the wind.
-
-“Go,” I said to the Indian messenger. “Tell your leader that I refuse.
-We will fight to the last.”
-
-“Hu,” muttered the red man, and he went out into the night that was
-approaching.
-
-He could no more than have delivered my answer when a sentinel, from the
-seaward side of the fort, hastened to me with the news that there was
-considerable activity among our foes, and that several guns were being
-landed from the ships, and being brought to bear on the fort.
-
-“Let them do their worst,” I cried, as cheerfully as I could to the men
-who were near me. “We will beat them yet. Will we not?”
-
-Now, indeed, I expected that a hearty cheer would be my answer. Instead,
-there was only silence. I looked at the men.
-
-“Are you Englishmen?” I asked, scornfully. “Are you going to give up
-before the battle is over?”
-
-“Aye, we be Englishmen,” muttered a sailor. “We be true Englishmen, but
-of what is the use to fight all of France, and the Indians, too? We are
-but ninety men now, and perchance, if we yield we may get safe conduct
-to Boston or Salem town.”
-
-I would have pierced the fellow with my sword had he not leaped back.
-Then I looked at him. I knew him simply as Simon, one of the sailors.
-Yet, as I gazed at him more keenly, I recognized him as a man who had
-followed my adversary, Sir George, into the Governor’s room, in Boston,
-the day I had received my commission. I recalled, also, that Simon had
-ever seemed to be near me; when we voyaged in the sloops, and when we
-stormed the fort at St. Johns. He was like a man appointed to watch over
-me, for no good purpose. And he had gained some hold over my men, for,
-when I looked from him to them, to see if his words found echo in their
-hearts, there was no one who said nay.
-
-“You are all cowards,” I cried, but there was no answer.
-
-Then, when I could command my voice, I asked whether it was the wish of
-the garrison to surrender, and, with almost one accord, they said it
-was. It was a bitter cup to drink of.
-
-I slept not at all that night, and, several times, I was half minded to
-rush out, all alone, and fight, single handed, until I was slain. But
-life was sweet, and, shameful as it was, I resolved to give up the fort.
-I had none to defend it, and we might be treated as prisoners of war, to
-be exchanged, in due season. There was nothing else to do, so, with
-sorrow in my heart, I ordered the white flag run up, as the sun rose.
-Then came Castine and Iberville, the leaders, who had been waiting for
-the signal.
-
-To Iberville I handed my sword. I could not but gaze with longing eyes
-on the bit of steel that had served me so well. Now I was like never to
-see it nor feel it in my hand again.
-
-But Iberville, noting my wistful glance, after he had held the weapon in
-his hand a moment, poising it as one who well knew its worth, said:
-
-“’Tis a pretty blade.”
-
-“Aye,” I answered, bitterly. “It has found sheath in many an English
-foe, both French and Indian.”
-
-His face, that had held a smile, went dark in a second. I expected
-nothing less than he would lunge at me. But he seemed to recover
-himself, though with an effort, and said, graciously:
-
-“Perchance it may again.”
-
-And he handed me back the sword.
-
-I was too surprised to give him thanks. Soon we were deep in the details
-of the surrender. It was arranged that I was to march out at the head of
-my men, and we went on board the French vessels, as prisoners. We were
-to sail for Boston, to be exchanged for some French hostages held
-captive there.
-
-It was not long before we left Pemaquid in the distance, a French
-garrison being in charge. The voyage was without incident, and, one day
-in July, I walked ashore at Boston town, with my command. Sending word
-to Governor Phips that I would call on him the next day, I made a hasty
-meal, secured a horse, and was soon on the road to Salem and to Lucille.
-
-I could but contrast that ride with a similar one I had taken some
-months back, when the snow was drifted deep over the path. Much had
-happened since then. I had fought and loved, and fought, and still was
-loving. And the love was of more strength than all the battles.
-
-I spurred the horse on, while over and over in my heart I sang but one
-song, and the name of it was Lucille.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER X.
- THE MAN AT THE INN.
-
-
-At length the friendly tavern of Master Willis came into view. When I
-had reached it, weary and travel-stained, I dismounted, calling for a
-stable lad to see to the horse. I would but stop, I thought, to get a
-change of raiment, snatch a hasty bite, and hurry on to greet Lucile.
-
-“Have the dead returned?” quoth Willis, joyfully, as I strode into the
-big room.
-
-“Nay; ’tis myself in the flesh,” I answered, “as you may know, when I
-tell you that I am most woefully hungry. Some meat and drink, I pray
-you, for I must away soon again.”
-
-The tavern keeper bestirred himself to much advantage, and it was not
-long ere there was plenty on the round table. I drew up a chair, and,
-while I lingered somewhat over the food, I had time to look about the
-familiar apartment.
-
-In one corner I noticed a man seated. His legs were stretched out in
-lazy comfort, one foot crossed over the other, while, with a riding whip
-in his hand, he switched at his boots. He seemed not to notice me, so
-that I had a chance to take a good look at him. Then I knew him for the
-same man who had ridden down to the beach, the day the sloops sailed;
-the mysterious messenger of the night, the man with whom I had nearly
-come to sword strokes in the Governor’s room. I own I was startled, for
-I could not help feeling that something portended of no happy omen.
-
-Once he caught me looking at him, but he said nothing until I had
-finished. Then he rose, lifted his hat from his head, and snapped his
-whip so that it cracked like a pistol shot.
-
-“Good day to you, Captain Amherst,” he said. “May I have the honor of a
-few words?”
-
-As he finished he smiled, and, though I could not tell why, I hated him
-for it.
-
-“As many as you wish,” I answered, “but I am pressed for time now. Will
-not another occasion do? I----”
-
-“Some other time might serve,” he interrupted, “but I am on the King’s
-business, and you know that ever presses us men of the sword.”
-
-Not very graciously I led the way to my former apartment, from which I
-had been absent so long. Wearily I sat down, pointing to another chair,
-opposite, for my visitor. He took it, doubled the riding whip in his
-hands, and, with a slight bow to me, said:
-
-“I have been waiting for your return, Captain Amherst,” and he seemed to
-hesitate over the name. “I have waited ever since you sailed against St.
-Johns.”
-
-“Then you had a wearisome delay,” I responded, little heeding my own
-words, for I was in haste to be away. “One, I fear, not much to your
-profit or pleasure.”
-
-“I did not look for profit,” was his reply. Then he spoke slowly, and
-with a mocking, sneering tone. “But it was pleasant enough, tarrying
-here--with Lucille!”
-
-I sprang to my feet and half drew my sword, for there was more than
-insult in his words; there was a threat.
-
-“Lucille!” I cried, leaning forward and peering into his handsome,
-sneering face.
-
-“Aye, Lucille,” he answered coolly, and he never glanced at me, but
-played with the buckle of his sword belt.
-
-“We had many happy hours together,” he went on; “she and I, while I was
-waiting for you.”
-
-“Damn you!” I shouted; “what means this! Know you that----”
-
-“Aye, I know,” was his response, and then he looked me full in the face.
-He seemed to drop his jaunty, careless air, as, at midnight, a dancer
-casts aside his mask. “I know,” he repeated slowly. “I know you, and I
-know Lucille.”
-
-My sword was out in an instant, and, with its point, I menaced his
-heart. But, with a coolness that I could not help admiring, he never
-moved, nor did he seem at all alarmed.
-
-“Draw, sir!” I cried out. “Draw, in the devil’s name, or I’ll run you
-through where you stand! The Governor is not here now to stay our hands.
-Who are you, crossing my path so often?”
-
-“There is time enough to draw my sword when I have finished,” he
-replied, never taking his eyes from my face. “So if you will but put up
-your weapon, perchance there may be no need to take it from the scabbard
-again, Sir Francis Dane!”
-
-If he had struck me I could not have been more startled than at the
-sound of that name. My knees grew weak from very fear, and I sank back
-into my chair, while my sword which I had held outstretched, clattered
-to the oak floor.
-
-That my secret had been laid bare, after so many years, when I supposed
-it safely buried across the sea, shook me as a tempest might a sapling.
-
-“Have I touched you with the point?” asked the stranger, as he cut the
-air with the little whip.
-
-“Yes! A thousand times, yes!” I cried, and I leaped at him, and would
-have run him through on the instant with my sword, which I recovered
-from the floor, had he not nimbly sprang behind the bed.
-
-There he stood, his face working with emotion, his eyes glaring, and his
-hand clasped so tightly on his sword hilt that his knuckles went white
-with the strain. I lunged at him again and again, fiercely, blindly,
-almost, until, in very shame at thrusting at one who had no weapon out,
-I stopped and stood breathless, like one who had run far.
-
-“Why do you stand there, silent?” I panted. “Are you a man, or----?”
-
-“Perchance a witch,” he replied, with an air of easy assurance. “I hear
-there be many hereabouts. Indeed, no later than yesterday three were
-hanged on the hill yonder.”
-
-I started, in sudden fear, for his words brought back to my mind the
-witch trial, some months past.
-
-For a space there was silence in the chamber, and I could hear our
-breaths, as we stood gazing at each other. Then he spoke.
-
-“Well, what is it to be?” he asked. “Peace or war?”
-
-“War!” I cried. “War to the end, now that you know what you do!”
-
-“Very good, then,” was his answer. “But, perchance you will hearken to
-me for a little. Proclaim an armistice, as it were?”
-
-I nodded, as one in a dream, for I seemed to be asleep, watching all
-these things transpire, but taking no part in them.
-
-“What would you say,” he went on, “if I told you that I held a warrant
-from His Most Gracious Majesty, King William, for the apprehension of
-one Sir Francis Dane, or, as he is known now, Captain Edward Amherst?
-The charge being high treason.”
-
-“What would I say? Why, that you lied most damnably.”
-
-“Have a care!” he whispered, rather than spoke, and his hand fell to his
-sword hilt with a quick motion. “Have a care! I have suffered much from
-you. Do not tempt me too far.”
-
-“I am no traitor,” I said proudly, “for I have but now returned from the
-defense of Pemaquid, which, though it fell was only given up in the face
-of heavy odds, and because the garrison would not stand by me. I am no
-traitor. Ask the men who tramped the woods and sailed the sloops with
-me.”
-
-“Then this must be in error,” was his sudden exclamation. He threw a
-parchment to me across the bed, behind which he still was, and, while I
-unrolled it he came out, and sat in the chair again. I recognized the
-royal arms of England.
-
-“Read,” he said. And then he settled back in his chair most comfortably,
-as one disposed to listen to some pleasant tale.
-
-I read. True enough it was a warrant for Sir Francis Dane, formerly of
-the army of “that arch-traitor” Duke Monmouth. All the way through I
-read the scroll, my heart growing heavier as I proceeded.
-
-“Does it suffice?” he asked.
-
-“Aye,” I answered, moodily.
-
-I turned toward him.
-
-“It is enough,” I went on, pacing back and forth. “But, look you, sir, I
-know not your name. Not that it matters greatly.”
-
-“I am Sir George Keith, at your service, and at that of His Majesty,” he
-said, smiling and bowing low.
-
-“Well, then, Sir George Keith, what is to prevent me from destroying
-this warrant? From casting it into the fire, thus----?”
-
-With a quick movement I tossed the parchment into the blazing pile of
-logs on the hearth, Willis having kindled them, though there was little
-need of warmth.
-
-The sheepskin burned in a sudden puff of flame, but Sir George never
-turned his head to see what became of it.
-
-“It was but a copy,” he said.
-
-“Then what is to prevent me from killing you?” was my next question.
-
-“Would one tainted with treason, add to his crimes and attack the King’s
-messenger? Or if he dared, that same bearer of the royal warrant might
-have somewhat to say touching on the killing. I am no schoolboy to be
-frightened by words!”
-
-I knew he spoke the truth, and I sat down again.
-
-“Perchance,” went on Sir George, “I may weary you with the tale, but I
-will relate it, and if I tire you I pray your pardon.”
-
-Then while the shadows grew long outside, and the darkness settled
-deeper and deeper over the earth, I listened as one not fully awake, who
-hears a voice afar off.
-
-“There is little need,” said Sir George, “of telling that which you know
-better than I do. How you were of the personal guard of Monmouth, and
-how, when the last battle went against him you fell into the hands of
-King James’ men, that day on Sedgemoor field. Of your trial before his
-Worshipful Honor, Judge Jeffreys, and his merciful sentence that you be
-sold as a slave, instead of being hanged, as you, and all that army of
-ragamuffins deserved, I need not speak. You recall how Lord Cordwaine
-begged that you might be given to him so he could sell you into slavery.
-You managed to escape from prison, none knew how, before Lord Cordwaine
-had secured you, and you fled.
-
-“The noble lord reported his loss to His Majesty, and, being in great
-favor then, the King granted a royal warrant for you, that, wherever you
-could be found, you might be brought back to England as a traitor, to be
-dealt with as Lord Cordwaine might elect. That was seven years ago.
-
-“Of your wanderings in that time I have heard a little. How, having sold
-your sword to prince after prince in Europe, you finally came to
-America, and offered your services to His Excellency, Sir William Phips,
-under the name of Captain Amherst. I have had a long search for you.
-
-“Do not think that I followed you over seas all these years merely to
-gratify the revenge, or satisfy the whim of Lord Cordwaine. He might rot
-in hell for all I cared,” and Sir George, with a vicious snarl to the
-words, doubled his riding whip until it snapped in twain.
-
-“No,” he proceeded, “I sought you for myself; for my own ends.”
-
-I looked at him, trying to fathom whither he might be drifting. He had
-no more of the careless air, and his tone had changed to a low, intense
-and rapid one.
-
-“Can you call to mind,” he asked, “when the last charge was made at the
-ditch that proved so disastrous to Monmouth’s forces?”
-
-“Yes,” I said, my memory going back to the fierce struggle between
-farmers and religious fanatics on one side, and trained soldiers on the
-other.
-
-“Do you remember how, when a dark haired lad, aye he was but a boy,
-opposed you as you urged your horse on?”
-
-“Yes,” I answered, as one awaking from a sleep.
-
-“Then,” came from Sir George suddenly, “call to mind also how you cut
-him down with a single stroke, though you might have disarmed and spared
-him, for he could not have prevailed against you. His life’s blood dyed
-the marsh, and he was trampled under foot, a shapeless mass. Do you
-recall that?” The words were hurled at me with every look of hate.
-
-“It was in a fair fight,” I said, somewhat sorry for the lad. “I had to
-save myself. It was give and take, no quarter asked or granted; no time
-to parry.”
-
-“I saw the blow. I marked who gave it,” went on Sir George. “Had not my
-horse fallen under me then you would ne’er have dealt another. A sudden
-surge in the battle carried me from you, but I knew I could remember
-your face, your form; and I vowed----,” a strong emotion seized the
-man,--“I vowed your death when once more we should stand face to face.
-Now after many years that time has come. For--for----”
-
-He seemed to choke with the words.
-
-“Was he----?” I began softly.
-
-“He was my only brother,” he replied, “and his death broke my mother’s
-heart, and sent my father to an early grave.”
-
-“’Twas the fortune of war,” I answered, but I had no heart to mock his
-grief.
-
-After a pause he went on.
-
-“When the prisoners were taken,” he said, “I sought among them for you.
-One day, to my joy, I saw you penned in with others like the cattle you
-were. I hastened to the King to beg one boon: that you might be given or
-sold to me. But Lord Cordwaine, curse him, was before me, and he had
-chosen you among others that the King gave him. His Majesty dared not,
-for reasons of policy, offend Lord Cordwaine, by making the change.
-
-“I begged and pleaded with the lord that he would give you to me, but he
-was short of purse, and had made a bargain to sell you as a slave. I had
-not money enough or I would have been the buyer.
-
-“Then came your sale to the slave dealer, and your escape from prison,
-before Lord Cordwaine had delivered you to the purchaser. He secured a
-royal warrant for your arrest, wherever you might be found, on the
-charge of high treason. Fearful that you might escape my vengeance I
-besought Lord Cordwaine to let me serve the document. Glad that he was
-not to be out of pocket by the arrangement he consented. Since then I
-have followed you from place to place, always arriving just as you had
-gone. I lost track of you when you sailed for this land, but now I can
-reap my reward.”
-
-I know not what prevented me from springing at him then and ending it
-all. I wish I had. Perhaps it was his devil’s coolness, or his mastery
-over my feelings that held me to my chair. He proceeded after a pause,
-not heeding that I had risen as he began again.
-
-“When King James fled,” he went on, “I managed to acquire some influence
-at the court of William and Mary. The warrant was renewed, though Lord
-Cordwaine, to my joy, died in the meantime, and I knew I could have you
-all to myself when I found you. So I continued my search, and now I have
-found you--and Lucille.”
-
-“What of Lucille?” I cried. “Would you drive me mad by harping on her
-name, as if you had a right to use it? Speak, man. What are you to her,
-or what is she to you? There is some mystery here, of which I have had
-enough. Now out with it, or, warrant or no warrant, I’ll run you through
-as I would a dog.”
-
-“What of Lucille?” repeating my words in a sneering tone. Then changing
-suddenly: “This of Lucille. That I love her better than life. Aye, I
-love her more than I hate you, and God knows that hate is as wide and as
-deep as the sea. I love her; I love her, and she loves me! For Lucille
-de Guilfort is my wife!”
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XI.
- A MAN AND HIS WIFE.
-
-
-I was like a man who saw death before him when I heard his words.
-Lucille his wife, when but a few short months ago she had promised to be
-mine. She had let me woo and win her, knowing that she had no
-right--that I had no right!
-
-“Oh God!” I cried; and then I stopped, for I did not know what I might
-pray for; her death, or his or my own. Yet with it all I loved her; more
-than ever.
-
-A great grief or a great joy stuns for the moment. So it was with me. My
-heart’s dearest idol was shattered; crumbled into dust, and, instead of
-pain, there was a numbness and a feeling that I had never known before.
-I raised my hand to my head as if I would brush away cobwebs from my
-eyes.
-
-“Lucille,” I began, in so strange a tone that I started at the word, and
-the silence seemed broken by my tone as by a thunder clap.
-
-“Lady Keith,” corrected Sir George, smiling.
-
-There came to me a faint hope like a star dimly seen amid a storm sky.
-Perchance he had forfeited the right to call her wife. What else could
-mean her shrinking from him, her fear when they had met, and I had been
-near to see? Oh, if it could but be true! My eyes saw clearer, and my
-hand became firmer.
-
-“I have no privilege to ask,” I began, yet I hoped for an answer, “but I
-had been led to believe otherwise of--of--Lu--of Lady Keith.”
-
-“Aye, I suppose so,” was his answer, in a biting tone. “I am in little
-mood for the telling, yet I will relate how it came to pass; for there
-have been strange goings on since Mistress Lucille became Lady Keith.”
-
-Then as we two stood there, each with deadly hatred of the other in his
-heart, he began:
-
-“I met Lucille and fell in love with her some five years ago. I first
-saw her in Paris, where I had gone in quest of you. There I lingered
-unable, because of the witchery of her eyes, to leave. We met often, for
-I contrived to prevail on her father to let me give her lessons in
-English. And you may guess I lost no opportunity of giving her lessons
-in love at the same time. Well, my suit prospered, and in a year we were
-wed, both as happy as lovers proverbially are.
-
-“Then one day, ’twas a small matter, to be sure, but there was a story
-that some court lady had been found in my bed chamber. Only a trifle,
-for she had been there to gain my friendship in a matter concerning some
-titled personage, and called rather early, that was all. But Lucille
-heard of it, and, as I could not deny that the lady was there, why, my
-wife assumed that I had tired of her charms. She flew into a great
-passion, and when I had imagined she would pout a bit, and seem
-offended, she was most grievously angered. Hast ever seen her in a
-temper?” he asked suddenly.
-
-“No,” I said sharply. “Go on.”
-
-“Oh, but she has one, for all her fair face,” he sneered.
-
-It was all I could do to keep the point of my sword from his throat.
-
-“Proceed,” I choked out.
-
-“Well, this small matter to me proved a large one for Lady Keith. And
-her father, it seems, took it to heart also. They were of noble blood,
-the de Guilforts, almost as good as the Keiths,” and he stroked his
-moustache with an air of pride.
-
-“Where was I? Oh, yes. Well, Mistress Keith was in a great temper. She
-defied me to my face; told me I had dishonored her. You know how women
-are. To be brief, M. de Guilfort, with my wife and her cousin, suddenly
-left Paris, when I had been called to London on a false report that you
-had come back. When I returned to Paris, expecting to find all the
-affair blown over, and a pair of loving arms and ruby lips to welcome
-me, I found a vacant house; a cold hearth.
-
-“I did my best to trace them but failed. Then, like a man without hope,
-hating yet loving, loving yet hating, I went to the wars, and finally
-came to America. And here, thanks to the fates I have found both my
-enemy and my love.”
-
-“Is that all?” I asked, for I wished to hear the end before I killed
-him.
-
-“No,” he said bitterly, “not all. When I became attached to the army of
-the Massachusetts Colony, the first act of Governor Phips was to send me
-with a message to you here. I little guessed who I should find Captain
-Edward Amherst to be, much less did I hope to meet with Lucille in Salem
-town.
-
-“When I galloped to her house that night, not finding you at the inn, I
-saw, in the dim light, she whom I had been seeking so long. I had no
-eyes for you then beyond a glance. But when I had ridden away, not
-desiring to press matters at once, your face came before me, and I knew
-I had found one other I had been in search of. I shouted aloud for joy.
-
-“I hastened to Boston, where I had left the royal warrant, and I
-returned with all speed. You had already sailed with the two sloops,
-though I tried to hail you from the shore to which I galloped. However,
-I thought that you would return, and, when I looked and saw Lucille, I
-hardly cared whether you came back or not.”
-
-“Is that all?” I asked again, softly. For I saw, of a truth now, that
-one of us was like to die; and I did not think it would be me.
-
-“Not quite all,” he said.
-
-He paused to cast a hasty look at me, then he went on.
-
-“While waiting for you I had time to renew my acquaintance with my dear
-wife,” he said mockingly.
-
-“And--and have you persuaded her that you are a true and loyal husband?”
-I asked, hesitating bitterly over the words.
-
-“Nay, curses on it,” he cried. “Why, man, ’twould be laughable, but that
-I am more in love with her than ever. Fancy a man in love with his wife
-a second time, yet not allowed to greet her, to call upon her, save in
-the presence of a serving maid, not to take her hand, to kiss----”
-
-I started forward, with what intent I know not, for the memory of those
-kisses I had pressed on Lucille’s lips came back to me. I felt that one
-of us, for the sake of the honor of Lucille, must die.
-
-“Then your second suit is not favored, as was the first?” I inquired.
-
-“Nay,” he replied bitterly. “Why, ’tis town gossip now that she loves
-you, for no one is aware that she is my wife yet. A pretty tale, is it
-not? How the French maid fell in love with the Captain that casts great
-rocks as though they were but pebbles.”
-
-“You lie, damn you!” I cried. “She did love me, perhaps. But it was
-before she knew she had no right.”
-
-“No right?”
-
-“My life upon it, she did not know, Sir George. She either believed you
-dead, or knew that she was no more bound to you than to the veriest
-beggar.”
-
-Yet, though I spoke the words boldly, there was both pain and fear in my
-heart. When a man begins to doubt a woman there is no middle way. But I
-could not, with honor, do less than defend the name of one I had
-loved--nay, of one I loved still.
-
-“Oh, a truce to fine words,” was the reply. “All women are alike; off
-with the old, on with the new. Since she has found you she has no use
-for me. I might as well talk of my love to the trees or to the rocks as
-to Lucille, my own wife, since you have kissed her.”
-
-I started.
-
-“Ha! That was but a chance shot, yet it struck,” he cried; and he
-laughed, though it echoed more like a wail than a sound of merriment.
-
-“But I love her,” he went on. “Oh, God, how I love her! I love her so
-much that I will, for the sake of it, be cheated of my revenge. With you
-away I could have hope. But now----”
-
-Outside the wind blew in mournful gusts, for a storm was brewing.
-
-“Hark you, Sir Francis Dane,” he continued. “I will not call you by that
-name, though, for you have forfeited it. Listen, Captain Amherst; if you
-will but consent to leave the Colony, leave Lucille, and go away, I, in
-turn, will forget my brother’s death, my vengeance, and you. The royal
-warrant shall be destroyed, and you may walk the earth a free man,
-fearing not any one. Only go. Leave Lucille to me. I can win back her
-love. See, I will write now a full and free pardon for you, and will
-transmit it to the King. Will you go?”
-
-It was dark by this time, and the flickering flames, dying amid the
-ashes, like a hopeless love, faintly illuminated the apartment, as we
-stood facing each other.
-
-It was strange, when, for the moment I stopped to think of it. Here was
-a man pleading with another for what was his right. Pleading to be
-allowed to woo his own wife. Begging that I would give up my love and go
-away so that his suit might be unhampered. Verily I had never heard of
-such a thing before, though I knew that love was a strange master. Sir
-George was asking of me with words what I might expect to be required by
-the sword. Yet, though I had no right to the love of Lucille, his wife,
-he did not draw, even as I moved back, and stood on guard.
-
-Whereat I marveled, for he was not a man to accept lightly the dishonor
-I had put upon him.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XII.
- THE TIME OF PERIL.
-
-
-Of what use to stay in Salem now, that my love had come to such a sorry
-end? Yet I did not like that he should triumph over me, nor would I
-purchase my freedom at the price he offered.
-
-To stay? To go?
-
-“I will remain here,” I said, after a moment’s pause. He made a gesture
-that showed his displeasure. “But mistake me not, Sir George, Mistress
-Keith shall see no more of me. I stay, not on her account, but my own.
-Now, enough of womenkind. With you it seems I have a score to settle
-yet.”
-
-Sir George nodded his head.
-
-“You have made threats,” I went on. “You feel aggrieved; you consider me
-your enemy, and I, no less, you mine. The Danes are not accustomed to
-shun danger; to permit old scores to be unsatisfied; to leave an enemy
-behind them. Therefore I stay, Sir George.”
-
-He made as if he would go, but I stood before him. He was looking beyond
-me with a curious glint in his eyes, and, though I was directly in his
-path, he did not seem to notice me.
-
-“Draw, sir,” I commanded, gently. “Let us see who of us shall go or
-stay; who of us shall die? There have been enough of threats. Draw, sir;
-I pray you.”
-
-Still he looked beyond me as if at some vision behind the oak walls,
-until stung by his indifference I came so close up against him that his
-arm touched mine.
-
-“Will you not fight?” I cried, peering into his eyes that refused to see
-me.
-
-He said not a word, but ever continued to gaze away.
-
-“Come,” I sneered, “will you do me the honor to cross swords?”
-
-“Not with a traitor,” was his sudden answer.
-
-“Nor I with a coward,” I exclaimed. I snatched up the broken whip and
-struck him full in the face with it. The blow raised a red weal from his
-eye to his chin.
-
-I have seen wild beasts aroused, and raging Indians mad with the lust of
-murder, yet I never saw such a look as came into the face of that man
-when I struck him. Verily I shrank back somewhat, and my sword went up
-on guard. But with a fierce mastery of the passion that must have been
-tearing at his very heart, Sir George moistened his lips with his
-tongue, and hoarsely whispered:
-
-“Are you mad? No man ever yet struck me and lived after it. But the
-sword of a gentleman and a soldier is too good for such as you, traitor
-that you are. I will not sully my steel with your blood. Think not,
-though, that you will escape me. Die you shall, but in such manner as no
-man died before;” and, ere I could stop him he had rushed from the room,
-and I was alone.
-
-There was half a thought in my mind to follow him, but I did not care to
-engage with him on the open highway, and I knew I would meet with him
-again. That he meditated some evil to me I was sure. What it might be I
-could not say.
-
-Well, I would be off now to see Lucille after my long absence. I stopped
-with a jolt, as suddenly as does a trooper whose horse balks at a hedge.
-Lucille!
-
-“Ha!” I cried, gaily. “Nay, Lucille no more, but Lady Keith. What a fool
-I’ve been to let her see that I loved her. What a fool any man is to
-love a woman. What fools men are, anyhow, at all times.
-
-“Bah! Lucille! And she took my kisses.
-
-“What ho! Well, ’tis many a stolen kiss a soldier has, and mine had been
-purloined favors, though I knew it not. Why, then, should I give her up?
-She loved me, even her husband admitted that. And why had not I, whom
-she loved, a better right, to her than he whom she loved not? With some
-there would have been but one answer to this. A clash of steel, and,
-right or wrong, he who loved and won, would have her whom he fought for.
-Why not I? What if she was his wife?
-
-“Should love recognize limitations of earthly honor? Why not cast honor
-as men saw it to the winds? With Sir George out of the way I would have
-naught to fear from his warrant, and his wife--bah! the words went
-bitter in my mouth--his wife could then be mine. I had no doubt that in
-a combat with him I could be the victor. We had quarreled, I had struck
-him. If he was a man he must fight after that. Then a meeting early in
-the morning, a clash of swords, a lunge, a feint, a trick I knew well,
-having had it from a master of the art, and that would be the end. The
-end of all save my happiness with Lucille.
-
-“No!”
-
-I spoke the word aloud. I had not sunk so low as that. It would be sad
-indeed if love gave such license. There was but one way out of the
-matter. If I stayed in Salem I must fight Sir George, and all would say
-that I had slain him that I might take his wife.
-
-Love would be sweet, with Lucille to share it with me, but not love with
-dishonor. Therefore I must go.
-
-Heigh-ho! This, then, was an end to all my dreams. Nothing left to
-battle for save life, and that was scarce worth the struggle. I tried to
-banish the memory of Lucille from me, but I could not. Her whisper that
-she loved me sounded in my ears loud above the din of the fights I had
-passed through. One right I had still. To love her in secret, to know
-that she loved me, and, knowing that, to let it be the end.
-
-It was night now. There came a knock on my door, and Willis entered.
-
-“What, not gone?” he asked. “Why, I thought you were in haste to be
-away.”
-
-“So I was,” I answered, with a short laugh, “but I have changed my mind
-now. Much haste oft means a slow journey. I’ll stay here with you. Let
-us have some wine up, Master Willis. ’Tis so long since I have tasted
-any that my throat has forgot the flavor. Bring plenty, for when a man
-has been to the wars there is need of some cheer on his return, even
-though he comes conquered instead of a conqueror.”
-
-He brought the wine, and we drank together, I not so much that I wanted
-the drink, but companionship.
-
-“How goes the witchcraft here, Willis?” I asked. “I heard ’twas broke
-out again, as I came through Boston.”
-
-“Hush,” he said, glancing around as though he feared some one would hear
-me. “Verily it is most horrible. The townspeople have gone mad, it
-seems. Scarce a day goes by that some poor woman or man is not accused
-of being in league with the devil, or banded with witches to work evil
-spells. The Colony groans under the terrors, for nearly half a score of
-people have been put to death after being convicted of witchcraft.
-
-“Neighbors have denounced and testified against neighbors; fathers
-against sons, and daughters against their mothers.”
-
-“Why, ’tis worse than I dreamed,” I said.
-
-“Aye, it is bad enough,” responded Willis, glancing behind his chair, as
-if he expected to see a witch perched on the bed post.
-
-“There are strange tales told,” he went on, “of how witch meetings are
-held on the common, and those who have been witness to them say they see
-the forms of their acquaintances riding athwart broomsticks or fence
-rails in the air.
-
-“Let but a cow be taken sick, and straightway ’tis said that the animal
-is bewitched. Then the owner goes before the judges and swears some poor
-dame has cast an evil spell on the beast. The woman is taken and put in
-gaol, and little enough as the evidence is sometimes, she is condemned
-and hanged. Oh, I promise that you will see horrors enough if you stay
-here long.
-
-“Why, no further back than six days one man was accused because he was
-so strong that the witch-crazed people said he must have had help from
-Satan to lift the weights he did. He was taken, tried and executed.”
-
-“I am like to suffer then,” I said, laughing. “Do you recall the big
-stone by the brook?”
-
-“Heaven forbid,” said Willis. “But do not laugh, Captain. It is no small
-matter when half the townsfolk are crazed, and the other half ready to
-follow where the first lead. Surely you must have noticed how distraught
-the people were as you came along.”
-
-“Nay,” I answered, “I was thinking of other matters. But I remarked that
-the few friends I passed in the road seemed not to know me. But what
-does it signify?”
-
-“Much,” proceeded Willis. “Much in very truth. No man’s life nor liberty
-is safe now. It is a perilous time. Why, Salem gaol to-night holds two
-score poor wretches, whose only fault is some one has said they are
-witches.
-
-“And more. The Governor has sent a special court with judges and
-constables and soldiers to attend to the trials. They are fearsome
-ordeals, too. It is ordained that if the accused one will confess that
-he is a witch that one may go free, for, it is said, that being a witch,
-by confession in the presence of a minister, the spirit of Satan is
-abashed, and leaves the body. But many will not confess, maintaining,
-even on the scaffold that they are innocent, and all such have been put
-to death. So many have been executed that there is fear in many hearts.
-
-“Some are tried by water. They are thrown into the mill pond, and if
-they sink they are free from the accusation of witchcraft. Little good
-it does the poor souls though, for they never live to know that they are
-innocent. A true witch will float, ’tis said, and all such are killed.”
-
-“Do you speak the truth?” I asked, for I could scarce believe what I
-heard.
-
-“As I live,” answered Willis. “It is a time for every man to look to
-himself, especially if he has an enemy. Many of the witch trials, I
-believe, are but vents for the enmity which cannot be satisfied in other
-ways. A few of the accusers, however, seem in earnest, claiming that
-their maladies and troubles are spells of their enemies, and the
-afflicted ones call out the names in great agony.”
-
-“Bah! Willis,” I said. “You are chicken-hearted from staying too much at
-home.”
-
-“Wait and see,” replied the inn keeper. Then he left me.
-
-I did not want to go to bed yet; there was no sleep in me; so I resolved
-to walk out to let some of my busy thoughts fly away, if they would. The
-moon was up, a big round silver disk, larger than the head of a cider
-barrel. It cast long shadows across the road and fields.
-
-As I tramped on toward, I knew not where, nor cared, I found my steps
-leading, unconsciously, to the home of the woman I loved.
-
-I half turned back. No. I would go on. Not to see her. Not to clasp her
-in my arms, as I had hoped to do. Never that again. I would but pass by
-on the other side. It was to be my farewell.
-
-There was a light burning in the house when I came up to it. I fancied I
-could see through the window in the glare of the candle Lucille. Yes,
-there she was. Like a thief in the night I crept nearer until I could
-discern her face. Her head was resting on her hands; she seemed waiting
-for some one. I prayed it might be me, yet she must wait in vain.
-
-Nearer I went. She turned, and gazed out into the night, straight at me.
-But I slipped into the shadow of an oak tree, that by no chance she
-might see me. She was more beautiful than ever. Oh, why had she not told
-me all that was in the past, before she let me love her.
-
-The wind rustled through the trees, sighing like a lost soul, a most
-mournful sound. I stretched up my hands to the sky; I reached them out
-to the woman I loved. Both were beyond me.
-
-Once more I looked at her. She had risen from her seat. She stooped over
-the candle, so that the glare showed me her fair face, the ringlets of
-her hair, the soft curve of her throat, all her loveliness.
-
-“Lucille!” I cried, but the word was tossed back to me by the wind.
-
-“Lucille!” I whispered, but a moonbeam stole her name away.
-
-“Lucille!” She snuffed the candle, and it went out in a blur of
-darkness, so that the night swallowed her up, and I was left alone.
-
-Then with the bitter heart of a man who has no sweetness left in life I
-came away.
-
-As I took the road to the inn I thought that once or twice along the
-path, half hidden by the trees, a form followed me. I stopped, and
-looked intently at the black shadow.
-
-An owl hooted mournfully, a frog croaked in a near-by pool, and a
-cricket chirped pleasantly from the grass.
-
-“’Twas the owl,” I said, and I passed on.
-
-Again I heard a dry twig snap as if some heavy animal or a man had
-stepped on it. This time, as I halted to looked about I heard not far
-off the howl of a lone wolf.
-
-“It was the wolf,” I muttered, “after a stray sheep,” and I walked on,
-for the night was chill, and I was not warmly clad.
-
-I had reached the inn, and hurried to my room. Then I looked from the
-window, and I saw passing across the fields the figure of a man.
-
-“Ho,” I whispered, “it was no wolf then.”
-
-But I looked again and saw that the man was Sir George Keith.
-
-“Aye, it was a wolf,” I said.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XIII.
- IN SALEM GAOL.
-
-
-I dreamed that night I was back in Pemaquid, with the cannon pounding
-away at the fort, bringing the stout timbers down about my ears. I
-fought the fight over again, and suddenly awoke in the gray dawn of the
-morning to hear a thundering summons at my door.
-
-“Hello!” I cried, springing from bed, and seizing my sword. My eyes were
-heavy with sleep, and I thought the Indians were upon us.
-
-The knock came once more, and it did not sound so loud to me when I had
-shaken off some of the slumber.
-
-“Who’s there?” I called again.
-
-“’Tis I, John Putnam, constable of Salem town under His Most Gracious
-Majesty, the King,” was the reply.
-
-A nameless dread, a chill, seized me, though I knew not the reason for
-it. As the constable’s words died away I detected the sound of moving
-feet beyond the oak door that separated us. I thought at once that Sir
-George had sent the royal warrant for treason to be executed upon me.
-
-“Wait,” I cried, wishing to gain a little time. Then for an instant I
-reasoned with myself. What should I do? Give battle now, trusting to
-break through the ranks of those the constable had brought with him,
-and, if successful, flee? Or tarry and see the affair through? I did not
-like to run for it on the first appearance of danger. Perhaps after all
-I could find a way of escape. So in the next instant I had made up my
-mind to take my arrest quietly.
-
-I had an idea that the fighting I had done in behalf of the Colony would
-stand me in good stead, and serve to gain me a pardon from the court.
-
-Once more the summons came.
-
-“We’ll not wait much longer,” was the warning from without.
-
-“Then enter,” I called, flinging open the door. I stood face to face
-with a half score of men, all armed, who well nigh filled the little
-hall. John Putnam, the constable, was at their head.
-
-“Your errand?” I inquired, shortly, thinking I knew it as well as he.
-
-“I have a warrant, a royal warrant, for your body,” began the constable
-pompously.
-
-“I know it full well,” was my answer.
-
-I noticed that the bodyguard, accompanying Master Putnam, looked one at
-the other at this. A burly red-haired farmer, who clasped his flint-lock
-as he would a club, whispered to the man next him:
-
-“Mark you that, neighbor Passden? There is Satan’s work. He hath
-informed the Captain in advance of our coming, and of the royal warrant,
-which our worthy constable has not even yet removed from his jacket
-pocket. Saw you ever the like?”
-
-“Hush! Not so loud,” murmured the one addressed. “Aye, ’tis fearfully
-marvelous. But speak not of it, or he may cast a spell of the evil on
-us,” and the two shrank away.
-
-I heard the whispers, but knew not what it all meant. I looked at the
-constable, seeking an explanation.
-
-“I hold a warrant,” he went on, “against you, Captain Edward Amherst,
-charging you with certain detestable arts called witchcraft.”
-
-“What!” I cried. “Have you lost your senses, Master Putnam?”
-
-“Nay, hear me out,” he protested, drawing a parchment with a red seal
-dangling therefrom, out of his pocket. The men closed up around me.
-
-“You are charged,” the constable continued, slanting the document, so as
-to catch the light of the rising sun from an east window full upon it,
-“charged with practicing witchcraft, and sorceries, wickedly and
-feloniously, upon and against Deliverance Hobbs, Benjamin Proctor and
-John Bly. All of whom last night made depositions of the facts before
-our gracious and most worthy Honor, Justice Hathorne. And I hereby
-arrest you, Captain Amherst, on this warrant. You will be arraigned for
-trial this day at the court of Oyer and Terminer, to be holden here by
-Justices Hathorne and Corwin. You are, therefore, my prisoner.”
-
-The constable folded the warrant together, and I noticed, when too late,
-that he had been gradually edging himself nearer to me. Suddenly he
-sprang at me, and threw his arms around mine, pinning my hands to my
-sides. I had been stunned by the quick change from what I had been
-expecting to that which I never dreamed of. But when I felt the hands of
-the constable upon me, his arms about my body, my resolve to submit
-quietly flew to the wind, and I nerved myself for the coming struggle.
-
-I spread my arms apart, and easily forced off the hold of the constable.
-Then I turned quickly and picked Master Putnam up as if he had been but
-a small barrel of cider. I cast him out of the door, so that he fell
-against the crowd of men, and some of them were knocked down, none too
-gently, I fear, by his flight through the air.
-
-Then I drew my sword from the scabbard, and stood ready to defend
-myself, but they were a trifle wary now about advancing. For perhaps a
-minute I stood thus, holding them at bay with the point of my weapon.
-
-But one man unobserved had crawled into the room behind me. Of a sudden
-I felt something fall over my head and slip down about my arms. It was a
-rope noose, and it was quickly pulled taut, so that my hands were
-fastened to my sides. I was helpless in an instant, with no chance to
-use my sword.
-
-“At him now, neighbors!” cried a big farmer, casting his flint-lock to
-the floor. “The Lord of Hosts is on our side, and He will enable us to
-prevail, and overcome the mighty disciple of Satan.”
-
-“Aye, at him now, at him now! Kill the witch!” cried others.
-
-On came the crowd with a rush, seeing that I was fast bound and
-helpless. However, with a kick from each foot in turn I disabled two of
-the constable’s guard as they sought to fall upon me, but the others
-were too many to cope with, and they forced me down by sheer weight and
-numbers. More ropes were brought and soon I was tied as neatly as a fowl
-trussed for roasting.
-
-Without a word they carried me away in that sorry fashion, Constable
-Putnam limping along in the rear of the procession, for it appeared he
-had been somewhat hurt when he went out of the door so quickly.
-
-I was taken to Salem gaol, and when it was reached, the iron studded
-door swung open, and I was thrust among two score others, suspected of
-witchcraft, who were waiting trial. A groan went up as I was added to
-their company. The door banged shut, hiding from view the pleasant sun,
-which was just rising, and drowning the songs of the birds.
-
-My captors placed me on the floor with no gentle hands, and went away.
-Some of the prisoners, however, lifted me up on a bench, so that I was
-more comfortable in body, though not so much so in mind.
-
-It needed but a little thought to tell me how the matters that had
-lately transpired had come about. I knew that Sir George at the present
-time did not dare to urge the old charge of treason against me because
-of my present loyalty to the King and the Colony. He was afraid to
-fight, I believed, and, desiring revenge for my blow, and at the same
-time to see me removed from where I might meet Lucille, he had hit upon
-this plan to have me killed as a witch. And his plot was like to work
-well.
-
-I recalled what Willis had told me of the state of people’s minds in
-regard to those suspected of witchcraft. I could realize what it meant
-now. Though had I not seen some of the things I did I would not have
-believed them.
-
-I saw men and women in that gaol, who had been among the best liked of
-the townspeople. Colonists of wealth, delicate mothers and men of
-culture were there, herded together like sheep, and treated like common
-felons. It was enough to make me cry out for shame for my countrymen,
-who could be so deluded and deceived. I forgot my own plight to see so
-many waiting to be sacrificed, for what afterward proved to be a most
-terrible error. Aye, it was many years ere the black memory of Salem
-witchcraft of 1692 was forgotten.
-
-Among the prisoners was Martha Cory, mother of my former Lieutenant. She
-cried when she saw me, and asked for tidings of her son. To my sorrow I
-could not give them, as Cory had been separated from me when we
-surrendered at Pemaquid, and I had not seen him since, though I told his
-mother I trusted he was safely exchanged.
-
-George Reed was also a prisoner. He was a brother of one of my recruits
-who had fallen at the battle of St. Johns, and when I told the brother
-in gaol his sorrows were added to. Dorcas Goode was there, and Sarah
-Osborn, and Mary Warren; women whose sons or brothers had marched with
-me to the war. Some did not return, and if they but knew they might
-count themselves well off. Those were dark days, indeed, in Salem town.
-
-Presently I called to the jailer, and, upon my promise that I would not
-try to escape, he loosened my bonds so I could walk and move about with
-some freedom. Now I was not minded to be executed as a witch, and I
-wanted all my strength, and nimbleness of limb, for whatever struggle
-there might be ahead. Greatly did I desire to be within sword’s length
-of Sir George Keith for a little while, and I resolved that I would give
-him but one chance to draw his weapon.
-
-I went about among the prisoners, and soon engaged one of the guards in
-talk. From him, and from what I could piece out in my own mind, I
-learned how my arrest had been brought about. Sir George, after his
-meeting with me, had gone to the home of Justice Hathorne, and had sworn
-to a complaint as to my witch powers. It was easy to find others as
-witnesses to whom ordinary events by reason of the excitement in the
-Colony, had become much changed in meaning. So that in simple happenings
-such as the loss of a cow or a sheep, the witchcraft of some neighbor
-was discernible. Sir George had learned of Benjamin Proctor and John
-Bly, who each had lost a cow from some disease. He had suggested that I
-might be the witch who had worked evil spells upon the animals.
-
-The two farmers, worrying over the loss of their cows, had eagerly
-seized on the explanation that I was the evil spirit responsible. Sir
-George had told how my strength was as the power of three men, though my
-body was not overly large. He had told of the great rock I had lifted
-after the mightiest man in the Colony had failed to budge it, and thus
-the charges against me had grown out of nothing.
-
-The two farmers and Deliverance Hobbs, who was an old woman, scarce
-knowing what she said, were sure I was a person in league with the
-devil. So they had prayed the judge, through Sir George Keith, that I
-might be apprehended and brought to trial.
-
-Sir George had induced the constable to arrest me at dawn, saying I
-could be more easily taken if suddenly aroused from sleep. So, too, he
-had urged that I might be given a speedy trial, that the witchcraft in
-the land might be crushed out with a heavy hand, and the powers of evil
-made the less. He had talked with much cunning to the authorities, and
-he being, as they knew, in favor with the King and Governor, they had
-done all he wished.
-
-Thus I was in Salem gaol, with little chance of leaving it, save at the
-trial, and then, perchance, it would be but a short shrift to the
-gallows.
-
-It was noon. The sun shone overhead and beat down on the prison, but to
-us inside, only the reflection of the golden beams came in through the
-iron barred window. Steps were heard coming toward the door, and, as it
-swung open the guards thrust some platters of food in to us. Some cakes
-of corn meal, with a bit of mutton, was all there was. Scarce sufficient
-for half that were there. When the jailer handed me my portion he
-muttered beneath his breath:
-
-“Of what use to feed witches, when, if they so desired, Satan himself
-would bring them hell-broth through the very walls of this gaol.”
-
-“Say you so?” I replied, laughing bitterly. “Say you so? Then why do we
-not have Satan bear us hence through these same walls if so be we are
-witches. One is as easy as the other.”
-
-“I had not thought of that,” he said, shrinking back, “the guard without
-must be doubled, and Dominie Parris shall offer fervent prayers that ye
-all may be safely held here.”
-
-During the meal I talked with some of my companions and learned that
-they had been cast into prison on the most flimsy pretexts. One old
-woman, because she had passed through a field where sheep were feeding.
-She touched some of the lambs with her hand. The next day some of the
-sheep were dead, and Elizabeth Paddock was accused of bewitching them.
-Another woman was taken because, when she had baked some dumplings an
-apple was found whole inside of them, and it was said that Satan must
-have aided her. Still another lad, whose mother had been hanged as a
-witch, was in gaol. Grief and terror had made him out of his mind, and
-he continually called out that he had turned into a witch, and saw his
-mother riding through the air on a cloud of geese feathers. Salem gaol
-was a most fearsome place those days.
-
-After the rude meal, the constable, accompanied by his former bodyguard,
-came to bring me to the court house. It was with no very cheerful heart
-I made ready to go with him, for I could nearly guess how the trial
-would end with Sir George to urge on the witnesses. Still I could but
-take my chance, as I had many times before, and I trusted to my good
-fortune to bring me safely through.
-
-A man can die but once, and I wondered vaguely, as I stepped out,
-whether Lucille would care if I died.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XIV.
- A SENTENCE OF DEATH.
-
-
-When, after a walk through the town, during which our progress was
-delayed by a curious throng of people who stared at me as if I had been
-a wild animal, we came to the court house, there was another gaping
-crowd at the door.
-
-“Make way! Make way!” cried Constable Putnam. “Make way, good people,
-for the representative of His Most Gracious Majesty.”
-
-Another time his pompous air and his words might have called forth jibes
-and ridicule from the thoughtless, but now, such was the time and the
-occasion, and so deep in every heart was the fear of witchcraft, that
-not a soul smiled.
-
-The assemblage opened up in a living lane, and through it we passed into
-the court room. It was filled to overflowing, as it had been on another
-occasion, which I well remembered. I looked about me, noting little
-change since I had sat there as a spectator a few months back. And yet
-what a change there had been.
-
-The same judges were on the bench, their Honors, John Hathorne and
-Jonathan Corwin, while Master Stephen Sewall was there to act as clerk;
-to take down with quill scratchings, whatever words should fall from my
-lips.
-
-On the left of the judges sat the jury. All were men of grave mien, some
-of whom I knew well. They looked at me as I was brought in, and some
-whispered among themselves.
-
-Then as I glanced hurriedly over the room I saw many of my old comrades.
-A few turned their heads away as if they feared I would cast the blight
-of the evil eye on them. Others looked more kindly at me. One man gazed
-fixedly into my face, and I was at a loss for a moment to recall who he
-was. Then after I had thought a bit I knew him for my former lieutenant,
-Giles Cory. He had grown a beard, and looked travel stained, as if he
-had just finished a journey around the world. I longed to ask of him
-what his adventures had been since we last saw each other in Pemaquid,
-and I wondered if he knew that his old mother was in gaol as a witch.
-
-As I looked at him some one whispered in his ear. It was evidently the
-news of his mother, for I saw Cory’s face pale, and he hastened from the
-room. Poor lad, he little knew then, nor did I, how soon he was to stand
-where I stood, and to suffer a terrible death that I came nigh to.
-
-I marked on many faces looks of ill ease and fright, for no man knew
-whether he was safe from accusation.
-
-I looked for Lucille, though I knew no reason why she should be present.
-Thinking she might be hidden by some pillar, or by those in front, I
-stood up and gazed about me. At the time I was half minded to jump down
-among those who, with drawn swords and ready flint-locks, guarded me,
-and make a fight of it then and there. But my slightest move was
-watched, and the men closed up around me so that I saw nothing but death
-should I make the attempt. Then I resumed my seat.
-
-A moment later I observed, half hidden by one of the large upright
-beams, the devil’s face of my enemy. I caught but a passing glance, but
-even in that I saw him smile in triumph at me. His hand sought his sword
-hilt caressingly, and I thought of the day when my weapon was at his
-throat cursing the impulse that had halted me from driving it home.
-
-While I watched Sir George I saw a man come up behind him and whisper
-something. I marked the fellow and noted that he was the sailor who had
-been in the Governor’s ante-chamber, the same one who had been the first
-to cry out that we must give up Pemaquid. Now, when he came before me in
-my hour of trial, I began to believe him my evil genius. I was sure he
-was in the service of Sir George, and had followed me to the war merely
-to keep track of me for his master.
-
-Sir George turned so that I could see his face as Simon, the sailor,
-spoke to him. And the eyes of my lord grew small, like the half closed
-orbs of a tiger about to spring, and he started, as if surprised, at the
-news his henchman brought him. Then the two hurried from the court room,
-leaving me to wonder what game was afoot now. Something that boded no
-good, I wagered, and I longed to be free that I might have a hand.
-
-But I must needs look to myself now, for the judges were ready to
-proceed, and the clerk was reading the charges against me. These were
-wordy with legal terms, whereby I was accused of witchcraft by
-Deliverance Hobbs, John Bly and Benjamin Proctor. When the reading was
-finished Judge Hathorne inquired of me whether I was ready to confess.
-
-“What, your honor?” I asked. “Confess to this most foul lie? Not so. Set
-me before my accusers and I will answer them.”
-
-Now, had I been wise, I would have admitted that I was a witch, when,
-perchance, I would have gotten off with no more than some stripes, and
-being driven from the town. But I stood on my honor, as you shall see
-with what results.
-
-“Have your way, then,” replied the judge, shrugging his shoulders, as
-though, like Pilate, he washed his hands of all guilt of my blood.
-
-Then came John Bly to the stand. He was a farmer, whose son had gone
-with me to the war.
-
-“Swear the witness,” said the judge, and Clerk Sewall did so.
-
-“May it please your worships,” began John, “I did buy a pig of Master
-Edward Bishop some two months ago. As I was leading it to sell yesterday
-I passed Captain Amherst in the road nigh to the tavern of Samuel
-Willis.”
-
-“Did I aught to you?” I asked from where I sat. “Did I more than bid you
-a good day and ask after your dame?”
-
-“Aye, that was all you did,” answered Bly, “but I recalled afterward
-that you did cast a longing look at my pig.”
-
-“’Twas because I had not yet eaten that day,” I said, smiling a bit at
-the remembrance, “and your porker was a fine fat one. I wished for a bit
-of bacon from it.”
-
-“Yea, he looked at the pig,” proceeded the witness, “and when I got the
-animal a little farther on it took strange fits. It leaped into the air,
-squealing most dreadful, and knocked its head against the fence. So I
-was sure it was bewitched, for never did pig of mine behave so before.”
-
-“What say you to that?” asked Judge Corwin.
-
-“Naught,” I made reply, “save that the animal had some distemper.”
-
-Then Benjamin Proctor took the stand. He eagerly related that when I had
-first come to Salem there had been the terrifying scarlet snow, which,
-though two women witches had doubtless caused it, might have had some of
-my handiwork in also, as I was the only stranger to arrive in town that
-night.
-
-Next he related how I had such great strength that I could do feats no
-other man could attempt. I had taken a gun, Proctor said, with a
-seven-foot barrel, of so great weight that strong men could not with
-both hands hold it out steadily. Yet he had seen me make nothing of
-taking the weapon up and, by grasping it near the lock, hold it out as
-easily as a man would a pistol, discharging it at a mark.
-
-Again, he said, he had seen me take a heavy fowling piece with a
-five-foot barrel, and lift it in the following marvelous manner. I
-thrust my forefinger down the muzzle and held the piece out at arm’s
-length. Other strong men had only been able to hold this gun out in the
-usual way, Proctor said, yet I supported the entire weight on one
-finger.
-
-Master Proctor told how I had lifted a barrel of molasses high above my
-head, something no other man of those parts could do. Lastly he related,
-with much detail, how he and others had seen me cast the stone by the
-brook that May day. I had plucked the rock from its bed as though it was
-but a gun flint, he said, and had heaved it from me so that it rolled
-down the hill, striking another bowlder. The stone I cast had broken
-into a thousand pieces, some narrowly missing a maid of the Colony, one
-Lucille de Guilfort. I had been near to causing her death, Proctor said,
-which must have come speedily, amid the flying rock fragments, had I not
-been a witch, and made the stones to fall harmless all about the maid.
-
-The judges asked me if I had anything to say against these charges.
-
-“They are true in the main,” I replied. “More than this. If your honors
-will but send for the guns I will repeat the feats that caused so much
-wonder here before your eyes. To show you that though they are not easy
-to accomplish, yet I can do them with the strength God has given me.
-What witchcraft is there in that? As for the great stone by the brook,
-so far from lifting it with ease, it took all my powers, and, had it
-weighed a pound more I must have failed. The maid escaped harm, and I
-thank God for it, though it was through no power of mine.”
-
-Then came Deliverance Hobbs. Her tale was strange enough. She had seen,
-she testified, a man, with my face, but with a monkey’s body, a dog’s
-feet and a peacock’s tail, riding in the air on a fence board, as she
-gathered up her wood one night. She said she knew it could not be me,
-for she had seen me sail with my company in the sloops a few days
-before. A day or so after she had seen me in the air a grievous sickness
-had fallen upon her daughter, she continued, and the child had cried out
-that a witch tormented her, thrusting pins and needles into her flesh.
-When they asked her to name the spirit, the girl had spoken my name.
-
-This ended the testimony. The judges urged me again to confess that I
-was in league with Satan and the powers of darkness. That the devil was
-my master, and that I had promised to serve him for worldly gain. If I
-admitted this with a penitent heart, I might go free, they said. For it
-was a well established fact, according to Judge Hathorne, that, if a
-witch confessed, the evil spirits no longer tormented such a one, nor
-could he work harm to others.
-
-But I refused to charge myself with such a crime, even to save my life.
-I told them all so, and said there were no witches, except those of a
-disordered mind.
-
-It was dark now. Fantastic shadows filled the room, and a sound, like a
-great sigh, went up from the lips of the people. Then, at the orders of
-the judge, came tip-staves, with lighted candles, which only served to
-dispel the gloom in a few places, making the remainder more dark.
-
-The jury filed out, and, though it seemed a year, they were back again,
-speedily.
-
-“Guilty,” said the foreman. I could hear those of the assemblage catch
-their breaths as one man.
-
-Then the judges put on their black caps, while Justice Hathorne said:
-
-“And the sentence of this court is that you be taken hence, and hanged
-by the neck until you are dead, and may God have mercy on your soul.”
-
-I had expected it, yet it gave me a cold chill to hear the solemn words.
-
-They led me away, through the surging crowd, out of the dim lighted
-court room, back to the gaol I had left not long ago. The other
-prisoners crowded about me, eager to learn the outcome of the trial, and
-to ascertain what chance they stood. I was too heart-sick to talk much,
-and merely told them that I had been convicted, and was sentenced to
-die.
-
-Then I cast myself into a corner, to wait, for--I scarce knew what. But
-I reflected that he who gives up hope has little left, and, that though
-I had submitted quietly, so far, that was no reason why I should do so
-further. If they were minded to kill me, I thought, they could doubtless
-accomplish their purpose, but I resolved that I would make some suffer
-before I died. I would not go empty handed across to the other shore.
-
-I had strength, beyond the power of most men, and I would use it when
-the time came. If I only had some one beside myself to fight for. If I
-only had the right to battle for Lucille, then I felt that I could do
-wonders. But my heart was not in it.
-
-I determined, if no better chance offered, that I would go even to the
-scaffold, quietly. Then, when I stood bound, waiting for the drop to
-fall, I doubted not I could burst my bonds, seize a sword from a guard,
-and leap among the people. Then I could at least die fighting.
-
-For I resolved I would not be swung off, like a pirate at the yardarm,
-if I was able to prevent it.
-
-Several days passed. I partook heartily of the coarse food provided, for
-I knew I would need all of my strength to carry out my design. I
-endeavored to learn the date of my execution, but could not. All my
-questioning of the guards was turned aside.
-
-It was rumored that the regular gallows was deemed too frail for a man
-of my strength, so they had gone to the work of making another machine.
-What kind it was I learned later. Existence in the gaol had come to be
-such a hell to me now, that I prayed the day of death might arrive
-speedily.
-
-One morning, just a week after my arrest, I awoke with a start. Some one
-in the prison was singing, I could not catch all of the words, but the
-song was an old psalm tune, of the Lord, and of Isaac and of Jacob. I
-sat up on the narrow bench. Most of those poor wretches about me were
-still sleeping; breathing heavily. There was just the faintest gleam of
-daylight, as I could see through the high barred window. As I sat there
-a moment the sun rose, and the beams turned the iron bars above my head,
-into gleaming yellow gold.
-
-There was the tramp of feet outside. The day of my death had dawned.
-
-I stretched my arms upward, and I could feel the muscles firm and hard.
-I might have torn the iron bars loose, but I waited.
-
-“Let them come,” I said softly.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XV.
- PEINE FORTE ET DURE.
-
-
-The heavy oaken door swung on its rusty iron hinges with many a squeak.
-I stood up, half dazzled by the sudden inrush of light. This time it was
-the Sheriff and his constables to greet me, together with a half score
-of guards to block the way. Ere I could make a move, had I desired to, I
-was overwhelmed by the men who crowded about me, while two of them
-quickly passed a rope around my chest, binding my arms fast to my sides.
-As I stood thus, the Sheriff drew from his jacket a document with its
-dangling seal. Was I never to have an end of parchment, I thought.
-
-“Whereas, you, Captain Edward Amherst”--he began.
-
-“Enough,” I interrupted. “It suffices that I must die. Let it be, if it
-must, I pray, without having to listen to more words. I’m not afraid,
-though it is a mean end for one who has served his King and his country
-ever faithfully. If I could but stand before you--aye, before you
-all--with my good sword in hand, I would have a different answer for
-you. Nor would I deem the odds too great. Such a death, borne down by
-weight of numbers, might be counted an honor by a soldier. But a
-dangling rope, in the hands of country bumpkins----”
-
-“Ha, a rope,” repeated the Sheriff. “You have not heard, then?”
-
-“What!” I cried. “Has the Judge allowed me to be shot?”
-
-“Nay; not that, Master Captain,” answered the Sheriff. “You will see in
-good time, though. Meanwhile the law must take its course, and I am
-constrained, by it, to read this death warrant.”
-
-“Have I not had enough of warrants of late?” I asked, but he paid no
-heed to me, and proceeded to read the dull legal terms.
-
-Meanwhile many thoughts filled my mind. If I was not to be hanged,
-perhaps the awful torture of being burned at the stake awaited me. If
-so, I must make new plans, and act quickly.
-
-All the while the Sheriff was reading from the parchment. He stumbled
-over the law terms, and the Latin vexed him sorely. Then he came to the
-decree that I must die “peine forte et dure,” and, as I had small stock
-of Latin, I wondered what I was to meet with.
-
-At length there was an end to the reading. The guards advanced. I saw,
-among them, several who had served under me, yet never a one gave me a
-glance that was not tempered with fear or distrust. Some of them began
-to pull the rope tight about my arms, and this act quickened me to take
-some steps for escape.
-
-So I pretended that the cords cut into my flesh, and my sudden start, as
-if in pain, caused them to cease their efforts, leaving me a little room
-to move my muscles, which was what I wanted. When I had the chance I
-strained at the ropes, and I felt them stretch a trifle. I knew then,
-that the matter of bursting my bonds was a thing somewhat within my
-power.
-
-But that was the smallest part of the problem. I was a long way from
-freedom yet.
-
-On that morning it seemed as if the sun had never shone so brightly, nor
-had the sky been so blue, nor the birds so sweetly tuneful. I do not
-know why I noticed such things, for it was not usual to me. Perhaps the
-shadow of death made the brightness of life seem greater.
-
-They started off at a brisk pace, with me in the centre of the throng,
-and one man holding the ropes that passed about my arms. As we reached
-the foot of Witch Hill I looked up the slope, expecting to see the grim
-gallows crowning the summit. Then I recalled the Sheriff’s words that
-none was to be provided. A murmur swelled upward from the crowd, and the
-people pushed this way and that, trying to get a view of me, as I have
-seen country boys do at a London fair.
-
-We came, at last, to the place set for the execution. The crowd parted,
-and moved back, at the orders of the Sheriff, forming a living circle.
-Then, for the first time, I saw the machine of death.
-
-For a time I could not fathom its nature. It was of wood, the uprights
-and cross pieces being of heavy oaken beams. There were four posts, or
-uprights, and, on these appeared to slide, like the wooden covering on
-the hay ricks in the fields, a flat bed of hewn boards, as large,
-perhaps, as the top of the table at the inn. Out of this bed extended a
-long pole, threaded round and round with a screw thread. This screw
-passed through one of the cross pieces above. A long handle, extending
-either way through the spiral post, out beyond the machine, completed
-the instrument.
-
-Like a flash in the pan, the truth came upon me.
-
-I was to be crushed to death!
-
-Tied up like a bundle of faggots, and placed on the bed-plate, the
-boards above me, urged down by the screw turned by the long handle,
-would force out my life, as is the breath from a newly fledged bird, in
-the hand of a school boy. No wonder the Sheriff held his peace, when I
-asked if I was not to hang. A more horrible death could scarce be
-devised, for the torture of the Indians hardly passed it. Yet an
-Englishman planned it; an Englishman was to suffer by it. Well had Sir
-George said I would pay for the blow I gave him.
-
-Oh! But I longed for a few minutes, with a sword in my hand, to spend
-with my lord.
-
-It was time for the next move, now that I, the chief personage in what
-was about to happen, had arrived. The tumult, of which there had been
-much, had grown less. Partly because the Sheriff had moved most of the
-crowd back, and partly because all desired to see and hear what would
-come next.
-
-My mind had become dazed. Where now was my plan of escape? Before I knew
-what was going on, two stout men advanced, and, by walking in a circle,
-they turned the cross bar, which worked the screw, and so raised the
-movable bed-plate. This made a space, so that my body could be put in
-the press. The great affair creaked and groaned, as if in mortal agony,
-and I could not help shuddering, as I thought of what little chance I
-would have beneath the oak beams.
-
-Then I started. It was but a faint hope that came to me, yet it was a
-chance to escape death. It was a desperate move, but then I was in dire
-straits.
-
-At a signal from the Sheriff, half a dozen men sprang forward and seized
-me. They lifted me clear from the ground, and carried me like a child to
-the machine. Then they stretched out my legs, and thrust them beneath
-the bed-plate. Under went my body next, verily, as if I had been but a
-bag of apples in the cider press.
-
-I was pushed along over the rough planks, and then something happened.
-The Sheriff, to better see that all was carried out according to his
-wishes, had come close to me. He even placed his hand on my shoulder, to
-help thrust me in.
-
-As he did so my boot top caught his sword hilt, half drawing the steel
-from the scabbard, as my body went forward. The keen edge of the weapon
-was uppermost, and, as I was pulled and hauled to the centre of the bed,
-the rope which bound my arms was drawn over the sword’s sharp blade. The
-steel bit deep into the hemp, but not all the way through by a good way.
-However, as I felt the rope being cut, I knew that, by using only my
-ordinary strength, I could burst my bonds. I swelled my muscles only a
-little, and with that I felt the cords give a trifle.
-
-All was now in readiness. I might, then, have burst the rope, slipped
-from the press, and tried to cut a way thorough the crowd. But I saw
-there were many men armed, and they looked as if anxious to see me die,
-so I resolved to try what I could do by another means.
-
-The Sheriff stepped back, all unaware of the good office his sword had
-done for me. At a sign from him, two men, stronger than those who had
-been at the cross-bar, emerged from the crowd, and took their places to
-twist down on the big screw. They stripped off their upper garments, and
-I saw the play of their muscles beneath the skin, like little waves on a
-stream.
-
-My eyes could not take in all of the scene, of which I was the centre,
-but I caught a glimpse of Sir George moving about. Once he looked full
-at me, twirling his moustache with one hand, while the other rested on
-his sword hilt. Seeing me watching him, he came a little nearer and
-called out softly in French:
-
-“What think you now, Monsieur Captain? Wilt wed Lucille?” And his voice
-was mocking.
-
-“Come, my lord,” I answered, banteringly, “accept her love from me. I
-know you have none for yourself.”
-
-His face turned black, and there came a gleam into his eyes.
-
-“Give her my truest love, I pray you; when you find her,” I added, as a
-sort of afterthought.
-
-“Find her? What mean you?” he asked eagerly. “Know you whither she----?”
-
-Then he stopped, biting his lips in confusion, for he feared he had
-betrayed himself. My heart gave a bound at that, for, though I knew
-naught of Lucille, my words having been spoken by chance, yet it seemed
-she had gone away.
-
-If she had, it meant that she cared little for her wifely duties, and
-that Sir George had not succeeded in winning back her affection, if,
-indeed, he had ever had it.
-
-But even that was like to avail me little now, unless I could escape.
-
-A great stillness came over the crowd. Scarce a sound was heard, and
-even the notes of the birds seemed hushed. I waited, breathless, almost.
-Then, from out of the centre of silence, came a voice.
-
-“Turn!” cried the Sheriff.
-
-“Turn!” echoed Sir George.
-
-Then the heavy planks above me, forced down by the movement of the
-screw, began descending. Slowly, as do bearers at the bier of death, the
-men walked around and around, pushing, with their breasts, against the
-cross-bar.
-
-Nearer and nearer came the weight that was soon to crush me. I must act
-with speed now. I would give them time to make one more turn, I thought.
-There. It was made.
-
-Now the time had come!
-
-I commended my soul to God, as did Samson in the days of old, when he
-pulled the great pillars of the temple from their base. I strained at my
-rope bonds. The half cut cords held for a moment, and they bit into my
-flesh when I pulled on them, weak as I had deemed them. Again I put my
-strength into my muscles, until the blood seemed like to spurt from my
-finger tips.
-
-Suddenly the bonds gave, bursting with a sound like a pistol with a
-little load in it, and my arms were free. There was a great shout from
-the multitude.
-
-“The strength of Goliath is in him!” cried an old man in the front rank.
-“Satan is beside him, witch that he is, giving him the great power.”
-
-[Illustration: “I PRESSED UPWARDS WITH MY ARMS AGAINST THE BOARDS.“]
-
-The men at the ends of the bar had not stopped. The planks were coming
-nearer to my chest. I raised my hands and grasped the edges of the
-descending platform of wood above me. I drew up my knees, so that they,
-also, touched the planks.
-
-I was now in the position of one lying on his back, holding up a weight
-that rested on his uplifted hands and bended knees. The men turning,
-noting my movements, had paused a moment, but, at a word from the
-Sheriff, they pushed the harder.
-
-Down came the planks, farther, but more slowly. Then I did that which I
-count as the greatest feat of strength I ever did.
-
-I pressed upward with my arms, and as the wood above me still came down,
-I could feel it nip my knees. The bones in my legs were of solid stuff,
-and I knew they could stand much pressure. The course of the descending
-platform was now stayed, and the men at the heavy press tugged and
-pushed at the cross-bar, without avail, for nearly a minute.
-
-“Push harder!” cried Sir George, stepping out from the crowd. “Are you
-babes, to let him prevail against you? Have you no strength?”
-
-Thus urged, the sturdy men braced their feet in the earth, and bore hard
-against the bar. I summoned what I thought must be all my energy, and
-pressed upward with my arms against the boards. I could hear a small
-cracking sound, as when a tree in the forest feels the axes that have
-eaten into its heart, and it begins to sway earthward. The men at the
-bar were joined by others, and they pushed with all their might, but
-could not stir the screw.
-
-I shut my eyes, breathed the name of Lucille--aye, though I had no
-right--and then, with an effort that brought beads of water to my brow,
-I pushed upward--upward--upward.
-
-Never before nor since had I known such power as I possessed then. The
-veins on my arms were like to burst, and stood out under the skin as do
-welts on a lashed horse. My muscles seemed as if they would tear from
-their fastenings. My hands had no feeling; my knees were numb. Round
-went my head dizzily, and it was as if the world was dropping away from
-beneath me. All about was blackness, and I could not see the weight that
-was crushing me.
-
-I heard the shouts of the Sheriff and Sir George, urging the men at the
-bar to turn, and the men strove mightily. The cross piece trembled with
-their efforts.
-
-I had scarce another bit of strength left, but still I would not let
-them get the mastery, and I kept pushing upward. The darkness left me,
-in its place a great light seeming to shine.
-
-“Lord of Hosts,” I prayed, “let me be the victor.”
-
-I felt the solid planks give. They cracked and splintered, a little at
-first, as when a wedge first cleaves an entrance. I could not breathe.
-But, with fiercely beating heart, I heard the sound of rending wood, and
-it mingled in my ears with the roar of the blood surging through my
-head. My knees seemed crushed. My arms like two stone pillars.
-
-Then, while all the crowd looked on in wonder, I did that, which, though
-I boast not of, no other man in the Colony could have done and lived
-after.
-
-I broke the ponderous planks across the middle, as a boy might splinter
-a shingle across his knee.
-
-Right through they cracked, where the big wooden screw was set in, and
-so heavy was the strain I had put upon them, the pieces flew high in the
-air.
-
-A great peace came over me, and I sank back on the rough wooden bed. I
-knew naught, save that I heard a loud shout go up, and many murmurs were
-heard on all sides.
-
-Suddenly it was dark again, and my ears were filled with the noise of
-the sea dashing on the rocks. But above that I heard the people cry:
-
-“He has broken the press with his witch strength! Saw ever man the
-like?”
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XVI.
- HOW WE BROKE GAOL.
-
-
-When I had come to myself I was back again in gaol with those I had
-left, when I went forth, as they thought to death. Some news of how I
-had broken the press came in with me, and there was much wonder.
-
-As for myself I was, for a while, as helpless as a new born babe,
-because my strength had all gone from me. It was days before I
-recovered, and never since have I been able to lift as heavy weights as
-before that supreme test.
-
-I began to think a little of the plight I was in now. I had supposed,
-when they saw that I was able to break the machine with which they hoped
-to torture me to death, they would release me. But I had reckoned little
-with whom I had to deal. Sir George was not yet satisfied. Now I might
-expect to again go up to death, this time with little chance to escape.
-
-I talked with some of the prisoners on the matter, and they said there
-were points of law which might be used in my behalf. The death sentence,
-which was not completed, could no longer hold good, it was said, so
-that, shortly, I would go forth a free man. For I had gone through the
-manner of death prescribed, and had lived. Now it was written, so I was
-told, that a man might not be put in jeopardy of his life twice by the
-law.
-
-I was bitter in heart, those days, I called myself many times a fool,
-when I thought how I might have killed Sir George, when I had the
-chance, and, by this time, be far away with Lucille. If I had known that
-I could trust her. But the feeling that she would cast me aside, as she
-seemed to have done in the case of her husband, halted me. I was torn
-between many impulses.
-
-The witch trials went on, for the accusations multiplied. At length
-Salem gaol held no less than four-score men and women, who had either
-been found guilty of witchcraft or who waited to be tried on the foul
-charges. Besides those in prison, there were double that number under
-suspicion. Not only in Salem, but in Andover, Gloucester, Ipswich and
-the neighboring towns. The infection had spread until the whole country
-was like a vast pesthouse, and the land was red with the blood of the
-slain.
-
-Nineteen had been hanged in Salem, and two were burned at the stake. One
-man, swung from the gallows, was an aged clergyman. One day my former
-lieutenant, Giles Cory, was arrested as a witch, and cast into gaol with
-me. Only a few days before his aged mother had been hanged, and he was
-in sore distress. We two condoled with each other, until one morning,
-when I missed him.
-
-“Where is Cory?” I asked the guard.
-
-“Dead,” was the brief reply.
-
-I learned that he had been crushed to death in the same machine that I
-had broken. The witch-finders had repaired it, making it very stout, for
-rumors had got about of Cory’s strength. Remembering my bursting of the
-ropes they bound the hapless man so that it would have taken a score of
-men, as strong as I, to have broken the bonds. In that manner my
-lieutenant met his death. Not that he did not struggle, beneath the
-cruel press. A guard, who watched him die, said Cory tore loose one
-muscle from his arm, as the planks came down.
-
-Matters had come to such a pass now, that none of us was safe from
-death. So far from abating the witch fever had laid hold of the
-townsfolk more violently, so that they even meditated setting fire to
-the gaol, to burn us like rats in a trap. When this news, told with
-brutal pleasure by the guards, came to us, myself and some of the bolder
-ones, resolved to sit tamely by no longer. We would break gaol.
-
-The prison we were in was not unlike a blockhouse save that the loops,
-or windows, were high up, out of reach of one standing on the floor.
-There was but one entrance, and that was closed by a heavy door, hung on
-massive iron hinges and studded with big nails. We knew that only an axe
-could open a way through that. Outside of this door was an apartment,
-two stories in height, where the jailer stayed. The guard was also
-quartered there.
-
-The gaol room was divided into two parts by a thin partition, the men
-being on one side, and the women on the other, with a door of
-communication between. There were always several men on guard in the
-jailer’s room, and they were fully armed.
-
-When we had talked over the situation we could but admit it was no small
-matter to escape. One plan after another we considered and, in turn,
-rejected, for, though we hungered for liberty, we did not wish to fail
-in the attempt and die by the musket or the sword.
-
-We decided that force, without some preparation beforehand, was not to
-be thought of, and it was voted strategy must serve our ends. So we
-sharpened what little wits we had left, and, at length, seemed to have
-hit on a plan which had its advantages.
-
-It was talked over, laid aside, and, as none better presented, we all
-agreed to it. That is, all but the women. We did not take them into our
-counsels, though we had in mind to release them with ourselves.
-
-The fifth night, after the full of the moon, was fixed on for the
-breaking of gaol. Anxious were the days and nights that intervened.
-
-It began to rain on the evening appointed, shortly after the last meal
-had been served. It was dismal within and not less gloomy without, but
-we welcomed that, for it would mean that few persons would be prowling
-about. There would also be complete darkness, and we needed that.
-
-Now, when we had been given our suppers, I put by some of my bread and a
-cup of water. When night had fallen I mixed this into paste, and Elias
-Jenkins smeared it over my face, in accordance with our plan. I looked
-as though I had on a death’s mask.
-
-When this was done and it was near to midnight, at which hour the guard
-was to change, I went into a corner of the room, farthest removed from
-the door and huddled up like a man in great distress of body. Only I
-left my face visible, so that the light from the single candle in the
-apartment fell upon my dough-covered countenance.
-
-As the guard passed the door, one of the prisoners gave a knock.
-
-“What now?” inquired the guard, thrusting his face up against an opening
-in the door, covered by iron bars.
-
-“It is Captain Amherst,” spoke up John Lowden, feigning to be in great
-fright. “He is as pale as death, and mutters strangely. We fear he is
-like to expire in our midst.”
-
-The trick worked. The guard peered over toward where I was lying, while
-the candle above me flickered on the paste on my face. Despite the need
-of maintaining the character I had assumed, I felt the dough cracking in
-a dozen places, as I tried hard not to laugh. It was solemn enough, but,
-somehow, I wanted to burst out in a roar, as I thought of how I must
-look.
-
-My appearance evidently disarmed the suspicion of the guard, for, with
-an exclamation of surprise, he threw open the door, and advanced a
-little way into the room, holding his tin-pierced lantern high above his
-head.
-
-Yet he did not lose all caution, being alone. He kept hold of the edge
-of the door, ready to close it at a moment’s notice. But the few steps
-he came in served the purpose. Lowden, who had stepped to one side,
-silently and suddenly sprang for the guard, and grasped him by the
-throat. The cry the wretch would have given utterance to, was choked in
-his teeth, and was only a gurgle.
-
-The next instant I was up, and at his side. He seemed to lose his
-courage, when my pale face was near to his. Lowden gave place to me, and
-I crooked my fingers about the guard’s neck. He struggled so I was
-afraid he would get loose and make a noise that would have brought them
-all about us. So I was forced to grip the man rather tighter than I
-meant.
-
-He did not cease his efforts to free himself, and, being fearful that
-our plan would miscarry by reason of his continued struggle, I put forth
-a little too much muscle. I bent his head back, with great force,--there
-was a sudden ceasing of the guard’s resistance. I heard the bones and
-sinews snap. Then I knew I had broken his neck. He fell in a limp mass
-at my feet. I was somewhat sorry, though he would have served me the
-same, and it was a fair war. However, there was no time for regret.
-
-“Quick, now!” I shouted. Lowden had swung the door open, and the
-prisoners, men and women, crowded into the outer room.
-
-The noise of the rush had alarmed the relief squad of guards on the
-second floor, and they ran down. Though most of them were stupid with
-sleep, some had their flint-locks, and these, without a moment’s
-hesitation, fired into our midst. Three fell dead, one a woman, and
-several were sorely hurt.
-
-The next instant the guards were down under our feet as we rushed
-onward. Some of the prisoners, who never hoped to see the outside of the
-gaol again, save on their way to the scaffold, were fairly mad with joy,
-and, in their hatred of the guards, they stamped on their upturned faces
-as they ran over them. Thus, as I learned afterward, several of those
-who had watched over us died.
-
-There was yet the outer door between us and liberty. Several of those in
-the van tried to burst it open. All the while the guards were shouting
-like mad behind us, while the prisoners, who had lost their heads, cried
-and screamed; the shrill voices of the women voicing high above the
-others. Again and again half a dozen men threw themselves against the
-door, but, in their excitement, they wasted their energies.
-
-The portal resisted, though it shook under the strain.
-
-“Ho, Captain!” several called. “Here is where your strength is like to
-serve us.”
-
-I pushed my way through the crowd, and tried my shoulder against the
-door. It was of considerable thickness, though not as heavy as the
-other. Once, twice and thrice, I hurled my body against the barrier. It
-held. Once more I made the attempt, and, this time, when I thought I
-would have brought down the very wall, I cracked the wood down the
-middle, and the door was there no more, though I bruised my shoulder
-greatly by the effort.
-
-Others of the guard had secured their weapons by this time, and they
-fired once more into the helpless crowd. There were shrieks of mortal
-hurts from those in the rear, and curses from those in front.
-
-“The women first,” I cried, blocking the splintered opening through the
-door, with my body. “Not a man passes until all the women are by.”
-
-At that the men opened up a living lane, and the women, save three who
-were killed, ran screaming out.
-
-“Now, men!” I cried, and I stood aside, until the last one was out. Four
-guards, each swinging his musket as a club, came at me. I caught up a
-sword from the jailer’s table, and disabled the nearest guard. Then I
-leaped out through the splintered portal, and was in the midst of the
-crowd of those who, only a few minutes before, had little hope of life.
-
-On they fled, free, leaving behind, like a bad dream, the gaol room,
-with its witch memories. Men and women cried aloud in their joy. Once
-more they could look up and know that the sky was above them, even
-though from it came drops of rain, pitiless, yet seeming like tears of a
-great rejoicing. They held out their hands, and even opened their
-mouths, that the cool rain might refresh them. I looked about me, long
-enough to see that all who could had escaped, and then I turned to my
-own affairs.
-
-I buckled the belt of the sword I had caught up about me. Something
-familiar about the hilt of the weapon drew my attention. Then, as I
-examined it as well as I could in the darkness, I found, with pleasure,
-that it was my own good steel, that had been taken from me. Now I was
-ready to meet the whole world, but, first of all, I wanted to stand
-before one man, and that one was Sir George Keith.
-
-I washed the paste of bread from my face. I gave a look toward the gaol,
-which was now some distance behind. From the direction came a confused
-murmur of sounds. I was free; but whither should I go?
-
-I was like a ship without a compass. Salem was no longer a safe place
-for me. Lucille, whom I had hoped to wed, was the wife of another. My
-arrest as a witch was an end to any military preferment in the Colony.
-My life seemed to have come to an end, now.
-
-I had hastened on, thus musing, until I found myself near to the inn of
-Master Willis. The rain came down softly, and the only creature stirring
-in the neighborhood seemed to be me. None of the prisoners had come that
-way.
-
-Hark! What was that?
-
-The echo of my footsteps died away. Then, from the stable, back of the
-inn, came the whinny of a horse.
-
-“Kit!” I exclaimed. I had almost forgotten my faithful little mare,
-which Willis had kept for me ever since I first came to Salem. There was
-one true friend at least.
-
-Myself, my sword, my horse. What more could a soldier wish? Love? I had
-that too, it seemed, though it was not all mine. Strange, when I was
-loving Lucille, I never thought another might love her too. I never
-thought she might have loved another. She seemed all mine. ’Twas a hard
-nut to crack. If only there had been no marriage between Lucille and Sir
-George. But straightway I had wished that I wished it away; for what it
-meant to her.
-
-Kit whinnied again. It was like a message to me. I must leave Salem, to
-go I knew nor cared not where. First of all to get Kit out. I walked
-around to the stable door and, with a stone, easily broke the lock. Kit
-knew me as soon as I stepped inside. I stroked her glossy neck, patted
-her moist nose, and, running my hands down her legs, knew that she was
-in good shape, and fit for a hard, fast ride.
-
-I found the saddle and bridle, put them on, and led her out into the
-road. Then I leaped upon her back, shook the reins, and we were off.
-
-“Good bye, Lucille,” I whispered, to the rain and darkness.
-
-And then, though I had said good bye to love, I felt a lighter heart
-than I had known for many a long day.
-
-Kit’s muscles moved like steel bands, as she went galloping along the
-road to Boston, for thither had I guided her unconsciously. The sweet
-smell of the newly watered earth came up to my nostrils, and I breathed
-long and deep of the fresh night air. Kit’s hoofs beat a soft slushing
-tattoo on the muddy road.
-
-The rain fell gently.
-
-“Good bye, Lucille,” I whispered. A raindrop fell upon my lips, and it
-seemed as if she had kissed me in the night.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XVII.
- THE NEWS NANETTE BROUGHT ME.
-
-
-Through the night I rode, until the darkness began to pale, and the dawn
-was heralded. Now and then, when the labored breathing of Kit told me
-the pace was too heavy for her, I pulled up a bit. We passed by silent
-cottages scattered over the country, here one alone, there several near
-together.
-
-I galloped until morning was fairly upon the land. Then I drew rein at a
-white farmhouse, where I dismounted to get a bite to eat, and feed Kit.
-The farmer looked at my mud-soiled clothes, at the mare’s rough coat,
-and said:
-
-“You’ve ridden far and hard, the night, neighbor.”
-
-“Aye,” I answered, “there was some need of it.”
-
-“Perchance some one pursued you?” he ventured.
-
-“No one but myself,” I said.
-
-With that he questioned no more, though he looked curiously at me, but
-led the way into the house, where his wife was preparing breakfast. I
-managed to make a hearty meal, and then I saw that Kit had her grain,
-after which I rubbed her down. When I would have paid for the fodder and
-my victuals the farmer would have none of my money, but bade me go on in
-good luck, for which I thanked him.
-
-I was soon on the road again. It was better going now, though the roads
-were still heavy from the rain. Before another hour had passed I found
-myself in Boston town.
-
-People turned to stare at me, as I clattered through the streets,
-wondering, I suppose, why I was abroad in such a rig so early. I headed
-for a modest tavern I knew of. There, I thought, I would make some plan
-for my future conduct. For I had set my mind upon leaving New England. I
-had been through enough there, for one time.
-
-I soon found the place I sought, and went in. The landlord knew me, and
-gave me a little room by myself, the while he brought some good ale. I
-drank a bit, feeling much refreshed, and then turned my mind to what I
-had better do. I had heard of the Virginia colony, and that it was a
-place where there was much of life and entertainment. There I might
-follow my soldier trade with honor, fearing no witch trial, nor the
-warrant held by Sir George.
-
-In Virginia I could forget, and leave behind, many bitter memories--and
-many sweet ones.
-
-There I could forget Lucille.
-
-Forget her?
-
-No!
-
-Not forget her. I never could do that. I might find other thoughts to
-take her place--for a time.
-
-Bah! What a fool I was. A fool twice. A fool for loving her, a fool for
-giving her up so easily--giving up another man’s wife, forsooth, when I
-knew that she loved me at that. Of a truth, if Dicky Hall ever heard of
-this he would laugh me to scorn.
-
-Well, let them laugh. The honor of the Danes could stand a little
-merriment, and it was the honor of the Danes I was upholding, though I
-lost my love for the honor.
-
-“Well, here’s to the death of love, and the honor of my name,” I said,
-softly, draining my last glass.
-
-“Now for Virginia!”
-
-As I set the mug down the sound of voices in the main room came to my
-ears. One was that of the landlord, the other a woman’s, and it was
-strangely familiar. She spoke part in French, with as much English as
-she could.
-
-“Now, now,” said the inn keeper, “don’t ye come botherin’ again,
-mistress. I know nothin’ of Lucy nor Nancy either, though for that
-matter every sailor who lands here has that name on his lips, one way or
-another.”
-
-“Not Lucy, m’sieur, not Lucy,” spoke the woman’s voice. “’Tis Lucille I
-been look for.”
-
-I started at the name.
-
-“Nor Lucille, either,” said the tavern keeper, testily.
-
-“But,” persisted the woman, “I have been tell zat she taked a bateau
-near zis tavern, m’sieur.”
-
-“Well, mayhap she did, lass; lots of folk do, but I have not seen her,”
-and the landlord started away.
-
-“You have no seen her, m’sieur? She was so much beautiful, my mistress,
-Lucille. Now she been lost to me,” and there came a trace of tears into
-the voice.
-
-Where had I heard it before? The name--but then Lucille was a common
-enough name. Yet my heart beat a little more quickly. I went to where I
-could look in the room to see the woman. The landlord was on his way
-out, and the face of his visitor was toward me.
-
-It was Nanette, Lucille’s servant!
-
-She saw me, and her face lighted up.
-
-“Oh, m’sieur Captain!” she exclaimed, fairly running toward me, and
-lapsing into rapid French. “You have found her then? Oh, I thought she
-was lost.”
-
-“Who?” I asked, coldly.
-
-“Why, Lucille. Mistress de Guilfort; your--your--surely, Captain,
-you----”
-
-“You mean Mistress Keith, the wife of Sir George Keith,” I interrupted,
-and was about to go away.
-
-At the name of Sir George, Nanette gave a start.
-
-“Is he here?” she cried, excitedly.
-
-“Aye. Here or somewhere with his wife, I make no doubt,” I said.
-
-“His wife, m’sieur?”
-
-“Aye. His wife.”
-
-“Never!”
-
-“What?” I cried.
-
-“Never!” repeated Nanette.
-
-“Oh, the villain,” she went on. “Has he told you that lie?”
-
-“Then it is not true?” I asked, trembling lest the answer would shatter
-newly raised hopes.
-
-“No more than that I am his wife, Captain!” came the quick reply, and I
-could have hugged Nanette.
-
-Here was a sudden and joyful change in my plans. There need be no
-Virginia now. Yet there was much to learn, and, it seemed, also, to find
-Lucille.
-
-The tavern keeper was staring at us curiously, so I motioned Nanette to
-come into the room I had, and, closing the door, I bade her tell me all
-she knew. First I repeated, briefly, how I had met Sir George; though I
-said nothing of the Royal warrant.
-
-Then Nanette related how she had long been in the service of the de
-Guilfort family. Some years before, while in Paris, Sir George Keith had
-met Lucille, fallen in love with her, and they were engaged to wed. Then
-came the disclosure of how lightly Sir George held the honor of his
-promised wife. He had an affair with a notorious woman, and it was the
-talk of the court, in the circle of which the de Guilforts moved. Stung
-and ashamed at the effront, Lucille had quarreled with my lord, and,
-with bitter words, the troth was broken. Then, smarting under the tongue
-of gossip, M. de Guilfort, with his daughter and niece, had set sail for
-the new land, and Nanette accompanied them.
-
-“Then Lucille is not his wife?” I asked again, hardly able to believe
-the good news.
-
-“Never! Never! Never!” cried Nanette, with such earnestness that she
-could scarce cease her “nevers.”
-
-“But does she not love him?” I inquired, tortured by a new doubt.
-
-“Voila!” burst out Nanette, with a shrug of her shoulders. “You must
-know if she loves you, Captain, and that should be an answer enough for
-any man.”
-
-“It is,” I said, and I was as happy as I had been sad.
-
-“But where is Mistress de Guilfort, now?” asked Nanette.
-
-“Where?” I exclaimed. “How should I know? I have not seen her since the
-day I sailed against St. Johns. You may have heard how, on the night of
-my return from Pemaquid, I was taken for a witch. I met Sir George that
-day, and learned from him that my promised wife was his wedded one.”
-
-“Which was a lie,” broke in Nanette.
-
-“Aye, so it seems.”
-
-“Then you have not seen her in Boston?” went on Nanette.
-
-“In Boston? Here? Why, how should I, having only just arrived? But what
-would bring her here?”
-
-“Listen,” began the woman, speaking rapidly. “She heard of your arrival
-in Salem, and thought you would have come to her at once.”
-
-“So I would, but for what Sir George told me,” I answered.
-
-“She sat long that night, expecting you,” said Nanette.
-
-I choked back an exclamation. Lucille had been waiting for me when I
-looked in on her through the window, and whispered a good bye.
-
-“The next morning,” Nanette continued, “word came of your arrest. My
-mistress, knowing full well, from a bitter experience, the temper of the
-witch-crazed people and that of the courts, wasted no time. She felt,
-she said, that reason would not prevail, and that you would be
-condemned, and so she resolved to go to Boston, and try to secure a
-pardon for you, from His Excellency, Governor Phips. This would be of
-more service than all the proofs of law, in freeing you from the
-sentence. She found a farmer who was going from Salem to Boston that
-day.
-
-“So precious was the time,” proceeded Nanette, “that my mistress would
-not even delay to go to the gaol and see you. She sent a letter,
-however.”
-
-“Where is it?” I asked, eagerly.
-
-“I left it with the keeper for you.”
-
-“And he never gave it to me. But go on. There is much mystery. Go on.
-Talk faster, Nanette.”
-
-“Patience, m’sieur. Well, Mistress de Guilfort, in great distress of
-mind for you, started for Boston. She said she would return the next
-day.”
-
-“Did she?”
-
-“Nay. That afternoon you were tried, and the sentence of death passed. I
-was in sore heart at home, watching for the return of my mistress.
-Toward night a messenger on horseback rode to the door and inquired for
-her. Before I thought I told him she had gone to Boston. As he turned
-away I caught a glimpse of the messenger’s face. It was Sir George
-Keith. I knew him at once, though I had not seen him in five years.
-
-“‘So my pretty Lucille has flown from me,’ he said, and I knew for the
-first time that he had previously found her out in Salem, which
-accounted for her strange terror at a certain time.”
-
-“Go on!” I almost shouted. “I begin to see the end.”
-
-“That is all,” said Nanette, stopping suddenly.
-
-“All?” I cried, blankly. “Where is Mistress de Guilfort?”
-
-“That is what I am half wild about, Captain. I have not seen her since
-that day, three weeks ago, when she started for this place, after the
-pardon for you.
-
-“Yesterday I could stand the pain of waiting in idleness no longer, and
-I came here.”
-
-“Gone three weeks,” I murmured.
-
-“Aye, and with that crafty villain, Sir George Keith, on her track,” and
-Nanette’s eyes filled with tears.
-
-“You have not found a trace of her, then, Nanette?”
-
-“Not a sign, Captain, since the day she rode off in the farmer’s cart,
-waving her hand good bye to me.”
-
-Now I have had many hard knots, in life, to untie. I had been put to
-much thought, at times, how to best approach an enemy, or how to escape
-from one. But this was something I could not fathom. I have no mind for
-book matters, nor am I handy with the pen. Yet there were certain points
-with which I might make a start, as I have seen learned professors do,
-when they draw strange squares and circles.
-
-The first point was that Lucille had left Salem for Boston. The next
-point, it would seem, should be to find if she arrived.
-
-Nanette was watching me. When I had made what I might call a start to
-solve the riddle of Lucille’s long absence, my face cleared a bit.
-Nanette saw it, and cried:
-
-“Then you can find her, Captain?”
-
-“If any one can, I will,” I replied, and I felt the hope that comes from
-making a beginning at a hard matter.
-
-“But now, Nanette, you must go back to Salem,” I said.
-
-“Oh, let me help you find her,” she implored.
-
-“No. There is much to be done. I may have to ride far, by day and by
-night. You could do no good. Go back, and, when I have found her, you
-may come with us.”
-
-“Then you will find her, Captain?”
-
-“I will,” I said.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XVIII.
- HOW THE EAGLE SAILED.
-
-
-Now it is an easy matter to say a thing will be done, but it is hard,
-sometimes, to carry out. However, I was so happy, when I felt I had not
-loved in vain, that I thought it would be but a little quest to find
-Lucille. She had, ’twas likely, found friends with whom she was
-stopping, and I only had to search them out. First I must see if she had
-been to the Governor for a pardon. And, when I called to mind this act
-of hers, I was ashamed of the thoughts I had had concerning my dear one.
-
-So, having arranged to send Nanette back to Salem, I turned my steps
-toward the Governor’s, to make inquiries; for His Excellency had,
-doubtless, seen Lucille.
-
-I was in little fear of arrest, on the charge of treason, for which Sir
-George held the Royal warrant, as I judged I could prevail on Sir
-William Phips to let so old a matter rest.
-
-As I walked up the broad steps, having left Kit in the roadway, I was
-met at the door by a very proud-looking serving man.
-
-“We want no beggars here,” he said, and I remembered, with a start, my
-disordered and mud-stained clothes. I was not at all nice in appearance;
-a veritable beggar on horseback, and wearing a sword at my side; a
-strange sight, doubtless.
-
-“I am no beggar,” I said, roughly, for I was in no mood for trifling.
-“Stand aside,” I went on, placing my hand on my sword, “for I must see
-Sir William.”
-
-“Then you must get wings,” answered the man, smiling, and becoming more
-respectful, “for the Governor sailed for London yesterday.”
-
-Here was something I had not counted on.
-
-“Is there no one here who knows aught of his affairs?” I asked. “I must
-make some inquiries concerning a certain person.”
-
-The servant said I might see the Governor’s private clerk, and he
-ushered me into a room where a middle-aged man sat writing. To him I
-related how I had come to Boston seeking a maid, Lucille de Guilfort,
-who was my promised wife, and who, I said, I feared had met with some
-harm, or was detained, since she had not been heard of in three weeks.
-She would have called on the Governor on a private matter, I remarked,
-but I did not say what it was, for even in Boston some folks were
-witch-crazed.
-
-The Governor’s man listened carefully, and asked me to describe Lucille
-to him. When I had done so, he said:
-
-“I recall, now, that about three weeks ago, such a maid came here, and
-was closeted with His Excellency for about an hour. I remember, because
-that day, I had upset the hour glass, and also on that day----”
-
-“Yes, yes,” I interrupted, “tell me of that again, what of the maid?”
-
-“I was coming to her,” he said, reproachfully. “Well, as I have said,
-she was with the Governor for an hour. There were tear traces on her
-cheeks when she went in, but a smile on her lips when she came out. I
-remember because I heard a bird----”
-
-“Never mind the bird,” I hastened to say. “She was smiling----”
-
-“Yes, but why do you break in on me? I was telling of the smile. She was
-all happiness, and in her hand she had a paper, sealed with the great
-seal of the Colony, and with the Governor’s own signet. Then, as she was
-going down the steps, having thrust the document into her bodice, she
-was met by a man.”
-
-“By a man?” I shouted. “What manner of man?”
-
-“Why, he was a man. I remember he was a man because----”
-
-“Aye, aye, because he was a man,” I cried, all on fire. “Never mind how
-you recall it, but tell me, quickly, as if you had but another minute to
-live, what manner of man he was.”
-
-“Why, you are in great haste,” said the clerk, “you leave me no
-thoughts.”
-
-“Never mind your thoughts,” I said, “tell me who was the man?”
-
-“Why, none other than Sir George Keith,” he answered, gazing with mild
-wonder at me. “I remember it was because I knew him well, having often
-seen him at the Governor’s house.”
-
-“What then?” I asked, trying to be calm, though I stormed within.
-
-“Oh, I looked no further, as I had many papers to prepare,” replied the
-clerk. “The last I saw was the maid going up the street with Sir
-George.”
-
-“Did she go willingly?”
-
-“Aye, I thought so. Though now I call to mind that Sir George appeared
-to talk earnestly to her, pointing this way and that, ere she turned and
-went with him. Is there any more I can tell you?”
-
-“No,” I said. “I thank you most kindly. I have heard too--too much
-already. Forgive my hasty words, I pray.”
-
-Then I went out to Kit.
-
-She rubbed her nose against my shoulder as I made ready to leap into the
-saddle. I wondered if she understood, and if it was the sympathy she
-could not speak, for it seemed she wanted to tell me she was still true.
-
-Here was more than I had bargained for. Lucille was gone with Sir
-George, and there could be but one meaning to that. He had met her,
-having followed her from Salem, and had renewed his advances to her.
-With light words he had been sorry for the past, had won her
-forgiveness, and had awakened her old love for him.
-
-Surely this was an end to it all now.
-
-Though I had believed her his wife before, I felt I had her love. Now he
-had both her love and herself, and I had naught save bitter
-memories--and my love.
-
-I cursed that, and tried to separate it from me--to cast it aside, but I
-could not. I knew, no matter what she did, no matter where she was, no
-matter were she now in his arms, with his kisses on her lips, that I
-loved her. For, when a man loves, he loves not always with wisdom.
-
-I did not think of her as false to me. I believed she had fled with him
-after trying to elude his temptation. For it would appear she started
-from Salem loving me, and I hugged that cold comfort to my heart.
-
-Despair, hope, then despair again had been my feelings that day. Now
-came a new one, revenge. If I could not have Lucille I would have her
-lover, and I laughed aloud as I thought how pleasant it would be to have
-him at my sword point.
-
-I saw him shifting back from my attack. I saw the terror in his eyes, I
-saw his futile effort to parry my fierce thrust, I heard Lucille cry
-out, and then--and then I felt my keen weapon sheath itself in his
-heart.
-
-Down he fell at my feet a shapeless mass, his red, warm lips, that she
-had kissed, growing cold and white.
-
-And I laughed aloud.
-
-A sorry uncanny mirth it must have been, for it made Kit prick up her
-ears and break into a trot.
-
-Now I thought I would live but for one end--to kill Sir George. But to
-do that I must find him. I have ever believed that good wine is, in
-moderation, a safe friend. Over a glass or two I knew I could better
-think of what I might do next, for I had resolved to follow Sir
-George--and Lucille.
-
-I went to the tavern I had left a little while before, and, while
-sipping my wine, I fell to thinking of a remark Nanette had made while
-there, of how she had heard that her mistress had taken a boat near the
-tavern. In the excitement of what she told me after that I had forgotten
-to ask the servant what she meant by it, and where she had heard the
-rumor.
-
-While thus musing and grumbling at my stupidity I heard two men talking
-in the room next to mine. The voices rose in anger now and then, and
-seemed to be in dispute over the division of some money. At length one
-of the men cried out:
-
-“The boat was more mine than yours. You were as anxious to sell to Sir
-George as was I, and I made the better trade. For I knew he must have
-the craft at any price, as it would not do to let the little lady wet
-her feet.”
-
-Sir George! A boat! A lady! Had I stumbled on what I wanted; the trail
-of my enemy?
-
-I listened with all attention, but I learned no more. Shortly after that
-I heard the men leaving, and I contrived to go out at the same time, and
-caught a glimpse of them.
-
-They appeared to be sailors, both roughly dressed, while one was taller
-than the other. I left my mare at the inn, and followed the men, not
-letting them see me, though. They separated after going a little way,
-and I kept after the taller one. In my eagerness I came too close to
-him. He turned, saw me following, and quickened his pace. But I went
-faster also, and, when he was at the edge of the town, I was close at
-his heels. He turned suddenly, picked up a heavy stick and snarled at
-me:
-
-“Who are you and what do you want, following me? If it’s to rob----”
-
-“I am not a highwayman,” I said. “I only want a word or two with you.”
-
-“Suppose I have no words for you?”
-
-“Then I’ll find a way to make you.”
-
-“Bold talk,” he sneered.
-
-“I am a bold man,” I answered.
-
-I saw his eyes shifting, first on one side of me and then on the other,
-as he sought a path of escape, but I stood in the way.
-
-“Go your journey, and let me go mine,” he said, “for I’m no pleasant
-person to provoke, mate.”
-
-“Until I have done with you, our journey is together,” I remarked. “You
-may go when you have answered some of my questions.” Then assuming to
-know more than I did, I asked:
-
-“Where did Sir George Keith and the woman sail to in your boat?”
-
-The sailor started back as if I had struck him, and his face grew white
-with fear.
-
-“Damn you!” he cried, raising his club.
-
-I had drawn my sword, and with it I knocked the clumsy weapon from his
-hand. Before he could pick up another I had him by the shoulder, and my
-steel was at his throat.
-
-“Will you answer now?” I asked gently.
-
-“I suppose I must,” he said sullenly.
-
-“Unless you would rather lie here dead,” I responded.
-
-“Well, then, here is all I know,” was his answer, given with no very
-good grace. “It was this way. Some three weeks back my mate and I were
-in our boat at the end of the wharf. The Eagle was the name of the
-craft. We were mending a torn sail, me and my mate, when along comes a
-fine gentleman, Sir George Keith, no less, as we afterward learned. He
-had his sword dangling at his side, and was mincing his steps in the
-mud. He hailed us and wanted to know what we’d hire out the Eagle for?”
-
-“‘How long?’ I says. ‘A year and a day,’ says he, and he looked at me,
-and smiled in a queer sort of a way. By that I knew he was bound on a
-voyage he couldn’t see the end of.
-
-“‘Oh, it’s to buy the boat you want,’ says I, smelling a bargain, and he
-nodded his head. Well, I asked him fifty pounds, and he gave it over
-with never a word. I asked him when he wanted the craft, and he says in
-an hour’s time. So me and my mate took ashore what baggage we had and
-went to the tavern, where we were lately, to drink to the success of our
-bargain. A little while after we seen a sailor with a cock eye come down
-to the wharf, and he begun to load provisions into the Eagle.”
-
-I stopped the progress of the tale.
-
-“Was the sailor one with a scar on the left cheek, and a blur or cock of
-the right eye?” I asked.
-
-“He was that,” answered the former owner of the Eagle.
-
-“My old acquaintance, Simon the sailor, who urged the men to force me to
-surrender Pemaquid,” I whispered to myself. Verily he was becoming my
-evil genius.
-
-“Being curious,” resumed the Eagle’s captain, “me and my mate hid where
-we could watch the boat. At dusk we saw Sir George come down to the
-wharf and he was leading by the hand a woman or maid, close wrapped in a
-gray cloak.”
-
-I could not repress a start.
-
-“Well, what then?” I asked.
-
-“Sir George says, he says, ‘Is all ready, Simon?’ ‘Yes, my lord,’ says
-the cock-eyed sailor, and then he hoisted the jib, while Sir George and
-the lady went down in the cabin.”
-
-“Together?” I asked.
-
-“Surely, and why not?” replied the man. “It was getting dark, and there
-was a chill wind.”
-
-“Well, what then?”
-
-“Why, the wind freshened and the Eagle stood out down the bay. That is
-the last I have seen of her or Sir George either.”
-
-“But her destination, man,” I cried. “Surely you must have heard some
-name mentioned. Some town on the coast to which they were bound.”
-
-The sailor shook his head. Then, as if something had suddenly occurred
-to him, he said:
-
-“I recall now that when Sir George with the maid joined the cock-eyed
-sailor, my lord addressed some words to his man, but all I could catch
-was ‘Elizabeth.’ I took it to be the woman’s name, and paid no heed.
-After the boat had sailed me and my mate talked the whole matter over,
-and we liked its looks so little, we agreed to say nothing to nobody
-about it.”
-
-“Elizabeth, Elizabeth,” I murmured, as the sailor, seeing I had turned
-aside from him, slunk away. “’Tis a woman’s name, sure enough, but I
-have heard it somewhere in the Colonies, too. I have a small notion
-there is a town called that.”
-
-I made a quick pace back to the centre of the town, and by inquiries
-along the wharves learned there was a settlement in New Jersey that went
-by the name of Elizabeth town. It was near to New York, they told me,
-down on the Jersey coast, but somewhat inland.
-
-“That is the place,” I said to myself.
-
-How was I to get there? I wanted no companion, and I could not manage a
-boat alone. Clearly I must make the trip on horseback, and a long
-journey it would be. I felt there was no time to be lost. It was now
-growing dark, and I could not start until morning. I went back to the
-tavern, where I had left Kit, engaged a bed for myself, and then set
-about making ready for my trip. I got a flask of brandy and a good
-blanket. Next I laid out a good part of what little ready money I had on
-a serviceable flint-lock, a horn of powder, a pouch of bullets and some
-spare flints.
-
-The blanket I strapped back of my saddle, and the flask of brandy I put
-in the bags, together with some dry biscuits and a piece of bacon. I ate
-my supper and went to bed. I had a long journey before me. As the crow
-flew it was quite 200 miles, but with the turnings I must make ’twould
-be a good 300. My plan was to ride along the coast all the way, for I
-thought that contrary winds might compel Sir George to lay to, at least
-for a time, and I might come up to him then.
-
-I knew he dared not stand far out from the shore in so small a craft,
-because of storms. Likewise he would be obliged to come in to replenish
-his stock of fresh water, for he could not carry a large supply. So I
-was in hopes I could get some trace of the voyagers by picking my way
-along the coast.
-
-There would be hard riding by day and by night. Cold and hunger,
-doubtless, and wind and rain. Danger of attacks by Indians and wild
-animals. Yet I felt that I could persevere through it all for the sake
-of a sweet revenge. Would love, I wondered, serve to urge me on through
-such a journey as awaited me.
-
-I awoke with the rising of the sun, made a hurried meal, and, leading
-Kit from the stable, vaulted into the saddle. The orb was well above the
-horizon, and the air was clear and cool when I looked back on the town I
-was leaving, thought of its bitter and sweet memories, and bade a glad
-good bye to Massachusetts and her witches.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XIX.
- HOW I FOUND LUCILLE.
-
-
-Weary was my journey. There were rivers to ford, deep forests to
-traverse, and often only Indian paths to make my way along. I passed
-through towns and villages, eating and sleeping wherever I could. Once
-in the night I saw the watch fires of an Indian camp, and I hid deeper
-in the woods. The next morning the red men passed, not a rifle shot from
-me, yet they did not discover my presence.
-
-Day followed day, and night came after night, and still I rode on.
-
-In a small town near the coast one day I heard that the Eagle had tied
-up at the wharf there, about two weeks past. This gave me hope that I
-was on the right path, and I pushed on anxiously. But to all my
-inquiries thereafter I learned nothing further.
-
-Kit began to grow tired those days, for, though I spared her all I
-could, the way was hard. Through the wilderness and along the sea we
-journeyed, Kit and I, searching, ever searching for that which might,
-when found, only bring bitterness to my heart.
-
-My eyes grew tired with the sight of so much land and water, yet I could
-not give up. My body was weary with the long way. My heart was sad; aye,
-sad with love and hate.
-
-I passed over a river called the Hudson, being ferried across it, Kit
-and I. Just below, the ferryman told me, was the village of New York.
-When I was on the west bank of the stream, I could see from the top of
-the bluff that the town was one of goodly size, larger than many
-villages in England.
-
-I left New York behind, and plunged once more into the wilderness. Now,
-I was told, I was but three days’ ride from Elizabeth, as the roads
-went, and how my heart beat as I heard that news.
-
-It had been a raw, blustering day, when, as the sun was beginning to
-sink down in the west, in a gloomy looking watery haze, I turned Kit’s
-head toward the sea that stretched in a vast expanse off to the left. I
-would scan the coast once more, I thought, ere I camped out for the
-night.
-
-I had little hope of sighting the Eagle now, for, by this time, the
-voyagers must be far ahead of me. Yet I felt I should let slip by no
-chance of coming upon them. So it happened, as the day was slowly dying
-I drew rein on top of a little hill, whence I had a good view of the
-ocean.
-
-I gazed out over the broad extent of water. The heaving billows looked
-like small waves from my perch, but the dull boom and roar that filled
-the air told me there was power in the green water that thundered down
-on the sands. Twice I looked along the line of the horizon for the sight
-of a sail, and I saw none. From the shore to the uttermost edge, where
-the plane of waters seemed to come to a sudden stop, I gazed and saw not
-a speck.
-
-Wait, though. What was that out there to the left?
-
-Nothing but a lonely gull, flitting from wave crest to wave crest. I
-watched it in idleness, expecting every moment to see it dart down and
-arise with a fish. But the gull seemed content to float on the waves. It
-rose and fell with the heaving of the waters, becoming larger as it
-approached until I thought verily it must be the king of all gulls.
-
-Then I rubbed my eyes and looked again. A last glint of the setting sun
-fell upon the object. I shaded my eyes and strained my sight.
-
-Of a sudden I saw it was not a gull. It was a boat!
-
-Was it the Eagle?
-
-The wind freshened, and the little craft crept nearer the shore. It
-seemed to make slow progress, and floated sluggishly in the water.
-
-Now I was able to see more clearly. I noted that the sail was ragged and
-torn, also that from the mast head floated a bit of cloth like a piece
-torn from a woman’s dress. A signal of distress!
-
-With anxious, beating heart I waited for the boat to draw nearer. It
-was, perchance, a vain hope, but I could not help thinking the craft
-contained those I sought. And if it should!
-
-I looked to my gun and saw that my sword was loose in the scabbard, for
-I would have two to contend with, Sir George and Simon.
-
-Closer came the boat until I could distinguish three figures aboard, and
-one was a woman, as I could see by her dress. She stood for a moment in
-front of the companionway leading to the cabin, and then she vanished
-down it. The other figures were those of two men. They appeared to be
-much excited about something, moving here and there on the deck, and I
-was at a loss to account for their actions. Now they would be amidships,
-and then suddenly run to the side when they would empty a bucket of
-water overboard.
-
-As soon as I saw that I knew the boat was leaking, and that they were
-baling to keep her afloat. That was why they had headed in shore, for no
-other cause would have made them approach such a dangerous coast.
-
-The craft was now so near that I could plainly see one man baling while
-the other ran to the tiller, which was lashed, and cast off the ropes.
-Then he headed the boat up the coast, searching for a favorable place to
-put in. He saw none, after holding on that course for a time, and so
-came about and sailed down. Long and anxiously did he scan the shore and
-the line of breakers. So occupied was he that he did not seem to see me,
-though I was in bold relief against the western sky.
-
-Twice did the helmsman beat up and down for a quarter of a mile each
-way. But all along was heavy surf, while at some places black and jagged
-rocks just showed their ugly heads above the water that washed over
-them.
-
-The second man had ceased baling now, and came to the aid of the
-steersman, who had evidently decided to make a landing in the best place
-he could. The man who had been at the tiller ran to the bow, leaped on
-the rail, and peered ahead, while his companion kept her prow to the
-waves. I gave one look at the man in the bow. I trembled lest I should
-be mistaken. No, it was he.
-
-There, like a carved figurehead on a ship stood my enemy! Sir George
-Keith! My journey was ended.
-
-I could have shouted in gladness, was I not fearful that the sea might
-snatch him from me ere I had my revenge. For the time I forgot the
-danger that encompassed Lucille. My hate had overwhelmed my love.
-
-I dismounted and led Kit back into some low bushes that grew on top of
-the hill. Then I went forward quickly to watch the progress of the boat.
-
-Sir George was again at the helm. He had made up his mind where to land.
-And it was near time. The little craft was settling low in the water.
-
-On she came, lifting her bow to the waves, and then dipping deep into
-the froth of green liquid that hissed on either side. Nearer and nearer.
-They were almost in now. And then, while I stood there, watching like a
-sentinel guarding the land, I saw that which gripped my heart as if an
-icy hand had grasped it.
-
-Directly in the course of the Eagle, and so close to her now that
-avoidance was impossible, was a pinnacle of rock. I had not seen it
-before, nor had Sir George, for he steered for it as if by card and
-compass.
-
-“’Ware the rock!” I cried, and he heard me.
-
-He looked up, and by the shout he gave, I knew he recognized me. He was
-like one who sees a spirit. He lost his hold of the helm and ran to the
-stern. But the boat did not fall off. Instead she came on like a race
-horse straight for the rock. The waves lifted her high up, water logged
-though she was, until she showed part of her keel. Then, and I closed my
-eyes, the waters dashed the frail vessel down on that point of stone, as
-a man is impaled on a spear. The rock struck right through her bottom.
-
-The crash that followed found echo in my own heart, and the wild shouts
-of Sir George and Simon mingled with the screams of Lucille coming clear
-over the thunder of the surf.
-
-It was no time to stand idle. It was a steep path to the beach, but I
-got down somehow. The boat was still spitted on the rock, but the waters
-were dashing over it, threatening every moment to break it in pieces and
-toss the occupants into the sea.
-
-I had kept hold of my flint-lock, but now I laid it down on the sand, at
-the same time casting off my sword belt. As I discarded my jacket and
-boots, the boat gave a lurch to one side, and I heard Lucille scream. I
-took one look, so I might know in which direction to swim, and I saw the
-sailor Simon as he leaped overboard and struck out for the beach. Then I
-plunged into the surf.
-
-I waded out as far as I had my depth, and I saw Simon’s head bobbing up
-and down. I marked Sir George tearing away at some of the deck boards,
-which had split, and I guessed he was trying to form a raft. Lucille,
-for I saw her face clearly now, was clinging to the mast, her dark hair
-blowing about her face, while the salt spray dashed over her until she
-was drenched.
-
-I had found Lucille, but in what a sorry plight. She was mine no more.
-My enemy had won her. All I might have was revenge on him; a poor
-exchange.
-
-Sir George gave one glance in my direction, and then worked with great
-haste to tear up the planks. Perhaps he feared my vengeance would strike
-him in the waters, though I had other plans. Mayhap he grudged me any
-share in the rescue of Lucille, which both of us were striving for now.
-Noting all this in one brief glance I found the water above my head now,
-so I plunged forward, and was soon swimming amid the breakers.
-
-It was hard work, indeed, to buffet those waves, and to avoid being cast
-against the rocks which abounded. How I did it, and came out scathless,
-I cannot tell. I know I managed to get near enough to the stern of the
-boat to grasp the rudder chains and pull myself aboard.
-
-Slowly, for I was weary, I got over the rail, and found myself on the
-sloping deck, that every now and again was washed by the waves. Before
-the mast Sir George was lashing the planks he had torn up into the form
-of a rude raft.
-
-“Greeting,” I said to him.
-
-He started, as a man might, who hears a voice from the grave.
-
-Then I went a little way farther until I stood before Lucille.
-
-“Edward! Oh, my God! Edward!” she screamed, and then she fell in a
-senseless heap at the foot of the mast.
-
-I sprang toward her, as did Sir George, dropping the planks. We were at
-her side together.
-
-“Curse you!” he cried. “Have you come back from death to take her from
-me again?”
-
-“Even from death,” I said. “Even from death, my lord. I come, not to
-claim her, but to kill you. For she was mine by every right of heaven
-and earth, and you took her from me.”
-
-“I loved her first,” he almost shouted the words. “And she is mine now
-by the rights of man; that of possession. Make the most of that, you
-witch-traitor.”
-
-“You shall answer for your words later,” I said.
-
-So we stood thus, perchance while a man might have counted a score
-slowly. Around us was the waste of waters. Under our feet the quivering
-Eagle, that was like to go to pieces every second. Between us, as pale
-as death, was Lucille, the cause of both of us being there. Perhaps she
-was dead, and our bitter words were spoken in vain.
-
-The seas were calm for a little time while thus we stood, or we must
-have all been washed into the waves.
-
-Then I saw the hand of Sir George steal to his sword. I clapped mine to
-my side only to meet with nothing. He smiled.
-
-A wave lifted the Eagle, and after it had passed the craft settled down
-more deeply in the water. We both started.
-
-“There is no time for you and I to settle our hate and quarrel now,” I
-remarked. “We will need all our strength if we would save her.”
-
-“Yes, yes,” he assented eagerly.
-
-So together we labored, he and I; as deadly enemies as ever two men
-could be, striving in harmony to save the life of a woman, who,
-hitherto, had brought us both little more than hate. And yet we loved
-her, both of us. I, perforce, because I could do no less.
-
-First we placed her where the waves could reach her as little as
-possible, for she was still as one dead. I passed a rope around the
-mast, and fastened one end about Lucille’s waist. And my hands trembled
-strangely as I touched her cold hand.
-
-Quivers of the boat warned us that she would hold together but a brief
-spell now, and we worked with feverish haste, neither speaking a word.
-
-At length the few boards we could tear loose were bound together, and on
-them we must make the attempt to get Lucille to shore.
-
-I paused to look at her, and the love grew in my heart. I gazed up and
-found Sir George at my side. He, too, looked down on her. Then we two
-glanced at each other, and the love in our eyes turned to hate.
-
-“Quick!” I said. “There is no time to wait.”
-
-We had arranged the raft so that one of us could swim ahead and drag it
-by a rope, while the other could swim behind and push. A box lashed to
-the centre made a support for Lucille. We placed her on the planks, her
-shoulders against the box, so that her head would be above the waves.
-Then we made ready for our battle with the sea.
-
-Sir George unbuckled his sword, and lashed it to the raft.
-
-“I will go ahead,” said Sir George haughtily.
-
-“No, I,” was my answer.
-
-“Damn you!” he cried. “You want to steal her from me and leave me here.”
-
-“Nay,” I said gently, “look you. Whatever may be our differences we will
-settle them later, as men should with the sword. Now, however, there is
-work to be done. I know the shore better than do you, having seen it
-from above. Therefore I will take the lead. It will not be for long.
-Perchance I may be swallowed up in the waters. Then our quarrel will be
-ended.”
-
-With that he agreed, though I could see the distrust in his eyes.
-
-Slowly we shoved the raft with its precious burden off into the water,
-avoiding the rock on which the Eagle was impaled. Then fastening the
-rope about my shoulders I struck out for the shore. Sir George leaped in
-after me and swam behind, pushing the frail structure. It was a perilous
-moment.
-
-For a time it seemed that we would never succeed. But we strained with
-every muscle, and, gradually drew near shore. Then we had to beware of
-the dreadful undertow, which was strong at this point. With a few more
-strokes I let down my feet, and felt bottom. Then I waded up the beach,
-and pulled the raft high up out of reach of the waves.
-
-Before I could get to Lucille Sir George was at her side, and with eager
-hands he began to unloosen the ropes that bound her.
-
-“Is she living?” I asked, yet feeling a strange indifference while I
-waited for the answer. What mattered it to me if she did live?
-
-“She breathes,” he said, and I noted a little trembling of the white
-lids that veiled her eyes.
-
-“There are some spirits in my flask in the saddle bags,” I remarked,
-motioning to where I had tethered Kit.
-
-“Will you get the flask?” he asked, “unless, mayhap, you fear to leave
-her alone with me while you go. Though she was long enough with me in
-the Eagle.”
-
-The words were not out of his mouth ere I stood beside him, and my hands
-were at his throat.
-
-“Recall that last,” I said, “or I will give you no chance to stand
-before me with sword in hand. Recall your words, my lord.”
-
-“I do,” he snarled, and he fell to rubbing his neck when I let go. As I
-turned to get the brandy a man came running down the sands. It was
-Simon.
-
-“There is no need for either of us to go,” remarked Sir George. “Simon
-will get the flask if you tell him where it is.”
-
-I directed the sailor where to come upon Kit, and then fell to chafing
-Lucille’s hands, as did Sir George, and this we were at when Simon
-returned, neither of us speaking a word, though deep in our hearts were
-many things that might have found utterance.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XX.
- A WATCH IN THE NIGHT.
-
-
-I was able to get a little of the brandy between Lucille’s lips, and she
-revived somewhat, opening her eyes. She caught sight of Sir George, and
-then she seemed to sleep again. When she awoke a second time and saw me
-standing near her, fright struggled with surprise in her look, so that I
-could not see whether she realized where she was.
-
-She murmured that she was cold. I called to Simon and had him get my
-tinder box from my coat. With the flint and steel I kindled the burnt
-linen to a glow, and soon was blowing to a flame some dry sticks. Then
-Sir George, Simon and I set about gathering driftwood, verily like three
-school boys at a bonfire, until we had a goodly pile on the sand,
-sending out a genial warmth. It was a welcome heat, for we were chilled
-by the water, and Lucille was trembling as one with ague. We carried her
-to the blaze, and I wrapped my dry jacket about her, so that with the
-comfort of the fire, some color returned to her cheeks.
-
-“Where am I?” she asked, passing her hand over her brow.
-
-“With me,” said Sir George, quickly.
-
-“God forbid,” spoke Lucille in an instant, and those few words gave me
-hope.
-
-Sir George motioned to Simon, who ran to the raft, bringing back with
-him his master’s sword. Seeing that the wind lay in that direction, I
-hastened to where I had cast my blade. It was gone, as was my gun. I
-knew then that Simon must have hidden them when he came ashore. Lucille
-was watching us.
-
-She rose from her reclining position, and, seeing Sir George armed, and
-me without a sword, she ran between us.
-
-“Hold!” she cried. “Add not murder to your other crimes, my lord.”
-
-“Murder,” he exclaimed; “it would not be murder to slay in fair combat.
-It is but the execution of justice on a traitor.”
-
-“Traitor?” spoke Lucille, questioningly, while her head was lifted
-proudly in the air, and her voice rang with scorn. “Who is the traitor,
-when he stands face to face with you, my lord, chief of all traitors.
-For you were traitor to a defenseless woman. Captain Amherst is no
-traitor, but a true and honorable gentleman, and--and--I love him!”
-
-Then, being a woman, Lucille’s spirit gave way, and she wept bitterly. I
-turned my head aside, for sometimes a woman’s tears are sorrowful to
-look upon. However, she soon regained her composure.
-
-A sudden silence fell upon us all. When Lucille had said “I love him,” I
-looked at Sir George, and he at me. Now such had been the turn of events
-of late, that I knew not what to think.
-
-Had Lucille planned to sail with her former lover? Was she true to me,
-or a fickle jade, blown this way and that, like many women? These things
-I much desired to hear the truth of. But yet she had said of me, “I love
-him.”
-
-“Madame,” I said, and at the formal word Lucille glanced, half
-frightened at me, “strange events have come to pass between us since
-last we met. You were my promised wife when I sailed against St. Johns.
-I returned to be cast into prison on a foul charge, but not before one
-had met me with the words that you were his wife, and that I had no
-right to your love, nor you to mine.”
-
-“His wife?” began Lucille, and Sir George smiled at the trick he had
-played.
-
-“Oh, of the falsity of that I soon learned,” I went on, “for I met
-Nanette in Boston. But no sooner do I learn you are not wedded to Sir
-George Keith than I hear that you have sailed with him. Perchance you
-have since thought better of your troth to me, and are, even now, his
-wife.”
-
-“His wife? Never!” cried Lucille.
-
-“No,” said Sir George slowly, “not my wife, but----”
-
-I would have leaped at him, unarmed though I was, and though he held his
-sword so that I must have run upon it, had not Lucille grasped my arm.
-
-“Not--not--oh, my God, not his----” I could not finish for Lucille’s
-hand was over my mouth.
-
-The next instant I had my answer. For she placed her arms about my neck,
-and before him, before the man I believed she had cast me aside for, she
-kissed me full on the lips, and spoke my name.
-
-“Edward!”
-
-“Lucille!” I cried. “Lucille!” And the love in my heart surged up as do
-the waters at flood tide. “Then God has given you back to me, after all.
-Speak, love, are you mine, all mine; or has he any claim on you?” and I
-passed my arm about her, and looked at Sir George, as he stood there,
-sword in hand.
-
-“Edward,” said Lucille, and she clung to me as a frightened bird might
-nestle, “most grievous has been my plight, and cruelly has Sir George
-Keith treated a defenseless maid, yet I will do him this justice. Though
-ever did he protest his love in burning words, almost to insult, yet, as
-I stand before you both, he gave me no dishonor. And for this I thank
-him, that I am restored to you, my love, true as when he lured me away.
-So that while he remains not entirely guiltless, the great shame is not
-upon him.”
-
-“I thank you, madame,” spoke Sir George, bowing low, his hand on his
-sword, “most graciously do I thank you,” and his words became bitter,
-while his face grew cold and stern. “My poor love for you, poor in that
-’tis all I have, is but my plea for that which I have done. I pray your
-forgiveness, though, perchance, I do not merit it. I would do again all
-that I have done, aye, a thousand times, if I stood but one chance of
-success, of even winning one loving word from you, madame.
-
-“But you have spurned my love, as is your right, though once it was not
-so.”
-
-Lucille shrank closer to me at that, and the words pierced me with a
-jealous anger. He saw his advantage and went on:
-
-“Once you thought it no great task to smile with me. My words did not
-turn you from me then. That was----”
-
-“Oh, my lord, I pray you to cease,” implored Lucille and Sir George
-became silent.
-
-“Your pardon, madame,” he continued, after a moment’s pause, “enough of
-that, then. But though I have lost your love, I cannot, as I am a
-gentleman and a soldier, let the matter rest there. My enemy shall not
-thus easily steal you from me. I have two quarrels with him now from
-divers causes. Of the one he knows well. Of the other--well, I am ever
-willing to draw swords for a fair face,” and he bowed with mock
-courtesy.
-
-“I would be weak, indeed,” he added, “did I give you up now after what I
-have gone through, and say to him, ‘welcome. Take my love from me. Take
-also your life which, of right, belongs to the King and to me, and go in
-peace!’ Nay, I have blood in my veins, not water.
-
-“Three several times have I stood before you, Sir Francis Dane,” and he
-turned to address me. I marked that Lucille started at the name he gave
-me. “Three times you dared me to draw sword. Each time I held my hand,
-though my blade was ready. But I waited, for even bitter as my hate was,
-I had laid plans that might remove you from my path without need of open
-action on my part. I failed, you best know how and why. But think not
-that you will escape me, for the score is too heavy to forget now.”
-
-Sir George moved toward me, and I thought at first he meant to attack
-me, for I had no sword. I put Lucille behind me, and then he seemed to
-see I had no weapon. Simon said something to his master in a low tone.
-Sir George turned angrily, and, in another instant the sailor was
-running across the sands. Presently he returned, bearing my sword and
-gun, which he handed me without a word of explanation.
-
-“I pray your pardon,” said Sir George, “I saw not that your sword was
-gone. Now that you have it, let us to work to see who shall kill the
-other,” and he laughed such a cold, heartless, mirthless laugh that
-Lucille shuddered.
-
-“Bah,” he went on, “what does it matter, after all. But come, ’tis cold
-standing idle after a bath in the sea, and I would be gone.”
-
-He laughed again, perchance at the notion of going anywhere on the
-watery, sandy waste.
-
-“Ha! Ha! Gone. Yes, I would be away, far away from here, had not the
-Eagle proved such a sorry craft.”
-
-He swung his sword about him in a circle so that the point enscribed a
-little furrow in the sand.
-
-Lucille looked on with horror in her eyes.
-
-“Have no fear, love,” I said. “It will soon be over.”
-
-“But how?” she asked.
-
-“God knows,” I said.
-
-“On guard!” cried Sir George.
-
-But now a difficulty arose. The sun had gone down, though we had not
-observed it, and it rapidly became dusk. So that when we would have
-walked off a little way, out of sight of Lucille, to place ourselves, it
-was too dark for sword play. Sir George remarked it.
-
-“Why, it is night,” he said, “and there is need of light for what we
-have before us. However, to-morrow will be another day. There is little
-likelihood that our quarrel will cool in the darkness.”
-
-“Not on my side, my lord,” I answered, bowing.
-
-“Enough, then. We will wait till sunrise. I will go with Simon to
-another part of the beach. We will meet again in the morning, and may
-the best sword win.”
-
-“Say rather, may the right win,” was my reply, but he only laughed.
-
-“Well, then,” he went on, “good-night, madame, and you also, Sir
-Francis, though ’tis more like to be a bad one for all of us and for
-you, madame. I would we had some small shelter, or some food for you,
-but the poor Eagle’s wings are broken.”
-
-We looked to where the boat had been, but it was gone.
-
-“Stay,” I said, remembering my saddle bags. “There is no need of hunger,
-at least, if Simon will go and bring what is on Kit’s back. We had
-better eat while we have the chance.”
-
-I told the sailor what to fetch, adding some instructions about tying
-the mare more securely.
-
-Presently Simon returned, and we threw more wood on the fire. Then I
-gave Sir George and his man some of the biscuits and bacon, which I had
-purchased at my last stopping place. The meat we roasted before the
-blaze on sharpened sticks, eating it smoking hot. I prepared some for
-Lucille, giving them to her on a clean washed piece of drift-wood, that
-served for a platter.
-
-Surely no stranger band ever gathered about a camp fire on that lonely
-Atlantic coast. Had any one seen us eating together he would have said
-that we were ship-wrecked, but, for all that, merry adventurers, so well
-did the outward semblance conceal the bitter passions within. For there
-was in our hearts love, hate, fear, distrust, anger and envy, yet none
-of us betrayed by so much as a word while we were eating that there was
-aught but friendliness among us. Thus had so little a thing as hunger
-made us forget strong passions for a time.
-
-The fire crackled, the waves beat upon the sands with thunderous noise,
-and we four sat there. How many and how varied were the thoughts in each
-of our minds.
-
-For myself I rejoiced that I had found Lucille again, and found her with
-my love in her heart. Of the duel to take place on the morrow I gave
-little heed. For I had confidence in my sword and arm, though, as it
-afterward proved, I needed all my skill. Then I went back over my
-wanderings and my adventures since I had first ridden to Salem.
-
-Of the others’ thoughts I could but guess. I fancied Sir George was very
-bitter of heart, and that he had great hate for me, though as to the
-rightful cause for it I differed from him. Lucille, rather than the
-death of his brother, was his reason now for wishing to kill me.
-
-When I recall all that happened to us both, knowing of the great passion
-which swayed him, as a blast does a sturdy tree, I can, in some measure,
-put myself in his place and know that he was sorely tempted. For he,
-too, loved Lucille.
-
-And of the thoughts of Lucille. She must have much hidden away in her
-heart, but what cared I so long as she loved me. I looked at her while
-the fire light played its shadows over her features. How thin and worn
-she had become since I saw her last. What must she have gone through. I
-was in impatience to hear from her all that had to do with her voyage on
-the Eagle.
-
-As for Simon he seemed to be eating more than he was thinking.
-
-So we sat thus silent, while the moon came peeping up from beneath the
-sea, silvering the dancing waves. Lucille drew my coat closer about her,
-for it was chilly, and she sighed, mayhap at what had gone before,
-perchance at what was yet to come; for who knows a woman’s thoughts?
-
-It was growing late when I rose from my position by the fire. Sir George
-and Simon followed my example, and I helped Lucille to her feet. She was
-so weak that I put my arm about her waist to support her. Sir George
-turned away as if to view the moon, and I knew it was because it burned
-his heart to see me with her. But I was glad that it was so, for he had
-caused me much suffering, and this was some balm for it.
-
-I picked up my flint-lock, and made as if to move off, Lucille and I up
-the beach. I had noticed an overhanging rock a quarter of a mile off,
-that I thought would serve as some protection from the night dew. Sir
-George, followed by Simon, walked off in the opposite direction. When
-they had gone a little way Sir George halted and retraced his steps.
-
-“A word, Sir Francis,” he called to me.
-
-I left Lucille and went back.
-
-“There will be need of but little ceremony about our affair in the
-morning,” he said coldly. “Yet that no doubt may linger in your mind I
-will say that Simon is oath-bound to me not to raise a hand in the
-matter, no matter how it may go. You need fear no treachery, for he will
-keep his distance. So, if you kill me, Simon, though he is ever ready to
-stand between me and death, will not renew the quarrel. To this I have
-sworn him.
-
-“If you should fall in the combat I will see that you have such burial
-as the place affords. Which courtesy I make bold to ask of you on my
-part. Is it agreed?”
-
-“Yes, my lord,” I replied.
-
-To talk thus of death.
-
-“And that is all, I believe,” said Sir George, turning away. “I will
-meet you here at sunrise. And--and perhaps it would be as well not to
-awaken her. You understand?”
-
-“Perfectly, my lord.”
-
-“Then good-night, Sir Francis.”
-
-“Good-night, my lord.”
-
-We parted, and thus began the vigil of the night.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XXI.
- OF THE VOYAGE OF LUCILLE.
-
-
-Beneath the rock I had selected as our shelter for the night I kindled a
-fire, and the wind, taking the smoke away, made the place comfortable.
-The heat served to dry our garments and warmed our chilled blood.
-Lucille clung to me, trembling with the recollection of all she had
-passed through, and I held her in my arms and bade her be of better
-cheer, for the worst was now past.
-
-“You had a long voyage,” I said, for I did not know how to begin so that
-she might tell me of the cruise of the Eagle.
-
-“And a terrible one,” she answered, with a shudder. “Oh, Edward, my
-love, I thought never to see you again, and I wished myself dead a
-hundred times. There was naught but fear and misery in my heart, but
-now--now--I am so very happy. Yet not altogether happy, Edward.”
-
-“And why?” I asked.
-
-“Because I think of the morrow.”
-
-“So you fear for me, my sweet?”
-
-“Much, Edward, for he is a terrible man.”
-
-“So am I, when I fight for love,” was my reply.
-
-Then there was silence for a time, and she seemed to be thinking of
-something.
-
-“Why did he call you Sir Francis, Edward?” she asked, presently.
-
-“Because, dear, it is my name,” I said.
-
-“Why, I thought----” she began, but I was not ready to tell her all yet.
-
-“To-morrow will do for my story,” I interposed. “The night is short, let
-me hear about yourself.”
-
-“There may be no to-morrow,” whispered Lucille.
-
-“It is as God wills,” I said, simply, and I kissed her.
-
-Then she told me of the voyage with Sir George.
-
-“When I found that you were in Salem gaol, charged with witchcraft,” she
-began, “I recalled how few had come out of there alive, after such an
-accusation. I knew, as you did not, since you had been absent, how
-fierce was the hue and cry after witches, or those poor wretches so
-called. I knew how perilous was the time in Salem town. So I made up my
-mind that I must get you out, as you could not help yourself. I thought
-of the Governor, Sir William Phips, believing that he was my only hope.
-To see him, get a full and free pardon for you, was my only desire.”
-
-I could feel her hand, that I held beneath my coat, press mine. I
-answered the pressure, and drew Lucille near to me. She went on:
-
-“So, knowing there was little time to lose, I made a bargain with Master
-Richard Johnson, who lived on the road back of me, to take me to Boston
-in his big cart, as he was going there that day with some barrels of
-cider. Not even stopping to tell you good bye, so full was I of my
-project, I put on my best gown--’tis a sad sight now, though”--and
-Lucille sighed and looked down at her dress, all wet and torn--“pinned a
-ribbon in my hair, and was off to see His Excellency. We were two days
-on the road, because the cart broke.
-
-“Well, I found him at home, and, after some parley with his servant, who
-said his master was busy with noble lords from London, I was admitted to
-the presence of Sir William.
-
-“I curtsied as best I knew, and looked about, half tempted to run out
-again, for the room was filled with men. Oh, but they stared so at me;
-verily, I thought none of them had scarce before seen a maid in her best
-gown.”
-
-Well I knew why they looked, I thought, for fairer face than Lucille’s
-there was not in Boston, or Salem--aye, in all of London.
-
-“But,” she continued, “I did manage to stammer out what I had come for,
-and when His Excellency had gathered the import of my words, he became
-kindly at once and came near to me, while he left the noble lords, if
-such they were, to talk among themselves. I heard one of them say
-‘Zounds! But would she not make some of our London beauties stare.’ So I
-looked him full in the face, and replied:
-
-“‘There be many others in Salem town, if it please you, sir,’ whereat
-they all laughed, save His Excellency, and he smiled at me. Then,
-Edward, I pleaded for your life.”
-
-“What did you say, sweet?” I asked.
-
-“I begged that I might not be sent away without a pardon,” went on
-Lucille. “And, to show it was deserved, I told Sir William of the deeds
-you had done. How strong you were to cast the great stone, and how they
-said you were a witch because you had done that. Then I reminded him of
-St. Johns and Pemaquid, for I had heard somewhat of what took place
-there. I urged upon him that you were a good soldier, and a true one,
-serving His Gracious Majesty most faithful.
-
-“Then, when I could think of no more to say, I told His Excellency
-that--that I loved you better than any one else in the whole world, and
-that he must pardon you for me,” and Lucille leaned over and hid her
-face on my shoulder.
-
-“All that for me,” I whispered. “I was not worth it.”
-
-“Oh, but you are,” said Lucille, looking up quickly, “or I should never
-have been brave enough to do all I did.”
-
-“What said His Excellency, when you pleaded so well for me?” I asked.
-
-“Why,” continued Lucille, “he smiled, and wanted to know who it was I
-had come to save. ‘Captain Edward Amherst,’ I replied, and then all the
-men in the room, who had been talking about the custom-house, burst into
-shouts of laughter.
-
-“One of them said: ‘Not the traitor Sir George is after, is it, Your
-Excellency?’ ‘The same,’ was the Governor’s answer.
-
-“That angered me, to hear them call you a traitor, though I did not
-realize who Sir George was then,” went on Lucille. “I stamped my foot,
-forgetting that I was in the presence of the Governor, and cried out:
-‘Captain Amherst is no traitor, but a true and honorable gentleman, and
-a brave soldier, which is more than can be said of many.’ The men turned
-aside at that, and Sir William led me to another room.
-
-“There he told me he would grant a pardon from the charge of witchcraft,
-which he did not believe in, but he added that there were graver matters
-hanging over your head. I was so overjoyed at hearing him say he would
-give the pardon that I only heard him murmur something about fearing it
-would be of little service. He called his secretary to bring his quill,
-ink-horn and sand box. When he had them he indited a full and free
-pardon for Captain Amherst, from the charge of witchcraft, sealing it
-with his own hand.
-
-“He bowed me out of the chamber, while all the men stared so again that
-my cheeks were burning. But I was out of the house at last, and so
-anxious to get back to you and have you released from Salem gaol, that I
-could scarce walk fast enough. As I was going down the steps I was
-startled by seeing a man in front of me. I looked up in fright, and
-there was one I least desired to meet--Sir George Keith.”
-
-Lucille glanced at me.
-
-“I should have told you about him before,” she continued, “only I wanted
-to wait----”
-
-“I know,” was my reply; “Nanette told me something of him, and I know
-more, of my own experience.”
-
-“He stood before me,” went on Lucille, “and, when I would have passed by
-him, never giving heed to him, he bowed, and said if I would deign to
-hear him he would deliver a message from you. I did not know that he was
-your enemy, as well as mine, or I would not have listened to him. But I
-was so anxious to do all I could for you that I never stopped to think
-that Sir George Keith would scarce do his rival a courtesy. So I bade
-him say on quickly, and told him I never would listen to him on my
-account.
-
-“Then he told me you had broken gaol early that morning, and were hiding
-in the woods to avoid capture. He said you had besought him, as a
-comrade in arms, to get him aid, and particularly to send word to me, so
-I might come to you.
-
-“‘There is no cause for Captain Amherst to hide,’ I said, ‘for I have a
-pardon for him. He need fear no gaol.’ Sir George said it was not the
-witchcraft that was hanging over you now, but a charge of treason. That
-made me greatly frightened, and I suppose he saw it and knew he could
-tell me any lie and have it believed. He said, if I would consent to let
-him guide me to you, he could provide a way of escape for us both.
-
-“I was afraid of him, but he spoke so gently, and was so courteous,
-never even referring to the hateful past, that I consented. Oh, how
-little I knew what was before me,” and Lucille shivered, not alone from
-the night wind. I knew now why Sir George had left the court room so
-suddenly the day of my trial. It was to get trace of Lucille.
-
-“He said,” she continued, after a pause, “that it would not be safe for
-us to go directly to your hiding place, as we might be followed. There
-was a small boat, down at the wharf, he added, sailed by an honest man,
-and, if I would but trust myself in it, we could move along the shore
-until we had picked you up. Such, Sir George said, was the plan you had
-devised.
-
-“Though I wavered a bit, being friendless and alone in Boston town, in
-the end I yielded, and suffered him to lead the way to the boat. It was
-the Eagle, and Simon was the whole crew. When Sir George came to the end
-of the wharf with me, he said to Simon:
-
-“‘This is the lady you are to take to her lover.’
-
-“‘Aye, aye, sir,’ answered Simon, and he touched his hat, and held the
-steps steady for me to descend. Ah me, it was many a day ere I went up
-those same steps again.
-
-“At a signal from Sir George Simon cast off, and we were sailing
-smoothly down the bay, while I was all impatience until I should see
-you, as my heart misgave me. And I longed to show you the pardon I had,
-that you might know why I had not remained near you in Salem. See, here
-it is now.”
-
-Lucille took from her bosom a paper, all crumpled and stained and wet
-from the sea water. By the dim light of the fire I saw that it was the
-pardon she had obtained. I kissed it, for it was my first love letter
-from Lucille, verily a strange one. I would have kept it, but she said
-she would hold it until we reached some safe place, as it might yet be
-needed.
-
-“We sailed on,” related Lucille, “until it grew dark, and then, in
-fright, I called from the cabin to know when we would land and find you.
-‘Presently,’ answered Sir George, and I waited, with small patience.
-Simon lighted a lantern, so that its beams fell upon Sir George, as he
-stood at the helm. ‘Is it not true, my lord?’ I called to him.
-‘Presently,’ he said again, and he smiled. In that smile I saw the trick
-he had played.
-
-“I stood before him then, and, though I feared him, I demanded that he
-instantly set me ashore. At that he only smiled once more, and called to
-Simon to make sail.
-
-“‘Put me ashore, my lord, as you are a gentleman and a soldier,’ I
-pleaded. ‘I had rather be alone in the woods than here with you.’ ‘You
-shall go ashore in good season,’ he said. I begged and pleaded with him,
-until his smiles became frowns. Seeing that it was useless to beg him to
-release me, I cried out that I would throw myself into the sea. I ran to
-the rail, but Simon sprang after me and dragged me back. Sir George gave
-the tiller over to him, and, standing before me, said:
-
-“‘Lucille, I pray you to forgive me for what I have done, but I cannot
-let you go, now that I have found you again. Captain Amherst has not
-escaped; he does not wait for you, hiding in the woods. Ere this ’tis
-likely that he is no longer alive. But I am alive, I am here, and,
-Lucille, I love you. I have waited and searched for you many years,’ he
-went on, ‘and now I will not let you go. As there is a God above us I
-mean you no wrong. But I love you, oh, how I love you!’”
-
-I must have shown the feeling in my heart as Lucille repeated the words
-of Sir George.
-
-“Heed not his words, Edward,” she said; “they were only words to me. He
-said we would sail far away from New England, to the New Jersey Colony,
-where he had friends. ‘There,’ he said, ‘you will have learned to care
-for me. And, if you do not, we will go down into the depths of the sea
-together, for, if I cannot have you in life I will have you in death.’
-
-“Oh, how I was frightened, my love, but I thought of you, and how brave
-you were, and that gave me courage. I told Sir George I would never love
-him, in life nor death, and I said I would not even die with him, so
-much did I hate him. I said I would appeal for help to the first person
-I met when I reached shore. Whereat he laughed and said it would be many
-days ere we touched land. Then he begged me to enter the cabin, which
-had been fitted up with some degree of comfort, saying that he would not
-intrude himself upon me. More to escape him than because I was weary, I
-went down, and bolted the door.”
-
-Then Lucille told me of the long voyage that followed. Sir George was
-like a madman with one idea in his head. He never sailed near shore,
-save when supplies were needed, and then Simon rowed to the beach in a
-small boat. The two men were most gentle to her, and once, when Simon
-had grumbled at taking the meals to her in the cabin, Sir George felled
-him to the deck with a blow. After that the sailor had little to say.
-Sir George and his man steered the craft by turns, and the master
-stopped at no task, however mean, performing all, as did the man. To
-such will love or its counterfeit go.
-
-On they sailed, and never once did Lucille, by any chance, get near
-enough a passing vessel, or within distance of shore, so as to make a
-cry heard.
-
-When it was necessary to approach a town harbor to anchor from a storm,
-she was locked in the cabin. Thus she spent one month, longing night and
-day to be free, until the roses faded from her cheeks, and the love
-light from her eyes. Ever did Sir George protest his affection for her,
-begging that she would but give him a little hope. But never, even by a
-turn of the head, did she admit that she heard him, for, after the first
-few days when she demanded that he set her free, she held her peace and
-spoke no words to him.
-
-This was the tale Lucille related to me, as we sat under the ledge of
-rock by the waters I had saved her from. And, as the story grew, I
-longed for the morrow, that I might fight for her honor and my own. I
-put some driftwood on the fire, and it blazed up.
-
-Of the storm, which blew the craft out to sea until the voyagers thought
-it would never return, Lucille told. Then provisions ran low, and for
-three days Sir George had nothing but a small crust of bread, and Simon
-had as little, because they put all aside for her. And this she never
-knew till after they had reached the vicinity of a town again, when by
-the ravenous hunger of Sir George and his man, she saw they had been
-near death.
-
-It seemed strange to me that this man could endure so much for love,
-could battle so to win it, and yet could not master himself. Of a truth,
-he was one who might have been great, had not his life been turned in
-the wrong direction.
-
-The last storm which blew had started the seams of the Eagle, and this
-had compelled Sir George to put in shore sooner than he intended, for he
-was near to his journey’s end.
-
-The remainder of the tale I knew, having seen the sinking of the Eagle.
-
-“And now tell me of yourself, Edward,” commanded Lucille. “Tell me how
-you escaped from Salem gaol, and how you happened to be here, so far
-away, just as I was about to give myself up for lost. You must have had
-a wearisome search for me.”
-
-“I forget the weariness of it, now,” I whispered, “for I have found
-you,” and I held her close to me.
-
-“Mayhap, only to lose me again,” replied she, with a touch of sadness in
-her voice.
-
-“Not if there is still strength in my arm or temper in my sword,” I
-answered, cheerfully, for I am not one easily downcast, when I have a
-fight before me.
-
-“Oh, the terrible morrow, I wish it would never come,” Lucille
-whispered.
-
-“Have no fear,” I assured her. Then I told her of myself. How I with
-others had broken from Salem gaol after I had been near to death in the
-great press. I told of my journey, though I did not relate all my
-feelings when I knew she had sailed with Sir George, as I thought.
-
-The night wore on. Our fire grew dim, and I bade Lucille sleep, for I
-did not want her to be awake when I must go out to meet my enemy. But
-she said she could not slumber, and thus we sat in each other’s arms
-until a greater blackness gave warning that the dawn was at hand.
-
-It was cold and gray and still, save for the noise of the waves. Then
-the grayness became lighter in color.
-
-The stars that had been bright grew dim. Slowly the morning light came,
-a pale rosy flush in the eastern sky. Then the edge of the sun peeped up
-from beneath the waves.
-
-I looked at Lucille. She was fast asleep on my arm. I placed her gently
-against the rock, my coat for a pillow. It was time to go now. I
-wondered if I would return, or would it be Sir George, who would be
-there when she awoke.
-
-I leaned over and kissed her lightly on the half parted lips. Once,
-twice, three times.
-
-She stirred, and murmured my name.
-
-“Good bye, Lucille,” I whispered. “Good bye, my dear love, good bye.”
-
-Then I went out to meet my foe.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XXII.
- A DUEL ON THE SANDS.
-
-
-My legs and arms were stiff from long sitting, and with the cold. When I
-was out on the sands, away from Lucille, I ran up and down the beach to
-start my blood. I beat my arms about my body to limber them, and rubbed
-my hands and wrists. Then when I was glowing from the exercise, I dashed
-the sea water over my face and neck until I tingled all over. On I
-hurried now to the place of meeting. I could see Sir George walking
-slowly along the beach, and I marked that Simon was left behind, near to
-where they had kindled their watch-fire the night before. As I went
-along I looked out on the sea, which had turned to a rosy golden color
-under the rays of the sun. The waves glistened and sparkled before they
-broke in foam and bubbles on the shelving beach, hissing as they rushed
-up the incline, and then, chasing each other back into the ocean again,
-they dragged with them bits of sea weed, little stones and tiny pieces
-of tinted shells. I walked just on the edge of the wet sand, for it was
-easier going there, being firm from the beating of the waves, and I saw
-that Sir George coming toward me did likewise.
-
-Now I had fought many duels, but never such a deliberately planned one
-as this was. Usually it was when my blood and that of my companion was
-hot. It was a blow, a curse, a rush to a secluded spot where we could
-indulge in a bit of sword play and not be interrupted, and in a little
-while a body with a sword thrust, lying on the sward. The slayer being
-hurried off to a wine house with his friends. At most times, too, there
-had been seconds, and a few onlookers, though, when occasion forbade
-them, we made shift to do without.
-
-There was the time I had met de Gloise, back of the chapel that stands
-on the left of the road, as you leave the northern road from Paris. We
-had no attendants then, but were able to accomplish some pretty sword
-strokes. He gave me a thrust in the shoulder, while, by some chance, my
-weapon went into his throat, and he never sang any more of those funny
-French songs.
-
-And there was Gandes, who was accounted an excellent blade. He and I had
-it out, early one morning. ’Twas about whether he or I could drink the
-most red wine, if I recall the cause of the quarrel, for I was rather
-wild those days.
-
-Neither of us was sober enough to do more than a slouchy bit of work
-with the weapons, for we had spent the night together at the Owl and
-Peacock, before we quarreled, as to which was the wiser bird of the
-twain painted above the inn door. We went out into the yard, where only
-the stable boys were rubbing their sleepy eyes, and crossed swords. Poor
-Gandes. I thrust him through the body, though, sober, I would not have
-harmed him so much, as he was my best friend. He gave me a hasty cut in
-the side which made me stiff for many a day.
-
-Then there was the time when I trod on a stranger’s toes, in Munich, he
-being, at the time, about to call on a lady. He called me a clumsy lout,
-and I replied with hot words. So we had it out there in the moonlight,
-behind a church. He was a most delightful man with a sword, and it was a
-real honor to engage him, for he had several passes that quite puzzled
-me for a time. But I managed to reach under his guard, and give him a
-wound in the arm pit, which must have prevented him from holding a blade
-for some time. On his side, he came near to catching me unawares, and,
-the result was a lunge, that, had it been six inches lower, must have
-ended my fighting days. As it was, I bear the scar on my left cheek yet.
-
-Thus I mused as I walked along to meet Sir George. I knew this would be
-no boys’ affair, and I resolved to attempt none of those niceties of the
-fence, of which I am capable. For I was not in the mind to take chances
-on my life now, since it had become precious to me from yester eve, when
-I found my love again. I would let slip no chance, though, to kill my
-foe, as only his death could wipe out the insult to Lucille.
-
-We had now come so near that we could greet each other. I saluted with
-my sword, and Sir George returned the compliment gravely. The next
-instant we were both looking over the ground, whereon we were to engage.
-
-The place we had selected the night before, was on a sort of sandy
-knoll, and the height of it above the surrounding beach prevented the
-waves from washing up on it, save when the tide was full. The ground
-there seemed to be dry and rather shifting, offering no secure
-foot-hold.
-
-“It is a little better in this direction,” said Sir George, indicating a
-shallow hollow place in the sand behind him.
-
-I agreed with him, for there the waters of the tides had washed up on
-the sand, packing it firmly down.
-
-This place, however, lay a little farther toward the sea, and made it
-necessary for us, if we would fight there, to stand, at times, with our
-ankles in the wet. It seemed to be the nearest place that suited, and
-was, in truth, a choice spot for a bit of sword play.
-
-We threw off our upper garments. Our weapons were out of the scabbards
-as one, and we advanced until we stood facing each other. Sir George
-turned his gaze for an instant toward the rising sun on his left. Then
-he looked me in the eyes.
-
-“Guard,” he said, quickly.
-
-“On guard,” said I.
-
-Our swords crossed a second later, and the battle between us was on.
-
-For the first time I noticed how pale Sir George was. There were dark
-rings under his eyes, and his face bore marks of his passion and his
-recent sufferings, physical and mental. But it was no time for such
-observations as these. His steel clicked viciously on mine, and I knew,
-by the pressure and the way he lunged, that he was trying to make short
-work of it.
-
-The clash of our blades, both good ones, mingled with the roar of the
-surf. It was thrust and parry, parry and thrust, the keen pointed
-weapons gliding along their lengths like serpents. We circled about one
-another, each watching, with jealous eyes, for a false move, a misstep.
-Three times did he thrust at my heart, thinking to catch me off guard,
-but, each time, my blade was there before his, and the sword slipped off
-with a hiss as of hot iron.
-
-I tried many a stroke and thrust that I had found of service heretofore,
-but ever did I find his wrist ready, and he turned aside my point once
-when I could have sworn that I would have ended it. He laughed at me.
-
-He thrust at my throat, and, when I would have parried it, he shifted
-his point, on a sudden, toward my heart. It was an old trick, and I knew
-how to meet it. When I had turned his blade away by a simple shift of my
-weapon, I laughed back at him, and responded with so quick a lunge that
-I pricked him in the shoulder, thus getting the honor of first blood.
-And I laughed again, as he frowned.
-
-But mortal arms and wrists could not stand the strain much longer, and
-we were both panting, while the sweat stood in beads on our brows.
-Through it all our eyes never for an instant left each other’s gaze.
-
-Again and again I thrust, until I had his wrist weary turning them
-aside. Ever I sought to reach one spot, not that I hoped to wound him
-there, but I had a trick I wished to work. His lips opened, that he
-might breathe more freely, and I saw his chin quiver, while a drop of
-sweat, that had come out on his forehead, rolled down on his cheek. I
-knew the tide was on the point of turning now, and the struggle that had
-been an even one, was a jot in my favor. I had forced him to the
-defensive.
-
-He saw the gleam of triumph in my eye, and, as if to assure me and
-himself that he was as fresh as ever, he smiled and tossed back his
-head.
-
-We had circled about each other so often, neither giving a step, that
-there was a little ridge of sand made by our feet, enclosing a spot that
-bore no mark. Slowly, so slowly that to an onlooker it could not have
-been said when it happened, Sir George began to step back. It was but a
-slight shifting of the feet, a settling of the body on the right leg
-that did it, until, when another minute or two had passed he was without
-the ring, and I stood in the centre.
-
-The one sweat drop had been followed by others, and he was breathing
-with an effort. His face became paler, nor was his sword as quick to
-respond to the parry. I pressed him hard, with the result that I touched
-him in the arm twice. I felt, rather than saw, that I had him now at an
-advantage.
-
-Ha! Another inch and I would have ended it then. But I had not given him
-credit for the knowledge of that trick. He met my lunge, and turned it
-off to such account that he nipped me in the neck; only a slight wound,
-however. The sight of my blood seemed to enrage him, for he came at me
-fiercely, and I was forced for a moment to adopt a defense.
-
-Then, slowly but surely, I made him give ground again. I could see the
-fear and dread come into his eyes, as I had seen it in other eyes
-before.
-
-“How long is it to last?” he muttered, foolishly using his breath in
-words. Yet, in his agony, and it was agony when he saw death in front of
-him, he smiled. And it seemed like the same smile I had seen, when he
-stood urging on the men, as I was beneath the great press.
-
-I did not answer, but pushed my sword point more and more near to his
-heart. Twice I tried to reach over his guard, but each time he had been
-too quick for me, and my thrusts went high in the air. As I recovered my
-balance a curious thing happened.
-
-A wave, bigger than any that had come before, broke upon the beach and
-rushed toward us in a mass of foam and water. In an instant we were
-lunging at one another knee deep in the sea. As the water flowed down
-the incline again it swept the sand from beneath our feet, and we had
-hard work to stand upright. But even that did not stop him from making a
-fierce thrust at my throat so that I had to be on the alert to force his
-point away.
-
-The next instant came a woman’s scream. We both turned, forgetting for
-the time that our very lives depended on the watch we kept of the other.
-
-Lucille was on the beach, running toward us!
-
-My heart gave a throb, and I half turned myself about. The next moment I
-realized my folly, and was facing my enemy again. But that one moment
-was almost too long.
-
-I had without thinking lowered the point of my weapon and given Sir
-George the very opening he wanted.
-
-Like a snake his steel slipped half its length over mine, and the point
-was toward my heart. For the life of me I could not help the gasp that
-my breath gave. In my desperation I tried a parry that de Sceaul had
-once taught me. I dared not hope it would be effective, for I was too
-late with it.
-
-His sword drew sparks from mine as it rasped along the length; the point
-was before my eyes.
-
-With a last fearful lunge toward him I managed to force his weapon up,
-with my own pointing heavenward, and only just in time, for the point
-tore a furrow through the skin of my forehead.
-
-And then there was a sudden snap, and a sound of ringing steel. I saw in
-the hand of Sir George only the hilt of his sword. In his eyes was a
-look of wonder, and his head was thrown back, in the effort to see what
-had become of his blade.
-
-Next, ere either of us had time to move, the broken sword, whole from
-the point to where it joined the hilt, and which had been tossed high in
-the air by the force of my upward parry, and the spring of the broken
-steel, came down like an Indian arrow, point first.
-
-And it struck him in the throat, just where there is the hollow,
-scooped-out place, in the breast bone. It went in nigh a foot, and stuck
-up, a fearful thing to behold, while, for half the length that protruded
-the spurting blood dyed it red.
-
-Sir George stood for an instant without a movement. Then he began
-swaying and struggling not to fall, as does a tree, part cut through. He
-tried to speak, through the blood that rushed to his lips. Then he
-staggered, and came down on his knees.
-
-He was close to death, and, strange chance, not so much by my hand as by
-his own. For a second I stood and looked at him, while he endeavored to
-regain his feet, but he only pitched forward, and lay prone upon the
-sand, crimson with his blood.
-
-At the same moment a wave came up, covering him from sight, and nearly
-washing me from where I was. Lucille, with a cry of horror at what she
-had seen, ran toward us. As the water receded it undermined the sand
-where I stood, so that I was hard put to retain my place. Then I saw
-that Sir George was like to be carried out to sea. He dug his hands
-frantically into the yielding beach, but his nails only tore deep
-furrows in the earth. His eyes sought mine.
-
-I would not let a dog thus die. So I leaped out after him, catching him
-about the waist, and, after a struggle against the action of the
-undertow, that seemed bound to get us both, I managed to half drag, half
-carry him up the slope, out of reach of the water.
-
-Then, as I stooped over, and drew the sword blade from his throat, to
-have a rush of blood follow, I looked up, and there stood Lucille.
-
-“Are you wounded, Edward?” she asked, her voice trembling.
-
-“Only a scratch,” I replied.
-
-“And--and--Sir George?” she faltered.
-
-“’Tis a grievous hurt,” I said, and with that Sir George, whose eyes had
-been closed, since I carried him out of the water, opened them.
-
-“You have won,” he said, quietly, and he turned so that he might not
-look at either Lucille or me.
-
-“Oh, Edward, Edward,” sobbed Lucille. Then I led her away.
-
-Simon, who had been absent all this time, came racing up the sandy
-stretch now. He cast himself down beside the body of his master,
-caressing him, and kissing his cold face.
-
-“Water,” gasped Sir George.
-
-Before Simon could rise I ran to the spring near the rock and hurried
-back with my cap full of the liquid. As I neared the place where the
-dying man lay, I saw something white, like a piece of parchment, in
-Simon’s hand, and the sailor hurriedly thrust it into his pocket.
-
-Sir George drank eagerly, and Simon and I bathed his face.
-
-The sun was fully up now, flooding us all in the golden light. The tide
-came farther on the sands, the gulls flitted out over the waves, and, in
-the woods back of us the birds were singing. It hardly seemed as if a
-few minutes ago that two men were battling there for each other’s lives,
-and that now one was dying.
-
-I walked slowly away, as I thought Sir George might not like me near him
-in his last moments. But he raised his hand, and beckoned to me to
-approach. When I had leaned over him, for he could only whisper, I heard
-him say, between his gasps:
-
-“Well--I have lost--but the stake--the stake was worth playing for. Had
-I my life to live over again, the chance to--to once more live and
-love--and--fight, I would not change one jot. I had deep laid plans, yet
-they failed. You were in my path, and, when I thought I had made an end
-for you--you came back to torment me, to rob me of my love.”
-
-“Not to rob you,” I protested. “It was a fair fight, and she had a right
-to choose. ’Twas you who sought to rob me.”
-
-“Well, it is all over now,” he rejoined. “We have been good foes, and
-you were a brave man. I honor you for it.”
-
-“Nay, as for the honor of the sword, ’tis yours as much as mine,” I
-said. “Better blade have I never met, and I have crossed with many.”
-
-He smiled, a little smile of contempt. A man who is done with this world
-can afford to laugh at the power of steel.
-
-“Let it pass,” he continued, speaking with greater ease now that he was
-near the end. “Let it pass. And now seeing that I have not much longer
-in the land, truly a most pleasant land, in spite of all that is said
-against it, dare I make bold to ask a favor?”
-
-“I will serve you, if I may,” I answered.
-
-“Oh, it is only a small matter,” he rejoined. “’Tis this. When I am
-laid--laid away, let Simon accompany you to Elizabeth town. He has a
-mission for me there that I will not be able to accomplish.
-
-“Oh, my God!” he exclaimed suddenly, and his face told of the suffering
-he felt.
-
-I started to raise him up, that he might rest more easily.
-
-“It is nothing,” he said. “Dying is a little harder than I thought,” and
-he actually smiled at me.
-
-“Might I speak to--to her?” he asked, as a child would plead.
-
-I started after Lucille, and found her weeping behind the knoll where we
-had appointed to fight.
-
-“Come,” was all I said.
-
-She followed me without a word, and, when we neared the place where Sir
-George was dying, I would have hung back, letting her go to him alone.
-
-However, he motioned me to approach with her, and so it was that we
-stood, Lucille and Simon and I, at his side.
-
-“Madame,” he said, “will you forgive me for all I have done? For the
-trick I played on you?”
-
-“Yes, my lord,” answered Lucille. “Though it was a grievous wrong, yet,
-since you are near to death I do forgive you, freely and fully.”
-
-“I thank you,” he said, simply.
-
-“And you, sir?” looking at me.
-
-“I, too, can afford to forgive and forget,” I replied, as I took
-Lucille’s hand.
-
-“It is enough,” were his next words. Then a tremor seemed to pass over
-him. I turned Lucille away that she might not see the end.
-
-“Good bye--Lucille,” whispered, rather than spoke, Sir George.
-
-“Good bye, my lord,” came falteringly from Lucille’s lips, and she burst
-into tears, with her head on my shoulder. I led her away.
-
-When I turned to look at him I saw that the end was come. He had turned
-over on his face, and his head was resting on his folded arms, while a
-choking sob shook his body. He was weeping in death, this man who had
-dared so much for love, and lost.
-
-Simon, who had knelt down by his master, leaned over him. He appeared to
-be listening. Then he arose, raised his hands to heaven and gave a great
-cry.
-
-Thus died Sir George Keith, a brave man, a bold man, and--well, he is
-dead. May he rest in peace.
-
-And we covered him up with the sand, Simon and I; with the sand whereon
-he had fought his last fight.
-
-I was anxious, now, to be away from the place, and to get Lucille to
-some shelter. We lighted a fire, and roasted some of the bacon, making a
-scanty meal, and, ere the sun was mid-day high, we were ready to start.
-
-“Come,” I said, cheerfully, “our path lies before us, and if we hasten
-we may reach Elizabeth town by night.”
-
-“Any place away from this,” sighed Lucille. “I shall have unpleasant
-memories of it for many a day.”
-
-We managed to scramble to the top of the cliff, and found the place
-where Kit was tethered. The mare was most glad to see me, and whinnied
-with delight, as I rubbed her nose. My saddle made a poor shift for
-Lucille, but I padded it with my coat, making the best seat I could.
-Then, with a last look at the beach, whereon so much had passed, I
-called to Kit, Simon and I stepped out, and we laid our course to the
-southwest.
-
-The way was rough and soon we had left the wood and were traveling over
-a marsh that required us to be careful where we stepped. Our progress
-was slow, but I hoped, if we could not reach Elizabeth, that we could
-get to a farm house, where we might spend the night. Simon walked on
-ahead, while I kept at Lucille’s side. We found much to talk of, for
-love furnishes many topics.
-
-The sun went lower in the west, yet we had not come upon sight of a
-dwelling. It was lonesome and dreary enough, and Lucille looked at me
-once or twice, with fear in her eyes.
-
-“We will soon be there,” I said, though I did not believe so, for I
-feared we had mistaken the road.
-
-As it grew dusk we came to the edge of the marsh and entered the woods
-again. Still there was no sign of house or hut. I gave up then,
-convinced that we were off the trail, and must spend another night in
-the open. It was not a pleasant prospect, but there was no help for it.
-
-There was a sound in the underbrush, and a trapper came out. I was right
-glad to see him. After a little conversation I asked him the way to
-Elizabeth town, and he told me that we had come past it, that it was
-nearly a day’s journey to the northwest. I had circled around it in my
-wandering, and Sir George had sailed past it. Truly it was strange that
-we should have ever met.
-
-“Well,” I said as happily as I could, when the trapper had crashed away,
-“we must do the best we can. It is only one day lost.”
-
-I found a place where four trees grew together almost in the form of a
-square. Simon and I cut down cedar boughs, and made a rude roof between
-the trunks. Then we enclosed the sides, spread more branches and leaves
-on the ground, and had a forest bower, full of many cracks and chinks,
-but some shelter from the wind and dew.
-
-Simon lighted a fire with my tinder box, and we cooked almost our last
-piece of bacon. We finished the meal in silence. I wrapped Lucille in my
-coat when she went inside the shelter we had made. She called a
-good-night to both of us.
-
-Then Simon and I sat down beside the glowing embers for another night
-watch. We did not speak. The woods were deeply quiet, save for the hoot
-of an owl or the howl of a wolf.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XXIII.
- SHADOWS IN THE NIGHT.
-
-
-The hours grew as we sat by the fire, and, presently, I noticed that
-Simon’s head was fallen forward, and he slept. I had hard work to fight
-off the slumber, as I had not closed my eyes for two nights, and was
-weary with my journey. I knew I dared not sleep, for, though I did not
-fear Simon, nor hardly an attack from the wolves, while the fire burned,
-yet there was a feeling of vague uneasiness with me, a dread that some
-nameless thing was abroad in the forest, and I could not shake it off.
-
-Simon stirred uneasily, and then I heard a faint, far-off sound, as of
-some one walking cautiously through the underbrush. Could it be Indians?
-Our fire was not brilliant now, but, fearful that even its faint glow
-would betray us, I scooped up a handful of earth, and dashed it on the
-embers, extinguishing them.
-
-Nearer and nearer came the sound until it was almost upon us. I reached
-over and touched Simon, who awoke with a start. Then he heard the sound
-and looked about in alarm. I took up my flint-lock and gave Simon one of
-the two pistols I had, at the same time motioning him to make no noise.
-
-“Indians,” he whispered, and I nodded.
-
-The next moment we saw through an opening between the trees not fifty
-feet away dim shadows in the night; a line of figures which we made out
-to be the red men of the woods. One behind the other they marched,
-silent, almost, as spirits, save for a little rustle of the leaves as
-they brushed by them.
-
-Each warrior had a gun, and they wore their war feathers. I counted six
-score ere the last one passed and I knew there would be no peace in the
-land for a time.
-
-It was the beginning of the Indian uprising of which I had heard when
-near New York, and, with that savage band abroad our lives were scarce
-worth a flint.
-
-Simon and I cowered in silence until we saw no more shadows, and then we
-breathed, it seemed for the first time since the Indians had come into
-view. The sailor spoke no word, but he handed the pistol back to me,
-like a man who was glad he had had no use for it.
-
-With the savages on the war path it was little chance that Elizabeth
-would escape an attack.
-
-Should we then push on there? I tried to think of a better plan, but
-there seemed none. We would be as much exposed to attack in retracing
-our steps, as in going on. If we could reach the town the block house
-might afford us protection until help came. Once in Elizabeth, too,
-Simon and I could aid the settlers in defending the place from the
-Indian attack. There was nothing to do but go on as soon as it was
-light.
-
-That it might be a race for life toward the end, seemed certain, as we
-could not travel without leaving a trail that even an Indian boy might
-follow.
-
-I waited impatiently for the daylight, and it came so slowly that I was
-minded to wake Lucille, and start ere the dawn. But I feared to get on
-the wrong path, and so I waited, counting the minutes until the first
-flush in the east.
-
-No sooner had it tinged the sky than I roused Simon, who had fallen
-asleep again, and bade him get Kit in readiness. I entered the bower and
-kissed Lucille, whereat she awoke with a start.
-
-“Are we home, Edward?” she asked.
-
-“Almost,” I said, cheerfully.
-
-I dared light no fire, for fear of the tale the smoke would tell, so we
-ate the remainder of our bacon cold, with the dry biscuit, washing the
-poor meal down with water from a near-by brook. Then observing all the
-caution we could we took up our journey again.
-
-There seemed to be a better path now, though it was far from easy
-traveling. When we had occasion to speak it was in whispers. I watched
-with jealous eyes every bush and tree, starting at each sound, while
-Lucille on Kit’s back was pale with fear.
-
-The morning had turned to noon. Our only meal was water, drunk from oak
-leaves, that I fashioned to form a cup. The spirits I saved, for there
-was no telling when I could get more. Most anxiously did we strain our
-eyes for the sight of a house. Yet we went fully two miles after our
-halt at noon, ere we found one. It was Simon who first saw it. He
-pointed between the trees and said:
-
-“Look.”
-
-“What is it?” asked Lucille.
-
-“A place where some one lives, I hope,” was my reply. We increased our
-pace. As we came nearer the house I thought that it was strangely still
-and quiet about the spot. Kit, too, pricked up her ears, and sniffed as
-if she did not like the air. It was a time to be cautious and so I led
-the mare with Lucille behind a clump of trees. Bidding Simon take one of
-the pistols, and stay there on guard, I went forward. I looked on every
-side of me.
-
-Though it was a farm house there seemed to be no evidence of life. There
-were no cows in the meadow that stretched out in back, and not even a
-dog ran out to bark. The chickens and ducks appeared to have flown away.
-I saw that the barn door was open.
-
-It was a strange house with no one on guard at such a time. I proceeded
-more slowly until I reached the kitchen door, which was unlatched. A
-woman’s dress on the floor caught my eye. Thinking now that all was
-right, and that I would find the family within I crossed the threshold,
-giving a knock to announce my coming.
-
-Then such a sight of horror as met my gaze!
-
-On the floor were the dead bodies of a man, a woman and two little
-girls. Their heads were away from me, but when my eyes had become
-accustomed to the dimness of the room, I saw that each one had been
-scalped. It needed no writing on the wall to tell that Indians had been
-there, and recently. With fear-blanched face I ran back to where I had
-left Lucille and Simon. The latter saw the cause of my return in my
-manner, but Lucille asked:
-
-“Were the people there, Edward?”
-
-“No,” I said, “they had gone out.”
-
-I knew now that our only hope lay in pushing on with all speed, and
-without stopping to explain further I led Kit out into the road, which
-was fairly good.
-
-“We must hasten, Simon,” I said, and under my breath I told him what I
-had seen.
-
-Kit trotted off, and Simon and I had to run to keep up with her. Lucille
-inquired, with fright showing in her eyes, why we had so suddenly left
-the vicinity of the farm. I told her I had learned at the house that by
-hastening on we could reach Elizabeth ere dark, and I was anxious to do
-so.
-
-Already it was getting dusk. We passed by farm houses at short distances
-apart now, so I knew the town must be near. There was no sign of life in
-any of the dwellings, however, and in fancy I saw within them such a
-scene as I had first come upon. At other places there were household
-articles scattered about, which showed how the families must have fled
-at the first alarm of the Indians.
-
-Copper kettles, warming-pans, a spinning wheel, now and then a chest of
-linen, strewn along the road, told how the colonists had packed whatever
-of their possessions they could in a cart and hurried off to the block
-house, to be safe from attack. What they did not take with them the
-Indians carried off or burned.
-
-I glanced on all sides of us. It was so dark that I could scarce see,
-though I made out the village a short distance ahead. The log block
-house stood on top of a little hill, and a fire burned on one corner of
-the roof, a signal to refugees.
-
-My eye had no sooner caught sight of this, and I turned to tell Lucille
-that our journey was at an end, than Simon gave a cry. He pointed behind
-us, terror in his face.
-
-I looked, and there, on the brow of the hill we had just descended were
-the figures of a score of Indians!
-
-They were a quarter of a mile behind us, and we were half a mile from
-the fort.
-
-I gave Kit a blow across the flank with my sword scabbard. She sprang
-forward. At the same time Simon and I broke into a run. A yell from the
-savages told us we had been observed, and that they were in hot pursuit.
-
-They were afoot, and I knew that Lucille was safe from them, for Kit
-would carry her to the block.
-
-“Ride on ahead,” I called to her. “Simon and I will hold them in play
-until you are safe, Lucille. Ride on for your life!”
-
-“I will not leave you, Edward,” she called back, and she tried to pull
-the mare up.
-
-“On, Kit, on!” I shouted.
-
-The mare heard and started at a sharp gallop.
-
-Lucille clung to her seat, and waved her hand back at me.
-
-Though Simon and I had made good speed the Indians were now within
-range. They shot a flight of arrows, and several, who had muskets,
-discharged them. They did not hit either of us, and Lucille was now out
-of danger. Not so, however, Simon and I. On came the savages, running
-with great speed, and uttering their war cries.
-
-There were three fleeter of foot than the others, and they were in the
-lead. I saw if we were to gain the block house we must dispose of these
-or halt them for a time. Bidding Simon halt we drew up short in the
-road. I told him to fire at the one on the left with his pistol, while I
-took the one on the right with the flint lock.
-
-Two quick shots rang out in the darkness. Simon only wounded his man,
-but I had better luck, and the ball went through his body, so that he
-fell doubled up in a heap, and then was still.
-
-The enraged yells of his companions told us he was dead. The whole party
-stopped short and that gave us the chance we wanted. At top speed we
-resumed the race to the fort. Lucille was almost there now, and we could
-see the gate cautiously opened to let her in.
-
-“Quick, Simon,” I called, for the Indians were after us again, and we
-could not hope with but a single charge in a pistol to halt them.
-
-Poor Simon was almost done for with the run. His breath came in gasps. I
-caught him by the arm, and was helping him along. The nearest Indian was
-not a rod away. With head down, panting from the exertion and almost
-ready to give up I half led, half dragged Simon on.
-
-Then, and it was a welcome sight, the heavy log gate of the block house
-swung open. A score of armed men in close formation emerged. I could see
-the matches of some of the muskets burning. The Indians saw them, too.
-With a final yell of rage and defiance they abandoned the chase, turned
-back, and were soon lost to sight in the darkness, which had now fallen.
-
-Simon and I reached the gate, the men opening to let us pass inside.
-One, who wore a sword, and who seemed to be in command, said:
-
-“You were only just in time, sir. Had the maid not ridden up when she
-did and warned us of your approach we might not have made the sally, for
-we were deep in council, planning how best this uprising of the savages
-can be met.”
-
-“I give you thanks,” I said, noting that Lucille had dismounted, and was
-with some of the women.
-
-“Few are needed,” rejoined the man who had first spoken, “seeing that
-you are two men, one with a goodly weapon; for we have need of fighters
-now. As for your companion I note that he carries a pistol with the
-powder pan empty. We will give him a musket that he may do his share in
-the defense. The smaller weapons carry only a little way. I am in
-command here,” he went on. “Perhaps you may have heard of me?”
-
-“I have not the honor,” I said, “having but just arrived from a
-distance, and indeed coming here by a mere chance.”
-
-“Well, then,” went on the commander of the little fort, “I am Captain
-Philip Carteret, brother to His Excellency, Sir George Carteret,
-Governor of the Jersey Province.
-
-“My brother sailed for London a month ago,” went on the Captain,
-“leaving me in charge of the Colony. Much have I found to do, settling
-the disputes among the people, and now with this uprising of the
-savages, there is like to be more work. But you have a soldierly bearing
-and, I doubt not, will be glad of a chance to fire a gun at the red
-men.”
-
-“That I will,” was my answer. “You guessed right when you spoke of my
-bearing. I am Captain Edward Amherst, late of Salem town, in
-Massachusetts, whence I led a company against St. Johns. This is Simon
-Rogers, a sailor who has business of his own here, and is only a fellow
-traveler with me, though we have fought together. The maid who rode up
-on the mare is my promised wife, whom I have brought here that we may
-wed.”
-
-The introductions being over Captain Carteret led the way into the
-block, and the door was carefully secured. Pine torches gave a ruddy,
-smoky light to the scene, which was of great confusion.
-
-Men were here and there, some looking to see that their weapons were
-loaded, others mending a broken stock or whetting up rusty sword blades.
-Women were huddled in corners, some weeping, some gazing on with
-frightened eyes, and some trying to comfort crying children. All about
-were scattered household goods, through the piles of which soldiers made
-their way to the various parts of the block house. I had hardly time to
-take this all in and see that Lucille was being cared for by some of the
-calmer women, when a messenger bade me to supper with Captain Carteret.
-Right glad I was of the invitation, too.
-
-The Captain’s voice told me to enter when I had knocked at the door the
-messenger indicated. On the rough table was a smoking hot meal. Of all
-the confused assemblage the cook, it seemed, had kept his head. I did
-full justice to the roast deer’s flesh, and the fish with the yellow
-corn bread that went with it. When the edge had gone from my appetite
-the Captain told me of the situation. A friendly savage had brought word
-of the Indian uprising two days ago. Messengers were sent to as many of
-the outlying farm houses as possible, and the people made all haste to
-the fort.
-
-“Can you stand a siege?” I asked, wishing to know for Lucille’s sake,
-how matters stood.
-
-“The place is stout enough,” said the Captain, “and we have men in
-sufficient numbers, with a goodly supply of powder and ball. But the
-provisions are a point of worry to me. There was not time enough to lay
-in a full larder, and, with all the women and children to feed beside
-the men at arms, I fear it will go hard if we are cooped up here for any
-time. But we will do the best we can.”
-
-“How many men have you?”
-
-“There are four score fit for fighting,” was the Captain’s answer.
-
-At the close of the meal I made my excuses and went to find Lucille. She
-met me at the entrance of the women’s apartment, having come out to
-learn where I was. I told her how strong the fort was, how we had plenty
-of men to defend it with, and enough of ammunition for all the Indians
-in Jersey. She had recovered somewhat from her recent fatigue, and
-looked more beautiful than ever, with her hair tossed about, and the
-roses in her cheeks.
-
-The women, she said, had been most kind to her.
-
-“It is a comfort to speak to some one in petticoats again,” she said.
-“Just think, I have been over a month, and could not even learn if my
-skirt hung properly.”
-
-“A most woeful lack,” I said mockingly. For there was no immediate
-danger now, and we could afford to jest.
-
-“Truly a great deprivation,” said Lucille, laughing.
-
-I left her after a time, kissing her good-night, and bidding her be of
-cheer. Then I went back to Captain Carteret, to consult with him about
-the defense of the block.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XXIV.
- HOW SIMON KEPT HIS OATH.
-
-
-Summed up our situation was this. We had a few more than four score men
-with which to stand against an attack of ten times that number of
-Indians. And, as we would need to detail some men to put out fires,
-started by blazing arrows, it would reduce our fighting force to about
-eighty men.
-
-Fortunately we had plenty of arms, powder was in abundance, and we had
-lead enough to make all the balls we could fire. There were a number of
-women, Captain Carteret said, who could mould bullets, and some who were
-able to load muskets.
-
-The block house was a strong and well built place consisting of an upper
-and lower story, well pierced with loops, and comfortable quarters for
-men and women. All about the place was a stout palisade of tough green
-timber. We did not fear that the block nor the palisade could be set on
-fire from the ground, but, as the roof slabs were dry from the sun,
-there was some danger that an arrow, carrying a flaming bunch of tow,
-might start a blaze over our heads.
-
-However, there was a little place, like a watch tower, on the southeast
-angle of the fort, and we reckoned that if we placed two men there they
-could quench any fire which started on the roof.
-
-These matters having been talked of, Captain Carteret tallied the men.
-He gave me charge of two squads to look after the north and west sides
-of the block, while he took care of the others. Ammunition was dealt
-out, instructions given and a watch set, for though we did not expect a
-night attack it was as well to be prepared. Then I went to the room
-where the men not on duty were to sleep, and lay down on a rude couch.
-
-It seemed that I had been slumbering but a little while, during which I
-thought I was back in Salem gaol, ere there came a thundering summons at
-the door, and I leaped up to find it almost dawn. Once more came the
-knock, then the warning:
-
-“The Indians! The Indians! Hurry!”
-
-I needed no second telling. It was the message I had been waiting for,
-and it meant there was sharp work ahead.
-
-I drew on my boots, buttoned my coat about me, and, wondering how
-Lucille had fared, grabbed up my sword and gun, to hasten where I might
-find Captain Carteret.
-
-I met him in the main room, where all was confusion. Men were getting in
-each other’s way, some were looking for their garments, and many for
-their weapons, so that little speed in preparation resulted. Had the
-enemy been more alert they would have had us at a disadvantage. But the
-red men were wary about rushing the palisades when they knew, as they
-must, what force was behind them.
-
-Captain Carteret was busy answering a dozen questions at once. His
-lieutenants were issuing guns to those who had neglected to secure them
-the night before. Powder horns were being filled from casks of the black
-mixture, bullet moulds were gotten ready, and some women were melting
-lead, while a number were dishing up the breakfast. It was a cold gray
-dawn, hardly light enough to see by.
-
-“Hot work,” was the Captain’s greeting to me, as he waved half a dozen
-men with inquiries aside, to drain a mug of ale. “The scouts came in an
-hour ago with the news that the skulking devils were moving about in all
-their war paint, getting ready for an attack. The most of them are well
-armed too, having as good muskets as we have. Well, ’tis as I often
-remark, those in authority will never seem to learn that they are
-putting weapons into the hands of devils, when they supply guns and
-ammunition to the Indians.”
-
-“How many are there?” I asked.
-
-“About four hundred out there now as near as could be made out. There
-are some of the Assumpinks, a few Roanokes, plenty of Mingoes, a score
-of Andastakas and the rest Nashaimes and Shackamaxons. They will not be
-here for an hour yet, since an Indian loves not to fight on an empty
-stomach, when he can sound his war whoop on a full one.”
-
-“The devils know they have us cooped up here where we cannot get away,”
-I remarked.
-
-“Aye, that they do, Captain,” agreed the acting Governor. “And, if we do
-not stand them off until help arrives from Newark, it will go hard with
-us who are alive after the place is taken.”
-
-Something like order now began to make itself felt. Breakfasts were
-hastily eaten, and the men sent to which ever side of the palisade they
-were to defend. The muskets were all loaded, pails of water set handy
-and boys were appointed to carry the discharged guns from the men to the
-women, bringing back loaded ones in their place. Oh, how I wished for a
-cannon or two on top of the block. Captain Carteret and I were about to
-leave the main room, and go to our stations, when there came a knock at
-the door. Simon entered as the Captain called out “come in.”
-
-The sailor looked at the commander, but did not appear to see me. He
-seemed to be excited about something, and was fumbling in his jacket
-pocket.
-
-“I have business with you, Captain Carteret,” he said.
-
-I started to leave.
-
-“It concerns you also, Captain Amherst,” went on the sailor, so I
-remained wondering what was to come. Doubtless a request concerning his
-position in the block.
-
-But Simon pulled from his inner pocket a folded parchment, which, by
-certain stains of sea water on it, I knew must have been on board the
-Eagle, probably a document that Sir George Keith carried, and had
-desired Simon to deliver for him, when he found himself unable.
-
-“When I have told what I have to tell,” began Simon, “and so fulfilled
-my oath, I pray that there may be holden no enmity against me. For I
-only do what I am bound to do.”
-
-“Say on,” came from Captain Carteret. “If you are in no fault none will
-bear you ill will. Be brief, for time presses.”
-
-I stood there, wondering how Simon’s oath could have aught to do with
-me.
-
-“Well, then,” went on Simon, “I am, or was a servant to Sir George
-Keith, who lately died.”
-
-“What, Sir George Keith, of Lincolnshire?” interrupted Captain Carteret,
-“was he in these parts?”
-
-“He--he was,” said Simon, with such a hesitation over the words that the
-commander cried out:
-
-“Do you mean that he is dead?”
-
-Simon nodded.
-
-“Dead,” the sailor continued, “and lying beneath the sands, unless, as
-is no doubt the case, the waves have ere this washed his body out to
-sea.”
-
-The Captain looked at Simon curiously and then at me.
-
-“Before my lord died,” resumed Simon, “he called to me, and with almost
-his last words swore me that I would do as he bade me, so that he might
-be revenged on the man who had slain him.”
-
-I started at this, for I began to see which way the wind blew.
-
-“Having given my oath,” went on Simon, “I left my master, after he had
-been foully slain----”
-
-“’Tis a lie!” I cried, white with anger. “Sir George was killed in a
-fair combat, and he would have made an end of me had not his sword
-broke.”
-
-In great wonder Captain Carteret held up his hand to end our dispute,
-and Simon resumed.
-
-“He gave me a message,” he said, like a child who repeats a lesson well
-learned, “and it was of this import. ‘Say to Sir George Carteret, or to
-his representative, that a traitor walks abroad in the land. I pray you
-to see to it that he is taken and sent to England to answer for the
-crime against His Majesty. As you are my friend fail not.’ And I took an
-oath that I would do this, which I have done. Before he died Sir George
-Keith gave me a parchment to give to the Governor, when I should find
-him, as I have now, or one who stands for him. Therefore I have kept my
-oath.”
-
-“And the document, the parchment,” said Carteret hastily, “where is it,
-man? What is it all about, now that you have done talking?”
-
-“This is the document,” said the sailor, and he gave a water stained
-parchment to the commander.
-
-Now there was silence in the apartment, while a man might have counted a
-score.
-
-“Warrant, royal warrant,” read the Captain, bringing his eyes close to
-the writing, while I listened, my heart almost ceasing to beat. Had I
-fought so hard only to lose all at the end?
-
-“Hum, what is this? ‘Warrant from His Majesty----’”
-
-The reading was not finished, for it was interrupted by such a chorus of
-savage yells sounding hideously from without, that it seemed the Indians
-must be at the very door. At the same time we heard our men shout a
-defiant reply, and then began shooting apparently on all sides at once.
-
-“Quick!” cried the Captain, “to your men, Amherst. The imps have begun
-the attack. This matter can wait,” and he thrust the warrant into his
-pocket. “Join the defense,” to Simon. “I will see you again. Hurry now.”
-
-Out ran Carteret, while I followed at his heels. There were many
-emotions in my heart. As I passed the women’s quarters I saw Lucille
-standing in the doorway. I blew a kiss to her from my finger tips as I
-had no time to stop.
-
-“Keep up a good spirit,” I shouted.
-
-She waved her hand in reply, and I went to the fight with a happier
-mind. A minute later I was among my men at the palisade, cautioning them
-not to waste powder and ball.
-
-That there was need of all our defenders I saw as soon as I peered
-through a loop. For though not a foe was in sight save now and then when
-one stepped from behind a tree or stone to deliver a shot, yet the puffs
-of smoke all about us told me the scouts had not correctly rated the
-strength of the enemy. They numbered nearer to twenty score than to
-eight. The war party must have been joined by another band in the night.
-
-Never had I heard such a din before. It seemed like one long endless
-screech that rose and fell as might a weird song of death.
-
-The savages would remain concealed while loading their guns. Then they
-would peer out unexpectedly from behind some tree stump or stone, fire,
-and drop back again before our men had time to take aim. It was like
-shooting at quail.
-
-This kind of firing kept up for some time with little advantage to our
-side. We had four men badly hurt by bullets that came in the loops, or
-by splinters knocked from the logs. And, as far as I could see, we had
-not killed a single Indian. I ordered my men to cease firing, as it was
-but a waste of good powder and ball, and the women were weary reloading
-the guns. I noted that Carteret’s men had likewise held their fire.
-
-“We will try an old trick and see how it works,” I remarked to my squad.
-“It may be we can teach these red men something of the arts of war.”
-
-I told off twenty of the best shots, and stationed them at the farther
-ends of the sides of the palisade where I was in charge, leaving the
-middle undefended. I gave four men two long sticks each, and had them
-place hats and caps on the ends. These men I bade lie down on the
-ground, about the centre of the palisade.
-
-The score with the guns I had stationed at the upper loops, where they
-stood on a little ledge of wood, built there for that purpose. Each man
-had two loaded guns with him. The rest of my defenders I grouped near
-the loops where the men with the caps on the sticks were. I told them,
-when I gave the word, to fire as quickly as they could, but not to be
-particular whether they aimed or not, as long as they kept up a steady
-fusillade. All was now arranged to my satisfaction.
-
-“Ready!” I called.
-
-Up went the long sticks with the hats on the ends, and, at the same time
-the guns of the men near them rattled out with flame and smoke. To the
-Indians it must have looked just as I intended it should, as if we were
-desperate and were attempting a sally under the protection of the fire
-of a few of the men. The sight of the dozen caps at the top of the
-palisade must have looked like the heads of men trying to climb over.
-
-As there was no firing from the two ends of the stockade where I had
-stationed the score of men, the Indians were deceived into believing
-that part deserted. Those savages opposite the loops there at once
-leaped out from behind their cover to take part in the fight they looked
-for in front of the middle of the palisade, as soon as our soldiers
-should have climbed over.
-
-They uttered yells and whoops, and half the caps were riddled with
-bullets. But half a hundred red skins were in the open now in front of
-my marksmen.
-
-“Let them have it all together!” I cried. “In the name of the King and
-Elizabeth! Fire!”
-
-There was a burst of fire and a hail of lead into the half naked ranks,
-and the screeches that followed told us we had done some scath. Ere they
-had time to recover from their surprise my men let them have the
-contents of the second guns right in their midst.
-
-When the smoke blew away we counted twenty-three dead bodies, while
-several more were desperately wounded. We had struck them a hard blow
-with no loss to ourselves, and they retreated to cover again.
-
-“Ha, that was well done; most excellently done,” I heard a voice behind
-me say.
-
-I turned about.
-
-“Traitor, or no traitor, that was as prettily planned and executed as I
-could do myself,” and Carteret stood beside me.
-
-“I am no traitor,” I said sternly, but, when I would have said more he
-stopped me.
-
-“They have learned a lesson that will serve them for some time,” the
-Captain went on. “But, Amherst, grave matters press on the two sides I
-command. I have lost three men killed, and the rest seem afraid to
-fight, saying there is some mischief in the air. I think the devils are
-massing to rush the place. At least there is something afoot, for they
-have not fired a shot for the last five minutes. That is why I came
-here.”
-
-I went with the Captain to the south side and looked from a loop. There
-was not an Indian in sight, nor were there any of the wicked puffs of
-smoke to tell where they hid. It was puzzling.
-
-“Have you noticed any suspicious movement?” I asked.
-
-“None,” he said, “save that one of my men remarked not long since that
-he never knew before how many stumps there were in the open space
-between the block and the forest.”
-
-“Stumps?” I said, and then I looked out again.
-
-“Aye, stumps,” said Carteret. “For myself I cannot call to mind when
-there were so many there, but, perchance I never noticed it closely.”
-
-I saw what it meant now.
-
-“They are stumps that have put forth green shoots since morn,” I said.
-“And, mark you how those same stumps seem to have legs?”
-
-“Green sprouts? Legs?” repeated the Captain, like a man sorely puzzled.
-
-“Yes,” I said, “look.” Then I showed him that, though the body of the
-stump was black and dead, yet on the top were bright green little twigs.
-
-Carteret rubbed his eyes to see better.
-
-“Note,” I went on, “that large stump with knobs on it, which give it the
-appearance of a man’s face.”
-
-“I see it,” he replied.
-
-“There was a stone beside it three minutes ago,” I proceeded, “but it is
-gone now.”
-
-“Did the stone move?” he asked.
-
-“Or the stump,” I suggested, and then he knew what I meant.
-
-Every stump, and there were three score, hid an Indian. As the red men
-slowly wiggled along after the manner of snakes, they pushed the dead
-wood ahead of them to deceive us and protect themselves. It was a clever
-ruse, but we must consider how to beat it. We could not hope to hit the
-savages while they were so well protected. I said so, and the Captain
-agreed with me. Then I called to mind his remark about traitors.
-
-“It is perhaps ill for one accused of treason to advise what to do,” I
-said stiffly.
-
-“Tut, tut, man, I have not judged you yet,” he spoke quickly. “Every man
-is innocent until he is proved guilty. To me you are what you seem, a
-brave soldier. That is enough for us now.”
-
-I liked him better after that, and told him a plan I had formed. It
-would need to be put into operation quickly, as the stumps were
-approaching nearer.
-
-It was the plan of the Indians to get as near to the stockade as
-possible under cover of the stumps, and then to make a rush. Then the
-block would be turned to a shambles, for we could not cope with the
-overwhelming numbers that would clamber in, once all our force was
-engaged on one side. The only way I saw to defeat the enemy was to fire
-as many volleys as we could just as they charged on us, throwing them
-into a panic as quickly as possible, and breaking up their ranks.
-
-I thought, as did the Captain, that we could safely draw most of the men
-to the south side of the stockade, leaving a few on the other sides to
-keep up a slow fire, so that the Indians would not see that we had
-discovered their ruse. Carteret agreed that this was the best to be
-done.
-
-Accordingly most of the force was summoned quietly to the south face,
-and all the available muskets were collected, so that there was three
-for each man. The guns were all loaded, one being held ready to fire
-when the word was given, the other two being on the ground back of each
-defender. I had the women loaders come as near to the men as was safe,
-so that they could be on hand to charge the first gun as soon as it was
-fired, and the second one taken up. They could do the same with the
-second gun, and, as they were quick fingered, we would be able to fire
-five volleys so rapidly that I did not believe the line of Indians would
-be able to travel more than half way to the palisade from the place
-where they emerged from behind the stumps. Then having sent two more men
-to the little watch tower to pick off the Indians who might get to the
-top of the stockade I reckoned that we were all prepared.
-
-It was a pity, I thought, that the block was not built with bastions, so
-that we could deliver a cross fire. But I nearly secured this effect by
-having the men cut the loops slanting so that the gun barrels could be
-pointed in to the left and right from either side.
-
-Closer and closer came the stumps. We could see now that the twigs of
-green extended back beyond the logs, trailing on the ground. Beneath
-this green bower was the Indian. On they came slowly, like emerald
-serpents, with huge black heads. Of a sudden I noted that the forward
-movement had ceased. There were undulations of the trailing twigs.
-
-“Make ready!” I shouted. “Here they come!”
-
-And on they came with a rush. Whooping, yelling and screaming like so
-many imps of darkness, nigh a hundred of them, and each one with a gun
-or tomahawk. The dead stumps had come to life.
-
-“Fire!” shouted the Captain and I in the same breath.
-
-The volley that answered laid many of the savages low. Backward each man
-threw his discharged piece, to have it snatched up by the waiting women,
-who braved death in their own defense. Up were caught the second guns.
-
-“Fire!” I called again.
-
-Once more the muskets spat out death. A score of red men toppled over on
-their faces, their dying yells sounding high above the din. The useless
-guns were tossed aside, and the third musket thrust through the loops.
-
-The bullets of the attackers rattled on the logs of the palisade as hail
-in winter. Several of our men were killed because the loops were so
-large.
-
-The triple rain of lead had cut a wide swath in the Indians’ ranks, but
-they never seemed to heed, and came on as fiercely as at first. They
-were so near now that when the men tried to draw back the discharged
-guns from the loops some of the enemy seized them by the barrels and
-tried to pull them through the slits.
-
-By this time the women had the first lot of muskets reloaded. It was
-almost our last hope.
-
-“Fire!” I called again, drawing my sword, in anticipation of a rush of
-savages over the palisade.
-
-The fourth volley pealed out. As the smoke rolled away I saw a few
-hideous faces, surrounded with feathers, thrust over the top of the
-logs. The men in the tower fired, and they dropped back.
-
-Four more of our men fell away from the loops; three dead, the other
-sorely wounded. The remainder of the defenders seized the muskets they
-had fired the second time, which would have made the fifth round. If it
-went out, and did not stay the assault, then it was all over with us.
-
-But it did.
-
-I peered out and saw the Indians on a dead run for the forest. They had
-enough of the white man’s leaden medicine. And they did not stop to take
-their dead with them, in such great haste were they. But they could
-scarce have done so, had they desired, for the dead far outnumbered the
-living. Our volleys had mowed them down as a reaper does the ripe grain.
-
-For a time we were safe, but at great cost, for we had lost ten men, and
-there was much sorrow in the block.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XXV.
- IN THE NAME OF THE KING.
-
-
-Captain Carteret and I clasped hands when we saw that the enemy had been
-repelled for the time. They hardly would renew the fight for a few
-hours, I thought, and we would have a chance to rest and get something
-to eat, for it was now afternoon, and we all knew that breakfast had
-been a long way back. So leaving a sentinel on guard at each face of the
-palisade, we sent the other men away. Carteret and I went to his
-quarters.
-
-As the door opened I saw Simon standing in the centre of the room.
-
-“Have you been here since the fighting began?” asked the Captain of him.
-
-“I have,” answered Simon. “My life was not my own to lose it by a stray
-bullet. When my oath is fulfilled I will fight.”
-
-“There was need of every man,” replied Carteret sternly, “oaths or no
-oaths. I like not cowards, even though they come with warrants from the
-King.”
-
-Simon made no response.
-
-“Now, as concerns this matter,” continued the commander, “which we had
-to break off when the battle began. Sir George Keith, and a braver man
-there never lived, was my boyhood friend, Amherst, and I am much grieved
-to learn that he is no more. I would have served him living, and, if I
-can I will do so dead. It seems, Amherst, you are interested in the
-affair, the nature of which is not clear to me. Let us see what is in
-the royal warrant,” and he drew the parchment from his pocket.
-
-“What is it about, Simon, for I am no hand at the law.”
-
-Thereupon Simon related the tale, as he had it from his master, I
-suppose, of how I had fought on the side of Duke Monmouth, and had been
-adjudged a traitor, but had escaped ere I could be sold to slavery. As
-Simon progressed I saw the Captain’s face grow grave and stern, for, it
-seemed, he was a great friend at court, and all his people had been
-against Monmouth. Therefore he had little liking for a rebel like
-myself, and one who was accused of treason.
-
-“What have you to say?” asked Carteret, when Simon had finished.
-
-“Much,” I replied, and I began to think.
-
-Truly I seemed to be in sore straits. If there was but some way out of
-it with honor, most gladly would I have welcomed it. For I could not let
-myself be taken now, and separated from Lucille, just when I had found
-her again. If I was sent back to England under arrest as a traitor
-(though I never admitted I was one, for I had no mind to betray my own
-country) I might count on a long imprisonment, if not death, and I would
-never see my love more. Then I hoped that a plan of escape might come to
-me, and so, after all, foil Simon.
-
-“The matter need not be decided now,” I said as though I had my case all
-prepared, but only waited convenience to try it. “There is no occasion
-for haste, as I promise I will not run out among the red devils howling
-for our scalps. Let it rest.”
-
-“Suppose you are killed?” suggested Simon. “What then becomes of the
-warrant?”
-
-“Why, you may keep it, Simon,” I said. “There is no law that will reach
-the dead.”
-
-“But I am under oath to a dead man to see the warrant properly served on
-a live man,” expostulated the sailor, “and you are the person
-mentioned.”
-
-“’Tis a serious matter,” spoke up the Captain, “and one, the like of
-which I never knew before. To be strictly within the law I must arrest
-you, though you need not hand over your sword, nor suffer imprisonment.
-For we need your counsel and stout arm in the defense of the block. The
-Indians have only tasted blood, and want more. Our stubborn defense has
-roused them to a pitch of fury, and they will soon be swarming about our
-ears again.”
-
-“Then I am to consider myself a prisoner,” I said, as calmly as I could;
-for I did not like Captain Carteret’s easy compliance with Simon’s
-demands.
-
-“A prisoner, if you please,” replied the Captain. “The other details may
-wait until the more pressing matter of the Indian attack is settled.
-After that we may have no need of captors or prisoners, either.”
-
-“’Tis very likely,” I said grimly, “seeing that we have but seventy
-fighting men left to stand against more than seven hundred.”
-
-But I was not as easy as I pretended about the matter of the royal
-warrant. I knew it would not dared be ignored by Carteret, and Simon
-would see to it that the Captain did not fail to execute it.
-
-“Yes, it is necessary that you be considered under arrest,” went on the
-commander, “though never did a jailer serve a warrant with less liking
-for the task. For, mark you, Amherst, I had a liking for you as soon as
-you and the sweet maid came in, and the affection has grown when I see
-how well you can fight,” and all the while he was turning the document
-over and over in his hand, as if he had hold of an unpleasant object. He
-looked on both sides of the parchment, but made no move to open it and
-learn the contents. Simon was watching both of us with a pleased light
-in his eyes.
-
-“Since then you are under arrest,” proceeded the Captain, “I believe it
-is in accord with the law that I read the warrant to you. I am not very
-well versed in legal lore, but, mayhap, I can make some small shift at
-this.”
-
-Thereupon Carteret, assuming a dignified air, that was in strange
-keeping with his powder-grimed face, and his battle-torn clothing,
-opened the warrant. He read over the first few lines to himself, and
-then burst out with:
-
-“Providence preserve us! But this is more than passing wonderful and
-strange! Can it be that I read aright?”
-
-And while Simon watched him eagerly, and I with fear at what was to
-come, the Captain read what was written, skipping half a dozen words,
-every now and then.
-
-“‘Warrant--hum--for one Captain Edward Amherst--hum--did on divers
-occasions--hum--practice the said detestable arts, wickedly and
-feloniously and traitorously, upon and against--hum--the deponents John
-Bly, Deliverance Hobbs and Benjamin Proctor.’ What is this? ‘Wherefore,
-that is to say, the said--in manner following--hum--is hereby charged
-with witchcraft.’
-
-“Witchcraft!” he fairly shouted at the end. “Witchcraft? Has that vile
-malady come among us?”
-
-“Witchcraft?” faltered Simon, his face white with fear.
-
-“Witchcraft?” I cried out, wondering what would happen next.
-
-“Witchcraft? Who talks of witchcraft?” asked a sweet voice behind us,
-and we turned to behold Lucille, who had come in unobserved.
-
-“Aye, witchcraft,” replied Captain Carteret, the first to recover from
-the surprise. “’Tis little, madame, that you can have to do with this
-crime, which makes the bravest and boldest to shudder in fear. For the
-evil repute of it and the terror it has wrought, has spread to Elizabeth
-town, even from Salem.”
-
-“Perchance I may have more to do with it than at first appears,” said
-Lucille. Then I happened to remember something of a certain document she
-had.
-
-“Let us consider,” went on Carteret, moving a little away from me, and
-taking care not to look me in the eye. “Simon, you had this warrant, and
-when you gave it to me I supposed it was for treason against His Most
-Gracious Majesty, as you stated. ’Tis so endorsed on the outside. How
-came you by it?”
-
-“From Sir George Keith,” answered Simon, “as he lay dying on the sands,
-slain----”
-
-“Nay, not slain,” I interrupted sternly, “speak the truth. Not slain,
-but killed in a fair fight, though it was not my sword that dealt the
-fatal blow.”
-
-“When he lay dying,” went on Simon, correcting himself, but, otherwise,
-not heeding me, “he called me, his bond servant, to him, and made me
-swear an oath that I would take the warrant, and following Captain
-Amherst, command the first King’s representative I met, to serve it.
-This I did, for Sir George obtained permission from Captain Amherst,
-that I might accompany him to this place.”
-
-“Said he what the warrant was for?” asked Carteret.
-
-“Only that it was for treason,” responded Simon. “I marked that he
-pulled two documents from his pocket, looked at them both, and giving me
-one, replaced the other in his breast. Then he died, and we buried him
-in the sands.”
-
-I knew then what had occurred. Sir George had made an error. He
-possessed the original warrant of treason against me, and also the one
-for witchcraft that he had been at pains to secure in Salem. The two
-documents were together, and, knowing that the charge of being a witch
-had failed, he sought, even though he knew he would be dead, to have me
-apprehended on the other. But he had given the wrong warrant to Simon.
-So that now the only document I feared was buried with the dead. Ere
-this the sea had probably washed away all trace of the grave, and,
-mayhap, the silent occupant.
-
-I was a free man!
-
-Sir George had overreached himself, and set me at liberty, when he meant
-to send me to prison.
-
-“Know you aught of this witchcraft?” asked the Captain of Simon, never
-looking at me.
-
-“I heard somewhat of it,” was the sailor’s answer. “There was talk, when
-I left Salem, that Captain Amherst and others had done many grievous
-wrongs to innocent persons. I heard something, too, of a warrant for
-him, but I was not there at the time, being away on business for my
-lord. Doubtless Captain Amherst fled ere the warrant could be served.
-But ’tis strange, though,” went on Simon, “that Sir George should speak
-of a charge of high treason against the King, and give me only a warrant
-for witchcraft.”
-
-“His mind may have played him false,” suggested Carteret. “This often
-occurs to those about to die.”
-
-“Perchance,” said Simon, gloomily.
-
-But I knew what had happened.
-
-“No matter,” came from Carteret, “the wording of the warrant is of small
-consequence. Witchcraft being a crime, may well be considered treason
-against His Majesty, and that is what Sir George meant, I suppose. So,
-albeit I am little versed in the manner of apprehending spirits, yet I
-must do my duty, for I am the Governor now, and the representative of
-the King. ’Tis ill to judge a man ere he is tried, and you may prove no
-witch, Captain Amherst, but an honest gentleman, and a soldier.
-Therefore assuming that you are such, yet I want your promise, or,
-seeing that it savors of war now, your parole, that you will not
-escape.”
-
-“Escape?” I inquired. “Escape? Where to? How?” for I was not yet ready
-to tell certain things.
-
-“You must promise that you will not try to get away by any means such as
-witches use; the riding of broom sticks, of fence rails, or on the back
-of a black cat (though I do not believe we have one in the place) since
-I have heard all these means mentioned as being of service to witches
-when they wish to escape through the air.”
-
-“I promise,” I replied, as gravely as I could.
-
-“And also promise that you will work no harm to any in the block house
-by the black art,” went on Carteret. “Though it might serve, could you
-practice some devil’s trick on those red servants of His Majesty of the
-lower regions, who howl without. Say, Captain,” he continued, eagerly,
-and looking at me for the first time since he had read the warrant,
-“would it not be within your province and power to summon a horde of
-witches and have them torment the Indians? That would be fine. The
-savages would be filled with fear and trembling and the terror of death,
-and leave us alone.
-
-“Could you not work some such black art as that,” he went on earnestly.
-“’Twould be a noble use for your powers, and might even serve to absolve
-you when it comes to trial. What say you?”
-
-“Why do you speak like a child?” I answered with some anger. “Enough of
-this. I give the promises you want readily, because there is no need to
-make them. I have no more power as a witch than have you or Simon
-or----”
-
-“The Lord forbid!” exclaimed Carteret, with fervor. And he shrank back
-as if to escape contact with me.
-
-“Then you cannot ride a fence rail?” he asked when he had studied over
-the matter a while longer.
-
-“Nay,” I said, mockingly, for I was weary of the farce.
-
-“Nor a broom stick?”
-
-“Nay.”
-
-“Nor a black cat?”
-
-“Peace! Peace!” I cried; “this is worse than to fight the Indians.”
-
-“And you can work no magic on them, then?” persisted Carteret.
-
-“Not so much as would cause a papoose to cry out.”
-
-I thought the commander looked disappointed, forgetting his fear of my
-witch powers in his desire to see them worked on the savages.
-
-“Well, you may consider that you are on parole,” he went on after a
-pause.
-
-“And you will see, will you not, Captain Carteret, that he is sent back
-to Governor Phips?” asked Simon. “For that was the last wish of Sir
-George.”
-
-“Tut, tut, Simon,” said Carteret, “the matter is out of your hands now,
-though you did your part, and kept your oath as you should. Captain
-Amherst is my prisoner on parole, and I will consider what further to
-do, when we have more time, and a greater security in which to discuss
-it.”
-
-“But I have somewhat to say now, if it please you, Captain Carteret,” I
-broke in, at the same time stepping forward. Lucille kept near me. “It
-will not be much.”
-
-“Well?”
-
-“Since it seems that Simon has this warrant against me,” I began, “I
-will tell you that in Salem town, whence I came I was arrested as a
-witch about a month back.”
-
-Carteret started as though to leave the room.
-
-“Bah!” I cried, “are you afraid of that man? Why, you would have laughed
-had you been there to have heard the tales of witchcraft related as
-evidence in court.”
-
-And then I told Carteret all that had happened, save only about the
-first warrant Sir George had, which was for treason, sure enough, though
-I did not hold it so.
-
-“You seem to have suffered much, you and Mistress Lucille,” said the
-commander, when I had finished, “and your tale savors of the truth. But
-as I am only acting as Governor, and the representative of the King in
-the absence of my brother, I must move cautiously in the matter. If I
-did not serve the royal warrant, even though it be for witchcraft, which
-you say does not exist, I may be held to strict account. So though I am
-loath to so do I must hold you as a prisoner under the aforesaid
-parole.”
-
-Lucille had been listening to all that was said. At the last words of
-Carteret she took a step forward, and drew from the bosom of her dress a
-sea-stained document, the import of which I knew. She held it out to
-Carteret.
-
-“What? More warrants?” he asked, smiling a little.
-
-“Read,” said Lucille.
-
-He unfolded the parchment.
-
-“‘Royal’--hum--there is a blot here,” he read, “‘royal,’ oh yes,
-‘pardon,’ that is it. ‘Royal pardon given by His Excellency, Sir William
-Phips, Governor of Massachusetts, to one Captain Edward Amherst, of
-Salem town, who is accused of the crime of witchcraft.’ Why--why----”
-
-“Aye, ‘why, why,’” mimicked Lucille. “What now of prisoners and
-paroles?”
-
-Carteret stared at the pardon in his hand.
-
-“Why, this nullifies the warrant,” he said slowly, “if it be a true
-pardon.”
-
-“True?” exclaimed Lucille. “You will find it true enough. I saw it
-written. Read to the end.”
-
-Captain Carteret read:
-
-“‘Witness our hand and seal, in the name of His Majesty the King.’”
-
-Then while we stood silent, there arose a terrible cry outside. It was
-followed by musket shots, and then we heard the Indian war whoop.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XXVI.
- THE LAST FIGHT.
-
-
-“Another attack!” exclaimed Carteret. “Quick, Amherst, or they’ll be
-swarming about our ears. Take charge of your men again. It is our last
-chance!”
-
-“And my parole?” I asked, coldly.
-
-“Is not required. You are not on parole. You are free.”
-
-Out dashed Carteret, tossing the pardon to Lucille.
-
-“It will be a battle to the death,” he called back.
-
-Simon, who looked the picture of disappointed rage, hurried from the
-room. I had only time to embrace and kiss Lucille, to tell her to keep
-up a brave heart, and then I rushed out to take my place among my men.
-
-The din was terrific. Added to the yells of the savages, and the gun
-shots, were the cries of defiance from those within the stockade who had
-rallied to the fight, discharging their muskets as fast as they could
-load. So quickly had the attack of the Indians been met, due to the
-vigilance of the sentinels, that only a few of the red men gained the
-top of the palisades. These had been shot down, and the van of the
-storming force had been obliged to retreat, but they fired from behind
-rocks and trees, some of the bullets wounding our soldiers.
-
-I reached the stockade at a point where there were none of my men, just
-as one savage, his scalp lock gay with feathers, gained the top of the
-posts, and with reckless bravery leaped down inside. No sooner had he
-recovered his footing than he dashed straight at me. I was so surprised
-at the suddenness of his appearance and action, that I stood still for a
-moment.
-
-The Indian raised his arm, there was a flash of light, and his tomahawk
-grazed my temple, cutting the skin slightly. Then the fellow sprang at
-me. But my sword was out, and ere he reached me I had run him through
-the body. So he never threw any more tomahawks.
-
-The attack on the fort was becoming more fierce every second. I was
-startled to see that the sun had gone down, and that it would be dark in
-a little while. This was borne upon me when I saw the ruddy reflection
-of a fire which the Indians had kindled in front of the block. It shone
-on the logs, but cast into shadow the savages who were behind it. Thus
-they could see whatever went on in the place, while we were blinded by
-the glare, and could not observe them.
-
-Our only hope lay in keeping up a rapid fire, so that they might not get
-near enough to charge. And this hope was bound to become futile soon.
-Indeed our position was most trying. I was encouraging my men all I
-could, firing a musket every time I saw so much as a finger of the enemy
-exposed, and all the while trying to devise some plan to beat off the
-foe when Captain Carteret sent a messenger to bid me come to him.
-Telling the men to be as sparing of the powder as they could, and to
-never leave the loops for an instant, I went to the commander.
-
-I found him loading and firing away at a great rate. He took me to one
-side.
-
-“I’ve been noticing some sort of a movement among the Indians at the
-rear of the place,” he said. “I fear they are up to some trick. It looks
-as if they were carrying brush and branches of trees about.”
-
-“That means but one thing,” I said.
-
-“What?”
-
-“They are going to smoke and burn us out. Going to try us by fire as
-well as by bullets.”
-
-“To the tower,” he rejoined, “we can see what they are doing from
-there.”
-
-It was as I had said. Already the savages had piled up a big heap of
-brush within a short distance of the north wall of the palisade.
-
-“Well,” said Carteret grimly, “I guess they mean to get at us after
-all.”
-
-“It looks so,” said I.
-
-“Have you any plan?” inquired the Captain.
-
-“Have you?” I asked, but he made no reply.
-
-The sight of one of our men rolling out a keg of powder, from which to
-distribute a supply, gave me an idea.
-
-“How much powder have we?” I asked of Carteret.
-
-“Three kegs,” he answered. “Two of a hundred and fifty pounds’ weight
-each, and one smaller.”
-
-“It might serve,” I said, half to myself.
-
-“What?” asked my companion.
-
-Then I told him a plan I had. We went down from the tower.
-
-“Bring the powder here,” I said, “the two large barrels,” and it was
-fetched by four men, two carrying a keg between them. At my direction
-they also got some strong rope. I called Carteret out of hearing of the
-men.
-
-“What I am going to do has some danger in it,” I said, “and, seeing that
-I may not return, I charge you to care for--for Mistress Lucille,
-after--well--after I am dead.”
-
-“She shall be to me as my own daughter,” he exclaimed, grasping my hand
-heartily.
-
-“This is what I will do,” I said. “The Indians are so busy carrying
-brush now that they are giving little heed to aught else, even to each
-other. I believe I can go out among them under cover of the dark, escape
-detection, and help them at their work.”
-
-“What serves that?”
-
-“Much, I hope,” was my reply. “I did not tell you all of the plan
-before. My brush will be of good barrel staves, and within those same
-staves will be powder. I will hide the two barrels in the brush-heap,
-which I can easily do in the confusion, light the slow matches fastened
-to them, come back to the block--if I can--then wait for what happens.”
-
-“What will happen?”
-
-“If all goes as I hope,” I said, “the Indians will be gathered about the
-brush heap setting it on fire. Then will come my explosion.”
-
-“Good!” exclaimed Carteret. “That ought to serve our purpose. If it only
-kills enough of the devils the rest will be so frightened that they will
-not remain long in the neighborhood of Elizabeth. But can you unaided
-carry those two barrels over the palisade?”
-
-“I have done heavier things,” I answered, thinking of the Salem press.
-
-“It is a risk,” remarked the Captain. “Once among them it will go hard
-with you if their lynx eyes spy you out.”
-
-“Which is just what I do not intend them to do,” I said. “There is a
-dead Indian within the stockade. I will put on his feathers, adopt his
-style of dress, and play at being a savage.”
-
-“’Tis somewhat foolhardy,” commented Carteret, “but you are a brave man,
-and we have need of such now.”
-
-“Any man would be brave, if he fought for what I do,” was the reply.
-
-“Then go,” responded the commander, “and may the Lord go with you.”
-
-So I made my preparations.
-
-It was a matter of a few minutes to strip from the dead Indian his
-feathered head-dress with which I managed to decorate myself so that, in
-the dark, I might pass for a red man. I took off my jacket and trousers,
-slipping on the breeches of the savage, and, when thus attired I rubbed
-the upper part of my body, my face and hands, with damp powder, so that
-my white skin might not betray me.
-
-During this time the firing was not so brisk, either within or without,
-for our men were saving their powder, and the Indians were busy heaping
-up brush. The pile was now as large as a house, being within a few feet
-of the stockade. It was between us and the foe, so we had little chance
-to fire at them on that side of the block.
-
-It was fairly dark now, but we saw the savages snatching up brands from
-the fire they had kindled in front and running with them to the large
-heap.
-
-Carteret helped me make my last arrangements. I selected a place to get
-over the stockade, that seemed to be somewhat screened from observation.
-The powder kegs were tied to a rope. I scaled the logs, got on top,
-hauled the barrels up, and let them down on the outside. Then I
-scrambled down. For the first time I was a little afraid. Not so much
-for what might happen to me, as for those I had left behind--for
-Lucille. It was no small risk, too, this taking of nearly all the powder
-from the fort. But it seemed the best we could do.
-
-At the foot of the stockade I fastened the kegs over my shoulders with
-the rope, one keg behind and the other in front. Up to this time I had
-been hidden by the black shadow of the stockade, but now I was to emerge
-into the open, when the deception I was practicing might be evident. The
-barrels on my back and breast bulged out like some deformity; no light
-load, either. I gathered up some brush, arranged it over the kegs as
-well as I could and stepped boldly out.
-
-Before I had gone far, I picked up a large branch that some Indian had
-dropped. This served as a screen for me, as I held it over my shoulder,
-and stooped as I plodded on. I must have borne some resemblance to the
-dusky, brush-laden figures all about me, for several savages passed
-close by me, and gave no sign that I was not one of them.
-
-I nearly dropped my load, when, as I was near the pile, a tall Indian,
-who seemed to be a chief, addressed some words to me. I recalled that
-there were red men from several different tribes mingled together, so I
-merely grunted in my throat, which sounds, I hoped, he would take for an
-answer in his tongue. He appeared to do so, for he passed on, leaving me
-alone, though in a cold sweat from the danger.
-
-I was now in the midst of the Indians. They were all about me, hurrying
-to and fro, getting in each others’ way, all the while adding to the
-size of the pile of brush and wood. I crouched lower and lower, as I
-neared the common centre, seeming to stoop under the weight of my
-burden. The middle of the outer circle of the stack was where I wanted
-to put the powder, that its force might be extended over a large space.
-As I neared the spot I noted but one Indian near me. He had a small
-tree-top, which he cast on the heap. As he turned away to get more fuel,
-I managed to get rid of the kegs of powder. I rolled them under the edge
-of the brush, working quickly and in silence. The fuses, which were made
-of a number of slow matches fastened together, I trailed out on the
-ground as far as they would go.
-
-A loud call in the Indian tongue was now given. It was taken up, being
-repeated from mouth to mouth, with different inflections. Soon I saw
-what seemed like fireflies moving about in the darkness. But they were
-human insects, and the lights they bore were brands to ignite the huge
-pile of brush, which was so large that it needed to be set ablaze in
-many places at once.
-
-I lighted the fuse, the flash of my tinder-box being unnoticed amid so
-many lights. There were no less than two hundred savages in a circle
-about the heap, many busy setting it on fire. From the forest all around
-more Indians were hastening to be ready for the rush, when the flames
-had burned a way for them. I saw the spark of the fuse spluttering along
-the ground, eating its way to the powder. It would burn for two minutes.
-Then I ran for the stockade. As I did so I went, full-tilt, into a
-half-naked savage.
-
-He held a torch, the light of which must have showed him I was not of
-his people. He opened his mouth to yell an alarm, but I knocked the
-brand from his hand; then, while he stood still in surprise, I struck
-him in the face with my fist. He staggered back, but before he could
-recover, I was at the foot of the palisade. I heard him yell, as I
-grasped the rope I had left dangling, but there was so much shouting and
-crying out, that his was unnoticed. As I went up, hand over hand, I saw
-that the pile was on fire in many places.
-
-Down I jumped inside the stockade. Carteret met me.
-
-“What success?” he asked quickly.
-
-“All is well so far,” I said.
-
-“Edward!” exclaimed a voice.
-
-I turned, to see Lucille standing behind the Captain. I caught her in my
-arms.
-
-“To the block!” I cried. “The explosion will occur in half a minute.”
-
-Lucille clung in fright to me.
-
-“Are all the men back away from the north wall?” I called to Carteret.
-
-“Yes,” he shouted back.
-
-“What is it, Edward?” sobbed Lucille.
-
-“It is life or death,” I answered, as I ran with her into the block
-house.
-
-The savages were yelling in chorus, like ten thousand devils now. The
-flames were beginning to take hold of the dry brush, which was crackling
-and snapping as if hungry to get at us. Inside the little fort were
-huddled all that was left of the defenders, men, women and children. I
-set Lucille down, but kept my arm about her. The fuses should have
-burned to the end by this time. We could hear ourselves breathing while
-we waited. Carteret turned to speak to me.
-
-The next instant there was a glare that lighted up the sky, turning the
-space between the palisade and the block from darkness into a noon-day
-brightness!
-
-Then a crash so loud, so terrifying, so awful, that the very earth and
-sky seemed rent asunder as by a hundred thunderbolts. The solid ground
-rocked; a very cradle in the hand of a giant. A great wind blew, howling
-through the openings in the logs.
-
-The sound deafened us. The blast swayed us as if a hurricane had swooped
-down from the sky. Men caught their breath. Women screamed. Children
-wailed as in fright at some unseen spirit of the night.
-
-We heard the north wall of the stockade give a rending crack, succeeded
-by a mighty crash. Then it fell outward, where the pile of brush had
-been.
-
-As for the block it pitched and seemed to toss--a frail ship on the
-billows of the earth.
-
-To the terrible noise and glare succeeded silence and darkness as of the
-tomb. Slowly our sight and hearing came back.
-
-Carteret and I staggered from the block and looked to where the north
-wall had been. It was not there. In its place was a chasm, so deep that
-it would have hidden the fort. Its sides were lined with blazing brands
-from the scattered brush-heap. By the light of these, and by the glimmer
-of the stars, we observed scores upon scores of silent dark forms in the
-big hole, or near it on the earth. Toward the edge of the forest we saw
-crouching forms hurrying off to bury themselves deeper in the woods,
-away from the terror behind them.
-
-We were saved!
-
-The savages not killed had fled away, but of all that band scarce a
-quarter lived to tell the tale.
-
-A great cheer went up from the crowd within the block, when it was seen
-what had occurred. Men cast their muskets aside, embraced their wives
-and kissed their little ones.
-
-“May the Lord bless you,” said Carteret to me, “it was you who saved
-us.”
-
-“Aye! Aye! A cheer for Captain Amherst!” cried several men. They gave
-it, crowding about, trying to clasp me by the hand.
-
-“It was nothing--nothing,” I protested, “any one of you would have done
-the same, had you the chance.”
-
-But they would not have it so, and, at length, weary of the praise, I
-slipped away, to resume my own civilized dress.
-
-The women busied themselves getting a late supper, which was eaten with
-thankful hearts. After it was over, Lucille made me tell her all that
-had taken place.
-
-“And who carried out the powder?” she asked when I had finished.
-
-“That was a small matter,” I said. “Having a little strength, more,
-perhaps, than some of the others, I did it,” was my answer.
-
-“Were you not afraid?” she inquired.
-
-“Only that I might not again look into your dear eyes.”
-
-She hid them from me with her hand. I pulled the little palm away,
-kissing her on the lips.
-
-So we sat talking until it was late. The block became quiet, for it was
-filled with weary men and sorrowful women, who needed rest. We bade each
-other good-night, Lucille going to the women’s apartment, while I
-started for Captain Carteret’s room, where I was to sleep.
-
-As I walked along the passage, I thought I heard a footstep behind me. I
-turned quickly. At the far end of the corridor, where a single candle
-threw a fitful gleam, I saw Simon.
-
-He appeared to be gliding along, as if afraid of being seen. He slipped
-in an open doorway when he saw me turn.
-
-Was he following me? What did he want?
-
-Carteret was not yet in. I threw myself down on a bench, meaning but to
-rest until the Captain arrived. But, so weary was I, that, no sooner had
-my head fallen back than I was asleep.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XXVII.
- SIMON.
-
-
-There seemed to be much tumult in the block when I awoke. Captain
-Carteret was writing at a small table, as I sat up, rubbing my eyes.
-
-“Well, have you slept enough?” he asked.
-
-“I could rest longer,” I said, “but it is not my habit to sleep much
-after the sun is first up in the morning.”
-
-“Morning,” he laughed. “Why, man, ’tis long past noon now. I would not
-let them disturb you, though many were clamoring for a look at the hero
-of the occasion.”
-
-“Enough,” I said. “I had much rather have a breakfast than pose as a
-hero, which I am not.”
-
-“Breakfast in the afternoon?”
-
-“Are you jesting?”
-
-“Look at the sun,” was his reply.
-
-I glanced from a window. It was half way down in the west. I had slept
-nearly eighteen hours.
-
-“We will soon have supper,” went on the Captain. “Meanwhile I’ll let you
-know how matters stand.”
-
-Scouts had been sent out, he said, and, for miles around had found no
-trace of Indians, save the dead ones. One wounded savage had been
-brought in. With what little English he had, he told how the war party
-had fled to the four winds. They had been given a severe lesson, he
-said, and one that would put an end to Indian uprisings in New Jersey
-for many years.
-
-Men had been set at work burying the bodies. Others were rebuilding the
-stockade, and some were detailed to lay to rest our dead.
-
-Many families, who lived near by, had gone back to their homes, to begin
-life where they had left off when the Indians came. Wagons laden with
-household goods were leaving the fort. Only a few farmhouses had been
-burned by the savages.
-
-“I am writing to Governor Phips,” said Carteret, “to tell him you are
-here, and send him back the warrant for witchcraft, which is of no use,
-since he has pardoned you. That was a marvelous tale you told, of the
-days in Salem.”
-
-“Do not recall them,” I begged. “They were days of sorrow and peril.”
-
-“Lieutenant Jenkins is about to sail for Boston in a few days,” went on
-the Captain, “and he will take this missive to Sir William Phips. So
-that matter is ended.”
-
-“What of Simon?”
-
-“I have not seen him since that time we were all in the room together,”
-said Carteret, “but he is doubtless about somewhere. He will probably
-want to leave this place now. If you wish I will offer him passage to
-Boston with Master Jenkins. He can join his friends there.”
-
-“I think I should like that,” I replied. “For, somehow, I am not at ease
-while he is about, particularly as Mistress Lucille is here.”
-
-“Then he goes to Boston, friend Amherst.”
-
-The Captain and I fell to talking of the future. Supper was served ere
-we had finished, and we continued over the meal. He asked me if I would
-not like to settle in Elizabeth.
-
-“Or there is a little town, called Newark, on the Passaic River,” he
-added, “not far from here. That is a pleasant place, I am told. The
-Indians, I hear, are most kind and trustworthy, as they were here before
-this uprising, trading with the settlers in land and furs, greatly to
-the advantage of the town folk. You might like it there.”
-
-“I will make no plans until I have talked with Mistress Lucille,” I
-replied.
-
-“That reminds me,” exclaimed Carteret. “She sent in three times, while
-you were asleep, to have me let her know the instant you were awake. I
-forgot all about it.”
-
-I did not stay to eat more, when I heard that. I found Lucille sitting
-alone in the doorway of the women’s room, looking at the men repairing
-the stockade.
-
-“It seemed as if you were never coming,” she said, when I had greeted
-her. “Captain Carteret would not let me see you. But never mind, you are
-with me now,” and she blushed at her boldness.
-
-“I wanted to talk to you, Edward, and see if you had made any plans for
-the future,” went on Lucille, after a pause. “Have you thought that our
-coming here was an accident, and that I can scarce go traveling about
-with you as if--as if----”
-
-Her face crimsoned again.
-
-“Aye, we are like strangers in a strange land,” I said bitterly, for now
-that the strain of battle was over, I saw the plight in which we were;
-myself penniless.
-
-“I have the clothes I stand in,” I added.
-
-“Nothing more?” asked Lucille, softly.
-
-“My sword,” I answered, not looking up, for my mind was busy.
-
-“No more?”
-
-“My horse.”
-
-“No more?”
-
-Her voice went so strange that I looked at her. Her eyes were dim with
-tears.
-
-“Forgive, me, sweetheart,” I cried, clasping her close to me. “I have
-you, and, with you, more than all the world.”
-
-“You were near to forgetting your great wealth,” she said, mockingly,
-while she struggled to free herself. “Perchance ’tis of little value,
-after all.”
-
-“Nay, sweet,” I replied. “’Tis so great that I wonder at myself for
-possessing it.”
-
-“Yet you thought of your sword first.”
-
-“Forgive me.”
-
-“And then your horse.”
-
-“Will you not forgive?”
-
-“And of me last,” she persisted, trying to escape from my arms.
-
-“It was because with them I won you,” I whispered.
-
-“I shall be jealous of your sword.”
-
-“No more,” I cried, drawing it from the scabbard. “’Tis a pretty piece
-of steel, but, if it should come between us, see----”
-
-I raised it high in the air, my hands on either end.
-
-“I’ll snap it in twain.”
-
-I brought the weapon half way down, as though I would break it across my
-knee.
-
-“Nay! Nay! Edward!” she exclaimed, catching my arm. “I did but jest. Put
-it up. There is need of a sword in this land.”
-
-I sheathed my blade, sitting down beside Lucille.
-
-“Seriously, now, what is to become of me?” she asked.
-
-“Why,” I answered, as gaily as I could, “since you are mine, you must
-follow my poor fortunes, it would seem; that is, if you are willing to
-follow one who has but----”
-
-“But his sword,” she broke in, smiling at me.
-
-“Nay, I had not finished. But his love, his sword, his horse, and the
-clothes on his back.”
-
-“Except for my love, I am even poorer than that,” confessed Lucille,
-“unless I could go back to Salem, and that I will not. There was some
-little money that my father left, but it was nearly spent. I have no
-sword, no horse, and only this poor sea-stained dress.”
-
-“Yet in it I would rather have you than the most richly robed lady in
-all the world,” I cried.
-
-“Come,” I went on, “we are betrothed,” and I took her by the hand. “Let
-us go to the good dominie here, ask him to join us in wedlock, then we
-may seek our fortune as man and wife.”
-
-“What? Wed in this frock?” Lucille looked at it as if it was all rags,
-but indeed it was a pretty dress.
-
-“What matters the gown?” I asked.
-
-“Why, I would be the laughing stock of the Colony if I plighted my troth
-in this,” responded Lucille. “We must wait until I can get some new
-garments.”
-
-“From where?”
-
-Then we both laughed, for, between us we had not so much as a shilling,
-I having spent my last on my journey. The laugh did us good, and we felt
-brighter after it.
-
-While we were talking Captain Carteret passed. He was not going to stop,
-but I called to him.
-
-“What now?” he asked.
-
-“We were talking of the future, Lucille and I. We are betrothed, as you
-know, Carteret, and I have just urged her to come with me to the
-dominie’s.”
-
-“Surely,” he exclaimed. “That would be fine. We could trim up the block
-house, and have a regular wedding feast. Mistress Carteret would be glad
-to help, for there has been very little merrymaking, of late, and a
-wedding would be the very thing to take the gloom away. When can it be?
-Next week, or the week after.”
-
-“Next week!” cried Lucille, with such an accent of horror in her voice
-that Carteret and I had to laugh.
-
-“Why, you see, Captain,” I went on, never heeding Lucille’s sly punches
-in my ribs, “she says she has no clothes; a woman’s ever ready excuse.
-Her gowns were left behind in Salem town. She will not be wed in the
-garments which were drenched by the sea. So, I fear, we must wait until
-I can raise a few pounds, and then----”
-
-But Lucille, with a reproachful glance at me, ran away, leaving the
-Captain and I alone.
-
-“I marvel at you,” said Carteret.
-
-“Why?”
-
-“Talking of raising a few pounds. There is not a man in the Colony,
-myself included, who would not be glad to give you----”
-
-I stopped him with a look.
-
-“Tut, tut, man, do not go off half-cocked, I was not going to offer you
-charity. But if I can put you in the way to get a position that
-pays----”
-
-“My everlasting thanks are yours,” I interrupted.
-
-“I am about to resign the command of the forces here,” Carteret went on,
-“for my brother, the Governor, has some plans afoot, and needs my aid
-elsewhere. I have talked with the men, and they all agree that, after I
-left, they would have no other captain than yourself. The pay is not
-large, for the Colony is young yet, but you and Mistress Lucille could
-live in such comfort as there is here, on it. What say you? Will you
-take it?”
-
-I could not answer at first. It seemed almost too good to be true. After
-all our troubles to find a haven at last, and one that promised so much.
-
-“Carteret,” I began, brokenly, “I cannot thank you enough. I----” but
-there was something in my voice that would not let me go on.
-
-“Then do not try,” he said, cheerfully. “I know how you feel. I will
-carry your answer to the men. They are waiting for it. The sooner I turn
-the command of the Colony over to you, the quicker I can get away. Is it
-yes or no?”
-
-“Yes, with all my heart,” I said, giving him my hand, and there was a
-lump as big as an egg in my throat.
-
-Carteret turned away, while I hastened to find Lucille and tell her the
-good news. She could have her wedding gown now, I told myself.
-
-She was not in the room with the other women. It was getting dusk, and I
-hastened through many apartments in search of her. Once or twice I
-called her name, but there was no answer. I went out of the block. Near
-the door I confronted Simon. His face was so pale that I was startled.
-
-“What is the matter, man? Are you ill?” I asked.
-
-“No,” he answered, huskily. “I am not sick. I was thinking of Sir
-George. I am without a master now.”
-
-“I hear you are to leave us, Simon,” I said.
-
-“Yes,” he replied, “Captain Carteret has been kind enough to get me
-passage to Boston. Thence I can sail for England, to Sir George’s
-kinfolk.”
-
-“Well, a pleasant voyage,” I called, as I was about to pass on.
-
-“Wait,” he said, thickly.
-
-I turned around.
-
-“Captain Amherst,” he began, “you have much reason to hate me.”
-
-“Oh, that is past and gone,” I responded, as heartily as I could, for I
-did not like the man, and indeed, though he only acted for another, he
-was a bitter foe.
-
-“Perhaps I should not have done what I did,” he went on, “but Sir George
-swore me to an oath.”
-
-“’Tis past,” I said. “You only served your master.”
-
-“Then you forgive me?”
-
-“Aye, surely,” I murmured, impatient to be away and find Lucille.
-
-Simon came toward me, holding out his hand. I marked that it was his
-left, but I was too hurried to give it a thought, so I clasped it
-firmly.
-
-His fingers closed over mine with the grip of a vise. He pulled me near
-him. His right hand shot out from his jacket, beneath which it was
-hidden. In it I caught the glitter of a knife. I saw him raise it above
-my head.
-
-There was no time for me to draw my sword. I threw up my left arm to
-protect my head. Simon’s hand came down.
-
-There was a pain in my arm, as if a hot iron had seared me. Then I felt
-it, ten times as hot, in my side. My ears rang with the roar of waters;
-my eyes saw only blackness.
-
-I felt a warm gush of blood; I heard a confused murmur, a woman’s shrill
-scream--Lucille’s voice. Then Simon leaned over me, as I was
-falling--falling--falling--down into some bottomless pit.
-
-“Traitor and murderer!” he cried. “I have kept my oath!”
-
-It was night.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XXVIII.
- THE END OF CAPTAIN AMHERST.
-
-
-For weeks and weeks, it seemed to me, I was living over again the scenes
-through which I had passed in later years. Now I was charging at the
-battle of Sedgemoor, then before Judge Jeffreys, with my comrades. Next
-came wanderings, fightings, travelings. In my delirium I went through
-the witch press once more, with many a struggle to escape. I fought the
-French and Indians; I swam in the sea to save Lucille. I went down in
-great caverns of the ocean to bring her back to me, and saw her lying
-amid rainbow colored shells, tangled weeds weaving their long green
-sinuous lengths into her hair.
-
-I fought the duel with Sir George, feeling his steel pierce my side like
-a big knife which was turned ’round and ’round. Horrible red Indians,
-with fierce painted faces came to torment me, though I fought them off
-time after time. I heard over again the explosion of the powder kegs;
-felt the mighty wind swoop down; was rocked to and fro by the blast.
-
-I listened to my voice shouting out, only it did not sound like me, but
-as some one else afar off. At intervals I went floating through the air,
-a very bird on wings. Then I looked back to see a body that looked like
-mine lying on a bed. And the features were changed; the frame that had
-been robust was like a boy’s.
-
-Then gradually all these things passed away, so that there was nothing
-but darkness and daylight; daylight and darkness. Ever through it all, a
-dear dim ghost of one I loved came and went--a woman. When she was near,
-whether it was day or night, I was at ease; her cool hand chilled the
-fever that burned in my brain. When she was gone it was dark, though it
-was day.
-
-Out of all this peace came at length.
-
-One day I opened my eyes seeing aright.
-
-I was in a room which the sun entered to make bright and cheerful. The
-beams overhead reflected back the light, a fire on the hearth threw out
-a genial warmth, the kettle on the hob hummed and hissed, a great mother
-cat, by the chimney place, purred in contentment.
-
-There was a movement in the room. A woman stood over me looking down. I
-seemed to know, rather than see, that she was the woman of my
-dreams--Lucille.
-
-I glanced up at her. Her face was alight with love and tenderness. I
-tried to speak--to rise--but the strength, of which I used to boast, had
-left me. I could only murmur her name.
-
-“Dear heart,” she whispered. “Thank God, you know me. Oh, Edward, it was
-so long--oh! so long--that I stood by you, only to hear you fighting all
-your battles over again, with never a sign to show that you knew I was
-near. Oh, I am so glad!”
-
-Then, woman like, she burst into tears, which she tried in vain to
-check.
-
-“My, my! What’s this?” called a cheery voice. “Come, Mistress Lucille,
-have you no better caution than to weep in here. Fie upon you. All hope
-is not gone yet.”
-
-A woman in a gray dress with a spotless apron over it, bustled to my
-bed.
-
-“I am not crying, Madame Carteret,” said Lucille with indignation in her
-tone.
-
-“’Tis much like it,” said the other.
-
-“Well, then, if I am, it is for joy. Edward--I mean Captain Amherst--is
-sensible again. He tried to speak my name, for he knew me when I turned
-his pillow.”
-
-“Is it possible?”
-
-Madame Carteret, wife of the Captain, in whose house I was, came over to
-look down on me. I smiled; it was all I could do, but that was as good
-to me as a hearty laugh, since I had come back from the land of terrible
-dreams. The Captain’s wife bustled away. Lucille, drying her eyes,
-smiling through her tears, came to stand near me.
-
-“What has happened?” I whispered, but she prevented any more questions
-by placing her fingers on my lips. I kissed the rosy tips, whereat she
-drew them quickly away. Then I repeated what I had said.
-
-“Hush,” she replied. “You are not to talk. The doctor says you are too
-weak.”
-
-Indeed I was, as I found when I tried to rise, for I fell back like a
-babe. Just then Madame Carteret came back with some broth in a bowl. It
-tasted so well that I disposed of all of it. She laughed as one well
-pleased.
-
-The last drop gone I sighed from very comfort. Lucille, taking pity on
-the anxious look of inquiry I turned on her, related all that had
-transpired.
-
-“I was coming through the corridor in the dark,” she said, “and I saw
-Simon strike at you. Oh I was so frightened! I screamed when his knife
-glittered. He started, moving his hand just a trifle as he heard me.
-Perchance that saved your life, for Doctor Graydon, who has been in long
-attendance on you, said that had the point gone an inch higher it would
-have touched the heart, and that would have been an end of Captain
-Amherst.”
-
-I looked the love and devotion at Lucille I could not express in
-actions.
-
-“Even at that,” she went on, “there was a grievous wound in your arm and
-one in your side. For six weeks you have been in that bed, knowing none
-of us, and at times so far away from us, that we feared to see you
-travel off altogether.”
-
-“But I came back to you,” I said softly.
-
-“Yes, dear; but you must not talk now. I will tell you the rest.
-
-“After he had stabbed you Simon dropped his knife and fled. I ran to
-you, but you were as one dead. Captain Carteret and some of the men
-carried you into the house. We have nursed you ever since, Madame
-Carteret and I.”
-
-I looked at Lucille’s face, noting that she had grown thin and pale, but
-yet more beautiful. I pressed her hand to my lips.
-
-“Simon did not escape,” she went on after a pause. “Not long afterward
-his body was found in the woods, an Indian arrow through his heart. So
-now, dear, horrible as it all was, our enemies are gone. We have only
-ourselves left.”
-
-Then while the shadows began to lengthen, the day to die, I fell asleep
-again. Not as before, disturbed by unpleasant dreams, but as a tired
-child. When I awoke in the morning I felt like a new man. The blood of
-health flowed through my veins; I felt the strength coming back to me.
-Lucille entered; a streak of sunshine. She smiled at me. I had propped
-myself up in bed, and that sign that I was on the mend seemed to give
-her pleasure.
-
-“We must have Master Graydon in to see the improvement,” she said. “He
-will doubtless change the physic, giving you some herbs that will put
-you quickly on the way to recovery.”
-
-“I pray so,” I answered, “for I am full sick of staying here like a
-woman.”
-
-“Are you then so ready to leave us?”
-
-“Only that I may make ready to stay with you forever,” at which Lucille
-blushed prettily.
-
-We talked, or rather Lucille did, and I listened, of many things. She
-told how she had heard I was to be in command of the military force of
-Elizabeth; that I was already considered the Captain. Every day since I
-had been wounded some of the men had called to see how I was. As for
-Captain Carteret, he had gone to London on business, and would not
-return to the Colony until spring.
-
-Matters were progressing well in the town. The Indians had buried the
-hatchet, having had enough of fighting, and were at peace with the
-settlers. The crops, too, though suffering somewhat from the
-depredations of the red men, were plenty, so fertile was the land. The
-store-houses and barns were better filled than any year since the Colony
-had been in existence, and winter, which was already at hand, would find
-the village in good shape.
-
-The repairs to the block house had been finished, the few houses in the
-town that had been burned by the Indians were being rebuilt. A band of
-settlers had come from Pennsylvania, so that we now numbered some two
-hundred men, and nearly half as many women.
-
-It was late in November, the leaves were all off the trees, there had
-been little flurries of snow, the winds were mournful, and on every side
-one could see that winter was fairly come. I had been able to leave my
-bed. One afternoon, when the sun was setting behind a bank of gray
-clouds that promised a storm Lucille and I stood at the west window
-looking out.
-
-“It is going to snow,” said she, mournfully.
-
-“I love the white flakes,” I said cheerfully.
-
-“They are so cold, so cheerless, so dead, so cruel to the flowers and
-birds. Why do you love them?”
-
-“Because they dance down so merrily. Because they cover up the dull
-brown earth from us until it blossoms out again. Because,” and I took
-her hand, “it was through a snow storm that I went to find my love.”
-
-“Poor reason, Edward.”
-
-“The best of reasons, sweetheart.”
-
-Days came and went, bringing me back health and strength. Slowly I
-walked about the house until I came to venturing out into the snow when
-the weather was fine. I became acquainted with the towns-folk, a thing I
-had not had time to do before. To while away the hours, some of the men
-who had fought with me in the block would come in. Then, sitting beside
-the blazing logs on the hearth, we would fight the battle all over
-again.
-
-Lucille was ever near me, her sweet face always in view, when I looked
-up, smiling with the love in her eyes.
-
-The winter snows melted. Green grass and shrubs began to peep up through
-the warm earth. The buds on the trees swelled with the sap, bears
-crawled from hollow logs, the birds flew northward.
-
-The songsters of early spring flitted about the house as I sat in front
-one day watching them gather material for their nests. It reminded me
-that I had better see to providing a nest for my song bird. Lucille sat
-near me. I had not spoken for a space.
-
-“Are you watching the birds?” she asked.
-
-“Aye. Thinking that I might well be about their trade.”
-
-Lucille did not answer.
-
-“Sweetheart,” I said softly, “’tis little time we have had for love
-since I found you the second time, and I would know whether you are of
-the same mind that you were. For I love you now; I will love you always,
-I love you more and more every day. Tell me: Do you love me yet? Has the
-time brought no change?”
-
-How anxiously did I wait for the answer. Now that I was broken in
-strength, with not the prospect of attaining distinction in arms that I
-once had, sick, enfeebled in body, but not in spirit, could I hope that
-she still loved me?
-
-“Tell me,” I whispered softly, “has time wrought no change, Lucille?”
-
-She let the lids fall over her eyes, then with a little tremor, she
-looked into my face. Sweetly as the murmur of a south wind in the trees
-she said:
-
-“Time has wrought no change.” A pause. “I love you, with all my heart.”
-
-Then, ere she could answer more, I had her in my arms, from which she
-struggled to be free, at first, but, when she found I held her close,
-she was quiet. I kissed her on the mouth.
-
-“Don’t, Edward,” she cried in sudden terror, “some one is coming.”
-
-I resumed my seat on the bench.
-
-“I have something to tell you,” I said, after a little. “You must not
-call me Edward.”
-
-“Oh, then,” with a mock air of admiration, “Captain Amherst, Your
-Excellency, I pray your pardon.”
-
-“Nor yet Captain Amherst,” I went on, smiling.
-
-“What then, may it please you, sir?”
-
-“That is it.”
-
-“What?”
-
-“Sir.”
-
-“Sir who or what?”
-
-“Sir Francis Dane,” I replied, with as grand a manner as I could assume,
-having a deep cut in my side.
-
-For a moment Lucille glanced at me, then I saw that she feared my mind
-was wandering again.
-
-“Come into the house,” she said, soothingly, “’tis too chilling out
-here. Come in, and Master Graydon shall prescribe for you. Come,
-Edward.”
-
-“Not Edward.”
-
-“Well, then, Sir Francis Dane,” spoken as one might to a peevish child.
-“The strain has been too much for you, Ed--Sir Francis. Go and lie down,
-until you are recovered.”
-
-I burst into a laugh, whereat Lucille seemed all the more frightened. I
-could not cease from laughing as I looked at her.
-
-She took me gently by the arm, and tried to lead me in, but I stooped
-over, kissing her.
-
-“Do not be frightened, sweet,” I said. “I am not wandering in my mind. I
-have a secret to tell you.”
-
-“Will it frighten me?”
-
-“I hope not.”
-
-Then I told her of the cause for my coming to America, because I wished
-to escape those who would imprison me for having fought on the side of
-the defeated King Monmouth. I was Sir Francis Dane, I said, but had
-taken the name of Captain Edward Amherst, as a measure of safety. When I
-had made an end I smiled down on her.
-
-“Then it is good bye to Captain Amherst,” she remarked.
-
-“Aye, ’tis the end of him,” I said.
-
-“I am not sure but that I liked him better than I will Sir Francis
-Dane,” went on Lucille. “For the latter is much of a stranger to me.”
-
-“Will you have to begin to love over again?” I asked.
-
-“Nay,” was her only reply, in a low voice.
-
-“Sir Francis, Sir Francis,” she continued, after a moment’s pause. “Hum,
-’tis a rather nice name.” Then she seemed to be thinking.
-
-“Why,” she exclaimed, suddenly, “it is a titled name, is it not? You
-must be a person of distinction over in England.”
-
-“I was,” I replied, dryly. Sedgemoor had taken all the distinction from
-me, depriving me of lands and title.
-
-“Hum, Sir Francis Dane. I wonder if he will care for plain Lucille de
-Guilfort,” with a playful air of sadness.
-
-My answer was a kiss.
-
-“I love you, Lucille,” I said fervently, when she had escaped from me.
-
-“Well,” she remarked, plaintively, “I loved you as plain Captain
-Amherst, perforce I must do so, since you are now Sir Francis Dane,
-accustomed to being obeyed, I presume.”
-
-“To the letter,” I answered, sternly.
-
-“Now that is over,” I went on, “when are we to wed?”
-
-“Not too soon. Wait until spring.”
-
-“That will be in March.”
-
-“Oh! ’Tis too early. There is much to be done. Linen to make up, dresses
-to fashion and, indeed, if it were not for the kindness of Madame
-Carteret I would have no gown now, but the sorry garment you found me
-in.”
-
-“That is more precious to me than cloth of gold would be,” I replied.
-“The flutter of it, as the Eagle headed for shore, seemed to tell me you
-were there. But, since March is too early, it must be the next month,” I
-said, firmly.
-
-“Let it be so,” she responded, with a little sigh. “In April then; the
-month of tears and sunshine.”
-
-“Let us hope that ours will all be sunshine,” I suggested.
-
-“We have had enough of tears to make it so,” was her reply, as she
-smiled brightly.
-
-That matter being settled we had much more to talk of, the day and many
-succeeding ones, seeming all too short for us. I was recovering slowly,
-and was able to be all about. I took an active charge of the military
-matters of the town, for my wound was healing, and I hoped in a short
-time that I would be nearly as strong as I was before. I took up my
-abode with the innkeeper, for Lucille said it was not seemly that we
-should dwell under the same roof longer. She, however, remained with
-Madame Carteret, weaving and spinning in preparation for the spring.
-
-It was close to the first of April when news came one day that there was
-a ship down the bay, and that Captain Carteret had returned on her. This
-was a glad message for me, and I prepared to take a few of the men,
-marching down to meet him.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XXIX.
- AN ORDER FROM THE KING.
-
-
-I was half way on the road to the block house, to see if I could muster
-up a guard, with which to go down and meet the Captain, when I spied him
-coming along at a quick pace.
-
-“Well-a-day,” he cried, when he had caught sight of me. “This is quite a
-change, since I last saw you. Come, man, your hand.
-
-“Why,” he exclaimed, when I had gripped his palm, “you have some of your
-strength back again, I see--and feel.”
-
-“A little,” I replied, as I grasped his other hand, in heartiness to
-have him back once more.
-
-There were tears in my eyes. I did not try to hide them, for Carteret
-had been more than a brother to me; his good wife a very mother to
-Lucille. I think he felt my gratitude, for he did not speak, only
-returning my hand pressure.
-
-“Well,” he said again, after a little pause, while we walked on together
-toward his house, “this is better than being cooped up in the block,
-with those devils howling on the outside. Though,” he added, with a
-laugh, “we soon made them change their tune.”
-
-He asked me how long I had suffered from the attack of Simon, and what
-had become of the sailor. I told him what I had heard.
-
-“I did not like to leave you,” he said, “but the call for me was urgent.
-I thought I left you in safe hands, when Mistress Lucille took charge of
-the nursing.”
-
-“You did, indeed,” I replied.
-
-“How is she; and how progresses your courtship?”
-
-“Very well, to both questions. Since your kindness in turning this
-command over to me I have been assured of a livelihood; quiet, perhaps,
-compared to what I hoped for, but a sure one. ’Tis a place befitting a
-man who is about to take unto himself a wife.”
-
-“Then you are soon to wed?”
-
-“Within a fortnight. Lucille is busy now, preparing what she is pleased
-to term her linen. As for me I have little to get. I trust that from my
-wage here I can fit up some small house that will do for a time. I had
-hopes of taking her to a place befitting her station, to a fine home.
-But poverty is a hard taskmaster.”
-
-“Yet he drives light when love holds the reins.”
-
-“True,” I assented. “We shall not fare so badly, I hope.”
-
-“Then Mistress Lucille is prepared to face poverty with you?”
-
-“She is,” I said, “and seems happy in the prospect.”
-
-The Captain was laughing now. I looked at him to find the cause, but was
-at a loss.
-
-“You know I have been to London?” he inquired, after his merriment had
-spent itself.
-
-“Aye, so I heard.”
-
-“And to Colchester also.”
-
-“Nay; were you?” I asked, suddenly. That had been the home of the Danes
-for centuries.
-
-“To Colchester?”
-
-“Aye. And while there I heard somewhat of you.”
-
-“’Twas likely,” I answered, “seeing that my father, Sir Edward Dane,
-owned quite an estate there.”
-
-“It is of that same estate I would speak,” went on Carteret. “I found
-out more of your story than you had time to tell me hurriedly ere I
-sailed. Your offense against the crown had been nearly forgotten at
-court. Learning which, while I was in London, I set certain influences
-to work. I am not without friends in the King’s circles, and, between us
-we began planning to get back what of your father’s wealth we could,
-that you might enjoy it.
-
-“First, and it was a matter of no little difficulty, we had you granted
-a full and free pardon for all acts of treason of whatever nature. To
-bring this about after the way had been paved, I sought an audience with
-His Majesty. I have a little gift of eloquence, so I described to the
-King how you blew the heathen into the air. He listened to me more
-kindly after that. Being fond of fighting he made me tell him the whole
-circumstance, which I flatter myself I did with some credit to you. When
-I had finished the King clapped his hand down on his thigh, bursting out
-with:
-
-“‘By my sword, Carteret, but I could hardly have planned or executed it
-better myself,’ which you may take as a fine compliment, for His Majesty
-thinks himself a great soldier.”
-
-“’Twas as much your credit as mine,” I said to the Captain.
-
-“Well, never mind that. The King inquired all about you, also of Sir
-George Keith, whose acts I in no way glossed over, though he was my
-friend. His Majesty cut me short with: ‘Enough, enough, Carteret.’
-Calling for a quill and ink horn, he had signed a pardon ere I knew what
-he was about. There it is,” exclaimed Carteret, thrusting a legal
-looking paper, covered with red seals, into my hand. I took it, hardly
-able to speak a word.
-
-“Once that was done I breathed easier,” continued the Captain. “But His
-Majesty did not stop there. He called his secretary, who told the King,
-in answer to a question, that your father’s lands had been confiscated
-to the crown.
-
-“‘It is needful that we recompense your bold soldier somewhat,’ said His
-Majesty to me, when he had whispered for a time with his officers. ‘I
-have signed an order on my treasurer for ten thousand pounds, which you
-will convey to Sir Francis Dane, with my best wishes.’
-
-“I must have shown some surprise when His Majesty gave you the ‘sir,’
-for he said:
-
-“‘I have restored his title to him, Carteret. As for his estates, it is
-not likely that he would come back to claim them now, so I have given
-you, for him, what they are considered by my treasurer to be worth--ten
-thousand pounds. If, when you reach America, you find that he desires
-more----’
-
-“‘Oh, ’tis enough, Your Majesty,’ I said quickly, lest he might change
-his mind.
-
-“Then I bowed myself out, after thanking him most warmly in my name and
-your own.
-
-“I lost little time in hastening to the treasury in the palace where the
-King’s order was honored. I soon transacted what business I had in
-London, set sail again, and, after a pleasant voyage, here I am. As for
-the money, it is safe in my strong box at home. I stopped there ere I
-went in search of you. Mistress Lucille told me where you had started
-for.
-
-“Now, is not that good news?”
-
-I was beyond speaking, though I tried to thank him. I could only hold
-out my hand.
-
-“I’ll not grasp it until you promise to remember that it is a hand and
-not a sword hilt,” said the Captain, so earnestly, that I laughed ere I
-assured him that I would not grip him as hard as I did at first.
-
-Joy lent me such speed as we walked to the house, where I knew I would
-find Lucille, that Carteret called on me several times to halt, and to
-walk more slowly.
-
-“When you get as old as I am,” he said, “you will be glad to travel less
-speedily.”
-
-“Not with such good news as I carry,” was my answer.
-
-“I found him,” cried the Captain, as we entered the room where Lucille
-and Madame Carteret were seated.
-
-He went out for a minute. When he returned he had in each hand a stout
-sack. It was the money, some of it in gold, that clinked right merrily.
-Carteret came over, holding out the bags to me.
-
-I took one, laid it at Lucille’s feet, saying, as I smiled at her:
-
-“With all my worldly goods I thee endow.”
-
-The other sack I held out to Carteret.
-
-“It is yours,” I said, “according to all the laws of arms. Take it.”
-
-“Law or no law, I’ll have none of it,” he answered gruffly, I believe,
-to hide his feelings. “Begone with it. Place it with the other beside
-Mistress Lucille. Why,” he went on, “I have enough now to do the good
-wife and myself as long as we live, and there’s not a soul I care to
-leave any wealth to. Put it with the other. You will find a use for all
-of it--when you are wed.”
-
-I was forced to obey him, though I felt that he should have had a half
-share of what he got for me, but all my argument was in vain.
-
-Lucille and I were left alone in the room. She looked down on the sacks
-of gold, then up at me.
-
-“So you are Sir Francis, after all?” she asked.
-
-“It seems so,” was my reply. “How do you like the name?”
-
-“It has a wholesome sound,” she answered, repeating it over and over
-again. “But Edward was not so poor a one. It did much for me.”
-
-“So will Sir Francis, sweetheart,” I said.
-
-“However, since the King has given it back to you, I suppose you will
-keep it?”
-
-“I will, indeed. It is a proud name, and many brave men and fair women
-have been known by it.”
-
-It was getting late when we ceased talking, though we had said scarce
-half of what was in our minds.
-
-A week passed. There were but seven days more ere we would be wed. The
-block house had been fixed on as the place where the brief ceremony
-might fittingly be held. We had decided to make it a merry gathering,
-where all who would, might come and be happy.
-
-The weather was now that of a mild early spring. The tender green of the
-trees and shrubs, made the land a mass of verdure. Gardens were being
-made, farms plowed, sheep let out to pasture, and the colonists all
-around were busy. The town was prospering under the hand of Providence.
-All that remained to bring to mind the late Indian uprising were the
-ruins of a burned dwelling here and there. Back on the hillside was a
-sadder recollection; a few rough stones to mark the graves of those who
-had fallen in the great battle. To me there remained the scars on my arm
-and side, where Simon’s knife had entered, and the furrow of a bullet
-across one cheek.
-
-I would that some other pen could set down what is to follow. For,
-though I can tell poorly enough, perhaps, concerning battles, sieges and
-fighting, with which I am somewhat familiar, it is hard to tell of
-scenes of baking, stewing, cooking and sewing, which now seemed to
-centre about me. Verily it appeared, that last week, as if I might as
-well bid my sword farewell, to take up a bodkin or a ladle in its place,
-so little use did I seem to have for the weapon.
-
-Every time I went to Captain Carteret’s house, to have a few minutes
-with Lucille, I found her busy with either a stew-pan or a needle. From
-a maid, that had been wont to pay some small heed to what I said, she
-had come, almost, to hold me in as little importance as any man in the
-Colony. She would leave me in a moment, no matter what we were talking
-of, if Madame Carteret, or one of the women, called her.
-
-What I did say she either heard not, or forgot as speedily as I had
-spoken.
-
-Such bustling about as there was in the kitchen. I made bold to poke
-myself in, once, but quickly drew out again. For in that short space I
-nearly received a blow, accidental though it was, with a wooden pestle
-on one side of my head, while another woman was within an ace of dousing
-me with a jar of molasses she carried.
-
-It seemed that Lucille’s wedding (I dared not call it mine) was the
-first one in the Colony in a number of years, and the women folk were so
-distracted by the thoughts of it, that they were at their wits’ end.
-They made plans by the dozens, as they did cakes, only to unmake them
-ere night. Indeed, next to myself, whom nobody consulted, Lucille had as
-little to say as if she was but to be an onlooker. I was hard put, at
-times, when I was ordered around like a school boy by the women. But
-Lucille, who had more of it than I did, took it with good grace, just as
-if she had been used to it all her life.
-
-While the women were thus making ready the kitchen and gown part of the
-affair, the men, who were pleased to call me Captain, had taken such
-command of the block house, that I was hardly welcome there. The main
-room I was by no means allowed to enter. It was the largest in the
-place, and the door was kept carefully barred to me. There was much
-coming and going, bringing in of evergreen boughs, foliage, and small
-branches of trees, covered with bright red berries.
-
-Several friendly Indians were seen about the town, bearing bundles, that
-I could note, by an occasional glimpse, contained goods of their
-workmanship. Stag horns polished until they glistened in the sun, soft
-tanned skins of the deer, furry hides of the bear and wild-cat, all
-these were carried into the block, and hidden in the room that was
-closed to me.
-
-So busy was every one but myself that I wandered about the settlement,
-like a man without friends. I had a few matters to look after, though.
-
-With my wealth, so strangely restored to me, I purchased a roomy and
-comfortable house, the best in the town, save Carteret’s, which one of
-the settlers was anxious to sell. There was a cunning cabinet maker and
-carpenter in the village, and I had them alter the dwelling to suit my
-ideas. I sent privately to New York for some furnishings, hired a man
-and maid servant, and the place began to look like a home, only lacking
-a mistress. I laid out a good-sized garden, had the farm plowed and
-sowed, and supplied with horses and cows, so that there was a promise of
-plenty to eat and drink. On the day before the one set for the ceremony,
-I sat down, tired but happy, to spend the last few hours of my life as a
-lone man. I was glad that the time was so short.
-
-CHAPTER XXX.
-
-LOVE, HONOR AND OBEY.
-
-It was the 26th day of April. The air smelled of balmy spring, a warm
-sun was overhead, a gentle breeze stirred the leaves amid which the
-birds sang, and the whole earth seemed a happy place. I jumped out of
-bed to look over the new suit, which I had, after much time and thought,
-managed to get together. It was of dark plum-colored stuff, soft to the
-touch, and became me as well as any coat and breeches I ever had. I laid
-out a new pair of boots, the pliable leather black and shiny, spread out
-my cloak on the bed, and was ready to dress for the wedding. I strapped
-my sword on, feeling that I was now in proper trim for the occasion. The
-weapon was the same good one which had stood me in such stead all along.
-It had received many a hard knock, the scabbard was not as free from
-dents as when I had it from the maker, it was rather rusty, too, I
-thought, the blade being stained here and there.
-
-I sent to the innkeeper for some rags and rotten stone, that I might
-polish the steel up. Master Aleworthy appeared himself with the stuff.
-When he saw my fine looks (for I do myself that credit) he would not let
-me burnish up the weapon, but insisted on doing it for me. A very proper
-attempt he made of it, too, for, when he had finished it shone like a
-new shilling.
-
-“Now for breakfast,” he said.
-
-“Not for me,” I replied, “there will be plenty of fodder when this
-affair is over.”
-
-“But, Sir Francis, ’twill be a long time to then.”
-
-“Short enough,” was my answer.
-
-I strode out across the fields to the Captain’s house, hoping I might
-get a glimpse of Lucille. But if she had been hard to see a week ago,
-she was ten times more so now. At every door I tried I was bidden to
-take myself off, and call again. Finally, being somewhat vexed, I called
-to one saucy hussy:
-
-“Know, madame, that I am to wed to-day. That I am the groom.”
-
-“Aye, I know it,” she responded, as cool as you please. “You will be
-sent for when you are wanted.”
-
-With that I had to be content, kicking my heels up and down the garden
-path. Noon was the time. It wanted two hours yet.
-
-It seemed a month that I was in the garden. At last some one beckoned to
-me, and I was admitted in to see Lucille.
-
-I would have gone up, before them all, to kiss her heartily, but she
-held me off with her little hands, while a chorus of protests from all
-the women told me I must respect the manner in which she was adorned.
-Indeed, she made a handsome appearance. The dress was of soft,
-gray-white, shimmering silk, with pieces of lace as long as my gun
-barrel all about it, hung on after the manner of the clinging vine that
-twines about a tree. The sleeves had it in, I think, also, the neck,
-while there was a plenty trailing down the front and lower edge. She
-wore a crown of glossy green leaves, a single white flower in her dark
-hair.
-
-The plan was for the party to go to the block house in carts, half a
-score of which, festooned with evergreens, were in waiting. Instead of
-letting Lucille and me go on together, which seemed to me to be the most
-sensible way, she rode with James Blithly, a great booby of a chap,
-while I had to sit in the cart with Mistress Alice Turner, a sweet
-enough maid. She was talkative, and I was not so, on the way, I had to
-keep answering “yes” and “no” to her questions.
-
-It looked as though all the Colony and the folk from ten miles around
-had come to the wedding. There were nearly three hundred people in view
-when we neared the place where Dominie Worthington was awaiting us.
-There were a number of Indians and their squaws, friendly, all of them,
-who had gathered to see how the pale faces took their brides. They
-laughed, smiled and greeted me with “How, Cap’n,” while some held out
-their pipes, which, as was their custom, I puffed a few whiffs from, to
-show that we were at peace, though indeed, the ceremony lacked much of
-the solemnity usually associated with it.
-
-The block house at last. The drum beat as Carteret, in my honor, drew
-the men up in double file. Lucille and I, with those who were to attend
-us, dismounted from the carts, marching between the lines of
-soldier-colonists into the main room. Then I was allowed to move up
-beside Lucille, while both of us looked about in wonder.
-
-Never had such a bower for the plighting of love been constructed
-before. The rough hewn walls had been covered with green boughs, red
-berries gleaming amidst the foliage. On the floor the boards were hidden
-from view by furs in such quantity that they overlapped. The stag
-antlers, fastened here and there, served as hooks, whereon were
-suspended bows, arrows, swords, guns, powder-horns, Indian shields,
-curious stone hatchets, and many of the red-men’s household implements.
-Gay colored baskets added to the color of the scene.
-
-A little wooden altar had been made, but it was almost hidden from view
-by trailing, green vines. The men-at-arms filed in, taking their places
-on either side of the chamber. Then came the town-folk, and the friendly
-Indians, squaws, and even settlers from Newark, so that the place was
-well nigh filled.
-
-Dominie Worthington took his place. Lucille and I stood together, with
-Alice Turner and James Blithly on either side. Then, ere he began to say
-the words that would unite us, Master Worthington lifted up his voice in
-prayer.
-
-Then came the promises, the pledges--“Love, Honor and obey”--“till death
-do you part”--solemn yet sweet. “Whom God hath joined together, let not
-man put asunder.”
-
-We were man and wife.
-
-Then indeed came happy confusion and laughter. We were overwhelmed,
-Lucille and I. But Carteret charged down on us, in the nick of time, to
-rescue us from the friendly enemy that swarmed about us. How quick was
-the journey back to the Captain’s house, and what a feast was there
-spread out for all who wished to come.
-
-So often was the health of Lucille and myself proposed and drunk, that I
-lost track of those who did me the honor to touch glasses. There was gay
-laughter, songs and talk, merrymaking among the young people, and over
-all good-fellowship and much cheer, with Lucille happiest of the women,
-and I of the men. It grew night, but hundreds of candles chased the
-gloom away.
-
-So it had come about, after many days, with force and with arms I had
-won my bride.
-
-We were to go to the home I had prepared. Lucille kissed Madame Carteret
-and others of her women friends, while I had my own cart and horses
-brought up to the door.
-
-There were farewells by the score, laughter and tears from the women,
-cheers from the men. The driver spoke to his team, they leaped forward.
-Lucille and I had begun our life’s journey together.
-
-It was not far to the house. The door was opened on a blaze of candles.
-
-“Welcome home, sweetheart,” I said, kissing her.
-
-“Oh, Francis,” she exclaimed, looking about. “It is perfect. How good of
-you to do all this for me.”
-
-“Do you like it?”
-
-“It is more than I dreamed.”
-
-A little wind, coming in the windows, flickered the candles. The breeze
-seemed to sigh in contentment at our happiness. The servants closed the
-door. We were alone--my wife and I.
-
-
-
-
-
-
-
-
- THE END.
-
-
- =“More Ex=Tank Tales”=
-
- By CLARENCE LOUIS CULLEN.
-
- With Introduction by the Author.
-
- _12mo, 250 Pages. Cloth Bound. Price, One Dollar._
-
- --------------
-
-Some readers will wonder what is meant by “More Ex-Tank Tales.” In
-explanation would say that the stories compiled in the book under the
-above title appeared in the _New York Sun_ from time to time, and they
-have achieved well-merited notoriety. They are sketches about men who
-have indulged in spirituous liquors to such an extent as to cause their
-comrades to term them “tanks.” Having overcome the desire for
-intoxicating beverages (reformed in fact), they take great pleasure, and
-give the same to the reader, in recounting some of their adventures.
-Following is the =_Table of Contents_=:
-
-TALE THE FIRST.--Wherein Ex-Tank No. 18 Marvelously Winneth Out as ye
- Auctioneer of Antiques.
-
-TALE THE SECOND.--In Which Ex-Tank No. 17 Meeteth Up With ye Renowned
- Singer and Yodler, “Fritz” Emmet, and the Consequences.
-
-TALE THE THIRD.--Wherein Ex-Tank No. 11 Ascertaineth the Advantages of
- Being Mistaken for ye Wearer of the Senatorial Toga.
-
-TALE THE FOURTH.--Which Sheweth Ex-Tank No. 28 as the Natural and
- Successful Enemy of ye Guileful Gold Brick Purveyor.
-
-TALE THE FIFTH--Wherein is Depicted the Woe of Ex-Tank No. 7 Growing Out
- of His Being Mistaken for ye Doppelgaenger.
-
-TALE THE SIXTH.--Wherein Ex-Tank No. 10 Mournfully Portrayeth the
- Difficulties he Encountered in Forsaking ye Golden Pacific Sands.
-
-TALE THE SEVENTH--In Which Ex-Tank No. 23 Sheweth the Possibilities
- Lurking in the Involuntary Handling of ye “Ringer.”
-
-TALE THE EIGHTH--Describeth, Through the Lips of Ex-Tank (Ultlander) No.
- 37, the Manifold Woes of Him Who First Butteth into ye Burg of New
- York.
-
-TALE THE NINTH.--Wherein Ex-Tank (Hoodoo) No. 13 Hath a Good Word to Say
- of ye Slumbersome Burg, Philadelphia-by-Schuylkill.
-
-TALE THE TENTH--In Which Ex-Tank No. 22 Narrowly Escapeth the Dangers of
- ye Vasty Deep.
-
-TALE THE ELEVENTH.--Wherein Ex-Tank No. 14, by Means of ye Raffling
- Stunt, Returneth to His Home Like Santa Claus.
-
-TALE THE TWELFTH.--Wherein Ex-Tank No. 12 Starts on a Journey from
- Denver to Manhattan Beach.
-
-Sent by mail, postpaid to any address, upon receipt of price, $1.90.
-Address all orders to
-
- =J.S. OGILVIE PUBLISHING COMPANY,
- 57 ROSE STREET, NEW YORK.=
-
-
-=_It is possible_=
-
-That you are tired of hearing and reading about the =Letters of this one
-and that one=, but we desire to call your attention to the fact that
-
- =“THE LETTERS OF MILDRED’S MOTHER TO MILDRED”=
-
-are entirely different from any that you have thus far read. Mildred is
-a girl in the chorus at one of New York’s famous theatres, and her
-mother is a woman who “travels” with a friend by the name of Blanche.
-The book is written by =E.D. Price=, “The Man Behind the Scenes,” one
-well qualified to touch upon the stage side of life.
-
-The following is the Table of Contents:
-
-Mother at the Races. Mother at a Chicago Hotel. Mother Goes Yachting.
-Mother Escapes Matrimony. Mother Meets Nature’s Noblemen.
-
-Mother Joins the Repertoire Company. Mother in the One Night Stands.
-Mother and the Theatrical Angel. Mother Returns to Mildred.
-
-Read what Blakely Hall says of it:
-
-“I don’t know whether you are aware of it or not, but you are turning
-out wonderful, accurate and convincing character studies in the
-Mildred’s Mother articles. They are as refreshing and invigorating as
-showers on the hottest July day.”
-
-The book is well printed on fine laid paper, handsomely bound in cloth,
-with attractive side stamp, and has already run into its third edition.
-For sale everywhere, or it will be sent by mail, postpaid, to any
-address upon receipt of price, $1.00. Address all orders to
-
- =J.S. OGILVIE PUBLISHING COMPANY,
- 57 ROSE STREET, NEW YORK.=
-
-
- Don’t Fail
- To Read
-
- =RESURRECTION,=
-
- BY
-
- =COUNT LEO TOLSTOI,=
-
- and considered by critics to be his =MASTERPIECE=.
-
- =Special Limited Edition.=
-
- Bound in Paper Covers, Price 50 Cents.
-
- Sent by mail, postpaid, on receipt of price.
-
- ---------------------
-
- FOR SALE EVERYWHERE!
-
- ---------------------
-
- =J.S. OGILVIE PUBLISHING COMPANY,
- 57 ROSE STREET, NEW YORK.=
-
-
- =THE KNIGHTS OF THE CROSS.=
-
- By HENRYK SIENKIEWICZ,
-
- Author of “Quo Vadis,” “With Fire and Sword,” Etc.
-
- --------------
-
- Translated Direct from the Polish by BASIL DAHL.
-
- --------------
-
- _1 vol. 12mo. 400 pages. Price, Bound in Paper
- Cover, 50 Cents; Bound in Cloth, $1.00._
-
-A book that holds your almost breathless attention as in a vise from the
-very beginning, for in it love and strife, the most thrilling of all
-worldly subjects, are described masterfully.--_The Boston Journal._
-
-It seems superior to “Quo Vadis” in strength and realism.--_The
-Churchman._
-
-Presenting scene after scene of exceptional power and beauty.--_Saturday
-Evening Post_, Philadelphia.
-
-The rushing life of the tale is as resistless as a force of
-nature.--_San Francisco Call._
-
-We say “great” advisedly, for Mr. Sienkiewicz here equals in force,
-variety and tremendous exposition of primitive passions, his famous
-Polish trilogy, “With Fire and Sword,” “The Deluge,” and “Pan
-Michael.”--_The Outlook._
-
-The construction of the story is beyond praise. It is difficult
-to conceive of any one who will not pick up the book with
-eagerness.--_Chicago Evening Post._
-
- --------------
-
-Price, bound in paper covers, 50 cents; handsomely bound in cloth, one
-dollar. Sent by mail, postpaid, to any address, on receipt of price.
-Address all orders to
-
- J.S. OGILVIE PUBLISHING COMPANY,
- P.O. Box 2767. 57 ROSE STREET, NEW YORK
-
-
- =When Shiloh Came,=
-
- =BY=
-
- =Ambrose Lester Jackson.=
-
- --------------
-
- =_12mo, 320 Pages. Bound in Extra Cloth, $1.50._=
-
- --------------
-
- =Seven Full-page Illustrations by the Author.=
-
- --------------
-
-This book is not a religious novel of the style and quality usually
-offered to the public. It is rather a prose poem, in which the splendid
-decadence of an ancient idolatry is pictured with rare felicity by a new
-writer of brilliant promise.
-
-The book will be read with deep interest, because there is a certain
-power in its pages that will impress and fascinate the mind. It contains
-enough of plot, mystery, adventure, and the like, to hold the attention,
-while the underlying thought of dissatisfaction with the heathen gods,
-and expectation of something better, lifts it far above the level of
-mere sensational fiction. Moreover, its locale is new. The usual
-background of stories of the times antecedent, or subsequent, to the
-birth of Christ, is either Rome, or Jerusalem; but the scene of this
-charming romance is in that far removed region of the Orient known to
-the ancients as Magog and Shem, and to modern geographers as
-Beloochistan.
-
-The prologue to the story is a masterpiece of poetic imagery; the story
-itself is an idyl of surpassing beauty.
-
-We anticipate a very large sale for this work among all denominations of
-religious people.
-
-It is handsomely bound in the highest style of the bookmaker’s art, and
-is illustrated by seven full-page unique illustrations from original
-designs by the Author who is not only an able author, but also an artist
-of unequalled ability.
-
-The book is for sale by all bookdealers everywhere, or it will be sent
-by mail, postpaid, on receipt of price, $1.50.
-
-☞ =Agents Wanted= to sell this book in every church and community, to
-whom we offer very liberal terms. Address
-
- =J.S. OGILVIE PUBLISHING COMPANY,
- 57 ROSE STREET, NEW YORK=
-
-
-_When an Author_
-
-has finished his work he is sometimes at a loss to know just how or
-where to get it published upon the best terms.
-
-To all such we desire to offer our services _free of charge_ so far as
-giving advice, information, hints and helps to get a publisher who will
-publish and put the book on the market.
-
-We are in want of first-class manuscripts, and if accepted will publish
-them for authors upon very favorable terms, will purchase them outright,
-or publish them on royalty.
-
-We will examine manuscripts, and make some definite business proposition
-for their publication within two weeks after receiving them.
-
-We have been in the Publishing business twenty-five years, and authors
-may depend upon fair and honorable treatment from us.
-
-Correspondence solicited, and it will _be answered promptly_. Address
-all manuscripts and communications to
-
- J.S. OGILVIE PUBLISHING COMPANY,
- P.O. Box 767. 57 ROSE STREET, NEW YORK.
-
-------------------------------------------------------------------------
-
- Transcriber’s Note
-
-On p. 212, the printer transposed the third and fourth lines of the
-paragraph beginning: “So we stood thus....”
-
-As printed:
-
-So we stood thus, perchance while a man might have counted a score
-slowly. Around us was the waste of =[to go to pieces every second.
-Between us, as pale as death,]= =[waters. Under our feet the quivering
-Eagle, that was like]= was Lucille, the cause of both of us being there.
-Perhaps she was dead, and our bitter words were spoken in vain.
-
-Corrected:
-
-So we stood thus, perchance while a man might have counted a score
-slowly. Around us was the waste of =[waters. Under our feet the
-quivering Eagle, that was like]= =[to go to pieces every second. Between
-us, as pale as death,]= was Lucille, the cause of both of us being
-there. Perhaps she was dead, and our bitter words were spoken in vain.
-
-Errors deemed most likely to be the printer’s have been corrected, and
-are noted here. The references are to the page and line in the original.
-The following issues should be noted, along with the resolutions.
-
- 30.24 Lord prevent that they cast their eyes this Replaced.
- way[?/!]”
-
- 55.26 I had to rout up Wil[l]is, Added.
-
- 127.26 as though they were [p/b]ut pebbles. Replaced.
-
- 149.23 and I wondered va[ug/gu]ely Transposed.
-
- 154.13 and your po[r]ker was a fine fat one Added.
-
- 164.21 when I asked if I was not [t]o hang Added.
-
- 174.17 to burn us like rats in a tra[y/p]. Replaced.
-
- 187.5 “Oh, the vill[ia/ai]n,” Transposed.
-
- 188.4 and Nanette ac[c]ompanied them. Added.
-
- 199.13 “I suppose I must,” he said sullenly[.] Added.
-
- 199.27 a voyage he couldn’t see the end of[.] Added.
-
- 231.17 from the charge of wit[c]hcraft Added.
-
- 257.15 and then we[b / b]reathed, it seemed Transposed.
-
- 262.11 or halt them for a[ ]time Added.
-
- 265.16 Messenger[s] were sent Added.
-
- 278.24 into a panic as quickly as possibl[y/e] Replaced.
-
- 295.25 they might not get near enough to charge[.] Added.
-
- 301.14 to ignite the hug[h/e] pile of brush Replaced.
-
- 304.26 “And who car[r]ied out the powder?” Added.
-
- 316.13 feeling his [s]teel pierce my side Added.
-
- 333.10 “With all my wor[l]dly goods I thee endow.” Added.
-
-
-
-
-
-End of the Project Gutenberg EBook of With Force and Arms, by Howard R. Garis
-
-*** END OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK WITH FORCE AND ARMS ***
-
-***** This file should be named 54371-0.txt or 54371-0.zip *****
-This and all associated files of various formats will be found in:
- http://www.gutenberg.org/5/4/3/7/54371/
-
-Produced by KD Weeks, David Edwards and the Online
-Distributed Proofreading Team at http://www.pgdp.net (This
-file was produced from images generously made available
-by The Internet Archive)
-
-
-Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions will
-be renamed.
-
-Creating the works from print editions not protected by U.S. copyright
-law means that no one owns a United States copyright in these works,
-so the Foundation (and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United
-States without permission and without paying copyright
-royalties. Special rules, set forth in the General Terms of Use part
-of this license, apply to copying and distributing Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works to protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm
-concept and trademark. Project Gutenberg is a registered trademark,
-and may not be used if you charge for the eBooks, unless you receive
-specific permission. If you do not charge anything for copies of this
-eBook, complying with the rules is very easy. You may use this eBook
-for nearly any purpose such as creation of derivative works, reports,
-performances and research. They may be modified and printed and given
-away--you may do practically ANYTHING in the United States with eBooks
-not protected by U.S. copyright law. Redistribution is subject to the
-trademark license, especially commercial redistribution.
-
-START: FULL LICENSE
-
-THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE
-PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK
-
-To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free
-distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
-(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg"), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full
-Project Gutenberg-tm License available with this file or online at
-www.gutenberg.org/license.
-
-Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-
-1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
-and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
-(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
-the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or
-destroy all copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your
-possession. If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a
-Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound
-by the terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the
-person or entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph
-1.E.8.
-
-1.B. "Project Gutenberg" is a registered trademark. It may only be
-used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
-agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
-things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
-paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works if you follow the terms of this
-agreement and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works. See paragraph 1.E below.
-
-1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation ("the
-Foundation" or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection
-of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual
-works in the collection are in the public domain in the United
-States. If an individual work is unprotected by copyright law in the
-United States and you are located in the United States, we do not
-claim a right to prevent you from copying, distributing, performing,
-displaying or creating derivative works based on the work as long as
-all references to Project Gutenberg are removed. Of course, we hope
-that you will support the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting
-free access to electronic works by freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm
-works in compliance with the terms of this agreement for keeping the
-Project Gutenberg-tm name associated with the work. You can easily
-comply with the terms of this agreement by keeping this work in the
-same format with its attached full Project Gutenberg-tm License when
-you share it without charge with others.
-
-1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
-what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are
-in a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States,
-check the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this
-agreement before downloading, copying, displaying, performing,
-distributing or creating derivative works based on this work or any
-other Project Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no
-representations concerning the copyright status of any work in any
-country outside the United States.
-
-1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
-
-1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other
-immediate access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear
-prominently whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work
-on which the phrase "Project Gutenberg" appears, or with which the
-phrase "Project Gutenberg" is associated) is accessed, displayed,
-performed, viewed, copied or distributed:
-
- This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and
- most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no
- restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it
- under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included with this
- eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the
- United States, you'll have to check the laws of the country where you
- are located before using this ebook.
-
-1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is
-derived from texts not protected by U.S. copyright law (does not
-contain a notice indicating that it is posted with permission of the
-copyright holder), the work can be copied and distributed to anyone in
-the United States without paying any fees or charges. If you are
-redistributing or providing access to a work with the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg" associated with or appearing on the work, you must comply
-either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 or
-obtain permission for the use of the work and the Project Gutenberg-tm
-trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted
-with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
-must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any
-additional terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms
-will be linked to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works
-posted with the permission of the copyright holder found at the
-beginning of this work.
-
-1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm
-License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
-work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm.
-
-1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
-electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
-prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
-active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm License.
-
-1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
-compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including
-any word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access
-to or distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format
-other than "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other format used in the official
-version posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm web site
-(www.gutenberg.org), you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense
-to the user, provide a copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means
-of obtaining a copy upon request, of the work in its original "Plain
-Vanilla ASCII" or other form. Any alternate format must include the
-full Project Gutenberg-tm License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
-
-1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
-performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works
-unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
-access to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-provided that
-
-* You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
- the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method
- you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is owed
- to the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he has
- agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments must be paid
- within 60 days following each date on which you prepare (or are
- legally required to prepare) your periodic tax returns. Royalty
- payments should be clearly marked as such and sent to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the address specified in
- Section 4, "Information about donations to the Project Gutenberg
- Literary Archive Foundation."
-
-* You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
- you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
- does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm
- License. You must require such a user to return or destroy all
- copies of the works possessed in a physical medium and discontinue
- all use of and all access to other copies of Project Gutenberg-tm
- works.
-
-* You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of
- any money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
- electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days of
- receipt of the work.
-
-* You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
- distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works.
-
-1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work or group of works on different terms than
-are set forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing
-from both the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and The
-Project Gutenberg Trademark LLC, the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm
-trademark. Contact the Foundation as set forth in Section 3 below.
-
-1.F.
-
-1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
-effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
-works not protected by U.S. copyright law in creating the Project
-Gutenberg-tm collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may
-contain "Defects," such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate
-or corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other
-intellectual property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or
-other medium, a computer virus, or computer codes that damage or
-cannot be read by your equipment.
-
-1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the "Right
-of Replacement or Refund" described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
-liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
-fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
-LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
-PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
-TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
-LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
-INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
-DAMAGE.
-
-1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
-defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
-receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
-written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
-received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium
-with your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you
-with the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in
-lieu of a refund. If you received the work electronically, the person
-or entity providing it to you may choose to give you a second
-opportunity to receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If
-the second copy is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing
-without further opportunities to fix the problem.
-
-1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
-in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS', WITH NO
-OTHER WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT
-LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
-
-1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
-warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of
-damages. If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement
-violates the law of the state applicable to this agreement, the
-agreement shall be interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or
-limitation permitted by the applicable state law. The invalidity or
-unenforceability of any provision of this agreement shall not void the
-remaining provisions.
-
-1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
-trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
-providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in
-accordance with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the
-production, promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works, harmless from all liability, costs and expenses,
-including legal fees, that arise directly or indirectly from any of
-the following which you do or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this
-or any Project Gutenberg-tm work, (b) alteration, modification, or
-additions or deletions to any Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any
-Defect you cause.
-
-Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of
-electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of
-computers including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It
-exists because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations
-from people in all walks of life.
-
-Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
-assistance they need are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm's
-goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will
-remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
-and permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future
-generations. To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation and how your efforts and donations can help, see
-Sections 3 and 4 and the Foundation information page at
-www.gutenberg.org Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg
-Literary Archive Foundation
-
-The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non profit
-501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
-state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
-Revenue Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification
-number is 64-6221541. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent permitted by
-U.S. federal laws and your state's laws.
-
-The Foundation's principal office is in Fairbanks, Alaska, with the
-mailing address: PO Box 750175, Fairbanks, AK 99775, but its
-volunteers and employees are scattered throughout numerous
-locations. Its business office is located at 809 North 1500 West, Salt
-Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887. Email contact links and up to
-date contact information can be found at the Foundation's web site and
-official page at www.gutenberg.org/contact
-
-For additional contact information:
-
- Dr. Gregory B. Newby
- Chief Executive and Director
- gbnewby@pglaf.org
-
-Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg
-Literary Archive Foundation
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without wide
-spread public support and donations to carry out its mission of
-increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
-freely distributed in machine readable form accessible by the widest
-array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
-($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
-status with the IRS.
-
-The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
-charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
-States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
-considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
-with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
-where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To SEND
-DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any particular
-state visit www.gutenberg.org/donate
-
-While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
-have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
-against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
-approach us with offers to donate.
-
-International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
-any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
-outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
-
-Please check the Project Gutenberg Web pages for current donation
-methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
-ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations. To
-donate, please visit: www.gutenberg.org/donate
-
-Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works.
-
-Professor Michael S. Hart was the originator of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm concept of a library of electronic works that could be
-freely shared with anyone. For forty years, he produced and
-distributed Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of
-volunteer support.
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed
-editions, all of which are confirmed as not protected by copyright in
-the U.S. unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not
-necessarily keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper
-edition.
-
-Most people start at our Web site which has the main PG search
-facility: www.gutenberg.org
-
-This Web site includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm,
-including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
-subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.
-
diff --git a/old/54371-0.zip b/old/54371-0.zip
deleted file mode 100644
index c90981c..0000000
--- a/old/54371-0.zip
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/54371-h.zip b/old/54371-h.zip
deleted file mode 100644
index 0372c76..0000000
--- a/old/54371-h.zip
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/54371-h/54371-h.htm b/old/54371-h/54371-h.htm
deleted file mode 100644
index 3798dc6..0000000
--- a/old/54371-h/54371-h.htm
+++ /dev/null
@@ -1,12141 +0,0 @@
-<!DOCTYPE html PUBLIC "-//W3C//DTD XHTML 1.0 Strict//EN"
- "http://www.w3.org/TR/xhtml1/DTD/xhtml1-strict.dtd">
-<html xmlns="http://www.w3.org/1999/xhtml" xml:lang="en" lang="en">
- <head>
- <meta http-equiv="Content-Type" content="text/html;charset=UTF-8" />
- <title>With Force and Arms, by Howard R. Garis</title>
- <link rel="coverpage" href="images/cover.jpg" />
- <style type="text/css">
- body { margin-left: 8%; margin-right: 10%; }
- h1 { text-align: center; font-weight: normal; font-size: 1.4em; }
- h2 { text-align: center; font-weight: normal; font-size: 1.2em; }
- .pageno { right: 1%; font-size: x-small; background-color: inherit; color: silver;
- text-indent: 0em; text-align: right; position: absolute;
- border: thin solid silver; padding: .1em .2em; font-style: normal;
- font-variant: normal; font-weight: normal; text-decoration: none; }
- p { text-indent: 0; margin-top: 0.5em; margin-bottom: 0.5em; text-align: justify; }
- .sc { font-variant: small-caps; }
- .large { font-size: large; }
- .xlarge { font-size: x-large; }
- .xxlarge { font-size: xx-large; }
- .small { font-size: small; }
- .lg-container-b { text-align: center; }
- @media handheld { .lg-container-b { clear: both; } }
- .lg-container-r { text-align: right; }
- @media handheld { .lg-container-r { clear: both; } }
- .linegroup { display: inline-block; text-align: left; }
- @media handheld { .linegroup { display: block; margin-left: 1.5em; } }
- .linegroup .group { margin: 1em auto; }
- .linegroup .line { text-indent: -3em; padding-left: 3em; }
- div.linegroup > :first-child { margin-top: 0; }
- .linegroup .in10 { padding-left: 8.0em; }
- .linegroup .in11 { padding-left: 8.5em; }
- div.pbb { page-break-before: always; }
- hr.pb { border: none; border-bottom: thin solid; margin-bottom: 1em; }
- @media handheld { hr.pb { display: none; } }
- .chapter { clear: both; page-break-before: always; }
- .figcenter { clear: both; max-width: 100%; margin: 2em auto; text-align: center; }
- div.figcenter p { text-align: center; text-indent: 0; }
- .figcenter img { max-width: 100%; height: auto; }
- .id001 { width:60%; }
- @media handheld { .id001 { margin-left:20%; width:60%; } }
- .ic002 { width:100%; }
- .ig001 { width:100%; }
- .table0 { margin: auto; margin-top: 2em; width: 80%; }
- .table1 { margin: auto; width: 90%; }
- .nf-center { text-align: center; }
- .nf-center-c0 { text-align: left; margin: 0.5em 0; }
- .nf-center-c1 { text-align: left; margin: 1em 0; }
- .c000 { margin-top: 1em; }
- .c001 { margin-top: 0.5em; margin-bottom: 0.5em; }
- .c002 { margin-top: 4em; }
- .c003 { margin-bottom: 4em; margin-top: 1em; }
- .c004 { border: none; border-bottom: thin solid; margin-top: 1em;
- margin-bottom: 1em; margin-left: 40%; width: 20%; margin-right: 40%; }
- .c005 { border: none; border-bottom: thin solid; margin-top: 1em;
- margin-bottom: 1em; margin-left: 40%; width: 20%; margin-right: 40%;
- margin-top: 4em; }
- .c006 { page-break-before:auto; margin-top: 4em; }
- .c007 { margin-top: 2em; text-indent: 1em; margin-bottom: 0.0em; }
- .c008 { text-indent: 1em; margin-top: 0.0em; margin-bottom: 0.0em; }
- .c009 { margin-right: 2.78%; text-align: right; }
- .c010 { vertical-align: top; text-align: left; padding-right: 1em; }
- .c011 { vertical-align: top; text-align: right; }
- .c012 { text-align: center; }
- .c013 { page-break-before: always; margin-top: 4em; }
- .c014 { border: none; border-bottom: thin solid; margin-top: 1em;
- margin-bottom: 1em; margin-left: 42%; width: 15%; margin-right: 43%;
- margin-top: 1em; }
- .c015 { margin-top: 1em; font-size: 95%; }
- .c016 { margin-top: 1em; text-indent: 1em; margin-bottom: 0.0em; }
- .c017 { margin-top: 8em; }
- .c018 { margin-top: 2em; }
- .c019 { margin-left: 5.56%; text-indent: -5.56%; font-size: 90%; margin-top: 0.0em;
- margin-bottom: 0.0em; }
- .c020 { text-indent: 0; margin-top: 2em; margin-bottom: 0.0em; }
- .c021 { text-indent: 0; margin-top: 0.0em; margin-bottom: 0.0em; }
- .c022 { border: none; border-bottom: thin solid; margin-top: 1em;
- margin-bottom: 1em; margin-left: 35%; width: 30%; margin-right: 35%; }
- .c023 { text-indent: 0; margin-top: 1em; margin-bottom: 0.0em; }
- .c024 { vertical-align: top; text-align: left; }
- a:link { text-decoration: none; }
- div.tnotes { padding-left:1em;padding-right:1em;background-color:#E3E4FA;
- border:1px solid silver; margin:1em 5% 0 5%; text-align: justify; }
- .epubonly {visibility: hidden; display: none; }
- @media handheld { .epubonly { visibility: visible; display: inline; } }
- .htmlonly {visibility: visible; display: inline; }
- @media handheld { .htmlonly { visibility: hidden; display: none; } }
- .cursive { font-family: Cursive; }
- .sans { font-family: Arial, Ember, sans-serif; }
- .u {text-decoration: underline; }
- ins.correction { text-decoration:none; border-bottom: thin dotted gray; }
- .quote { font-size: 95%; margin-left: 1em; margin-top: 1.0em; margin-bottom: 1.0em;
- }
- .linegroup .group { margin: 0em auto; }
- </style>
- </head>
- <body>
-
-
-<pre>
-
-The Project Gutenberg EBook of With Force and Arms, by Howard R. Garis
-
-This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and most
-other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no restrictions
-whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms of
-the Project Gutenberg License included with this eBook or online at
-www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the United States, you'll have
-to check the laws of the country where you are located before using this ebook.
-
-
-
-Title: With Force and Arms
- A Tale of Love and Salem Witchcraft
-
-Author: Howard R. Garis
-
-Release Date: March 16, 2017 [EBook #54371]
-
-Language: English
-
-Character set encoding: UTF-8
-
-*** START OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK WITH FORCE AND ARMS ***
-
-
-
-
-Produced by KD Weeks, David Edwards and the Online
-Distributed Proofreading Team at http://www.pgdp.net (This
-file was produced from images generously made available
-by The Internet Archive)
-
-
-
-
-
-
-</pre>
-
-
-<div class='pbb'>
- <hr class='pb c000' />
-</div>
-<div class='tnotes'>
-
-<div class='nf-center-c1'>
- <div class='nf-center'>
- <div>Transcriber’s Note:</div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c001'>Footnotes have been collected at the end of each chapter, and are
-linked for ease of reference.</p>
-
-<div class='htmlonly'>
-
-<p class='c001'>Minor errors, attributable to the printer, have been corrected. Please
-see the transcriber’s <a href='#endnote'>note</a> at the end of this text
-for details regarding the handling of any textual issues encountered
-during its preparation. The corrected text appears with a thin
-gray <ins class='correction' title='original'>underline</ins>. The original text will
-appear as a pop-up note when the cursor is placed atop the phrase.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class='epubonly'>
-
-<p class='c001'>Minor errors, attributable to the printer, have been corrected. Please
-see the transcriber’s <a href='#endnote'>note</a> at the end of this text
-for details regarding the handling of any textual issues encountered
-during its preparation. The corrected text appears as a link to
-the table of errata at the end of the text.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p class='c001'>The cover image has been created, based on title page information, and
-is added to the public domain.</p>
-<div class='htmlonly'>
-
-<div class='figcenter id001'>
-<img src='images/cover.jpg' alt='' class='ig001' />
-</div>
-
-</div>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class='figcenter id001'>
-<img src='images/frontis.jpg' alt='' class='ig001' />
-<div class='ic002'>
-<p>“I DREW MY SWORD, AND WITH THE HILT GAVE SEVERAL BLOWS ON THE DOOR.”</p>
-</div>
-</div>
-<div class='pbb'>
- <hr class='pb c000' />
-</div>
-
-<div class='nf-center-c1'>
-<div class='nf-center c002'>
- <div class='c000'><span class='xxlarge'>WITH FORCE AND ARMS</span></div>
- <div class='c002'><span class='large'>A TALE OF LOVE AND</span></div>
- <div><span class='large'>SALEM WITCHCRAFT.</span></div>
- <div class='c002'><span class='small'>BY</span></div>
- <div class='c003'>HOWARD R. GARIS.</div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<hr class='c004' />
-
-<div class='nf-center-c1'>
- <div class='nf-center'>
- <div><span class='small'><span class='sc'>New York</span>:</span></div>
- <div>J.S. OGILVIE PUBLISHING COMPANY,</div>
- <div><span class='small'><span class='sc'>57 Rose Street</span>,</span></div>
- <div><span class='small'>11 Paternoster Building, London.</span></div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<hr class='c005' />
-
-<div class='nf-center-c1'>
- <div class='nf-center'>
- <div>Copyright, 1908, by J.S. Ogilvie Publishing Company.</div>
- <div class='c000'>All Rights Reserved.</div>
- <div class='c000'>Copyrighted in Great Britain.</div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<hr class='c004' />
-<div class='pbb'>
- <hr class='pb c000' />
-</div>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <h2 class='c006'>PREFACE.</h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c007'>The showman, crying his attractions, lifted up his voice
-at the flap of his tent. So, at this, the entrance to that
-which is within, those who stop to read may gain a hint
-of what is beyond. Only a little, though, to whet your
-appetite and make you wish for more, it is to be hoped.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>So, then, this is a tale of love, of witchcraft, and of fighting.
-A tale of a brave man, and as brave a maid. Herein
-may be found the doings of witch-finders, Puritans and
-Indians. Also there is set down the struggle of two men
-for the love of a woman, and it may be learned who won.
-You may read of the lifting of the great rock, of the
-killing of the serpent, of the battle at the fort, of the trial
-of death, and the bursting of the mighty press. This much
-and more, until the tale is at an end.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>The author hopes you, reader, and the many of you who
-make up the public, will like the story. He has tried to
-make it interesting. If it serves to help you pass a pleasant
-hour or two, the writer will have accomplished his
-purpose.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>So, then, having had patience thus far, you may enter,
-and read.</p>
-
-<div class='c009'>H. R. G.</div>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_vi'>vi</span>
- <h2 class='c006'>CONTENTS.</h2>
-</div>
-
-<table class='table0' summary=''>
-<colgroup>
-<col width='90%' />
-<col width='9%' />
-</colgroup>
- <tr>
- <td class='c010'>&nbsp;</td>
- <td class='c011'><span class='small'>PAGE</span></td>
- </tr>
- <tr><td class='c012' colspan='2'>CHAPTER I.</td></tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c010'>The Governor’s Commission</td>
- <td class='c011'><a href='#Page_9'>9</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr><td>&nbsp;</td></tr>
- <tr><td class='c012' colspan='2'>CHAPTER II.</td></tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c010'>Of the Scarlet Snow</td>
- <td class='c011'><a href='#Page_20'>20</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr><td>&nbsp;</td></tr>
- <tr><td class='c012' colspan='2'>CHAPTER III.</td></tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c010'>The Trial</td>
- <td class='c011'><a href='#Page_32'>32</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr><td>&nbsp;</td></tr>
- <tr><td class='c012' colspan='2'>CHAPTER IV.</td></tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c010'>How I Cast the Knife</td>
- <td class='c011'><a href='#Page_41'>41</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr><td>&nbsp;</td></tr>
- <tr><td class='c012' colspan='2'>CHAPTER V.</td></tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c010'>Of the Stone by the Brook</td>
- <td class='c011'><a href='#Page_51'>51</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr><td>&nbsp;</td></tr>
- <tr><td class='c012' colspan='2'>CHAPTER VI.</td></tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c010'>Lucille</td>
- <td class='c011'><a href='#Page_63'>63</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr><td>&nbsp;</td></tr>
- <tr><td class='c012' colspan='2'>CHAPTER VII.</td></tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c010'>Of the Horseman on the Beach</td>
- <td class='c011'><a href='#Page_72'>72</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr><td>&nbsp;</td></tr>
- <tr><td class='c012' colspan='2'>CHAPTER VIII.</td></tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c010'>The Battle at the Fort</td>
- <td class='c011'><a href='#Page_82'>82</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr><td>&nbsp;</td></tr>
- <tr><td class='c012' colspan='2'>CHAPTER IX.</td></tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c010'>How the French Took Pemaquid</td>
- <td class='c011'><a href='#Page_96'>96</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr><td>&nbsp;</td></tr>
- <tr><td class='c012' colspan='2'>CHAPTER X.</td></tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c010'>The Man at the Inn</td>
- <td class='c011'><a href='#Page_111'>111</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr><td>&nbsp;</td></tr>
- <tr><td class='c012' colspan='2'>CHAPTER XI.</td></tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c010'>A Man and His Wife</td>
- <td class='c011'><a href='#Page_123'>123</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr><td>&nbsp;</td></tr>
- <tr><td class='c012' colspan='2'>CHAPTER XII.</td></tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c010'>The Time of Peril</td>
- <td class='c011'><a href='#Page_130'>130</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr><td>&nbsp;</td></tr>
- <tr><td class='c012' colspan='2'>CHAPTER XIII.</td></tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c010'>In Salem Gaol</td>
- <td class='c011'><a href='#Page_140'>140</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr><td>&nbsp;</td></tr>
- <tr><td class='c012' colspan='2'>CHAPTER XIV.</td></tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c010'>A Sentence of Death</td>
- <td class='c011'><a href='#Page_150'>150</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr><td>&nbsp;</td></tr>
- <tr><td class='c012' colspan='2'><span class='pageno' id='Page_vii'>vii</span>CHAPTER XV.</td></tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c010'>Peine Forte et Dure</td>
- <td class='c011'><a href='#Page_161'>161</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr><td>&nbsp;</td></tr>
- <tr><td class='c012' colspan='2'>CHAPTER XVI.</td></tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c010'>How We Broke Gaol</td>
- <td class='c011'><a href='#Page_172'>172</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr><td>&nbsp;</td></tr>
- <tr><td class='c012' colspan='2'>CHAPTER XVII.</td></tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c010'>The News Nanette Brought Me</td>
- <td class='c011'><a href='#Page_183'>183</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr><td>&nbsp;</td></tr>
- <tr><td class='c012' colspan='2'>CHAPTER XVIII.</td></tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c010'>How the Eagle Sailed</td>
- <td class='c011'><a href='#Page_192'>192</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr><td>&nbsp;</td></tr>
- <tr><td class='c012' colspan='2'>CHAPTER XIX.</td></tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c010'>How I Found Lucille</td>
- <td class='c011'><a href='#Page_204'>204</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr><td>&nbsp;</td></tr>
- <tr><td class='c012' colspan='2'>CHAPTER XX.</td></tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c010'>A Watch in the Night</td>
- <td class='c011'><a href='#Page_216'>216</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr><td>&nbsp;</td></tr>
- <tr><td class='c012' colspan='2'>CHAPTER XXI.</td></tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c010'>Of the Voyage of Lucille</td>
- <td class='c011'><a href='#Page_227'>227</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr><td>&nbsp;</td></tr>
- <tr><td class='c012' colspan='2'>CHAPTER XXII.</td></tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c010'>A Duel on the Sands</td>
- <td class='c011'><a href='#Page_240'>240</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr><td>&nbsp;</td></tr>
- <tr><td class='c012' colspan='2'>CHAPTER XXIII.</td></tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c010'>Shadows in the Night</td>
- <td class='c011'><a href='#Page_256'>256</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr><td>&nbsp;</td></tr>
- <tr><td class='c012' colspan='2'>CHAPTER XXIV.</td></tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c010'>How Simon Kept His Oath</td>
- <td class='c011'><a href='#Page_267'>267</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr><td>&nbsp;</td></tr>
- <tr><td class='c012' colspan='2'>CHAPTER XXV.</td></tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c010'>In the Name of the King</td>
- <td class='c011'><a href='#Page_282'>282</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr><td>&nbsp;</td></tr>
- <tr><td class='c012' colspan='2'>CHAPTER XXVI.</td></tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c010'>The Last Fight</td>
- <td class='c011'><a href='#Page_294'>294</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr><td>&nbsp;</td></tr>
- <tr><td class='c012' colspan='2'>CHAPTER XXVII.</td></tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c010'>Simon</td>
- <td class='c011'><a href='#Page_306'>306</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr><td>&nbsp;</td></tr>
- <tr><td class='c012' colspan='2'>CHAPTER XXVIII.</td></tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c010'>The End of Captain Amherst</td>
- <td class='c011'><a href='#Page_316'>316</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr><td>&nbsp;</td></tr>
- <tr><td class='c012' colspan='2'>CHAPTER XXIX.</td></tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c010'>An Order from the King</td>
- <td class='c011'><a href='#Page_328'>328</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr><td>&nbsp;</td></tr>
- <tr><td class='c012' colspan='2'>CHAPTER XXX.</td></tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c010'>Love, Honor and Obey</td>
- <td class='c011'><a href='#Page_338'>338</a></td>
- </tr>
-</table>
-<div class='pbb'>
- <hr class='pb c000' />
-</div>
-
-<div>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_9'>9</span>
- <h1 class='c013'>WITH FORCE AND ARMS.</h1>
-</div>
-<hr class='c014' />
-
-<div>
- <h2 class='c006'>CHAPTER I. <br /> <span class='small'>THE GOVERNOR’S COMMISSION.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c007'>As I left the presence of His Excellency I encountered,
-in the doorway, a man who was entering with every appearance
-of haste. We came against each other full tilt.
-For the moment the shock threw us apart.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Zounds! But you are a clumsy fellow!” he exclaimed,
-limping toward me, the expression of pain on his face
-showing that I must have hurt him. “Could you not look
-whither you were going? You stepped on my foot like
-a very horse,” and the words came testily.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>He scowled as he prepared to pass by me.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>My hand was on my sword, for he was most insulting.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Sir!” I exclaimed, “for the pain I have caused you
-I am regretful. As for ‘clumsy fellows,’ look to yourself,
-sir!”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>My weapon was out on the instant. He was not a second
-behind me. The steel blades crossed with a clash.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“What is this, sirs?” cried Sir William Phips, Massachusetts’s
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_10'>10</span>Governor, whose room I had just left. He
-hastened toward us.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“What mean you two, with your swords out in the
-Council Chamber, like a pair of swashbucklers over a card
-game? Put them up at once, you Captain Amherst; and
-you, also, Sir George. You are both at fault. This must
-go no further; do you hear? If it does, you may reckon
-with me on the quarter deck.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>My opponent and I were startled. Somewhat abashed,
-he whom the Governor called Sir George, sheathed his
-weapon, I following his action.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I looked at the man. He was tall and well built. His
-clothing was of good quality, with fine lace and ruffles;
-his sword a trusty blade, set in a hilt, studded with red
-stones. On his face there was a haughty look, yet withal,
-a trace of sadness. He gazed sharply at me, seeming about
-to put a question, but the Governor was beckoning him,
-and he passed me without a word, scowling darkly, into
-the chamber of His Excellency. Then I went out.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>There came a time, afterward, when I wished with all
-my heart, that our swords had come into use, that day;
-a time when I would have given much to have seen him
-dead before me. But there was another way.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I felt within my jacket to see if my papers were safe,
-for on them, now, depended my good fortune. I had come
-to Boston town without friends, and almost on a forlorn
-hope, for England was no longer a safe place for me,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_11'>11</span>with a relentless enemy following close on my heels at every
-step. My mission had succeeded better than I had dared
-to hope, and I was leaving now, carrying with me a captain’s
-commission, duly signed and sealed by His Excellency.
-I also had a letter of introduction to one,
-Samuel Willis, a tavern keeper at Salem.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Of the things which had come to pass before I found
-myself in Boston town, in the year of grace 1692, I will
-relate none for the present. At any rate here I was, Captain
-Edward Amherst, in age not yet a score and a half,
-in stature say a bit over six feet; in weight--but there, you
-will doubtless have more than enough of me ere I have
-finished.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Sufficient to say that I was a soldier by trade, and one
-of fortune, by necessity, and that I sought service in their
-Majesties’ American Colonies. I had left London eight
-weeks ago, bearing letters to Governor Phips, from old
-comrades in arms, some of whom had sailed the seas with
-him. Arriving in Boston I had put up at the inn, and
-had sought an audience with His Excellency, which interview
-was just over, with the ending I have described.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>When I was ushered into the presence of Sir William I
-explained in few words why I came, and what I wanted.
-He extended his hand for my letters, and, when he had
-them, he gave me no more heed for a time, but read the
-missives. I watched his face as he scanned the pages, the
-while he kept up a running fire of comments.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'><span class='pageno' id='Page_12'>12</span>“Ha! Tyler Anderson,” he said, “I know him well. He
-has a steady hand, and can use a cutlass famously. Sir
-Arthur Kent, too; a sly rascal with the women. Bob
-Frenchard; he never could get enough of fighting. John
-Powell; little Nat Edwards, also. Why, man, you might
-have all Boston as far as I am concerned, with these letters.
-You are very welcome, Captain. Now what can I
-do for you?”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Much,” I answered, surprised and pleased at his welcome;
-and then I told him what I desired; a soldier’s
-chance to mend his fortunes.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“How would a Captain’s commission, on this side of the
-water, suit you?” he asked, when I had finished. “You tell
-me that was your rank before.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“I would desire nothing better,” I said warmly.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“It is yours, then,” was the reply, and he drew out
-a parchment, partially covered with writing.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“You probably have heard of the activity of the French
-and Indian enemy on our borders,” said the Governor,
-while he prepared a quill. “We are about to proceed against
-them. You have come at a time when certain currents
-are like to drift you just where you want to go; into the
-thick of the fight.” Then he opened his ink horn.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I listened for a while to the scratching of his quill. It
-was some time before he had finished, and, looking up he
-handed a folded parchment across the table to me.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“There is your commission, Captain,” he said, rising.
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_13'>13</span>“As for your instructions, they are, in brief, these. You
-are to ride to Salem town, and enlist a company of one
-hundred men. Drill them well, against the time when we
-shall unite, and smite the French Philistine and his Indian
-allies, with fire and with sword. We will rake them fore
-and aft. An expedition against Canada is timed for this
-season next year. I hope it will be more successful than
-the one I led two years ago, for indeed that was a grievous
-failure, though, of a truth, it was against heavy odds.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I had heard of the manner in which Frontenac had
-scattered Phips and the English fleet sent against him, but
-I held my peace; for failure is no happy subject with any
-man. Sir William told me in few words that Admiral Sir
-Francis Wheeler was expected to arrive in March, with his
-fleet from the Caribbee Islands. Governor Phips had undertaken
-to raise small companies of men throughout the
-Colony, to act with the Admiral on his arrival. This much
-he told me, then, bidding me a pleasant farewell, and
-wishing me success, he took up his quill again, to indicate
-that the audience was at an end.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>My encounter with the man in the doorway passed from
-my mind, as I descended the steps of the Town Hall, and
-trudged along the street, to where I had stabled my mare
-Kit. With busy thoughts of what might be before me
-I led Kit out of the door, leaped into the saddle, and was
-off at a round trot, in the direction a lad pointed out as
-leading to Salem.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'><span class='pageno' id='Page_14'>14</span>Of a truth, I was away now to seek my fortune in this
-new land, and, I hoped, with the promise of as many
-adventures as ever befell a knight of old. So, over hill and
-across dale I rode, soon leaving behind the pleasant town
-and the outlying farm lands. I had not gone many miles ere
-the snow, which had been threatening since morning, began
-to fall from the dull, leaden sky, piling up on the white
-covering of previous storms. The flakes sifted down, lazily
-at first, but soon began to gather more thickly as the wind
-rose, so I urged the mare on by spur and voice, determined
-to reach Salem by night, if I could. Now the snow came
-down ever quicker and faster. It swirled and swished, and
-blew in drifts, until I was fain to stop, look about me and
-see where I was. I pulled the mare up as I reached the
-top of a little hill, and peered through the clouds of cutting
-flakes for some sight of the road, which, it was evident, I
-had lost some time ago. Kit would have turned tail to the
-wind, but I pressed my knees against her sides, and held
-her to the blast. There was little hope in going back, perhaps
-less in proceeding.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>But I decided to continue in the hope of coming to some
-shelter, and I patted the mare on the neck to set her going
-again. She lurched forward into a drift so deep that it
-well nigh covered my knees as I sat in the saddle, and
-my boots were filled with snow through their wide, gaping
-tops.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Steady, girl!” I shouted, for, indeed, less voice could
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_15'>15</span>scarce have been heard. We were fairly lost now, and
-for the last hour had been wandering back and forth
-across country, I knew not how far from the road. I
-did not see a single landmark in the stretch of whiteness,
-my only hope having been that I might keep the right
-way. Kit began to back, seeking to rid herself of the
-cutting wind, and I had hard work to force her to stand.
-Should I turn to the left, to the right, or keep straight
-on? The wind seemed to blow less fiercely from the
-south, so I swung Kit about in that direction, pulled
-her to the left, and urged her on.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>She responded nobly, and reared, rather than stepped
-out of the snow bank. Her fore feet struck solid ground,
-and then, feeling the hard road beneath her hoofs, she
-pulled herself forward. We had struck the right path
-at last, and, after hours of fierce weather-beating, like
-a ship at sea, lost in a storm, we were fairly homeward
-bound, on the way to Salem town.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I rode on more quickly now, settling my hat firmer
-on my head, and pressing the leather lining against my
-benumbed ears. My collar scarce kept the snow and wind
-from my neck, and every half mile or so I was obliged
-to drop the reins and, after feeling that my sword had
-not dropped off in some snow drift, knock my hands
-together to bring their fingers some little warmth.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Verily, I thought that the road would never lead me
-to the friendly tavern of Master Samuel Willis, who,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_16'>16</span>as I had heard in Boston, provided refreshment for
-man and beast. And surely no two stood more in need
-of it than Kit and myself that cold February day.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>A fiercer squall and gust of wind than any that had
-proceeded, fairly brought the mare to a stand. I lifted
-my hat a bit, held my interlocked fingers before my eyes,
-and peered ahead. Dimly, like a speck of black on a
-white sheet, that a dame might spread on the grass
-to bleach, I saw in front a house.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“May that be the tavern,” I quoth, and, with a heart
-that smote me a trifle, for she had traveled far and
-well that day, I dug the spurs into Kit’s flanks. She
-leaped through the drifts, and, at length, when she could
-make no more progress, I found myself before the snow-heaped
-steps of Salem Inn.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>The wind, shunted off by a corner of the building,
-beat less fiercely at this point, and the roar was somewhat
-subdued. I drew my sword, for I could not reach
-the door knocker from where I sat on Kit’s back, and
-with the hilt gave several blows on the oak.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Who’s without?” came a woman’s voice from within.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“A friend; Captain Edward Amherst,” I cried. “Open
-in the King’s name, if for no other reason.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Now ere I had ceased speaking the heavy door swung
-inward, revealing such a warmth and such a snug, homelike
-appearance, and, withal, letting out such savory
-odors, that poor Kit whinnied in anticipation of what
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_17'>17</span>might be her share of the feed. As for myself, I threw
-one leg over the saddle, leaped to the ground, strode to
-the door, and went inside. I shouted to a stout serving
-man, snugly ensconced in the chimney corner, to look
-after the mare, and then I approached the blazing fire.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“The Lord defend us! Goliath and the Philistines are
-upon us!” cried out Mistress Willis, for she it was who
-had opened the door.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I turned toward her. Now, of a truth, I am not overly
-large. But, with a stout leather jacket on, my sword
-by my side, and heavy boots on my legs, I did look big
-to the good dame’s eyes. Yet I stood not so much over
-six feet, when in my woolen hose, and, in girth, full many
-a comrade, of times past, whose body rests beneath the
-bogs of Sedgemoor, in Somersetshire, was larger. Yet,
-in all modesty do I say it, there were none who were of
-greater strength in shoulders or arms, and that, with a
-wiry and supple wrist, stood me in good stead at sword
-play.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Neither Goliath nor a Philistine am I,” was my answer,
-while I let the genial warmth get nearer to my bones
-as I cast hat and jacket into a corner, “but an Essex man
-by birth and breed. But, mark you, Mistress,” I went
-on, “if I do not get a mug of ale, and a bit of roast beef
-soon, I will be nothing at all, for I lost my road early this
-morn, and no bite nor sup has passed my lips since. Thus
-I am half starved. So bustle about----”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'><span class='pageno' id='Page_18'>18</span>“Aye, ‘bustle about’ it is,” answered she, repeating my
-words, though in no great anger. “Bustle about is all
-I’ve done since sunrise. What with Willis away all
-day, attending on Dr. Clarke; with the snow, and only
-one serving man, I have scarce time to----”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Peace,” said I, for I never loved a woman’s tongue
-when it ran in that strain, “peace, and bring the ale and
-beef. You may talk afterward if you like. I can listen
-better then.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Mistress Willis looked at me a minute, as if she would
-reply, but she came to another conclusion, ceased her
-clatter, and bustled about to such good advantage that
-she soon had on the table a plate of smoking hot beef, and
-some cakes of yellow corn meal, with pats of golden butter.
-There was also a stone mug of good ale. I gulped down
-a big drink of it, and, when the flavor of it had mellowed
-me, and the warmth gone clear down to my toes,
-I did drink again, this time to the health of Mistress
-Willis. For, though I like not a woman’s tongue when
-they talk over much, I know the value of being in their
-good graces. And so I ate and drank, and ate again,
-until I felt the cold leave me, and the memory of the
-biting wind and driving snow of an hour before was
-forgotten. I leaned back in my chair, and looked all about
-me, while the fire in the big chimney place flickered and
-spluttered; the hickory logs smelling like sweet nuts, and
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_19'>19</span>cracking with the heat, as a teamster snaps his whip on
-a frosty morning.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I let my eyes take in the room, with the oak beams
-overhead, blackened by smoke, the heavy tables and chairs,
-and the clean sanded floor. It was getting on toward
-night now, and the wind had died out. I was alone in
-the room, but I could hear Mistress Willis walking about
-in the apartment overhead, and giving some orders to
-the servant. I rose from my chair somewhat wearied,
-wishing that the inn keeper would return, so that I might
-meet him, and seek my bed. I walked to the window,
-noting that the moon had risen, and that the snow had
-ceased. As I looked through the casement I started, and
-doubted whether my eyes beheld aright, for I saw a sight
-of more than passing strangeness, and one that, for a
-time, struck terror to my heart.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>The snow, which had been as white as a fleecy cloud,
-was now as red as blood beneath the silver moon!</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>At the same time I saw, coming toward the inn, at
-top speed, three men who ran on, never once halting to
-glance behind them.</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_20'>20</span>
- <h2 class='c006'>CHAPTER II. <br /> <span class='small'>OF THE SCARLET SNOW.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c007'>There was a clatter on the stairs as Mistress Willis
-came down, her face white as the snow had been. She
-saw the red mantle from an upper window, and came to
-stand beside me, with fright in her eyes.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Together we watched the three figures, her breath coming
-like that of one who had run far, her heart thumping
-against her ribs. For myself, the first start over, I recalled
-that once before I had seen snow like that. Learned
-men said small Arctic plants in floating clouds, or tiny
-insects, had dyed the white flakes crimson. Yet in the
-town of Salem, that night, that a red shadow of doom
-portended, was the dread in every heart.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Nearer and nearer came the three men. Their boots
-cast up the snow, blood red on top and white beneath, so
-that their path was marked like a pale streak of dawn
-athwart a morning sky. They reached the inn door, and
-burst into the room scarce stopping to raise the latch.
-The shorter of the three, whom I took to be Master
-Willis, by reason of his good-natured face, from which
-even fear had not chased all the jollity, cried out:</p>
-
-<p class='c008'><span class='pageno' id='Page_21'>21</span>“Oh, Lord, deliver us! ’Tis the snow of blood, and
-the witches of the air have sent it upon us. Of a truth
-they be demons of darkness; those who will be on trial
-to-morrow,” and he fell to murmuring a psalm tune in
-a high pitched, quavering voice, crowding the while into
-the chimney corner, where he could not see the red snow.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Now I was sore puzzled by all that had happened,
-although I set but small store by the crimson flakes. The
-talk of demons of darkness, and witches of the air, came
-with an odd sound to my ears. The more so as I had
-heard that these New Englanders were a plain, practical
-people, much given to prayers and pious works. To hear
-Master Willis prate of mysterious beings, then, made me
-wonder what had come to pass. The three men, and the
-wife of Willis, were huddled together now, one of them
-occasionally glancing with awestruck eyes out of the window.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“There is one comfort, though,” muttered the inn
-keeper, “the witches will be no more after to-morrow,
-as their trial is set for then, and there will be a short
-shrift, when once the honorable judges have passed sentence.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“’Tis none too soon,” put in Mistress Willis. “Had
-the doers of witchcraft been hung or burned to-day, this
-evil would not have fallen upon us. Who knows what
-else may follow. These are troubled times,” and she
-glanced uneasily out of the window again.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'><span class='pageno' id='Page_22'>22</span>I had been forgotten in the sudden terror, and I stood
-in the far corner of the room, waiting until I might have
-some attention. Seeing that I was like to stay there some
-time without notice, so firmly had the fear laid hold of
-the company, I stepped from my place, and, as I saw
-the inn keeper’s eyes turn toward me, I spoke:</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Master Willis,” I began, but I had scarce uttered the
-words than the mistress screamed, and the three men
-turned, as if to flee from the room. Verily, I believe they
-took me for a witch. Had not the logs in the fireplace
-blazed up then, showing who I was, there is no telling
-what might have happened.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Mistress Willis gave a sigh of relief while the tavern
-owner and his companions stared at me.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Lackaday! I had clear forgotten you,” said the
-matron. “’Tis some one to see you, Samuel Willis.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Me?” repeated her husband.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Captain Edward Amherst, at your service,” said I,
-bowing slightly. “I bear a commission from His Excellency
-Sir William Phips, and I was bidden to seek this
-inn, and to make it my headquarters for a time. I also
-have a letter from Sir William for you, Master Willis.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Ha! ’Tis a strange time to get a letter,” ejaculated
-mine host, taking the missive I held out. “And I can
-scarce break the seal from the trembling of my hand over
-this visitation of wrath that has come upon us.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>However, he managed, after several attempts, to crack
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_23'>23</span>the wax. Then, candles having been brought, he read what
-Sir William had addressed to him.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“You are very welcome, Captain,” said Willis, “though
-you come, indeed, at a grievous time. Sin, woe and
-misery are abroad in the land. We are threatened by the
-French and the Indians from without, and by horrid
-witchcraft within. ’Tis enough to make an honest man
-believe the end of the world is nigh. But, of a truth, you
-are welcome. We have been expecting that some military
-authority would be sent to Salem, to make ready for an
-aggressive movement.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Rumor has already been busy,” he went on, “talking
-of the blow we are to strike at the enemies of the Crown
-in the American Colonies. How we are to swoop down,
-by land and by sea, on the French in Canada. I see by
-this that you are authorized to raise an hundred good men
-at arms in Salem town.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“If it be possible,” I said.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“I believe it will be no hard task to get them,” responded
-Willis. “What think you, Dr. Clarke, or you, Master
-Hobbs? Though you are more versed in physic, doctor,
-and you in wheelwright lore, Master Hobbs, than in feats
-of arms. As for me, I can point a fowling piece, or a
-rifle, with no trembling hand, and at sword play I used
-not to count myself the worst of our militia,” and the inn
-keeper drew himself up proudly, and made one or two
-passes at an imaginary foe.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'><span class='pageno' id='Page_24'>24</span>“Now that you know my errand, enough is spoken of
-it for the time,” I said. “Tell me, what bodes this talk
-of evils abroad in the land; of spirits and witchcraft?
-The red snow I count not for much, having seen the same
-happening in the north of France once on a time. ’Tis
-but passing; a mist of tiny Arctic plants, a flight of
-forest insects, even a glint of red sun through a hidden
-cloud may cause it.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Nay,” came in deep tones from Dr. Clarke. “Talk
-not lightly, young man, of that which you wot little.
-Know you, that this day I have been called in to minister
-to Elizabeth Parris, and Abigaile Williams, the daughter
-and niece, respectively, of our good Dominie, Samuel
-Parris. Verily the children be possessed by witches of
-the air, for their actions were most strange. They bore
-no marks, yet they continually cried out that witches ever
-thrust pins in their flesh. And Mistress Parris told me
-how pins were cast up from the children’s throats, though
-I saw not the instruments of torture, they having been
-removed before my arrival. Sometimes the children were
-at peace, and, on a sudden they would cry out that the
-witches were at them again though at no time were the
-spirits visible to me.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“How did you then learn who the witches were?” I
-asked in some curiosity.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“’Twas easily done,” replied the physician, “for in
-their fits the children cried out the names of those who
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_25'>25</span>were tormenting them. They spoke of Tituba, an Indian
-servant in the same house with them, and of one, Marie
-de Guilfort, a maid, living not far off. These two, they
-said, had appeared to them, and thrust pins and needles
-into their bodies.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“And what was done with the two thus accused?” said I.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“What would you have?” interposed Willis. “The law
-of our Colony prescribes death for all who, whether male
-or female, practice witchcraft.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Even so,” went on Dr. Clarke. “These two, having
-been named as witches, and Mistress Parris, affirming on
-oath, for the children, the witches were seized by the constables,
-and now lie in Salem gaol. To-morrow is the
-trial day in the Oyer and Terminer Court. And, if further
-proof was needed that the two were witches, this
-scarlet snow is more than enough.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“That will pass,” I said, yet I wondered, with a strange
-feeling in my heart, what evils might portend. Little
-did I guess what perilous times were ahead; when no
-man’s nor no woman’s life was safe. When the false fear
-of witchcraft stalked abroad in the land like a horrid
-spectre, slaying, burning, hanging and crushing.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“See!” cried Hobbs, the wheelwright, pointing to the
-window.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>The red glow outside was fading away, and the moon
-shone peacefully on the fast whitening snow. Slowly the
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_26'>26</span>angry red died out, seeming to sink down into the earth,
-and with it went some of the fears of those in the room.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“’Tis wonderful! Never before did my eyes behold
-such a feat of witchcraft,” said the inn keeper.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Then, as we watched, the scarlet covering disappeared
-entirely, leaving the scene as peaceful as the day had been
-stormy. It was close on to nine o’clock now, and Dr.
-Clarke and the wheelwright began to make plans for
-going home.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“I suppose, Hobbs, that you do not mind going around
-by the mill with me?” suggested the physician. “’Tis
-at best a lonesome place, and, though I have no fears,
-still one man may be no proof against witches. What
-say you, Hobbs?”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“If I go by the mill with you,” protested the wheelwright,
-“I will have to pass alone over the bridge whereon,
-only to-day, Tituba was taken. Nay, Dr. Clarke, I’ll go
-by the back road to my home, if it please you.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“But, Hobbs,” urged the man of physic, “the road over
-the bridge is bathed in moonlight, besides----”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Enough, I’ll not go,” replied the other. “Was it not
-near the mill that the other witch was observed to be
-plucking flowers last summer? Who knows but she has
-cast a spell over the place?”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Verily the two would never have screwed up courage
-to go home, had not Willis urged that he was about to
-close his tavern. So they were forced to make a start.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'><span class='pageno' id='Page_27'>27</span>I peered out of the window to see which ways they took.
-Dr. Clarke continued in his endeavor to convince Hobbs
-that the road by the mill was the best, but the wheelwright
-was stubborn. Suddenly he turned and ran across
-the snow toward his home. Left there alone in the night,
-the physician faced about also, and, glancing behind him,
-as if he feared to see the Devil, he sped on toward the
-mill.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I was tired and sleepy after my ride, so, with a word to
-Willis I lost no time seeking my chamber; one of the few
-that the tavern boasted of. My head was filled with plans
-for leading men once more to battle. For I loved the
-strife of war, the clash of steel on steel, the smell of powder,
-and the shouts of foes and comrades. Well, I was soon
-to have my fill of it, though I dreamed not that I would
-have to fight with such foes as presently beset me.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>The sun was shining when I arose in the morning,
-to dash cold water on my face and hands from an ice-ribbed
-basin in the corner, for the night had been cold,
-and there was no heat in the room. Yet when I emerged
-I found the sunlit air warm, and it seemed as if Nature
-had forgotten her fierce, boisterous mood of yesterday.
-Willis greeted me as I came from the stable, whither I
-had gone to see that Kit had had her full measure of
-corn.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“’Tis little you can do to-day,” he said, “for this cursed
-witchcraft has so laid hold of men that talk of war and
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_28'>28</span>fighting will scarce interest them now, even though the
-battle be against their mortal foes, the French and
-Indians.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“A magistrate and a jury will try the two witches to-day
-at the court house. Since you have nothing better
-to do come there with me. ’Twill be a sight, I warrant,
-you have never seen before. Nor have I, though stories
-of how, in days gone by, witches were tried in Boston have
-come down to me from my father.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Who are the two called witches?” I asked, when
-breakfast, for which I had a great relish, was finished.
-While I fastened on my sword, preparing to follow the
-inn keeper, he answered me.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“One, the elder woman,” he said, “is Tituba, an Indian
-slave, and there is little doubt that she is a witch. I
-make no bones but she is familiar with Satan, for I dare
-not look her in the eyes, yet I count myself afraid of little
-on this earth. The other, were she not a witch, I could
-well be sorry for, as she is beautiful to look upon; a girl
-almost. Yet it but proves how the evil one can use even
-beauty to gain his ends. Marie de Guilfort is the name
-of the young witch. She is a French Huguenot, who,
-with her cousin, Lucille de Guilfort, and the latter’s
-father, M. Louis de Guilfort, came to Salem some five
-years back. The old man died, not being able to withstand
-the rigors of our winters, and the two girls have
-since lived alone, with an old servant to see after their
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_29'>29</span>wants. Both of them are more than passing fair to look
-upon. Is it not a pity that in such a body, in one so
-young and lovely, there should be a soul sold to Satan?”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“You saw the purchase made, then?” I asked with some
-spirit, for I did not like the positive tone of Willis.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“What purchase?”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Of the soul of the one you call Marie de Guilfort?”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“No man did,” he answered, half angrily. “Yet it cannot
-be doubted. For did not the child say that Marie
-tormented her with pins? And how could these be thrust,
-Marie not being present, unless the Devil helped her?”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I shrugged my shoulders, for I thought it was little
-use to argue with a mind that laid stress on such points.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Will the child’s testimony, and that of the mother,
-be enough to convict the girl of witchcraft?” I went on,
-rather curious to know how they managed such affairs in
-New England.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“There will be other witnesses,” said Willis, “and
-enough to bring the matter to a close.” We were at the
-court house steps now, and I ceased my talk to observe
-what was going on.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>The crowd was there before us. They pushed and
-swayed about the narrow doorway, moving first this way
-and then that. It was a strange assemblage. None in
-it was laughing. There was no jesting, no calling from
-one to another. Instead there was a calm quietness about
-it, a set, serious look on the faces that partook of a sense
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_30'>30</span>of a duty to be performed--one that could not be shirked.
-Into the room, with its high ceiling and dark oaken beams
-overhead, the people swarmed, making but little confusion.
-After some crowding and quiet jostling, Master Willis
-and I managed to obtain seats near the door. We had
-scarcely gotten into them before the tavern keeper, peering
-up, whispered:</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“There goes Stephen Sewall, the clerk. Note how
-proudly he bears his ink horn and quills. He seems to
-know not any one now, though only yesterday he begged
-me to trust him for a glass of ale, and I did so. There
-come the jurors,” added Willis, “and, see! The prisoners!
-The witches!”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“I see them not,” I said looking all about. There were
-a few women present, but none of these seemed to be in
-custody.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Farther to the left,” said Willis, “mark where Constable
-George Locker, and his companion, Jonathan Putnam
-sit?”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Aye, I see.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Note the two women next to them?”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Yes.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“They be the witches. Lord prevent that they cast
-their eyes this <a id='corr30.24'></a><span class='htmlonly'><ins class='correction' title='way?”'>way!”</ins></span><span class='epubonly'><a href='#c_30.24'><ins class='correction' title='way?”'>way!”</ins></a></span> and back the inn keeper shrank into
-his seat.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>One of the prisoners was a young girl, as fair as one
-could wish. The other was an Indian woman, as dark as
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_31'>31</span>the brown bark of a pine tree. The maid sat with downcast
-eyes, and deadly terror written in every line of her
-shrinking form. The eyes of the Indian roved about,
-looking boldly at the people, as if she bid defiance to her
-enemies.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I noted that across from me a woman, or rather a
-maiden, sat with her head bowed on the rough bench in
-front of her. A cloak concealed most of her figure, and
-the hood of the garment was drawn up over her head.
-From this covering a dark ringlet of hair had escaped,
-and rested lightly on her white cheek. Her little hand,
-with the pink nails showing against the white flesh, grasped
-the edge of the seat tightly.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I nudged Master Willis, and asked in a low tone who
-she was. He did not hear me, for just then the court
-criers entered, calling loudly for silence. There was a
-pause, and then, slowly, and with becoming dignity, the
-dark gowned judges made their appearance.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Their Honors, Judges John Hathorne and Jonathan
-Corwin,” said Willis. “The trial will begin directly
-now.”</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_32'>32</span>
- <h2 class='c006'>CHAPTER III. <br /> <span class='small'>THE TRIAL.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c007'>The cries of “Silence” by the constables were some time
-in being of effect, so anxious were the people without to
-get in. The efforts of those inside to secure places of
-vantage was also the cause of some confusion and noise,
-but, at length, order was obtained. The learned looking
-judges, with their wigs and gowns, whispered to each
-other, and then to the clerk. There was some passing of
-papers back and forth among them, and then Clark Sewall,
-clearing his voice importantly, read from a parchment
-he held:</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Indictment of Tituba, the Indian, and of Marie de
-Guilfort. The jurors for our Sovereign Lord and Lady,
-King William and Queen Mary, do present that you,
-Tituba, the Indian, and Marie de Guilfort, in the county
-of Essex, upon the 26th day of February, in the fourth
-year of the reign of our Sovereign Lieges, rulers, by the
-grace of God, over England, Ireland, Scotland and France,
-King and Queen, defenders of the faith; divers other days
-and times, as well as before and after, certain detestable
-arts called witchcraft and sorceries, wickedly and feloniously,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_33'>33</span>hath used, preached, exercised, at and within the
-township of Salem aforesaid, in and upon and against
-Elizabeth Parris and Abigaile Williams. By which said
-wicked arts the said children are hurt and tortured,
-afflicted, pined, consumed, wasted and tormented. And
-also for sundry acts of witchcraft, by the said Tituba and
-Marie committed and done before and since that time,
-against the peace of our Sovereign Lord and Lady, their
-Crown and dignity, and against the forms of statutes in
-that case made and provided.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>All this the clerk read, scarce pausing for breath, and,
-when he had finished, a sound like a great sigh went up
-from the people.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Terrible! Oh, most terrible!” whispered Willis.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Out upon you,” I exclaimed. “’Tis naught but a
-lot of high sounding law terms. Master Sewall has a
-pretty trick of rolling them off his tongue.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I glanced at the prisoners, who had been led to chairs
-on the high platform near the judges’ desks. She, who
-was called Marie, looked straight over the heads of the
-crowd, right down to where I sat. Her eyes roved on
-past me to the shrinking form of the maiden at my right.
-The latter raised her head, her eyes dim with tears.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>While I watched her lips moved, as if in prayer, and
-she stretched out her arms to the beautiful girl on the
-stand.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Who is the maid at our right?” I asked of Willis.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'><span class='pageno' id='Page_34'>34</span>“’Tis Lucille, the cousin of Marie,” he answered.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Just then Lucille turned her head, and her eyes met
-mine. Full half a minute we gazed at each other, and
-though I know not the import of the message that came
-from her eyes, it was like one that would make me do her
-bidding, even though death stood in the way.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>The indictment having been read the witnesses against
-the accused were called. The mother of Elizabeth
-mounted the stand, and began giving her testimony in a
-dull, monotonous tone.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>She told how the two children were of a sudden stricken
-into fits one day, which illness Dr. Clarke was not able
-to allay. Then the children cried out that some one was
-thrusting pins in them. Dr. Jacobs related how he had
-been called in, and, finding no evident cause for the ailments,
-had concluded, with Dr. Clarke, that the girls
-were possessed by witches. How the learned men arrived
-at this conclusion they said not.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Then came strange testimony. Dr. Jacobs told how
-he had cautioned Mistress Parris to hang the children’s
-blankets near the fireplace at night, burning whatever
-fell therefrom. A great toad dropped out, the woman
-said, and a boy caught the reptile up with the tongs, and
-threw it in the fire. It exploded with a noise like gun
-powder, and the next day Tituba was found to be burned
-on the left cheek, which made it plain that she had
-changed herself into a toad for the purpose of tormenting
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_35'>35</span>the children. What further proof was wanting? If there
-was it would seem to have been furnished by the girls
-themselves.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>They were brought into court, trembling and shrinking
-back. And then, suddenly, with mine own eyes, I saw
-them fall down in strange fits, the like of which I had
-never seen before. They cried that pins and knives were
-being stuck into them by Marie and Tituba. Though
-how that could be I fathomed not, for the hapless women
-never moved from their seats. But a murmer went
-around, and the judges, nodding their heads, looked
-grave.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Next Farmer John Sloan related how he was removing
-his hay from the meadow, using three carts.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“And, your Honors,” he said, “when I passed Tituba’s
-house one of the wheels touched her gate post, and she
-muttered an evil spell against me. After that the cart
-was overturned, though the road was without ruts. Coming
-from the field on the next trip the cart did somehow
-fasten itself between two gate posts, so that they had to be
-cut away ere the cart could be drawn through. Yet
-neither the wheels nor the sides nor any part of the cart
-did touch the posts.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“’Tis enough,” broke in Judge Corwin. “Do you question
-the prisoners, Judge Hathorne. Let not the day of
-judgment be stayed. A great evil is upon the land, and
-must be purged away.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'><span class='pageno' id='Page_36'>36</span>Judge Hathorne asked Tituba what evil spirit she had
-familiarity with, and whether she had ever seen the
-Devil.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Then of a sudden she rose in her chair. She let her
-eyes rove over the room, while the whole assemblage,
-judges, jurors, and all save myself, cowered in their seats.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Aye,” she shrieked, “aye, I have seen him. He came
-to me in his chariot of fire, and bade me serve him. I
-dared not say him nay. Also have I seen two rats, a red
-one and a white one. And they did command that I
-pinch the children. Aye, the rats did carry me to them
-like a spirit of the air, and I pinched them and thrust
-sharp pins in them. Aye, the Devil! the Devil! the
-Devil!”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>And then the creature ceased, and shrank back in her
-chair, crooning away in her own tongue. The judges on
-their benches shuddered, and many near me whispered:</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“She is a witch, indeed.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Next their honors turned toward Marie, and a sound
-like a great deep cry came from the maiden near me. I
-half started from my seat, and had a mind to draw my
-sword, to do what I could to rescue the beautiful girl who
-seemed to me to be as innocent as the flowers. But even
-as I rose, scowling looks met me at every side. Some of the
-constables hastened in my direction, and Master Willis,
-with a quick motion, drew me back into my seat. Clearly
-the town folks were witch-mad, and would brook no interference
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_37'>37</span>with their doings. I listened to what the judge
-was saying.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Are you a witch?” he asked of Marie. But she did
-not reply.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Answer,” commanded the clerk. “Tell his Honor if
-you be a witch.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Then in a voice that, though it was weak from fear,
-yet which seemed like the tinkle of a silver bell, sad and
-sweet, came the reply:</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“I am no witch indeed. You who have known me since
-I have lived among you know me for but a harmless
-maid.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“True enough; she was kind to me when my child was
-sick unto death,” said a woman near me. But the terror
-of the scarlet snow of the night before had seized on the
-minds of all, so that they could not see the truth.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Confess, and ye die not,” said Judge Hathorne. He
-leaned over toward Marie, a trace of pity on his face.
-But Marie only looked down at her cousin, whose lips
-were moving in silent prayer. “Will ye not confess, and
-save your soul?” persisted the judge, in some anger at
-the manner in which the fair prisoner ignored him.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“I can speak in the presence of God, safely, as I may
-look to give account another day,” said Marie, “that I
-am as innocent of witchcraft as the babe unborn.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>There was a murmur in the crowd, but it was quickly
-hushed. The Indian woman was swaying back and forth
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_38'>38</span>in her chair, mumbling away, and now and then breaking
-out into a wild melody. Some near me said she was singing
-her death song as is the custom of that race.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>The judges motioned the jury to retire, and, while they
-were out I sat looking at Lucille. Her body was shaking
-with sobs. Marie, on the contrary, did nothing but sit
-and stare away into vacancy, with wide, unseeing eyes,
-like a beautiful statue.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>It seemed but a short time ere the jury was back again.
-Once more the constables proclaimed silence. The jurors
-took their seats. There were the usual questions and answers,
-and then the leader said:</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“We find Tituba, the Indian, and Marie de Guilfort
-guilty of witchcraft.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“And the sentence of this court is that you both be
-taken hence and hanged by the necks until ye both are
-dead, and may God have mercy on your souls,” came from
-the judge.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>The fatal words scarce were uttered when Lucille rose
-from her seat. Her face was the color of the white snow
-outside. She reeled, and would have fallen, had I not
-sprang toward her, catching her in my arms, and carrying
-her to the fresh air without. I held her, hardly knowing
-what to do with the lovely burden, until some women,
-who had hastened from the court room came up and relieved
-me. Then like one in a dream I made my way to
-the tavern. I was aware of a multitude following the
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_39'>39</span>prisoners to the gaol, crowding about the unfortunates,
-as if rejoicing at their distress. Then I left the assemblage
-behind, and went into the inn, where I drank deep
-of the ale to try and drive from my mind the memory
-of what I had observed.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>’Twas but a few hours since I had reached Salem, yet
-I had seen strange sights. I had been near to death, I
-had been witness to the scarlet snow, and I had heard the
-words of doom pronounced. Truly events moved with no
-little speed in this new land.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>The day passed, and I did not leave the inn. The
-darkness fell. There came a confused murmer from the
-centre of the town. Some men passed the tavern, running
-in the direction of the little hill, whence I had first
-found the right path, in my journey of the night before.
-They were hastening to the place of execution. I went to
-bed with a heavy heart. And I dreamed strange dreams
-of horrid witches.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I rose as soon as it was light, but, early as I was, the
-inn keeper was before me. He told me the two prisoners
-had been hung that night, and, though I desired greatly
-to question him concerning Lucille de Guilfort, I forebore.
-However, he spoke of her soon, telling me that
-she had been with her cousin to the last. The gaolers
-had to drag them apart, when they led Marie to the scaffold.
-After the execution Lucille had gone to her home
-in great distress, attended by some women folks, who
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_40'>40</span>vainly tried to console her. It made my blood boil to
-think of the matter, and, when my hand fell to my
-sword hilt, I felt that I would ask no better work than to
-lay about among some of these witch-finders.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>But there was other work ahead of me. I must soon
-begin to plan for the raising of my men, as desired by
-Sir William.</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_41'>41</span>
- <h2 class='c006'>CHAPTER IV. <br /> <span class='small'>HOW I CAST THE KNIFE.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c007'>I soon began to take up the threads of the life in
-Salem, since it was like that I would be there for some
-time to come. Now that I look back over it I am constrained
-to say that in no place had I ever found men
-and women who made of life so serious a business. Yet,
-with all, there was much to admire in them. The witch
-craze appeared to have passed, though it left scars behind,
-and sad remembrances for some.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I made the acquaintance of many who came to the inn,
-and learned much of the new land and its people. I
-resolved, as soon as the weather should grow milder, to
-look about and see what sort of soldier material I might
-expect among the recruits. I must also learn something
-of the country roundabout, as well as of the red men of
-the forest who inhabited it. Every day I sallied from
-the inn, and took long walks. The weather was growing
-mild now, and the snow was melting from off the hills
-and meadows.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>There was some hunting to be had, and I often went
-out with a fowling piece, and came back with a brace
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_42'>42</span>of partridge or squirrels, that made dainty dishes, when
-Mistress Willis had broiled them over a blazing wood
-fire, or fried them in sweet butter to a delicate brown
-crisp.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Sometimes as I walked, or hunted or fished, there would
-come to me a memory of Lucille de Guilfort, as I had
-seen her that day in the court room. I had caught but few
-glimpses of her since, and then she had passed me by
-with a bow, and a little smile, albeit a sad one. Though
-to me she seemed the most lovely maid I had ever seen,
-I was to her, apparently, no more than any one else of
-the Colony. She bowed to Willis, as she did to me.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>At times I would sit idly on a woodland bank, my gun
-across my knees, the squirrels playing, unharmed, and not
-afraid, in the trees above me. I pictured to myself Lucille.
-Her eyes were brown; her hair a deep blue-black,
-as a fine steel rifle barrel might be shaded. Her face was
-like--but what it was like, ’tis beyond me to describe.
-There was love in it, and her lips seemed made to kiss.
-Her voice was low and clear, like a bell, and made one
-long, when he had once heard her speak to hear her
-again.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>But it was little use to dwell on such thoughts, I concluded,
-for, though I would have liked to see her every
-day, there was but one in seven when I might do so of a
-certainty. That was on Sunday, when she, with all the
-other colonists went up to the little meeting house, on the
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_43'>43</span>hill. There good Dominie Parris held forth, at no uncertain
-length on the trials and troubles of this world,
-and on the necessity of saving the soul from the Devil
-and the wrath to come. To my shame be it, perhaps,
-but I am afraid I paid but little heed to the minister, for,
-from my bench I could catch a glimpse of Lucille, and,
-sometimes, see her face when she turned about. Full
-many a Sunday I sat thus, greatly cramped in my body,
-for my legs ill fitted the small benches, though I felt
-repaid if she but turned her head once.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>The dominie would read page after page of the scriptures,
-and then expound them at length, while, beneath
-the pulpit sat the clerk, turning the hour glass, when
-the sands had run from the top to the bottom. And,
-most often, it was two full turnings ere the sermon was
-finished. Another time it might be three, while, on one
-weary day (I was preciously sleepy too) I recall that the
-clerk turned the glass four times before the lastly was
-reached. Yet I sat through it all without a murmur,
-for such things a man will do sometimes, when he is not
-quite himself, because of a maid.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Once Cotton Mather, a great preacher from Boston,
-came to Salem, and his text was witchcraft. He warned
-his hearers to be on their guard against witches, who,
-he said, were abroad in the land. He referred to the scarlet
-snow, and to the two executions that had taken place
-in our Salem Colony. He also related such facts about
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_44'>44</span>witches, as had come to his knowledge, he said. He spoke
-so strongly of the powers of the witches, that the whole
-congregation almost was in great terror. Some timid
-folks double barred their doors that night, lest the witches
-should get in. This must have been a precaution of little
-use, for, if I had heard aright the witches did not stop
-at solid stone walls, to say nothing of oak doors. Oh,
-how foolish it all was, though it did not seem so then to
-many.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>So the days went on. I had learned much of the
-Colony affairs, and made the acquaintance of the principal
-men. I had seen enough to know that a goodly company
-could be raised in Salem, and I dispatched a messenger to
-Sir William with that information.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>But as to the throwing of the knife and what followed.
-I was idly strolling through the forest one day when I
-came to a place where two paths diverged. The left led
-on down past the common and to the grist mill, while
-the other went deeper into the woods. With scarce a
-thought I turned to the right, and walked on into the
-forest.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>The last vestige of snow had gone save from the hill
-tops, and the air was warm with sunlight. The birds
-were beginning to fly northward, and, as I walked, a
-flock of crows passed over head, cawing to each other.
-There was but little of winter left, and that was fast disappearing.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'><span class='pageno' id='Page_45'>45</span>On and on I traveled, paying small heed to my steps
-until I found myself in a sort of glen, the sides of which
-rose steeply on either side, while the trees, locking their
-branches above, made it twilight at noonday. I came to
-a halt and looked about me.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Glancing along one side of the ravine I observed naught
-save the dull brown of the shrubs and trees, some of which
-showed a little green as a forerunner of spring. Then
-my eyes took in the other side of the glen. I started in
-sudden fright, for what I saw made me weak-kneed, it
-was so horrible.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>There stood Lucille, with her back against a tree, her
-soft gray dress contrasting with the deep brown of the
-bark. She was not looking at me, and I saw that her
-gaze was directed to a spot on the ground in front of her.
-Following her glance I saw with terror that the spot was
-of mottled yellow, brown and white. And then I knew it
-was not a spot, but a great snake, coiled, and ready to
-spring.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Its head waved sideways, with a slow, sinuous motion,
-and the forked tongue ever darted in and out, like a
-weaver’s shuttle. Lucille, I saw, dared not move. One
-hand was pressed to her heart, while the other clasped some
-flowers she had been to the woods to gather; and the blossoms
-were slowly falling from her nerveless fingers to the
-ground.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>At first I did not know what to do. Move farther I
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_46'>46</span>dared not, lest I should startle the reptile, and cause it
-to strike the fatal blow, that, for some reason, it was
-delaying.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Had I a musket I might have shot the snake from
-where I stood, and I thought with regret of the fowling
-piece I had left at the inn. I had my sword, but it was
-folly to think of stealing upon the reptile, and trying to
-kill it with that. Nor was there much chance that any
-one would pass that way with a gun in time to be of
-service; for it was getting late, and the glen was seldom
-visited.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Perhaps it was a few seconds that I stood watching
-Lucille and the snake, but it seemed an hour. I could
-see her slender figure beginning to sway, under the baneful
-influence of the serpent, and I knew that I must act
-quickly. I half drew my sword in desperation, and then
-I put it back. For I knew that ere I could cross half
-the space between Lucille and myself, the snake would
-strike.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Now, among the Indians that frequently visited Salem,
-it was one of their feats to throw or cast the knife. They
-would poise a dagger or scalping blade on the palm of
-the hand, holding it in place with the thumb. Then they
-would raise the hand, palm upward. With a sudden movement,
-strong and swift, they would hurl the weapon from
-them, casting it unerringly each time. I have seen them
-bury it to the hilt in a buttonball tree, and in the body
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_47'>47</span>of a man, granting that it touched a vital spot, the knife
-would let life quickly out.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I had practiced this trick until, while not as good at it
-as the Indians, I had some skill. So, when I put my
-sword back, I thought of the knife, and I resolved to
-chance on throwing it at the snake. It was but a chance,
-for I knew that if the reptile was startled it would strike
-quickly, and I recognized the species as one whose bite was
-quick death. But I gripped the knife, and drew it from
-the sheath.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Slowly I raised the blade above my head. The spotted
-brown body was drawn back, now, and, as Lucille saw
-that the serpent was about to spring, a convulsive tremor
-shook her body. It must be now or never, I thought,
-and I breathed a prayer that the knife might be speeded
-on its way.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Then straight and swift I threw, the keen weapon
-leaving my hand like a shaft of light. On, on it flew,
-whirling about in the air, but making no sound. As an
-arrow from the bow it struck the reptile behind its ugly
-head, and, such was the force of the flying knife, that the
-steel edge cut through the snake’s neck, and pinned it to
-the earth, while the spotted body threshed about like a
-flail among the dried leaves.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Lucille sank down at the foot of the tree as I bounded
-forward, certain now that my cast had been successful.
-It was the work of but an instant to lift her out of the
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_48'>48</span>way of the flying body of the snake, for I feared that it
-might, even yet, strike out blindly, but none the less
-fatally. Lucille rested in my arms, her senses having
-left her for the moment, and I carried her to a spring
-near by, where I revived her with the cold water. She
-opened her eyes a little.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“You are safe now,” I said. She smiled faintly, then
-shuddered, and closed her eyes again. Presently she gazed
-up at me, and whispered:</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Oh, it was horrible! I shall never forget it!”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I calmed her as well as I could, and she soon recovered
-her composure. She declared that she was well enough
-to walk home, but I protested, and begged that she would
-allow me to get a cart from a near-by farmer.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Oh, no,” she answered, “I could not stay another minute
-in these woods now. Let me go with you. I can
-walk, indeed I can; see,” and she stepped out bravely
-enough, but was forced to stop from trembling and weakness.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Then I insisted that she lean on my arm, which, after
-some hesitation, she consented to do.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“I was after some arbutus,” she said as we walked
-along, “and it only grows in the glen. I had plucked
-some when, just as I reached for a beautiful cluster, I
-saw the snake coiled before me. And then it seemed as
-if I could not move. My eyes grew heavy, and there was
-no life in me. It began to get dark, and then, and then--all
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_49'>49</span>at once I saw a flash of light, I heard the hiss of the
-reptile, and it grew all black, and I fell. The next I knew
-you were bending over me.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“I thank God,” I said, “that I chanced by here to-day.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Aye, ’twas a most fortunate chance,” she answered.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Mayhap it was more than chance--my fate,” I said
-softly, and she did not reply.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>When I had seen her safely to her gateway I bade her
-good night. She held out her hand to me.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“I cannot thank you enough just yet,” she said. “’Tis
-the second time that you have been by when I have needed
-a friend.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“I would it were ever so, madame,” I made answer, bowing.
-She stood idly plucking at the arbutus.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Come some day and see me,” she said, which I might
-take as an answer to my words. “That is, when you can
-find time from your military duties, which, I fear, must
-be exacting to you.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“If they were a thousand times more so, yet would I
-come,” I responded. She looked down at the flowers
-which she still held in her hand. Then, on the impulse
-of the moment she gave me a spray. I have it yet, faded
-and brown. For forty years it has been ever near me, and
-I would not part with it and its memories of the past for
-all that life holds.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“I shall be glad to see you,” spoke Lucille, after a
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_50'>50</span>pause, “though, perhaps, ’tis a slight welcome I can give
-in return for the service you have rendered me. Yet it
-will be from my heart.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“None could be better,” I said. “I will come.” I could
-make no other answer. I wanted to be by myself and
-think of it all. For most strangely had this maid come
-into my life, and she had awakened strange feelings within
-me. Something much like love had found me off
-guard, for a surety.</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_51'>51</span>
- <h2 class='c006'>CHAPTER V. <br /> <span class='small'>OF THE STONE BY THE BROOK.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c007'>I sat up late in the tavern that night, and to calm my
-thoughts I drew up some notices that I intended to post
-throughout the town, inviting recruits to join my little
-army. I judged that this would be a good time, since it
-could not be said when we would make the first venture
-against Canada, without waiting for the fleet. The
-weather was growing more and more mild every day now,
-and flowers and shrubs were beginning to show blossoms.
-The trees were in full leaf, when, one pleasant day, having
-after much labor written on several papers what I
-wanted to say I left the inn to put them up in conspicuous
-places.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>They called upon all good men and true, who so might
-desire, to enlist under Captain Edward Amherst, to fight
-the French and the Indians. It was also noted that some
-skirmishes might take place before the arrival of Sir
-Francis with his men. The notices, which were posted
-on the door of the church among other places, also set
-forth that applicants would be examined at Salem inn.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'><span class='pageno' id='Page_52'>52</span>Never had a day seemed so pleasant. Birds were singing
-away trilling the first few notes of mating songs. The
-trees waved their branches in the wind as it sighed through
-them. I felt in my veins the blood beginning to tingle,
-as the sap in the trees swells out the buds.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I finished my task, the while breathing in deep of the
-balmy air. I wanted something, I knew not what. To
-be acting, fighting, leading my men on. I wanted to walk,
-to run, to leap, to--in short, I suppose, to give way to that
-energy which health brings to every man.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I went on with little thought of where I was going until
-turning near where the old elm stands, down near the
-dead oak, I found myself in front of the house where
-Lucille dwelt. It was the first time I had been so near it
-since the night I brought her home from the glen. I was
-about to pass on, though I wanted to stop, but scarce dared
-to. As I dawdled past the gate, in two minds whether
-or no I should make bold and knock, I saw her in the
-garden.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>It was too late to draw back now, had I wished to, for
-she had heard my step, and, looking up, she smiled.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Good day, Captain,” she said.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Good day to you, Mistress Lucille,” I made reply,
-and then there was silence between us, while I stood there
-as awkwardly as a school boy, though she was as cool as
-only a maid can be who knows that it is for the man to
-make the next advance. Not that she was altogether at
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_53'>53</span>her ease, for, by looking closely, I saw a faint tinge of red
-mounting upward in her cheeks.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“You see,” I began, “I come--I hardly expected your
-words the other day--I----” and, then, in desperation,
-lest I might turn and run in the very face of the enemy,
-I straightened up, drew my good sword and saluted her
-as I would my gracious Queen.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“You have commanded me and I am here,” I said.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Lucille raised her eyes.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“And it needed a command then, Captain?” she questioned.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Not so, not so,” I hastened to exclaim, seeing that I
-had made an error. “A word, a wish, a look, from you,
-madame, were enough,” I replied in some confusion, almost
-wishing that I was back in Salem inn.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Once more silence crept between us, while, hardly knowing
-what I did, I opened the gate and walked in to stand
-beside her. I judge we must have been thus for near a
-minute ere she burst out laughing, and I, perforce, joined
-her mirth. That was an end to solemn silence then.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Here,” she cried gaily, “if you will not talk you must
-work,” and she thrust a spade into my hand.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Then, at her bidding, I fell to with a will and dug
-where she pointed out. My sword clinked against the
-garden tool, and I hoped that none of my future soldiers
-would pass by to see in what manner of warfare I was engaged.
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_54'>54</span>When she thought I had dug enough she permitted
-me to stop, and right glad I was to do so.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Now sit on the bench beneath the apple tree, while I
-plant these tulips,” was her second command.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I did as she bade me.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Now talk,” she ordered.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“What shall I say?” I asked.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Oh, anything, everything. The buds, the flowers, the
-sun, the Indians, the battles you have fought, the war we
-are to engage in. Why,” merrily, “there is no end.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Then indeed I talked. Of what, I know not, save that
-ever I saw her sweet face before me, and her eyes looking
-to mine, until I would fain have stayed there in that
-garden forever.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>’Twas strange how all my bashfulness had vanished,
-not that usually I am such a fool with the women. So we
-conversed of many things until of a sudden I noted that
-the sun was going down behind the hills. I jumped up
-from the bench where we had been sitting.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“I quite forgot it,” I exclaimed.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“What?” asked Lucille.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“My dinner,” I answered, aware of a gone and lonesome
-feeling below my belt. “I was to go back to the
-tavern for it, but, I--I--came this way, and----”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“You missed your dinner talking to me,” finished Lucille
-solemnly. “Welladay, Captain, I am indeed flattered.
-But there, you shall not say that I am a hard
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_55'>55</span>commander. Come in and sup with me. ’Tis true, I
-cannot make amends for the companionship to be found
-at the inn, nor can I boast of such cookery as can Mistress
-Willis. Yet if you will but deign to grace my humble
-board ’twill be of my best store that I will set before you,”
-and she dropped a bow to me that had much of sauciness
-in it, and stood waiting for my answer.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I protested that I could not trouble her, that I had no
-appetite, that I must be at Salem inn to meet any recruits
-that might come this first day.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Very well then, Captain,” she said, with a stately
-bend of her head. “Since you prefer the inn to my
-poor roof so be it.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>’Twas then that I hastened to make a different meaning
-to my words, and I pleaded that I might even have a
-crust in her dooryard. That she would but suffer me to
-sit on the threshold, and see her eat. (My, but how the
-hunger gripped me then). Verily I was afraid she would
-take me at my last words. But at length with a merry
-laugh, she bade me enter the house, and, while I sat and
-watched the lengthening shadows, Lucille and the woman
-servant set the meal.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I forget what it was that I ate. Certain I am that I
-talked and looked at Lucile, more than I used my knife
-and fork, for I remember that when I reached the inn
-later I had to rout up <a id='corr55.26'></a><span class='htmlonly'><ins class='correction' title='Wilis'>Willis</ins></span><span class='epubonly'><a href='#c_55.26'><ins class='correction' title='Wilis'>Willis</ins></a></span>, and dine again on cold meat.
-But, though the memory of the meal passes, I can see
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_56'>56</span>Lucille yet, as she sat opposite me then. And of the
-topics we conversed on, though they be in the dim, shadowy
-past, yet the sound of her voice is in my ears still.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>That night when I went on my way to the tavern, I
-found myself humming a love song I had heard in England
-years ago.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>The next day several men and youths appeared at the
-inn to enlist. I put their names down, and arranged for
-them to get arms, which would be sent from Boston.
-While the recruits were not much to boast of in looks
-they lacked not in spirit, which, after all, is the need of a
-soldier. Like some comrades with whom I have fought
-they seemed to go at fighting as they did at their religion,
-so that psalm tunes, rather than drinking songs and jests
-were heard among my men.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>It was not long before enough had enrolled themselves
-at the inn, and then I began to drill them. I appointed
-as my lieutenants Giles Cory, a very muscular, though
-small man, and Richard Nicols, who had some notions of
-warfare. We marched the men back and forth on the
-common in front of the tavern, putting them through the
-exercise of arms. Soon they began to have quite a martial
-air and bearing, handling their muskets, matches and
-flints with skill.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Messages came from Sir William now and then, bidding
-me hasten my preparations. I had a goodly store
-of powder and ball. Flints, matches and guns we had
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_57'>57</span>enough of, and, also, two small cannon, with the necessary
-ordnance stores, which had been sent from Boston.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>After dint of much practice I had my men in what I
-considered fair shape, and I took considerable pride in
-them. Sturdy fellows they were, most of them, stern
-of face, yet energetic, with a few daring spirits among
-them.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>’Twas on a May day, when the air was exceedingly pleasant,
-that I strolled over the meadows, toward the little
-brook that flowed through the fields. Then, coming to
-the top of a little hill I saw, on the green slope, a squad
-of my soldiers. They were playing at games of strength,
-and, seeing me, stopped.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Better this than idling at the tavern,” I said. “Keep
-at it, men, and let us see who has the strongest arms.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“’Twas Lieutenant Cory, Captain,” spoke up Nicols.
-“He has put us all to shame so far. Look you,” and
-Nicols pointed to a heavy musket. “Giles did but grasp
-the end of the six-foot barrel in his hand, and yet he
-raised the gun out straight, and held it there at arm’s
-length without a tremor.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I reached for the gun, and did the feat with little
-effort. It was an old trick, and one I had often done
-before while loitering about camp. But the crowd gaped,
-and, as for Cory, he seemed little pleased that a stranger
-in the town should have equalled his test of strength.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“What else?” I asked, smiling.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'><span class='pageno' id='Page_58'>58</span>Nicols pointed to a barrel of cider that was on the
-grass.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“A trader brought it in his canoe a while ago,” he said,
-“and called on two of us to help him lift it from the
-boat. But Cory, with no other aid, raised it by the edges,
-and, holding it close against his breast, walked up the
-hill with it. Never have I seen a man do such a thing
-before.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Now I was glad to see that my company was to be of
-men of this stamp, not slow to use their strength. For,
-when by the closeness of the fight, sword and musket are
-of little use, a strong arm is very needful, and stands one
-in good stead, as I well knew.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>As a lad I had been fond of feats of muscle. But I had
-had no time to devote to it since coming to Salem. For
-with the gathering of my company, the writing of letters
-to Sir William, and the reading of his in reply, most of
-my hours had been taken up. Now, it seemed, here was
-a time when I might, without seeming to boast, show my
-men that their Captain was no weakling. So I glanced
-about that I might propose some new test; for to lift the
-barrel of cider, or the gun, I did not count as sufficient.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>It chanced that on top of the hill that gently led down
-to the brook there rested a boulder. It was of good size,
-and, in weight perhaps 400 pounds, and it was bedded in
-the earth. To raise it, and cast it from one might be no
-little task, even for one who boasted of strong arms.
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_59'>59</span>Therefore, seeing no other test that would answer, I
-pointed out the rock to Cory.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Can you lift and heave it?” I asked. “You are of
-goodly girth, and the stone is not of such great weight.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Saying nothing Cory walked slowly up the hill, and I
-saw that he had cast aside his jacket and shirt, and stood
-naked to the waist. I marvelled as I looked at his arms
-and chest. The muscles were in bunches, and stood out
-like hanks of wool on a distaff. Then, as he clenched
-his hands and opened them, to feel if his sinews were limber,
-the muscles played beneath his skin, as ripples do
-over the face of a pool, when the wind ruffles its surface.
-Still the stone was heavy, and if he lifted it and cast it
-he well might be counted a strong man.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Cory reached the rock, and stood over it a minute.
-He looked on all sides, seeking a fair hold, and, when he
-had perceived two small projections near the ground,
-where a man’s fingers might catch, he spread his legs, and
-stood astride the rock.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“I make no boast,” he said, looking at me, “and if
-mortal man may lift the weight, then I will move this
-stone from its bed. Though, doubtless, it has not been
-disturbed for a hundred years.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>He shuffled his feet, seeking a firm and level stand, and
-then, with an intaking of the breath, he grasped the rock,
-and put forth all his strength into a mighty lift. His
-sinews and muscles stood out under the skin, and were
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_60'>60</span>like to burst through, but the stone budged not. Once
-again did Cory lift and strain, but no avail. He straightened
-up.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“’Tis like that no man can move the rock, Captain,”
-he cried. “Perchance it is buried a foot or more in the
-earth. Yet, if it is to be lifted from its bed I will do it,”
-he added. Once more he took hold.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>This time his back fairly arched with the terrible
-strain, and the muscles in it made it as rough as a
-ploughed field. But, though he tugged, and pulled, until
-the water dropped from his brow, he moved not the rock.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Enough,” I said. “It will surely prove too much for
-either of us. I must choose something more easy. Yet I
-will have one trial,” I remarked.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Now, then, I placed myself astride of the great stone,
-as Cory had done, and I grasped the two projections. I
-pulled upward once not with all my strength, for I wanted
-to try the weight. Then, of a truth, I feared I had set
-myself too great a task, for the rock seemed as immovable
-as the earth itself. But once again I lifted upward, and
-this time I strained every muscle I could bring into play.
-Still the boulder remained in its bed.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I thought toward the end of my last effort, that I felt
-the least movement, and this gave me hope that, if I
-kept on pulling, I might tear the rock out. Slowly I
-pulled upward again, straightening my bent body, as the
-stone gave, ever so little, in its ancient bed. It was now
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_61'>61</span>or never. I pulled and pulled, until, verily, I feared that
-my arms would come from the sockets.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>There was a buzzing in my ears, and, above it, I heard
-the crowd of men, murmuring in astonishment. Up and
-up I lifted, until, with a great heave, I had fairly torn
-the boulder from the earth. Summoning all my efforts
-until I thought my head would burst from the strain I
-poised the stone above me. It shadowed me from the
-sun, and was like to crush me with its weight. I could
-scarce see beyond it, because of the bulk. Then with a
-last remaining bit of power, I hurled the stone from me,
-down the hill side, toward the brook. I had lifted the
-great rock.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>As the stone left my hands the murmur of admiration
-changed to one of horror. Brushing the mist from my
-eyes I saw, at the bottom of the slope, Lucille right in
-the path of the bounding stone. She was walking along
-the brook, and had not seen me throw the rock. A shout
-from the men, for I was too dazed to cry out, caused her
-to look up. She came to a sudden halt.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>On the great rock went, by leaps and bounds, from
-hillock to hillock, and she was in its course, unable, from
-very fear, to move out of the way. The stone was now
-scarce a fathom’s distance from her. In the next instant
-it must strike and crush her, and none of us could do
-aught to prevent it.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>When we had all turned our heads away, that we might
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_62'>62</span>not see her killed, and my heart seemed like to burst
-through my breast, we heard a great noise. It was a
-roar and a rattle.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>The flying rock had struck another, deep bedded in
-the side of the hill, and the impact of the blow had burst
-both into thousands of fragments. With a sound like a
-cannon shot, these had scattered all about Lucille, but
-not one had struck her. She stood trembling with fright,
-in the midst of the broken stone, while, scarce knowing
-what I did, I hastened down the hill to her. She was
-walking slowly away when I reached her.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“You were near to death,” I said, much unnerved, for,
-somehow, her life had grown very dear to me.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“The Lord is good,” she replied. “Now, Captain, take
-me home, for I am afraid yet.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>As we left the wondering crowd behind, I heard one
-say to another:</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“’Twas a mighty lift, and none like it was ever before
-seen in the Colony.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Also I heard Cory remark, though not without respect:</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Our sturdy Captain, who lifts great rocks easily, can
-be held by light chains, it seems. Even a maid’s word.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>And I felt that he spoke the truth, for I knew that
-I loved Lucille, as I had never loved before.</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_63'>63</span>
- <h2 class='c006'>CHAPTER VI. <br /> <span class='small'>LUCILLE.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c007'>I count it not strange, nor to my discredit, that I had,
-and so soon and easily perhaps, fallen prisoner to Lucille.
-It was small time I had ever had for love, because my past
-life had been spent in strife of one kind or another. I
-was at great pains, sometimes, to escape death, and my
-thoughts, in recent years, had been in the way of how
-to strike the hardest blow, and how to take the lightest.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>So, it need not be wondered at that, when I had looked
-a few times into Lucille’s eyes, I did what any other
-soldier, or man, would have done. I came to love her.
-It had grown on me, like the buds on the trees, or the
-flowers on the vines. Yet I had spoken no words of love
-to her.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Our conversation, when we met, was on topics far removed
-from the feelings that swayed me. The weather, a
-reference to the affairs of the Colony, to the war soon
-to begin, of the Indians, of that day in the woods when
-I cast the knife, and of that well-nigh fatal heaving of the
-rock.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Sometimes she spoke of herself, and of the sunny land
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_64'>64</span>she left to come to America. That subject was one to
-set her cheeks aglow, and make her eyes to sparkle. She
-told me of France, where she had been so happy as a
-girl, and I told her of some parts of it that I had visited.
-Of her reasons for coming to this bleak shore she said
-nothing, seeming to hesitate as we touched on that. All
-she told me was, that one day her father packed up such
-of his belongings as could be transported, sold the rest,
-and, with her cousin Marie and herself, had come to
-Massachusetts.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>There had been many trials, the worst of all being
-when M. de Guilfort became ill, because of the rigors of
-the winter, and passed away. Once, when I told Lucille
-that her tongue found little difficulty with the English
-words, she blushed and seemed confused. Then, with
-downcast eyes, she said an Englishman had lodged with her
-father, in Paris, and had been her instructor. Whereat I
-wondered at her confusion, and, though I scented some
-mystery, I said nothing, being content to wait until it was
-made clear.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>But I thought it strange that any man with English
-blood in his veins, should teach this French maid to say,
-“I love, you love, we love,” and yet let it end there. But,
-of a surety, I was glad that he had.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>And so it came that I loved Lucille more and more
-every day. Sometimes, when I looked into her eyes, I
-forgot the errand that brought me to Salem, and I would
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_65'>65</span>have willingly cast my commission to the winds, for the
-privilege of being near her always. So it is when a
-man loves, not alone with wisdom. And as time went
-by my love grew.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>From moody to gay, and back again to deep despair
-had my spirit moved, until, at length, I resolved to put
-all to the proof, and learn whether I had any cause to
-hope. So, one pleasant afternoon I put on what best
-garments I had, furbished my sword up, at great labor
-of muscle, and walked to Lucille’s house. With a hand that
-strangely trembled, yet with which I could, at any other
-time, have found the smallest nick in the wall with my
-sword point, I lifted the heavy iron knocker on the door
-and let it fall. It made a resounding racket, almost like
-thunder, I thought. The serving woman let me into the
-front room, and I sat in the window recess. I was just
-beginning to wish I had put the matter off until another
-time, when Lucille entered.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Hast cast any more rocks, Captain?” she asked, smiling.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Lackaday, no!” I cried, in sudden terror at the
-thought of one throw I had made, not far back.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“I ought to fear you,” she said, “for you are a very
-Goliath,” and she took a seat near the fireplace. Though
-it was not cold without, a little blaze was going and it
-cast queer shadows, which played about the room and
-on Lucille’s hair.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'><span class='pageno' id='Page_66'>66</span>“My strength was like to serve me a sorry trick,” I
-ventured. “Had e’en a fragment of the rock struck you
-I should have cast myself into the sea.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Do not say that,” she responded, “it would have been
-no fault of yours. I should not have passed that way. I
-saw the men at their games, and might have known that
-there was danger for an onlooker.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I made no answer, for I had none ready. I did but
-gaze and gaze at her, until my heart was like to thump its
-way through my stout jacket. Of a sudden she looked
-up, wondering, perhaps, at the silence, and then, seeing
-my eyes fixed on her she dropped her lids while the color
-came into her cheeks like the blush of morn on the petals
-of a rose. I could bear it no longer. Starting to my
-feet, my sword clattered against the casement. Lucille
-caught her breath, and seemed to shrink away from me.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Lucille,” I said.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>She did not answer.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Lucille,” I cried again, and the name went from my
-lips huskily, for my throat was parched and dry.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Lucille,” I spoke for the third time.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Yes, Captain Amherst,” she made reply.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Lucille,” I cried, and then, with an effort, such as even
-the lifting of the great rock had not cost me, I blurted out,
-like a schoolboy:</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“I love you, Lucille, better than I have ever loved
-before. Better than life itself.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'><span class='pageno' id='Page_67'>67</span>It was out now. I crossed the room, and, standing
-before her, I held out my hands, pouring out my story
-in warm words of love. I cannot recall now, nor could
-I a half hour afterward, what I said. Only I know that as
-I spoke of my passion, Lucille seemed in a fright, at first.
-And her face, that had been flushed, grew pale, and
-her fingers plucking at her gown, trembled. Then, when
-my rush of words had somewhat subsided, I approached
-nearer and nearer to her, until I could hear her breath,
-and see her bosom rise and fall. I stretched out my
-arms, and, not waiting to see if she said yea or nay, I
-clasped her to me, my warm kisses falling on her lips,
-her cheeks, her hands.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I could only repeat over and over again that one phrase,
-“I love you;” until, fearful that she might weary of that
-strain, I paused.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>She struggled from my encircling arms, then stood like
-a sweet flower, that the wind had tossed about. Yet
-never before had she looked so lovely to me.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Have you no answer for me?” I asked.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>She did not reply.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Can you but love me a little?” I inquired softly,
-anxious now, indeed, as a man whose fate hung trembling
-in the balance. Then the answer came back, oh, so softly
-and sweetly:</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Yes.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>The darkness fell gently, until the ruddy fire shone out
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_68'>68</span>with casts of grim shadows over the room. I sat beside
-Lucille, and my heart was big with thoughts of love.
-The darkness was light to me now.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>We talked of what the future might hold for us. Of
-how, when I had returned with honors, from the Canadian
-expedition, we would wed, and make our home in this
-new land. For a time we forgot the terrible tragedy that
-had brought us together, though it was like a little cloud
-in the otherwise bright sky.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>The sweetness of her presence was all I thought of
-then, as I sat beside Lucille. I had never known before
-what it was to love truly. Many fair women had smiled
-at me and I had laughed in return, for I knew that it
-would end there. But now----</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>More and more dark it grew. Suddenly came a sound
-of galloping hoofs on the road without. Ere we had
-time to wonder who it might be, for few rode so furiously
-in that time, unless some danger portended, there was a
-knock loud and long at the door. Lucille and I had
-risen from our seats in alarm. The servant hastened to
-the portal with a candle, and we heard, as the oak swung
-back, the voice of a man:</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Is Captain Amherst within?” the messenger asked.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“He is,” I answered, walking to the entrance.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Your pardon for this interruption,” began the man,
-“but I came in haste, with a letter for you from His
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_69'>69</span>Excellency, Sir William Phips,” and the horseman handed
-me a sealed missive.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Wonderingly I broke the red wax. In the dim light I
-read:</p>
-
-<div class='quote'>
-
-<p class='c008'>“<span class='sc'>Captain</span>:--The Indian devils are pressing hard and
-close on our borders. Settlers from outlying hamlets have
-brought word that they gather in numbers on the North.
-It is said that de Vilebon, at St. Johns, is urging the
-red men on, furnishing them food and munitions of war.
-Could he be driven from his stronghold (mayhap no easy
-task) much good would be done the Colony. Proceed
-with your company, in all dispatch. Kill, burn and
-capture.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Given under our hand and seal, the seal of His Majesty,
-the King.</p>
-<div class='c009'><span class='sc'>Sir William Phips.</span>”</div>
-
-</div>
-
-<p class='c008'>Here was likely to be a sudden end to my love making,
-I thought. I turned to Lucille, who had followed me to
-the door. She had shrunk back into the corner, and
-in her eyes I could see a strange look of horror and fright,
-such as I had never seen before.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>From Lucille I looked to the horseman. He stood at
-the very door, one hand holding the bridle. With the
-other he stroked his moustache, and his eyes never left
-the face of Lucille. By the light of the candle, glowing
-out into the darkness, I could see a mocking smile on his
-lips.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'><span class='pageno' id='Page_70'>70</span>“Lucille!” I cried.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>The horseman never heeded my exclamation, nor did he
-change his gaze.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Sir!” I remarked, with a step toward him, my hand
-on my sword, “who, and what are you, that you dare to
-come----”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I might as well have been a thousand miles away, for
-all the heed he paid to me.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“I have found you, then,” he said to Lucille, with a
-sneer on his face and in his tones. She shrank back farther
-and farther into the darkness.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I half drew my sword out, determined to punish his
-insolence speedily, but, with never a look at me, making
-a low, sweeping bow, that included both of us, he leaped
-into the saddle, and was away down the road in the darkness
-at a terrific pace.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Who was he?” I demanded, turning to Lucille. She
-put her hands before her eyes, as if to shut out some sight
-that was hateful to her.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“He was--he was----” she began, her voice trembling.
-“Oh, Edward, mind him not. I thought he was some one
-I had left behind me forever. But I must have been
-mistaken. The candle light played me tricks.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“But his words? What of them? What meant he?” I
-persisted.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“I heard nothing that he said,” she replied, as if in
-surprise, “but what of your message?”</p>
-<div class='figcenter id001'>
-<img src='images/p070.jpg' alt='' class='ig001' />
-<div class='ic002'>
-<p>“WHO, AND WHAT ARE YOU, THAT YOU DARE TO COME!”</p>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c008'><span class='pageno' id='Page_71'>71</span>Then, though I would have pursued my inquiries
-further, I was recalled, by her words, to the missive I
-held. Briefly as I could, I told her of its import. It
-meant, I said, that I should have to leave Salem very
-soon; in a day or two.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“It will be hard to go from you, sweetheart, when I
-have only just found you,” I whispered. I kissed her, and
-then, after a little, I went away, her caresses warm on
-my lips; the echoes of her voice sweet in my ears.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Out under the stars I thought of the horseman. Then,
-with a start, I recalled who he was. I had met him
-in the room of Governor Phips, in Boston, some months
-before. He was the man with the jeweled hilted sword,
-with whom I had so nearly fought, in the doorway, where
-we came together in no gentle fashion. Clearly there
-was some mystery here.</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_72'>72</span>
- <h2 class='c006'>CHAPTER VII. <br /> <span class='small'>OF THE HORSEMAN ON THE BEACH.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c007'>There was little sleep for me that night. I had been
-expecting a message from the Governor, and so had my
-men in fair shape for a quick movement. Two days’ preparations,
-now, would put us in readiness for the expedition.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>It was nearly morning when, having dispatched several
-messengers on horses to call in my company from their
-various homes, I lay down to rest. It seemed that I had
-been on the bed but a half minute, ere the sun came
-shining in through the window, and awakened me.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>We had at Salem two sloops that would hold seventy
-men each. Of stores and munition of war there was a
-plenty. But guns had to be overhauled, and ammunition
-safely packed for transportation. My first care was to
-see that the boats were laden. Corn meal and flour, salted
-meats and fish, provisions of various kinds, and barrels
-of cider, were slung aboard by the crews, and stored in
-the holds.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>In squads of two and three my men began coming in.
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_73'>73</span>I detailed my lieutenants to look after the muskets, as
-they were stacked in the company room at the inn. All
-the spare guns that would serve, were put on the sloops.
-Rests for the heavier and old-fashioned weapons, that were
-fired by means of a slow match, were provided, as well
-as spare matches. Bags of extra flints were also taken.
-The casks of powder, and pouches of bullets, were placed
-out of danger of fire in the magazines of the sloops.
-Throughout all Salem, that day, little was done or talked
-of save what pertained to the coming fight.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>The children stood about the streets, forgetting to go
-to school and were not rebuked. With Cory and Nicols,
-I hurried here and there. Now, seeing to it that none but
-serviceable arms were taken, and again, looking to the
-muster rolls, or replying to the many questions that every
-one wanted answered.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>The air was filled with martial sounds. Two boys,
-barely out of their teens, came up to me, as I was trying
-the locks of a musket. They saluted gravely.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Please, Captain,” said the taller one, “put our names
-down, and give us each a gun.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“What! To go to the wars?” I asked.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Yes, sir,” the younger replied. “The Indians killed
-our mother, and we want to kill some of them.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Not now,” I said kindly. “When you are a little older
-you may both go.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>They turned away, sorely disappointed. Indeed the
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_74'>74</span>spirit of battle seemed born in the children of this land,
-and they nursed it with their mother’s milk. There
-was much need of it, though.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>About noon, two long teams of oxen were seen winding
-along the road from Boston. They drew heavy wagons,
-on which were two good sized cannon, in addition to the
-small ones we had. There was also a sufficient supply
-of ammunition, and I was very glad of this increase to
-our power.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Though it cost us no little labor to get these guns
-aboard, we finally accomplished it, and they were placed,
-one in the bow of each sloop, where they could do the
-most good.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>When all this had been done, and it was well into the
-afternoon, I had a chance to sit down and map out my
-plans. Another letter, with more explicit instructions,
-had come to me from the Governor by the hands of a
-second messenger. In the meantime I had learned somewhat
-of the man de Vilebon, with whom I was to engage,
-shortly.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Soon after he came to Canada he saw the fierce fighting
-qualities of the red men, and, with much cunning, he
-made treaties with them, persuading them to become his
-allies. He promised them that the hated English would
-soon be driven from the land, the homes they had builded
-being allowed as plunder for the Indians. It was by such
-talk as this, and the manner in which he consorted in the
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_75'>75</span>daily lives and practices of the savages, that de Vilebon
-had won to his side many influential chiefs and their
-followings.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>One way the French took to incite the Indians was
-to pay for the scalps of the English settlers. There was
-a scale of prices, so much for a man’s, so much for a
-woman’s and less yet for the children’s. There were other
-reasons why the Indians preferred to fight with the French
-and against the English. The French almost lived with
-the savages, adopting their mode of dress, painting their
-faces with the brilliant pigments, and wearing the feathered
-head pieces.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Then, too, the Indians, contrasting us with the French,
-thought of them as brave warriors, who loved swordplay,
-and fighting, while we English, ’twas deemed, cared for
-nothing but raising the crops, which was, with the red
-men the work of their squaws.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>So, I found to my sorrow, ere long, that the Indians
-loved the French and were glad to battle against us.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Among the settlers, now, there was much fear of a
-sudden night attack from the forest. Madockewando,
-Moxus and Egeremet, fierce Indian chiefs, whose names
-were but other words for carnage, treachery and horrid
-massacres, were with de Vilebon, we heard.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>To these chiefs and their followers, the French had
-furnished not only guns, swords, powder and bullets, but
-even food, so that the savages had naught to do save fight,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_76'>76</span>which they were ever ready for. De Vilebon had established
-himself at St. Johns, in Nova Scotia, where a fort
-of no mean strength had been thrown up. Approach by
-either land or sea was not easy, I learned from scouts.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Sir William wrote that few men defended the place
-now, though troops were expected in the fall. Could we
-but be successful against this fort, capturing de Vilebon,
-the spirit of the Colonists would be much strengthened,
-and a blow would be dealt the French forces that would
-teach them and their Indian allies a severe lesson.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>My plan for the expedition was to sail to within a few
-miles of St. Johns, and land most of my force. Then
-the two sloops and their crews could sail boldly up to the
-town, and while menacing it from the sea by the boats,
-I could lead my men to the rear of the fort. I counted
-on the sea attack, if the cannon were rapidly fired, to
-create such a diversion as to detract attention from the
-rear, and while the enemy was engaged against the sloops,
-I could fall upon the fort with my force and storm it.
-So my plans were laid, and I called my lieutenants and
-made them acquainted with the way matters stood.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Two days, busy ones in truth, were spent in getting
-ready. I had seen little of Lucille in that time, though
-I much more desired to be near her than at the task with
-which I was engaged. But night, as well as day, was
-filled with work. At length, when I thought all was in
-readiness, and I had looked to my own arms, and had a
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_77'>77</span>new edge put on my sword, I went out one evening across
-the meadows to her.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>She was waiting for me.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“You have only come to say good bye, I fear,” she said.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Only for a time, dear heart,” I answered.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Oh, Edward, if you should not return,” she whispered,
-softly.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Would you care, then, so much?”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Does the flower care when the sun goes down? Does
-it not droop at the close of day, and does it not smile
-when the light comes again? Do you know how I feel?”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“I hope so, dear heart.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Then ask not if I care. If you should not come back
-to me----”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>The rest of the sentence was unfinished, for I had her
-in my arms, and her lips could not speak for the kisses
-I pressed on them.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Long did we talk of what might be held locked in the
-future, and yet the time I was there seemed woefully short.
-But I knew that I must go now, for we had prepared for
-an early start--Lucille promised to be near when the boat
-should sail, and with that I must be content.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“And now God keep you, dear,” she said bravely, though
-there were traces of tears in her eyes.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“And God keep you,” I said.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Neither of us knew how soon we would be in need of
-His care. I pressed a last good night kiss on her lips, and
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_78'>78</span>then, with the look of her dear eyes in mine, I went away.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>With the rising of the sun all was activity about Salem
-inn. Many details remained to be looked after. The
-men, few of whom had before been with such a large expedition,
-were much excited.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>There was a clattering of swords and muskets; good
-byes were being called out on every side; and some careful
-men were doing up extra pairs of socks that their
-good dames had provided.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“What canst thou do with that weapon, friend John
-Post?” called one man to another who carried an exceeding
-heavy and clumsy musket.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Shoot an Indian or a Frencher for a surety,” answered
-John.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Then thou’lt have to get a squad to help ye load
-and fire it. For if ye don’t the Indians would eat you
-up before you could put match to the powder.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Never mind, never mind,” responded he with the ancient
-weapon. “The gun did damage to the enemies of
-His Gracious Majesty, when thou wert hiding behind thy
-mother’s skirt. ’Tis a good arm, and will serve now as
-well as thou!”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>A laugh showed that the would-be jester had not hit the
-mark, and John Post marched on, well pleased with his
-little skirmish.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>There were other wordy tilts between the men. Some,
-having nothing better to do for the time, engaged in leaping,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_79'>79</span>running and wrestling, so that the inn yard looked
-like a fair ground. At length I ordered the drum beat
-and the men fell in, after some confusion.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>About one hundred in all had responded to the summons,
-and I formed them into two commands, giving Cory
-one and letting Nicols lead the other. I would have a
-general command over both, and had made arrangements
-to sail on board the larger of the two sloops. Truly it was
-a goodly sight that morning, to see the little Colonial Army
-marching out, each man with his musket well cleaned, and
-with his bundle of matches, or his pouch of flints and
-ammunition slung by a thong on one side. Stout and able-bodied
-men they were, too, much given to prayer. Yet
-they need be none the less well thought of for that. For
-I had heard of their earlier battles against the Indians, and
-I knew that a well rounded psalm tune stayed not the sword
-arm, nor weakened the trigger finger. And, as they
-stepped out to march from the inn yard to the sloops, Master
-Willis, who stood on the steps, did lift his voice up in
-prayer, and after that the deep tones of men singing was
-heard.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Of the God of Israel they sang, pleading that they might
-be led on to battle against the enemy, as were their fore-fathers
-of old, in the days of King David.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>The sloops were soon filled. I walked to one side and
-met Lucille. Our parting was brief, for wind and tide
-served, and we must shortly lift anchor. The last words
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_80'>80</span>were spoken, and then, with a final embrace, I left her. I
-boarded the vessel and the sails were run up. They filled,
-and we began to gather headway. I stood in the stern,
-whence I could take a last look at the little town and the
-people on the shores. Amid the crowd I saw Lucille. She
-was looking earnestly after us, and when I waved my helmet
-in a good bye her hand signaled an answer. We were
-fairly off to the wars at last.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Suddenly, coming along the road at a furious gallop, I
-saw a single horseman. He waved over his head a paper.
-Even at the distance I knew him for the same man I had
-seen in the Governor’s room the day I received my commission,
-and for the messenger who had come from Sir
-William a few nights before. But it was too late to turn
-back now. The horseman spurred on to the beach and
-waved the paper frantically. It might be some message
-from Sir William, but, if it was important, a boat could
-be sent to overtake us. I snatched up a ship’s glass and
-turned it toward the shore.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“In the King’s name!” cried the horseman, leaping violently
-from the saddle.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“But I am away in the King’s name,” I called back.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Then, while I was watching through the glass, I saw
-the horseman turn about. Lucille had advanced from the
-crowd and stood, shading her eyes, to see the last of us.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>As the man caught sight of her, I could see a cruel
-smile curl the corners of his mouth. Lucille suddenly
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_81'>81</span>shrank back, as she had that night when she saw the
-messenger in the hallway of her home, and she seemed
-frozen with fear, like unto the day the snake of the glen
-was in her path.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>My heart misgave me, and I was half minded to turn
-back. Would that I had been of a whole mind! For,
-had I been, I would have leaped into the sea and gone
-to her. But I knew not, until afterward, who I left
-behind me there on the sea sands. Of the deadly enemy
-he was; who caused me to strike many a fierce blow for
-Lucille and for myself ere I conquered. And the warfare
-was not alone that of the sword.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>And so I stood, watching the shore fade away, seeing
-the crowd grow smaller, while, as long as I could, I held
-the glass to my eyes, to catch the last glimpse of Lucille.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Then, with no very cheerful heart, I set to work to get
-matters arranged in soldierly fashion.</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_82'>82</span>
- <h2 class='c006'>CHAPTER VIII. <br /> <span class='small'>THE BATTLE AT THE FORT.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c007'>Thus we sailed away. Little of account marked our
-voyage and, at the end of the tenth day, we sighted the
-headland of St. Johns. In the meantime I had made no
-change in my plans, which were to make a feigned attack
-on the fort by means of the sloops, and, while it was going
-on, to bring my main force up and storm the rear.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Now that our journey’s end was at hand, we prepared
-for what was before us. The arms were removed from
-the chests they had been stored in. Ammunition was
-broken out, and all useless stuff put away below decks. In
-a short time we anchored in a little bay to the south of
-St. Johns, where the sloops might remain a day or two
-unobserved. From there I would lead my men for the
-detour. It was dusk when we had landed.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>We camped that night on the shore. In the morning,
-when the sun shone slanting through the branches of the
-trees, we pressed on. Our march was through the virgin
-forest. Now we had to cut our way through dense underbrush,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_83'>83</span>scaring from their nests the woodland fowl. Sometimes
-the sneaking figure of a wolf would be seen, protesting
-with a howl against the invasion of his home.
-Once a great bear, again a startled deer, crashed through
-the brush as we approached.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>At night we lighted fires, to keep away the wild beasts,
-which we heard howling on all sides of us. And thus we
-pushed on until the third night when we camped in sight
-of the French watch-fires.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Then we ate a cold supper, nor did I permit any talk
-or laughter. In deep silence we made all in readiness
-for the attack in the morning. Guns that had been wet
-in fording streams were looked to, and the caked powder
-picked from the pans. Spare flints were placed in pouches,
-as were the bullets, while powder horns were freshly filled.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>With the mournful hoot of the owls in my ears, I fell
-asleep. I awoke with the first streak of dawn. The sentinels
-were called in, the last word given, and we were ready
-for the attack. If Cory, in charge of the sloops, was
-on hand, all would be well. We marched to the edge of
-the forest, and just beyond us was the fort. It was with
-a heart that throbbed with some little excitement that I
-arranged my men in files, and gave the order:</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Forward!”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Out into the open we ran, and I called to the men to
-separate, that they might thereby offer a smaller mark
-to the enemy.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'><span class='pageno' id='Page_84'>84</span>Looking toward the stronghold of the French, I saw, in
-the gray dawn, the sentinels on the ramparts. They
-looked down on us in wonder and then they shouted a warning
-and fired their muskets at us. The drum inside the
-fort beat the long roll of the call to arms. We were
-not to take them all unawares.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>As we ran on, stooping to gain what little natural cover
-there was, dodging from side to side, I heard the dull
-boom and the roar of the sloops’ cannon, which told me
-that Cory was on hand.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>The fort was now but a few hundred yards away, and
-I saw that it was a place of considerable strength. It was
-two stories in height, built of solid logs. The upper story
-overhung the lower, so that when the enemy came beneath
-the projection he could be attacked from above.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Outside of the fort was a stout palisade, made of young
-hickory trees bound closely together, after the Indian
-fashion. The fort could be seen above the palisade, as
-the stronghold stood on a little knoll. I could see that
-the mouths of six cannon were thrust toward us, and they
-seemed like to speak no gentle message.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>We were clearly about to meet more than a match for
-our little force, yet I believe that never a one halted or
-wished to turn back. If we were to die, we would die
-fighting.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>On we rushed. Within the fort all was activity now.
-The roll of the drum continued, and the flashes and reports
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_85'>85</span>on the side farthest from us told me that the fire from
-our sloops had drawn some answer from the grim fort.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I had hoped that the force at St. Johns was a small
-one, and that, by reason of the attack in front, I might
-get near enough the rear to carry the works. But a few
-minutes sufficed to show how little we had counted on
-the French and Indian fighting abilities. For no sooner
-had the cannon on our sloops and in the fort begun a
-noisy duel than a double score of men poured out from
-the lower part of the blockhouse and ran down the little
-hill to the stockade.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>We were now within good musket range, and I called
-to the men to halt. Then I gave the order to fire. Our
-band, which had, though advancing at good speed, long
-been in readiness for this, let fly, aiming over the top of
-the palisade. It was a little too great a distance to do
-much damage, yet a few of the bullets that had a trifle
-more of powder behind them than others had, found a
-mark. I saw two of the French fall and roll down the
-hill, while a third was wounded and had to turn back.
-An answering volley from the fort did some scath among
-us and three men fell, one shot through the leg, and the
-others through the body so badly that there was small
-hope for them.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Among the men that now swarmed out from the fort
-like bees from a hive, I discerned the half-naked and
-painted bodies of savage Indians. They whooped horribly,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_86'>86</span>and sprang up and down in the air, whirling about.
-They brandished their tomahawks around their heads, and
-some foolish ones threw them over the stockade, thinking,
-I suppose, that the weapons might strike us.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>The smoke from the muskets now hid the scene from
-view, but when the wind had blown it aside I saw, by the
-white cloud that hung over the sea, that the sloops were
-doing their best. Yet I knew they could hope to inflict
-no damage, and the French were likely to find this out
-shortly. That the battle would go against us now seemed
-probable, but I knew our only hope was to fight on, even
-though the odds were heavy. I urged my men to reload
-quickly. Powder horns poured their black contents down
-the musket barrels. Then followed the bullet, in its
-greased leather covering, and, with a clang of the rammer
-on top of all, the load was in. The clicking of the powder
-pans as they were sprung open, and hammers raised, mingled
-with the hissing, spluttering sound of the slow
-matches.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Once more we fired, but this time most of our bullets
-rattled harmlessly against the stockade. The volley that
-answered us laid low two more of our men. Clearly this
-was but a losing fight, and so I resolved that a charge, an
-attempt to storm the palisades, must be made. Could we
-but gain entrance there, a hand to hand conflict might
-carry the day for us. Otherwise we could but stand and
-be shot at, doing little harm in return.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'><span class='pageno' id='Page_87'>87</span>I passed the word to the men, and again they loaded
-their weapons. I counted to have them rush as soon as
-they had discharged their pieces, as then the smoke would
-hang over us and afford a sort of cover.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Fire!” I cried, and the bullets flew onward.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Yells from within the stockade told that some had
-been hit, probably through the loops. Immediately I ordered
-all my men to drop flat on their faces. As I expected,
-the volley from the fort that replied passed harmlessly
-over our heads.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Now for it!” I cried.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Forward, in the name of the King, and for the honor
-of Salem!” was the answer from the men.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I was leading the advance, and in less than a minute it
-seemed to me, we were at the stockade. The men strove
-to climb over, but were fiercely beaten back by the French
-and Indians. Guns were used as clubs now, for there
-had been no time to reload on either side. Man after man
-of my little force was hurled backward from the top of
-the stockade, some suffering grievously. It was cut and
-slash and thrust with me, without stopping to take breath.
-I was on top of the hickory fence, supporting myself by
-a small foothold on a larger tree than some of the others.
-Those below me, inside the stockade, thrust at me, but I
-gave back as good as they sent, and my sword turned red.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>A big Indian, hideous in paint, leaped to the top and
-struck at my head with his keen little axe. I dodged the
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_88'>88</span>blow, and the weapon buried itself to the middle in a
-sapling. Then, while he vainly tried to pull his tomahawk
-out, I raised my sword and brought it down on his naked
-head, shearing through his scalp lock and nigh cutting him
-to the chin. He fell back, ugly enough in his death agony,
-and his hand clutched the axe so strongly that it came
-out from where the wood clipped it.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Now there was a sudden rally to this part of the stockade.
-I had time to see that soldiers were pouring from around
-the front, or seaward, side of the fort, before I leaped
-back to the ground. This told me more plainly than a
-message that the sloops no longer sufficed to hold the
-enemy’s attention. The whole force of the fort would
-now engage us. I hastily retreated my men, until we had
-put ourselves beyond musket shot. Then we halted to
-take account of the damage we had received, and to plan
-how we might save ourselves from utter annihilation; for
-it would not be long ere we should have to battle against
-fearful and heavy odds.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Three of our men had been laid low at the first volley
-from the fort, and two at the second. Then, in the assault
-on the stockade, several had received sword thrusts,
-which must eventually cause their deaths. A few suffered
-minor hurts, and four were killed outright, so that, in all
-we had been deprived of eleven men. I looked toward the
-fort. There seemed to be some movement inside, and
-presently the great gate swung open. Half a dozen naked
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_89'>89</span>savages came out uttering their war cry. Then, while my
-heart turned faint with horror, I watched the Indians approach
-the bodies of our dead that were just without the
-palisade. There was a gleam of steel flashing in the sunlight
-above their earth-pillowed heads, then the bloody
-scalp trophy was snatched from them; from some ere the
-breath of life had departed. One poor fellow, Peter Rankin
-(he had been next to me when we stormed the stockade),
-had received a cut in the breast from one of the
-tomahawks. He yet breathed when his hideous tormentors
-stooped over him. As we looked on in anguish we saw
-Rankin rise to a sitting position. The Indian never
-paused. His knife described a quick circle, and the blood
-red scalp was torn off. Then the savage, mercifully,
-though he did not intend it so, thrust his knife into poor
-Rankin’s heart, and a groan went up from my men.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>But in the midst of it a rifle cracked. The Indian
-threw up his hands, one holding Rankin’s scalp, and, with
-a screech, pitched forward, dead. I looked around. Samuel
-Hopkins, the best marksman in the Colony, had, with
-his gun, crept forward in the grass when he saw the Indians
-come out. He it was who had taken swift vengeance on
-Rankin’s slayer. The groan of the men was turned into
-a wild cheer, and the other Indians fled in confusion to
-the protection of the stockade, slamming the gate behind
-them.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“There is one devil the less,” said Hopkins as he came
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_90'>90</span>back among us, and several of his comrades silently pressed
-his hand.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>But it was high time that we looked to ourselves. The
-hill about the fort was black with the French and Indians
-now. We were outnumbered four to one, and it would be
-useless to continue the fight longer. How to escape was
-now the question. I had an idea that they would not advance,
-and attack us for a little while yet, as our strength
-was not fully known. They would naturally suppose that
-we had some reserve, and probably would not charge us
-until they saw what this amounted to. If we could get
-to the coast, board the sloops and sail away all might yet
-be well; save for those we had lost. Bitterly as I hated to
-return to the Colony without having accomplished our object,
-I knew that it was the best we could attempt. Perchance
-we could not even succeed in this.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>After a hurried consultation we concluded that our
-only hope was in fleeing along the north side of the fort.
-On that face it was the least heavily cannoned. Also there
-was a little gully, which, if we could enter, might afford
-some protection from the fire. Once in this, though we
-had to pass a hail of lead, we could gain the shore and
-signal the sloops. It was, at best, but a dangerous and
-hazardous undertaking, yet we must act on that or some
-other quickly if we ever hoped to see Salem again. It was
-with anxious spirits then that my men began to load their
-guns again for what might be our last struggle. I had
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_91'>91</span>them leave behind such of their accouterments as could be
-dispensed with, to enable them to travel light. With a
-rapidly beating heart, though it pulsated not with fear, I
-gave the word.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>We started off on the run, as if we intended once more
-to advance to the assault. Then, when within good musket
-fire distance, we suddenly swerved to the left. It was well
-that we did so, for there was a shout from the forces in the
-fort, and, at the same time a belch of flame and smoke,
-followed by the roar of a cannon that had been pointed
-so as to cover us, had we kept on our course. The shot
-with which the gun was loaded, tore up the earth.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Seeing that this firing did us no harm the men in the
-fort ran to the north side to pick us off as we passed.
-The rifles began to crack, and the bullets to sing about
-our ears like angry hornets, but my men held their fire
-for closer quarters. Now we were abreast of the northern
-wall of the stockade. It took some little time, however,
-for the enemy to get to the loop holes, and, by a
-good providence it happened that the cannon on that side
-were not loaded. Running at top speed we pressed on.
-One man fell behind me, shot through the head; another
-stumbled at my right hand, pitched on his face, and, with
-a gush of blood from the mouth, was dead. Three or
-four were hit but kept on. We had entered the little
-glen now, and were somewhat screened from the musket
-fire. Just ahead I could discern the sea, and, calling
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_92'>92</span>encouragingly to my band, I pressed on. Ah, if only
-the sloops were at hand.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Cory! Cory!” I cried. “Bear off to the right of the
-fort! Cory to the rescue!”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Whether he heard me at the time I know not, but a
-dull boom from one of the sloop’s cannon told me that
-some on board were still alive. I reached the shore and
-halted to let my command pass me. The fire from the
-fort could reach us here, and every minute it was becoming
-more deadly. Several men were killed. Little
-clouds of dry sand, caused by the striking of the bullets,
-rose all around us. I glanced to where the sloops floated.
-The sails were set and they forged toward us slowly.
-There was a chance that we might yet be saved. Panting
-from their run the men drew up on the beach.
-Nearer and nearer came the vessels.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“To the rock, Captain! To the rock!” Cory cried.
-“We can take you off there!”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Then I saw that on our left hand there was a small
-headland of rock, which jutted out into the sea. It went
-down straight into the depths of water, and the top part
-overhung so that a skillful pilot might sail a small sloop
-beneath, and receive his passengers from the rock above,
-if they would but drop to the deck.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“To the rock, men!” I called, understanding Cory’s
-plan.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>They heard me, but now a new danger presented. The
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_93'>93</span>French and Indians were making ready to unbar the
-northern gate, and pour out upon us. Even as I looked
-I saw the first of them coming from the stockade. I
-called a score of the best marksmen, and had them take
-each a spare loaded rifle from their comrades. The other
-men hurried on, and reached the rock. Cory directed
-his sloop beneath, and I saw that in a short time the men
-could drop to the vessel’s deck. Then the rush of the
-Indians and the French began. The air resounded with
-the yells of the savages.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Kneel down!” I cried to the score.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>They dropped as one man, and the enemy, thinking we
-were begging quarter, whooped in derision.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Fire!” I shouted, and I could see, when the smoke had
-cleared, that the enemy had halted in confusion. About
-half of them had fired in return, but we had killed eight
-of them, while only two of our men died. I looked
-around, and saw that but a few men remained on the
-rock. Cory’s sloop, receiving its load, had passed from
-beneath. The other vessel came up quickly to perform
-the same office.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Casting aside the discharged guns the recruits leaped
-to their feet, and ran toward the rock. But the enemy
-had again rallied, and came on with a rush. Once more
-my band knelt down and delivered the last volley at short
-range, as they stood on the rock. The sloop was now beneath.
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_94'>94</span>One by one the men, taking advantage of the confusion
-in the enemy’s ranks, dropped to the deck.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Jump, Captain!” called out several.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“I go last,” I answered, drawing my sword.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>There was one huge, and fiercely painted, Indian in the
-lead, having outstripped his fellows. Only two of my
-men were left on the rock now. The Indian halted when
-a few feet away, and fired point blank at me. I felt a
-sudden sting as the bullet went through the flesh of my
-left arm. Then, uttering his whoop, the savage cast aside
-his now useless gun, and, shaking his uplifted tomahawk,
-rushed at me.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Jump, Captain,” called one of my men. “We are all
-off now.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>The Indian raised his sharp little weapon, and it glittered
-in the air above me. While he hesitated only for
-an instant to concentrate all of his force into the blow
-with a quick motion I passed my sword through his body
-under his upraised arm.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>The savage fell forward, dragging the sword from my
-grasp. I was in no mind to lose my bit of steel, so, placing
-a foot on the Indian’s still quivering breast, I managed,
-with some use of force, to draw out the blade. Then
-I turned, the bullets singing all about me, and leaped
-from the rock, landing square on the sloop’s deck.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>There was a shout of disappointed rage behind us, and
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_95'>95</span>several shots pattered in the water around the sloops.
-Then the friendly breeze and tide carried us out of harm’s
-way. We had failed to capture St. Johns, and the power
-of de Vilebon was unbroken.</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_96'>96</span>
- <h2 class='c006'>CHAPTER IX. <br /> <span class='small'>HOW THE FRENCH TOOK PEMAQUID.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c007'>A stiff breeze soon carried us beyond reach of any shots
-from the fort. But we were in sorry plight. The men
-were weary, some were badly hurt, and all were in low
-spirits from the failure of our expedition. A new danger
-threatened us now. The sloop I was in had received a
-cannon ball near the water line, and, the sea being somewhat
-rough the water came in, so that it was necessary
-to man the pumps.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I sent some of my men to help the skipper at this task.
-The master of the craft told me that if the sea got much
-higher we would founder, and it was with anxious eyes
-that I watched the weather all that afternoon. But when
-the sun went down beneath the waves, in a glory of gold
-and crimson, our hearts were lighter, for we heard the
-sailors singing, as they trimmed the canvas:</p>
-
-<div class='lg-container-b c015'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>“<em>Red in the mornin’,</em></div>
- <div class='line'><em>Sailors take warnin’.</em></div>
- <div class='line'><em>Red sun at night,</em></div>
- <div class='line'><em>Is sailor’s delight.</em>”</div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c016'><span class='pageno' id='Page_97'>97</span>Then, too, the skipper managed to get a spare sail over
-the rail, and, when it was bound with ropes, it somewhat
-stopped the gaping hole in the sloop’s side, and the water
-came in less freely.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Homeward bound. Of the days which followed we had
-little heart to take note, for our defeat was bitter upon
-us. On the tenth day after the battle at St. Johns, we
-came opposite Pemaquid.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>At this place Governor Phips had begun to build a
-fort, and he had sent a small garrison there. The commander
-signaled to us as we sailed by, and I ordered the
-sloops to come to anchor until a boat could put off from
-the fort.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I was somewhat surprised to receive from one of the
-garrison a letter, addressed to me from Sir William. He
-told me that, expecting I would stop at Pemaquid, in the
-event of success or failure, he had sent the message there
-to intercept me. And the import of it was that I was to
-take command of the fort, holding it with the men there,
-and with such of my own men as would volunteer for the
-service. We might expect to be attacked at any time, Sir
-William said.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Now, though I was heart-weary to be back in Salem
-it was no part of a soldier’s duty to complain, so I briefly
-told my men of the Governor’s letter. Then I proceeded
-to find what command I would have.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Of those of my original company only fifty were able
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_98'>98</span>to be of service. But I might not count on all of them,
-for, of the Salem recruits, only those who volunteered
-were to stay. So I mustered them in line, and gave the
-word for those who wished to fight no more to step aside.
-I was not a little pleased when only eight withdrew from
-the ranks. With the garrison already at the fort this
-gave me a command of one hundred and fifty men.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>A few days sufficed to repair the sloops, and they left
-for Salem, bearing a letter from me to Sir William.
-When the sails were low on the horizon we turned to getting
-the fort in shape to withstand an attack. The work
-was less laborious than that we had recently been accustomed
-to, and we were all glad of the respite. In time we
-had the place in as good state as it could be put.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>One day, toward evening, as I sat in the gateway of
-the fort, I saw, out in the woods, a man approaching.
-His steps were not rapid, and, at times, he appeared to
-stop to gather strength. His actions were so strange that
-I sent one of my men out to see who the stranger was.
-The two met, and my man, linking his arm in that of the
-other, began to help him toward the fort. When they
-came within hailing distance, Roger Toothtaker, whom I
-had sent, called:</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Ho, Captain, ’tis none other than our old comrade,
-George Burroughs, who was left for dead at St. Johns.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Aye, Captain,” said Burroughs, faintly, “that’s who
-I am.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'><span class='pageno' id='Page_99'>99</span>Surprised as I was to see Burroughs, I had him taken
-to my own apartments. He recovered a little when I gave
-him some rum, and I left him with some of his townsmen,
-while I went to see that the sentinels were properly posted.
-Ere I had finished my rounds I was recalled by an urgent
-message from him. He was sitting up when I came to
-him, and it seemed to me as if he had not long to live.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Look to your fort, Captain,” his first words were,
-“within a week these woods will be filled with the painted
-and bedecked imps of Satan, led on by the French, as
-cruel as themselves. And the sea beyond will float three
-sloops of war bearing the French ensign.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“How came you to know all this?” I asked, thinking
-that the man was perchance delirious.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Then he told. First, how, when he had seemingly been
-left for dead before the French fort, he had only been
-stunned by a spent ball. How he had escaped the death
-meted out to the other wounded he did not know, but it
-probably was due to the shot fired by Hopkins. Burroughs
-went on:</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“When you had gone in the sloops the Indians discovered
-me and I was taken prisoner. Kept within the
-fort I overheard the plan of the French to march against
-Pemaquid and surprise the garrison. Then I resolved
-to make my escape, and carry you a warning. Many days
-I waited for the chance before it came, but at last, one
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_100'>100</span>night I managed to elude the guard, and found myself
-without the palisade.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Here Burroughs became faint, and we had to give
-some spirits to revive him.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“I struck for the woods,” he continued after a pause,
-“keeping as near to the coast as I dared. Oh, but it was
-a wearisome journey. After many days of hardship and
-starvation I fell in with a band of friendly Indians.
-They guided me as near as they went to this place. A
-day’s journey back I fell over a cliff in the darkness, and
-cut my leg so badly on the sharp rocks that I feared I
-could not go on. I well nigh gave up in despair, but I
-managed to rig up a crutch made from the limb of a tree,
-and pressed forward, hoping to be in time. The distance
-which should have taken a day was three times that to me,
-for I could only hobble along. When I caught sight of
-the fort through the woods I was not able to go farther,
-for I had eaten nothing for three days save berries. But
-thank God, I have come in time.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>The man ceased speaking, and fell back on the rude
-bed so deathly pale that I thought it was all over with
-him, brave fellow that he was. After some time we
-brought him back to his senses, though he was so weak
-that I knew he could not last long. Then I left him, bidding
-the men to see to his needs. Away from the room,
-with its smoky candles, and its suggestion of death in poor
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_101'>101</span>Burroughs’ face, out under the stars, I paused to think
-over what I had heard.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>If we were to be stormed from land and sea at once,
-there was little time to prepare for it. We must act
-promptly, and, with that end in view, I called the
-garrison together by beat of drum and told the men what
-I had heard from Burroughs. I said that it must be a
-considerable force that could successfully attack the fort,
-and, although our position was not of the best from a
-soldier’s standpoint, it would not do for us to give up
-without a fierce fight. And a fierce battle it was likely
-to be, for Burroughs had said that at least two hundred
-Indians, led by Baron de St. Castine from Penobscot,
-would be accompanied by the French force under Iberville.
-The latter would attack us from the sea, while
-the Indians would assault the land side.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>It showed the spirit of my men, when, after I had told
-them all this they gave three hearty English cheers and
-dispersed. It made my heart feel much lighter. For a
-little while longer I walked up and down in the open.
-The scent of the woods came to me, and with it the varied
-noises of the beasts and birds therein. I looked up to the
-stars and whispered the name of Lucille. When would I
-see her again. Perchance never if the French and Indians
-overwhelmed us. Then I was likely with my comrades
-to find a grave in these same woods, and be forgotten
-by all. But I did not let these gloomy thoughts hang
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_102'>102</span>over me long. I had my sword by my side, the battle
-was yet to be fought, and I was too old a soldier to give
-up the fight before a blow had been struck. So with this
-change in my ideas I sought my bed.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>In the morning I was told that poor Burroughs had died
-during the night. He had not been in his senses, and
-ever murmured of the terrible journey he had taken to
-warn us. He died, the men said, shouting:</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Here they come, boys, the Frenchers and the Indians.
-Now strike for Salem and the King!”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Burroughs’ death had been looked for, yet it dampened
-my spirits a bit. However, I felt better after breakfast.
-I reflected that bridges need not to be crossed until they
-lie before one, also that to borrow trouble is to have a bad
-creditor. So I hurried about, here and there in the fort,
-to see wherein our weakness lay.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I made several changes. I had all the inflammable
-material stored in a safe place, and strengthened the
-magazine by binding logs on the more exposed part.
-Then having seen to it that the cannon were all in good
-order, with a supply of powder and balls at hand, I began
-drilling the men. They practiced at gunnery, for we
-had plenty of powder, and it was as well to let any sulking
-Indian scout know that we were prepared. One of
-the last thing I did was to write a letter, embodying all
-my adventures, and address it to Lucille. I arranged
-that if I was killed it should be forwarded to her. Then
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_103'>103</span>there was little to do but wait for the foe. It was not a
-long delay.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Scouts who had been sent out came back on the eve of
-the sixth day after Burroughs’ death. They reported
-that they had seen the fires of the Indians, who evidently
-were using but little of their usual cautiousness. It was
-some relief to know that action was at hand, for nothing
-so saps a man’s courage as to sit in idleness and wait for
-the unknown.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>We had taken every possible precaution. I doubled
-the sentinels, and the cannon were ready loaded. And the
-next night, when the watch was changing, the Indians
-came. There were a few shots fired aimlessly, and then
-followed the war cry. It rose and fell on the night air,
-echoing from the hill, and resounding throughout the
-silent woods. We might expect the battle in the morning.
-I ordered two cannon, loaded with small shot, to
-sweep the bushes before the fort. Though we probably
-did little damage, yet it told them we were awake.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>There was little sleep for any of us that night.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Every one was on the alert, for we knew that early
-dawn would set the Indians at us. So we sat in the darkness
-and watched the fires which the Indians kindled beyond
-rifle shot.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I watched the stars grow dim, and a gray darkness
-steal over the blackness of the night. A cold wind sprang
-up, and whistled mournfully through the trees. The owls
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_104'>104</span>hooted, and the wolves howled. Then the gray-black became
-lighter. All the stars were blotted out now, and
-there in the east was a pale streak, which gradually grew
-larger and larger. The dawn was come. With it came
-the frightful yells of the savages, and the crack of their
-muskets and rifles. They began the attack on all but the
-side of the fort toward the sea, but most of their bullets
-found marks only in the solid logs of the palisades. My
-men replied, yet, likewise, did little execution. I saw de
-Castine moving about here and there among his Indians
-urging them on, and I called to two of my best
-marksmen to try to pick him off. Once a ball chipped a
-piece from his sword scabbard, but he only looked toward
-the fort and bowed in mockery.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>The woods seemed alive with the red men, and several,
-with better rifles than their fellows, approached near
-enough to fire through the loops. I had three men
-wounded this way, one so badly that he died in a short
-time. Another was made blind by log splinters knocked
-into his eyes by a bullet. Yet we had not been idle. The
-cannon were of little use, so scattered was the foe, but
-once a knot of them gathered at the left of the fort, about
-one of their number who had been hit. It was a chance
-that one of our gunners did not miss, and a charge of
-small shot from the cannon was sent hissing into their
-midst. When the smoke lifted five dark forms stretched
-out on the ground showed what execution had been done.
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_105'>105</span>After this the savages remained quiet for a time. It was
-now noon, so I ordered a hasty meal served to the company.
-We were interrupted in the eating by a loud cry
-from one of the sentinels in the fort.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“A sail!” he shouted. “Hasten, Captain; there are
-ships approaching!”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I ran to the lookout, and there, approaching under a
-stiff breeze, were to be seen two sloops; and the decks
-were crowded with armed men. I could see, also, that on
-board were several cannon and mortars. Now, indeed,
-was our fight like to be most desperate.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I ordered the cannon facing the sea to be run out of
-the ports. Then, bidding Cory to look to defending the
-land side, I waited for the sloops to come within range.
-Within a half hour they had stood in nearer to shore, and
-we let fly at them. A few splinters knocked from the bow
-was all the damage we did to one. But the other fared
-less well, for one of our shots slivered the main mast near
-the deck. A cheer went up from our company. In reply
-the sloops fired two broadsides, and badly smashed one
-corner of the fort, besides injuring four men, and killing
-one. The vessels now drew around a point, and out of
-range. We could see them preparing to land the men and
-the cannon. I made no doubt that Iberville was there
-in charge of the force.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>It was not long before two of the mortars were in position
-to fire at us, some of the balls falling very near our
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_106'>106</span>magazine, and I was fearful lest that be set on fire and
-explode. The battle now began in earnest. The Indians
-seeing that the French had arrived, renewed their attack,
-so that we were between two fires. It was rattle and
-bang on all sides of us, and above all rose the fierce yells
-of the Indians. But our men stuck well to their work.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I had to divide my forces, and this left both sides of
-the fort rather poorly defended. Several times we were
-most desperately put to prevent the Indians from swarming
-over the palisades. They sent several blazing arrows
-on top of the fort, but the logs were green and would not
-burn readily. All the afternoon we fought, only managing
-to hold our own, and when night came, our situation
-was most precarious.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>The French continued to blaze away at us with the
-cannon, and we could see that they were landing more
-guns, so that the morrow promised to be full of peril for
-my little garrison. I dared not make a sally, for my force
-was too small, and yet we were little in shape to withstand
-a siege. As the darkness grew deeper, the rattle of the
-muskets and the boom of the cannon, and the thud of the
-balls on the wooden walls of the fort ceased. Desperate
-and weary, the men sought food and rest.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>As for me, I was gloomy enough. I saw no hope but
-to fight on to the last. Many had been hurt; several
-killed. Help might come from Boston, but it would scarce
-reach us in time now. I turned over various expedients in
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_107'>107</span>my mind, and had dismissed them all, when a sentinel
-called out:</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“A white flag, Captain!”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I looked out through a loop, and saw an Indian on the
-clearing in front of the fort. He had a stick, to which
-a white rag was tied. Approaching without the least sign
-of fear, he knocked at the gate and entered boldly when
-I bade a man let him in.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>In his hand, besides the flag of truce, the Indian carried
-a letter. It was from Castine, addressed to me.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I was told that unless the fort surrendered at break of
-day, it would be stormed. We could not hope to hold out,
-Castine wrote; and, after a resistance, he feared the Indians
-could not be restrained from practicing their cruel
-tortures. A speedy capitulation was advised.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I tore the letter into fragments, and scattered them to
-the wind.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Go,” I said to the Indian messenger. “Tell your
-leader that I refuse. We will fight to the last.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Hu,” muttered the red man, and he went out into
-the night that was approaching.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>He could no more than have delivered my answer when
-a sentinel, from the seaward side of the fort, hastened to
-me with the news that there was considerable activity
-among our foes, and that several guns were being landed
-from the ships, and being brought to bear on the fort.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Let them do their worst,” I cried, as cheerfully as I
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_108'>108</span>could to the men who were near me. “We will beat them
-yet. Will we not?”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Now, indeed, I expected that a hearty cheer would be
-my answer. Instead, there was only silence. I looked
-at the men.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Are you Englishmen?” I asked, scornfully. “Are you
-going to give up before the battle is over?”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Aye, we be Englishmen,” muttered a sailor. “We
-be true Englishmen, but of what is the use to fight all of
-France, and the Indians, too? We are but ninety men
-now, and perchance, if we yield we may get safe conduct
-to Boston or Salem town.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I would have pierced the fellow with my sword had he
-not leaped back. Then I looked at him. I knew him
-simply as Simon, one of the sailors. Yet, as I gazed at
-him more keenly, I recognized him as a man who had
-followed my adversary, Sir George, into the Governor’s
-room, in Boston, the day I had received my commission.
-I recalled, also, that Simon had ever seemed to be near
-me; when we voyaged in the sloops, and when we stormed
-the fort at St. Johns. He was like a man appointed to
-watch over me, for no good purpose. And he had gained
-some hold over my men, for, when I looked from him to
-them, to see if his words found echo in their hearts, there
-was no one who said nay.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“You are all cowards,” I cried, but there was no answer.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Then, when I could command my voice, I asked whether
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_109'>109</span>it was the wish of the garrison to surrender, and, with almost
-one accord, they said it was. It was a bitter cup to
-drink of.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I slept not at all that night, and, several times, I was
-half minded to rush out, all alone, and fight, single
-handed, until I was slain. But life was sweet, and, shameful
-as it was, I resolved to give up the fort. I had none
-to defend it, and we might be treated as prisoners of war,
-to be exchanged, in due season. There was nothing else
-to do, so, with sorrow in my heart, I ordered the white
-flag run up, as the sun rose. Then came Castine and
-Iberville, the leaders, who had been waiting for the signal.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>To Iberville I handed my sword. I could not but gaze
-with longing eyes on the bit of steel that had served me
-so well. Now I was like never to see it nor feel it in my
-hand again.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>But Iberville, noting my wistful glance, after he had
-held the weapon in his hand a moment, poising it as one
-who well knew its worth, said:</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“’Tis a pretty blade.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Aye,” I answered, bitterly. “It has found sheath in
-many an English foe, both French and Indian.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>His face, that had held a smile, went dark in a second.
-I expected nothing less than he would lunge at me. But
-he seemed to recover himself, though with an effort, and
-said, graciously:</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Perchance it may again.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'><span class='pageno' id='Page_110'>110</span>And he handed me back the sword.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I was too surprised to give him thanks. Soon we were
-deep in the details of the surrender. It was arranged
-that I was to march out at the head of my men, and we
-went on board the French vessels, as prisoners. We were
-to sail for Boston, to be exchanged for some French hostages
-held captive there.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>It was not long before we left Pemaquid in the distance,
-a French garrison being in charge. The voyage was without
-incident, and, one day in July, I walked ashore at Boston
-town, with my command. Sending word to Governor
-Phips that I would call on him the next day, I made
-a hasty meal, secured a horse, and was soon on the road
-to Salem and to Lucille.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I could but contrast that ride with a similar one I had
-taken some months back, when the snow was drifted deep
-over the path. Much had happened since then. I had
-fought and loved, and fought, and still was loving. And
-the love was of more strength than all the battles.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I spurred the horse on, while over and over in my heart
-I sang but one song, and the name of it was Lucille.</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_111'>111</span>
- <h2 class='c006'>CHAPTER X. <br /> <span class='small'>THE MAN AT THE INN.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c007'>At length the friendly tavern of Master Willis came
-into view. When I had reached it, weary and travel-stained,
-I dismounted, calling for a stable lad to see to
-the horse. I would but stop, I thought, to get a change of
-raiment, snatch a hasty bite, and hurry on to greet Lucile.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Have the dead returned?” quoth Willis, joyfully, as I
-strode into the big room.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Nay; ’tis myself in the flesh,” I answered, “as you
-may know, when I tell you that I am most woefully
-hungry. Some meat and drink, I pray you, for I must
-away soon again.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>The tavern keeper bestirred himself to much advantage,
-and it was not long ere there was plenty on the round table.
-I drew up a chair, and, while I lingered somewhat over
-the food, I had time to look about the familiar apartment.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>In one corner I noticed a man seated. His legs were
-stretched out in lazy comfort, one foot crossed over the
-other, while, with a riding whip in his hand, he switched
-at his boots. He seemed not to notice me, so that I had a
-chance to take a good look at him. Then I knew him for
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_112'>112</span>the same man who had ridden down to the beach, the day
-the sloops sailed; the mysterious messenger of the night,
-the man with whom I had nearly come to sword strokes in
-the Governor’s room. I own I was startled, for I could
-not help feeling that something portended of no happy
-omen.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Once he caught me looking at him, but he said nothing
-until I had finished. Then he rose, lifted his hat from his
-head, and snapped his whip so that it cracked like a pistol
-shot.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Good day to you, Captain Amherst,” he said. “May
-I have the honor of a few words?”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>As he finished he smiled, and, though I could not tell
-why, I hated him for it.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“As many as you wish,” I answered, “but I am pressed
-for time now. Will not another occasion do? I----”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Some other time might serve,” he interrupted, “but I
-am on the King’s business, and you know that ever presses
-us men of the sword.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Not very graciously I led the way to my former apartment,
-from which I had been absent so long. Wearily I
-sat down, pointing to another chair, opposite, for my visitor.
-He took it, doubled the riding whip in his hands,
-and, with a slight bow to me, said:</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“I have been waiting for your return, Captain Amherst,”
-and he seemed to hesitate over the name. “I have waited
-ever since you sailed against St. Johns.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'><span class='pageno' id='Page_113'>113</span>“Then you had a wearisome delay,” I responded, little
-heeding my own words, for I was in haste to be away.
-“One, I fear, not much to your profit or pleasure.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“I did not look for profit,” was his reply. Then he
-spoke slowly, and with a mocking, sneering tone. “But
-it was pleasant enough, tarrying here--with Lucille!”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I sprang to my feet and half drew my sword, for there
-was more than insult in his words; there was a threat.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Lucille!” I cried, leaning forward and peering into
-his handsome, sneering face.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Aye, Lucille,” he answered coolly, and he never glanced
-at me, but played with the buckle of his sword belt.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“We had many happy hours together,” he went on; “she
-and I, while I was waiting for you.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Damn you!” I shouted; “what means this! Know
-you that----”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Aye, I know,” was his response, and then he looked me
-full in the face. He seemed to drop his jaunty, careless
-air, as, at midnight, a dancer casts aside his mask. “I
-know,” he repeated slowly. “I know you, and I know
-Lucille.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>My sword was out in an instant, and, with its point, I
-menaced his heart. But, with a coolness that I could not
-help admiring, he never moved, nor did he seem at all
-alarmed.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Draw, sir!” I cried out. “Draw, in the devil’s name,
-or I’ll run you through where you stand! The Governor
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_114'>114</span>is not here now to stay our hands. Who are you, crossing
-my path so often?”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“There is time enough to draw my sword when I have
-finished,” he replied, never taking his eyes from my face.
-“So if you will but put up your weapon, perchance there
-may be no need to take it from the scabbard again, Sir
-Francis Dane!”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>If he had struck me I could not have been more startled
-than at the sound of that name. My knees grew weak
-from very fear, and I sank back into my chair, while my
-sword which I had held outstretched, clattered to the oak
-floor.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>That my secret had been laid bare, after so many years,
-when I supposed it safely buried across the sea, shook me
-as a tempest might a sapling.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Have I touched you with the point?” asked the
-stranger, as he cut the air with the little whip.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Yes! A thousand times, yes!” I cried, and I leaped at
-him, and would have run him through on the instant with
-my sword, which I recovered from the floor, had he not
-nimbly sprang behind the bed.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>There he stood, his face working with emotion, his eyes
-glaring, and his hand clasped so tightly on his sword hilt
-that his knuckles went white with the strain. I lunged
-at him again and again, fiercely, blindly, almost, until, in
-very shame at thrusting at one who had no weapon out, I
-stopped and stood breathless, like one who had run far.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'><span class='pageno' id='Page_115'>115</span>“Why do you stand there, silent?” I panted. “Are you
-a man, or----?”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Perchance a witch,” he replied, with an air of easy assurance.
-“I hear there be many hereabouts. Indeed, no
-later than yesterday three were hanged on the hill yonder.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I started, in sudden fear, for his words brought back to
-my mind the witch trial, some months past.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>For a space there was silence in the chamber, and I
-could hear our breaths, as we stood gazing at each other.
-Then he spoke.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Well, what is it to be?” he asked. “Peace or war?”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“War!” I cried. “War to the end, now that you know
-what you do!”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Very good, then,” was his answer. “But, perchance
-you will hearken to me for a little. Proclaim an armistice,
-as it were?”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I nodded, as one in a dream, for I seemed to be asleep,
-watching all these things transpire, but taking no part in
-them.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“What would you say,” he went on, “if I told you that
-I held a warrant from His Most Gracious Majesty, King
-William, for the apprehension of one Sir Francis Dane,
-or, as he is known now, Captain Edward Amherst? The
-charge being high treason.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“What would I say? Why, that you lied most damnably.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Have a care!” he whispered, rather than spoke, and his
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_116'>116</span>hand fell to his sword hilt with a quick motion. “Have
-a care! I have suffered much from you. Do not tempt
-me too far.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“I am no traitor,” I said proudly, “for I have but now
-returned from the defense of Pemaquid, which, though it
-fell was only given up in the face of heavy odds, and because
-the garrison would not stand by me. I am no traitor.
-Ask the men who tramped the woods and sailed the
-sloops with me.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Then this must be in error,” was his sudden exclamation.
-He threw a parchment to me across the bed, behind
-which he still was, and, while I unrolled it he came
-out, and sat in the chair again. I recognized the royal
-arms of England.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Read,” he said. And then he settled back in his chair
-most comfortably, as one disposed to listen to some pleasant
-tale.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I read. True enough it was a warrant for Sir Francis
-Dane, formerly of the army of “that arch-traitor” Duke
-Monmouth. All the way through I read the scroll, my
-heart growing heavier as I proceeded.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Does it suffice?” he asked.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Aye,” I answered, moodily.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I turned toward him.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“It is enough,” I went on, pacing back and forth. “But,
-look you, sir, I know not your name. Not that it matters
-greatly.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'><span class='pageno' id='Page_117'>117</span>“I am Sir George Keith, at your service, and at that of
-His Majesty,” he said, smiling and bowing low.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Well, then, Sir George Keith, what is to prevent me
-from destroying this warrant? From casting it into the
-fire, thus----?”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>With a quick movement I tossed the parchment into
-the blazing pile of logs on the hearth, Willis having
-kindled them, though there was little need of warmth.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>The sheepskin burned in a sudden puff of flame, but
-Sir George never turned his head to see what became of it.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“It was but a copy,” he said.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Then what is to prevent me from killing you?” was
-my next question.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Would one tainted with treason, add to his crimes and
-attack the King’s messenger? Or if he dared, that same
-bearer of the royal warrant might have somewhat to say
-touching on the killing. I am no schoolboy to be frightened
-by words!”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I knew he spoke the truth, and I sat down again.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Perchance,” went on Sir George, “I may weary you
-with the tale, but I will relate it, and if I tire you I pray
-your pardon.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Then while the shadows grew long outside, and the darkness
-settled deeper and deeper over the earth, I listened as
-one not fully awake, who hears a voice afar off.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“There is little need,” said Sir George, “of telling that
-which you know better than I do. How you were of the
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_118'>118</span>personal guard of Monmouth, and how, when the last battle
-went against him you fell into the hands of King James’
-men, that day on Sedgemoor field. Of your trial before
-his Worshipful Honor, Judge Jeffreys, and his merciful
-sentence that you be sold as a slave, instead of being
-hanged, as you, and all that army of ragamuffins deserved,
-I need not speak. You recall how Lord Cordwaine begged
-that you might be given to him so he could sell you into
-slavery. You managed to escape from prison, none knew
-how, before Lord Cordwaine had secured you, and you fled.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“The noble lord reported his loss to His Majesty, and,
-being in great favor then, the King granted a royal warrant
-for you, that, wherever you could be found, you might be
-brought back to England as a traitor, to be dealt with as
-Lord Cordwaine might elect. That was seven years ago.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Of your wanderings in that time I have heard a little.
-How, having sold your sword to prince after prince in
-Europe, you finally came to America, and offered your
-services to His Excellency, Sir William Phips, under the
-name of Captain Amherst. I have had a long search for
-you.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Do not think that I followed you over seas all these
-years merely to gratify the revenge, or satisfy the whim
-of Lord Cordwaine. He might rot in hell for all I cared,”
-and Sir George, with a vicious snarl to the words, doubled
-his riding whip until it snapped in twain.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'><span class='pageno' id='Page_119'>119</span>“No,” he proceeded, “I sought you for myself; for my
-own ends.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I looked at him, trying to fathom whither he might be
-drifting. He had no more of the careless air, and his
-tone had changed to a low, intense and rapid one.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Can you call to mind,” he asked, “when the last charge
-was made at the ditch that proved so disastrous to Monmouth’s
-forces?”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Yes,” I said, my memory going back to the fierce
-struggle between farmers and religious fanatics on one
-side, and trained soldiers on the other.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Do you remember how, when a dark haired lad, aye
-he was but a boy, opposed you as you urged your horse
-on?”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Yes,” I answered, as one awaking from a sleep.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Then,” came from Sir George suddenly, “call to mind
-also how you cut him down with a single stroke, though
-you might have disarmed and spared him, for he could
-not have prevailed against you. His life’s blood dyed the
-marsh, and he was trampled under foot, a shapeless mass.
-Do you recall that?” The words were hurled at me with
-every look of hate.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“It was in a fair fight,” I said, somewhat sorry for the
-lad. “I had to save myself. It was give and take, no
-quarter asked or granted; no time to parry.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“I saw the blow. I marked who gave it,” went on Sir
-George. “Had not my horse fallen under me then you
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_120'>120</span>would ne’er have dealt another. A sudden surge in the
-battle carried me from you, but I knew I could remember
-your face, your form; and I vowed----,” a strong emotion
-seized the man,--“I vowed your death when once
-more we should stand face to face. Now after many years
-that time has come. For--for----”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>He seemed to choke with the words.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Was he----?” I began softly.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“He was my only brother,” he replied, “and his death
-broke my mother’s heart, and sent my father to an early
-grave.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“’Twas the fortune of war,” I answered, but I had no
-heart to mock his grief.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>After a pause he went on.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“When the prisoners were taken,” he said, “I sought
-among them for you. One day, to my joy, I saw you
-penned in with others like the cattle you were. I hastened
-to the King to beg one boon: that you might be
-given or sold to me. But Lord Cordwaine, curse him,
-was before me, and he had chosen you among others that
-the King gave him. His Majesty dared not, for reasons
-of policy, offend Lord Cordwaine, by making the change.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“I begged and pleaded with the lord that he would
-give you to me, but he was short of purse, and had made
-a bargain to sell you as a slave. I had not money enough
-or I would have been the buyer.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Then came your sale to the slave dealer, and your escape
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_121'>121</span>from prison, before Lord Cordwaine had delivered
-you to the purchaser. He secured a royal warrant for
-your arrest, wherever you might be found, on the charge
-of high treason. Fearful that you might escape my vengeance
-I besought Lord Cordwaine to let me serve the
-document. Glad that he was not to be out of pocket by
-the arrangement he consented. Since then I have followed
-you from place to place, always arriving just as you
-had gone. I lost track of you when you sailed for this
-land, but now I can reap my reward.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I know not what prevented me from springing at him
-then and ending it all. I wish I had. Perhaps it was
-his devil’s coolness, or his mastery over my feelings that
-held me to my chair. He proceeded after a pause, not
-heeding that I had risen as he began again.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“When King James fled,” he went on, “I managed to
-acquire some influence at the court of William and Mary.
-The warrant was renewed, though Lord Cordwaine, to my
-joy, died in the meantime, and I knew I could have you
-all to myself when I found you. So I continued my
-search, and now I have found you--and Lucille.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“What of Lucille?” I cried. “Would you drive me mad
-by harping on her name, as if you had a right to use it?
-Speak, man. What are you to her, or what is she to you?
-There is some mystery here, of which I have had enough.
-Now out with it, or, warrant or no warrant, I’ll run you
-through as I would a dog.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'><span class='pageno' id='Page_122'>122</span>“What of Lucille?” repeating my words in a sneering
-tone. Then changing suddenly: “This of Lucille. That
-I love her better than life. Aye, I love her more than I
-hate you, and God knows that hate is as wide and as deep
-as the sea. I love her; I love her, and she loves me! For
-Lucille de Guilfort is my wife!”</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_123'>123</span>
- <h2 class='c006'>CHAPTER XI. <br /> <span class='small'>A MAN AND HIS WIFE.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c007'>I was like a man who saw death before him when I
-heard his words. Lucille his wife, when but a few short
-months ago she had promised to be mine. She had let
-me woo and win her, knowing that she had no right--that
-I had no right!</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Oh God!” I cried; and then I stopped, for I did not
-know what I might pray for; her death, or his or my own.
-Yet with it all I loved her; more than ever.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>A great grief or a great joy stuns for the moment. So
-it was with me. My heart’s dearest idol was shattered;
-crumbled into dust, and, instead of pain, there was a
-numbness and a feeling that I had never known before.
-I raised my hand to my head as if I would brush away
-cobwebs from my eyes.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Lucille,” I began, in so strange a tone that I started
-at the word, and the silence seemed broken by my tone as
-by a thunder clap.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Lady Keith,” corrected Sir George, smiling.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'><span class='pageno' id='Page_124'>124</span>There came to me a faint hope like a star dimly seen
-amid a storm sky. Perchance he had forfeited the right
-to call her wife. What else could mean her shrinking
-from him, her fear when they had met, and I had been
-near to see? Oh, if it could but be true! My eyes saw
-clearer, and my hand became firmer.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“I have no privilege to ask,” I began, yet I hoped for
-an answer, “but I had been led to believe otherwise of--of--Lu--of
-Lady Keith.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Aye, I suppose so,” was his answer, in a biting tone.
-“I am in little mood for the telling, yet I will relate how
-it came to pass; for there have been strange goings on
-since Mistress Lucille became Lady Keith.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Then as we two stood there, each with deadly hatred
-of the other in his heart, he began:</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“I met Lucille and fell in love with her some five years
-ago. I first saw her in Paris, where I had gone in quest
-of you. There I lingered unable, because of the witchery
-of her eyes, to leave. We met often, for I contrived to
-prevail on her father to let me give her lessons in English.
-And you may guess I lost no opportunity of giving her
-lessons in love at the same time. Well, my suit prospered,
-and in a year we were wed, both as happy as lovers proverbially
-are.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Then one day, ’twas a small matter, to be sure, but
-there was a story that some court lady had been found in
-my bed chamber. Only a trifle, for she had been there to
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_125'>125</span>gain my friendship in a matter concerning some titled
-personage, and called rather early, that was all. But
-Lucille heard of it, and, as I could not deny that the lady
-was there, why, my wife assumed that I had tired of her
-charms. She flew into a great passion, and when I had
-imagined she would pout a bit, and seem offended, she
-was most grievously angered. Hast ever seen her in a
-temper?” he asked suddenly.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“No,” I said sharply. “Go on.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Oh, but she has one, for all her fair face,” he sneered.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>It was all I could do to keep the point of my sword
-from his throat.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Proceed,” I choked out.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Well, this small matter to me proved a large one for
-Lady Keith. And her father, it seems, took it to heart
-also. They were of noble blood, the de Guilforts, almost
-as good as the Keiths,” and he stroked his moustache with
-an air of pride.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Where was I? Oh, yes. Well, Mistress Keith was
-in a great temper. She defied me to my face; told me I
-had dishonored her. You know how women are. To be
-brief, M. de Guilfort, with my wife and her cousin, suddenly
-left Paris, when I had been called to London on a
-false report that you had come back. When I returned to
-Paris, expecting to find all the affair blown over, and a pair
-of loving arms and ruby lips to welcome me, I found a
-vacant house; a cold hearth.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'><span class='pageno' id='Page_126'>126</span>“I did my best to trace them but failed. Then, like a
-man without hope, hating yet loving, loving yet hating,
-I went to the wars, and finally came to America. And
-here, thanks to the fates I have found both my enemy
-and my love.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Is that all?” I asked, for I wished to hear the end
-before I killed him.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“No,” he said bitterly, “not all. When I became attached
-to the army of the Massachusetts Colony, the first
-act of Governor Phips was to send me with a message to
-you here. I little guessed who I should find Captain
-Edward Amherst to be, much less did I hope to meet
-with Lucille in Salem town.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“When I galloped to her house that night, not finding
-you at the inn, I saw, in the dim light, she whom I
-had been seeking so long. I had no eyes for you then
-beyond a glance. But when I had ridden away, not desiring
-to press matters at once, your face came before
-me, and I knew I had found one other I had been in
-search of. I shouted aloud for joy.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“I hastened to Boston, where I had left the royal warrant,
-and I returned with all speed. You had already
-sailed with the two sloops, though I tried to hail you
-from the shore to which I galloped. However, I thought
-that you would return, and, when I looked and saw Lucille,
-I hardly cared whether you came back or not.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Is that all?” I asked again, softly. For I saw, of a
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_127'>127</span>truth now, that one of us was like to die; and I did not
-think it would be me.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Not quite all,” he said.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>He paused to cast a hasty look at me, then he went on.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“While waiting for you I had time to renew my acquaintance
-with my dear wife,” he said mockingly.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“And--and have you persuaded her that you are a true
-and loyal husband?” I asked, hesitating bitterly over the
-words.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Nay, curses on it,” he cried. “Why, man, ’twould
-be laughable, but that I am more in love with her than
-ever. Fancy a man in love with his wife a second time,
-yet not allowed to greet her, to call upon her, save in
-the presence of a serving maid, not to take her hand, to
-kiss----”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I started forward, with what intent I know not, for the
-memory of those kisses I had pressed on Lucille’s lips
-came back to me. I felt that one of us, for the sake of
-the honor of Lucille, must die.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Then your second suit is not favored, as was the
-first?” I inquired.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Nay,” he replied bitterly. “Why, ’tis town gossip
-now that she loves you, for no one is aware that she is
-my wife yet. A pretty tale, is it not? How the French
-maid fell in love with the Captain that casts great rocks
-as though they were <a id='corr127.26'></a><span class='htmlonly'><ins class='correction' title='put'>but</ins></span><span class='epubonly'><a href='#c_127.26'><ins class='correction' title='put'>but</ins></a></span> pebbles.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“You lie, damn you!” I cried. “She did love me,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_128'>128</span>perhaps. But it was before she knew she had no right.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“No right?”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“My life upon it, she did not know, Sir George. She
-either believed you dead, or knew that she was no more
-bound to you than to the veriest beggar.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Yet, though I spoke the words boldly, there was both
-pain and fear in my heart. When a man begins to doubt
-a woman there is no middle way. But I could not, with
-honor, do less than defend the name of one I had loved--nay,
-of one I loved still.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Oh, a truce to fine words,” was the reply. “All women
-are alike; off with the old, on with the new. Since
-she has found you she has no use for me. I might as
-well talk of my love to the trees or to the rocks as to
-Lucille, my own wife, since you have kissed her.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I started.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Ha! That was but a chance shot, yet it struck,” he
-cried; and he laughed, though it echoed more like a wail
-than a sound of merriment.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“But I love her,” he went on. “Oh, God, how I love
-her! I love her so much that I will, for the sake of
-it, be cheated of my revenge. With you away I could have
-hope. But now----”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Outside the wind blew in mournful gusts, for a storm
-was brewing.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Hark you, Sir Francis Dane,” he continued. “I will
-not call you by that name, though, for you have forfeited
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_129'>129</span>it. Listen, Captain Amherst; if you will but consent
-to leave the Colony, leave Lucille, and go away, I,
-in turn, will forget my brother’s death, my vengeance, and
-you. The royal warrant shall be destroyed, and you may
-walk the earth a free man, fearing not any one. Only
-go. Leave Lucille to me. I can win back her love. See,
-I will write now a full and free pardon for you, and will
-transmit it to the King. Will you go?”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>It was dark by this time, and the flickering flames,
-dying amid the ashes, like a hopeless love, faintly illuminated
-the apartment, as we stood facing each other.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>It was strange, when, for the moment I stopped to think
-of it. Here was a man pleading with another for what
-was his right. Pleading to be allowed to woo his own
-wife. Begging that I would give up my love and go away
-so that his suit might be unhampered. Verily I had
-never heard of such a thing before, though I knew that
-love was a strange master. Sir George was asking of me
-with words what I might expect to be required by the
-sword. Yet, though I had no right to the love of Lucille,
-his wife, he did not draw, even as I moved back, and stood
-on guard.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Whereat I marveled, for he was not a man to accept
-lightly the dishonor I had put upon him.</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_130'>130</span>
- <h2 class='c006'>CHAPTER XII. <br /> <span class='small'>THE TIME OF PERIL.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c007'>Of what use to stay in Salem now, that my love had
-come to such a sorry end? Yet I did not like that he
-should triumph over me, nor would I purchase my freedom
-at the price he offered.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>To stay? To go?</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“I will remain here,” I said, after a moment’s pause.
-He made a gesture that showed his displeasure. “But
-mistake me not, Sir George, Mistress Keith shall see no
-more of me. I stay, not on her account, but my own.
-Now, enough of womenkind. With you it seems I have
-a score to settle yet.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Sir George nodded his head.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“You have made threats,” I went on. “You feel
-aggrieved; you consider me your enemy, and I, no less, you
-mine. The Danes are not accustomed to shun danger;
-to permit old scores to be unsatisfied; to leave an enemy
-behind them. Therefore I stay, Sir George.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>He made as if he would go, but I stood before him.
-He was looking beyond me with a curious glint in his
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_131'>131</span>eyes, and, though I was directly in his path, he did not
-seem to notice me.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Draw, sir,” I commanded, gently. “Let us see who of
-us shall go or stay; who of us shall die? There have been
-enough of threats. Draw, sir; I pray you.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Still he looked beyond me as if at some vision behind
-the oak walls, until stung by his indifference I came so
-close up against him that his arm touched mine.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Will you not fight?” I cried, peering into his eyes
-that refused to see me.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>He said not a word, but ever continued to gaze away.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Come,” I sneered, “will you do me the honor to cross
-swords?”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Not with a traitor,” was his sudden answer.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Nor I with a coward,” I exclaimed. I snatched up
-the broken whip and struck him full in the face with it.
-The blow raised a red weal from his eye to his chin.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I have seen wild beasts aroused, and raging Indians
-mad with the lust of murder, yet I never saw such a look
-as came into the face of that man when I struck him.
-Verily I shrank back somewhat, and my sword went up
-on guard. But with a fierce mastery of the passion that
-must have been tearing at his very heart, Sir George
-moistened his lips with his tongue, and hoarsely whispered:</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Are you mad? No man ever yet struck me and lived
-after it. But the sword of a gentleman and a soldier is
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_132'>132</span>too good for such as you, traitor that you are. I will
-not sully my steel with your blood. Think not, though,
-that you will escape me. Die you shall, but in such
-manner as no man died before;” and, ere I could stop
-him he had rushed from the room, and I was alone.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>There was half a thought in my mind to follow him,
-but I did not care to engage with him on the open highway,
-and I knew I would meet with him again. That
-he meditated some evil to me I was sure. What it might
-be I could not say.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Well, I would be off now to see Lucille after my long
-absence. I stopped with a jolt, as suddenly as does a
-trooper whose horse balks at a hedge. Lucille!</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Ha!” I cried, gaily. “Nay, Lucille no more, but
-Lady Keith. What a fool I’ve been to let her see that I
-loved her. What a fool any man is to love a woman.
-What fools men are, anyhow, at all times.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Bah! Lucille! And she took my kisses.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“What ho! Well, ’tis many a stolen kiss a soldier has,
-and mine had been purloined favors, though I knew it
-not. Why, then, should I give her up? She loved me,
-even her husband admitted that. And why had not I,
-whom she loved, a better right, to her than he whom she
-loved not? With some there would have been but one
-answer to this. A clash of steel, and, right or wrong, he
-who loved and won, would have her whom he fought for.
-Why not I? What if she was his wife?</p>
-
-<p class='c008'><span class='pageno' id='Page_133'>133</span>“Should love recognize limitations of earthly honor?
-Why not cast honor as men saw it to the winds? With
-Sir George out of the way I would have naught to fear
-from his warrant, and his wife--bah! the words went
-bitter in my mouth--his wife could then be mine. I had
-no doubt that in a combat with him I could be the victor.
-We had quarreled, I had struck him. If he was a man
-he must fight after that. Then a meeting early in the
-morning, a clash of swords, a lunge, a feint, a trick I
-knew well, having had it from a master of the art, and
-that would be the end. The end of all save my happiness
-with Lucille.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“No!”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I spoke the word aloud. I had not sunk so low as that.
-It would be sad indeed if love gave such license. There
-was but one way out of the matter. If I stayed in Salem
-I must fight Sir George, and all would say that I had
-slain him that I might take his wife.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Love would be sweet, with Lucille to share it with me,
-but not love with dishonor. Therefore I must go.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Heigh-ho! This, then, was an end to all my dreams.
-Nothing left to battle for save life, and that was scarce
-worth the struggle. I tried to banish the memory of
-Lucille from me, but I could not. Her whisper that she
-loved me sounded in my ears loud above the din of the
-fights I had passed through. One right I had still. To
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_134'>134</span>love her in secret, to know that she loved me, and, knowing
-that, to let it be the end.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>It was night now. There came a knock on my door,
-and Willis entered.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“What, not gone?” he asked. “Why, I thought you
-were in haste to be away.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“So I was,” I answered, with a short laugh, “but I
-have changed my mind now. Much haste oft means a
-slow journey. I’ll stay here with you. Let us have some
-wine up, Master Willis. ’Tis so long since I have tasted
-any that my throat has forgot the flavor. Bring plenty,
-for when a man has been to the wars there is need of
-some cheer on his return, even though he comes conquered
-instead of a conqueror.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>He brought the wine, and we drank together, I not so
-much that I wanted the drink, but companionship.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“How goes the witchcraft here, Willis?” I asked. “I
-heard ’twas broke out again, as I came through Boston.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Hush,” he said, glancing around as though he feared
-some one would hear me. “Verily it is most horrible.
-The townspeople have gone mad, it seems. Scarce a day
-goes by that some poor woman or man is not accused of
-being in league with the devil, or banded with witches to
-work evil spells. The Colony groans under the terrors,
-for nearly half a score of people have been put to death
-after being convicted of witchcraft.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Neighbors have denounced and testified against neighbors;
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_135'>135</span>fathers against sons, and daughters against their
-mothers.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Why, ’tis worse than I dreamed,” I said.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Aye, it is bad enough,” responded Willis, glancing behind
-his chair, as if he expected to see a witch perched on
-the bed post.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“There are strange tales told,” he went on, “of how
-witch meetings are held on the common, and those who
-have been witness to them say they see the forms of their
-acquaintances riding athwart broomsticks or fence rails
-in the air.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Let but a cow be taken sick, and straightway ’tis said
-that the animal is bewitched. Then the owner goes before
-the judges and swears some poor dame has cast an
-evil spell on the beast. The woman is taken and put in
-gaol, and little enough as the evidence is sometimes, she
-is condemned and hanged. Oh, I promise that you will
-see horrors enough if you stay here long.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Why, no further back than six days one man was accused
-because he was so strong that the witch-crazed people
-said he must have had help from Satan to lift the
-weights he did. He was taken, tried and executed.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“I am like to suffer then,” I said, laughing. “Do you
-recall the big stone by the brook?”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Heaven forbid,” said Willis. “But do not laugh, Captain.
-It is no small matter when half the townsfolk are
-crazed, and the other half ready to follow where the first
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_136'>136</span>lead. Surely you must have noticed how distraught the
-people were as you came along.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Nay,” I answered, “I was thinking of other matters.
-But I remarked that the few friends I passed in the road
-seemed not to know me. But what does it signify?”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Much,” proceeded Willis. “Much in very truth. No
-man’s life nor liberty is safe now. It is a perilous time.
-Why, Salem gaol to-night holds two score poor wretches,
-whose only fault is some one has said they are witches.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“And more. The Governor has sent a special court with
-judges and constables and soldiers to attend to the trials.
-They are fearsome ordeals, too. It is ordained that if the
-accused one will confess that he is a witch that one may
-go free, for, it is said, that being a witch, by confession in
-the presence of a minister, the spirit of Satan is abashed,
-and leaves the body. But many will not confess, maintaining,
-even on the scaffold that they are innocent, and all
-such have been put to death. So many have been executed
-that there is fear in many hearts.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Some are tried by water. They are thrown into the
-mill pond, and if they sink they are free from the accusation
-of witchcraft. Little good it does the poor souls
-though, for they never live to know that they are innocent.
-A true witch will float, ’tis said, and all such are killed.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Do you speak the truth?” I asked, for I could scarce
-believe what I heard.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“As I live,” answered Willis. “It is a time for every
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_137'>137</span>man to look to himself, especially if he has an enemy.
-Many of the witch trials, I believe, are but vents for the
-enmity which cannot be satisfied in other ways. A few
-of the accusers, however, seem in earnest, claiming that
-their maladies and troubles are spells of their enemies,
-and the afflicted ones call out the names in great agony.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Bah! Willis,” I said. “You are chicken-hearted from
-staying too much at home.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Wait and see,” replied the inn keeper. Then he left
-me.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I did not want to go to bed yet; there was no sleep in
-me; so I resolved to walk out to let some of my busy
-thoughts fly away, if they would. The moon was up, a
-big round silver disk, larger than the head of a cider barrel.
-It cast long shadows across the road and fields.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>As I tramped on toward, I knew not where, nor cared,
-I found my steps leading, unconsciously, to the home of
-the woman I loved.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I half turned back. No. I would go on. Not to see
-her. Not to clasp her in my arms, as I had hoped to do.
-Never that again. I would but pass by on the other side.
-It was to be my farewell.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>There was a light burning in the house when I came
-up to it. I fancied I could see through the window in
-the glare of the candle Lucille. Yes, there she was. Like
-a thief in the night I crept nearer until I could discern
-her face. Her head was resting on her hands; she seemed
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_138'>138</span>waiting for some one. I prayed it might be me, yet she
-must wait in vain.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Nearer I went. She turned, and gazed out into the
-night, straight at me. But I slipped into the shadow of an
-oak tree, that by no chance she might see me. She was
-more beautiful than ever. Oh, why had she not told me
-all that was in the past, before she let me love her.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>The wind rustled through the trees, sighing like a lost
-soul, a most mournful sound. I stretched up my hands to
-the sky; I reached them out to the woman I loved. Both
-were beyond me.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Once more I looked at her. She had risen from her
-seat. She stooped over the candle, so that the glare showed
-me her fair face, the ringlets of her hair, the soft curve
-of her throat, all her loveliness.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Lucille!” I cried, but the word was tossed back to me
-by the wind.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Lucille!” I whispered, but a moonbeam stole her name
-away.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Lucille!” She snuffed the candle, and it went out in
-a blur of darkness, so that the night swallowed her up,
-and I was left alone.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Then with the bitter heart of a man who has no sweetness
-left in life I came away.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>As I took the road to the inn I thought that once or
-twice along the path, half hidden by the trees, a form followed
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_139'>139</span>me. I stopped, and looked intently at the black
-shadow.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>An owl hooted mournfully, a frog croaked in a near-by
-pool, and a cricket chirped pleasantly from the grass.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“’Twas the owl,” I said, and I passed on.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Again I heard a dry twig snap as if some heavy animal
-or a man had stepped on it. This time, as I halted to
-looked about I heard not far off the howl of a lone wolf.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“It was the wolf,” I muttered, “after a stray sheep,”
-and I walked on, for the night was chill, and I was not
-warmly clad.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I had reached the inn, and hurried to my room. Then
-I looked from the window, and I saw passing across the
-fields the figure of a man.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Ho,” I whispered, “it was no wolf then.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>But I looked again and saw that the man was Sir George
-Keith.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Aye, it was a wolf,” I said.</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_140'>140</span>
- <h2 class='c006'>CHAPTER XIII. <br /> <span class='small'>IN SALEM GAOL.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c007'>I dreamed that night I was back in Pemaquid, with
-the cannon pounding away at the fort, bringing the stout
-timbers down about my ears. I fought the fight over
-again, and suddenly awoke in the gray dawn of the morning
-to hear a thundering summons at my door.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Hello!” I cried, springing from bed, and seizing my
-sword. My eyes were heavy with sleep, and I thought the
-Indians were upon us.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>The knock came once more, and it did not sound so
-loud to me when I had shaken off some of the slumber.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Who’s there?” I called again.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“’Tis I, John Putnam, constable of Salem town under
-His Most Gracious Majesty, the King,” was the reply.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>A nameless dread, a chill, seized me, though I knew not
-the reason for it. As the constable’s words died away I
-detected the sound of moving feet beyond the oak door
-that separated us. I thought at once that Sir George had
-sent the royal warrant for treason to be executed upon me.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Wait,” I cried, wishing to gain a little time. Then
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_141'>141</span>for an instant I reasoned with myself. What should I do?
-Give battle now, trusting to break through the ranks of
-those the constable had brought with him, and, if successful,
-flee? Or tarry and see the affair through? I did not
-like to run for it on the first appearance of danger. Perhaps
-after all I could find a way of escape. So in the
-next instant I had made up my mind to take my arrest
-quietly.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I had an idea that the fighting I had done in behalf of
-the Colony would stand me in good stead, and serve to gain
-me a pardon from the court.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Once more the summons came.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“We’ll not wait much longer,” was the warning from
-without.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Then enter,” I called, flinging open the door. I stood
-face to face with a half score of men, all armed, who well
-nigh filled the little hall. John Putnam, the constable,
-was at their head.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Your errand?” I inquired, shortly, thinking I knew it
-as well as he.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“I have a warrant, a royal warrant, for your body,” began
-the constable pompously.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“I know it full well,” was my answer.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I noticed that the bodyguard, accompanying Master
-Putnam, looked one at the other at this. A burly red-haired
-farmer, who clasped his flint-lock as he would a
-club, whispered to the man next him:</p>
-
-<p class='c008'><span class='pageno' id='Page_142'>142</span>“Mark you that, neighbor Passden? There is Satan’s
-work. He hath informed the Captain in advance of our
-coming, and of the royal warrant, which our worthy constable
-has not even yet removed from his jacket pocket.
-Saw you ever the like?”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Hush! Not so loud,” murmured the one addressed.
-“Aye, ’tis fearfully marvelous. But speak not of it, or
-he may cast a spell of the evil on us,” and the two shrank
-away.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I heard the whispers, but knew not what it all meant.
-I looked at the constable, seeking an explanation.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“I hold a warrant,” he went on, “against you, Captain
-Edward Amherst, charging you with certain detestable
-arts called witchcraft.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“What!” I cried. “Have you lost your senses, Master
-Putnam?”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Nay, hear me out,” he protested, drawing a parchment
-with a red seal dangling therefrom, out of his pocket. The
-men closed up around me.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“You are charged,” the constable continued, slanting
-the document, so as to catch the light of the rising sun
-from an east window full upon it, “charged with practicing
-witchcraft, and sorceries, wickedly and feloniously, upon
-and against Deliverance Hobbs, Benjamin Proctor and
-John Bly. All of whom last night made depositions of the
-facts before our gracious and most worthy Honor, Justice
-Hathorne. And I hereby arrest you, Captain Amherst,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_143'>143</span>on this warrant. You will be arraigned for trial this day
-at the court of Oyer and Terminer, to be holden here by
-Justices Hathorne and Corwin. You are, therefore, my
-prisoner.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>The constable folded the warrant together, and I
-noticed, when too late, that he had been gradually edging
-himself nearer to me. Suddenly he sprang at me, and
-threw his arms around mine, pinning my hands to my sides.
-I had been stunned by the quick change from what I had
-been expecting to that which I never dreamed of. But
-when I felt the hands of the constable upon me, his arms
-about my body, my resolve to submit quietly flew to the
-wind, and I nerved myself for the coming struggle.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I spread my arms apart, and easily forced off the hold
-of the constable. Then I turned quickly and picked Master
-Putnam up as if he had been but a small barrel of
-cider. I cast him out of the door, so that he fell against
-the crowd of men, and some of them were knocked down,
-none too gently, I fear, by his flight through the air.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Then I drew my sword from the scabbard, and stood
-ready to defend myself, but they were a trifle wary now
-about advancing. For perhaps a minute I stood thus, holding
-them at bay with the point of my weapon.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>But one man unobserved had crawled into the room
-behind me. Of a sudden I felt something fall over my
-head and slip down about my arms. It was a rope noose,
-and it was quickly pulled taut, so that my hands were fastened
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_144'>144</span>to my sides. I was helpless in an instant, with no
-chance to use my sword.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“At him now, neighbors!” cried a big farmer, casting
-his flint-lock to the floor. “The Lord of Hosts is on our
-side, and He will enable us to prevail, and overcome the
-mighty disciple of Satan.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Aye, at him now, at him now! Kill the witch!” cried
-others.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>On came the crowd with a rush, seeing that I was fast
-bound and helpless. However, with a kick from each foot
-in turn I disabled two of the constable’s guard as they
-sought to fall upon me, but the others were too many to
-cope with, and they forced me down by sheer weight and
-numbers. More ropes were brought and soon I was tied
-as neatly as a fowl trussed for roasting.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Without a word they carried me away in that sorry fashion,
-Constable Putnam limping along in the rear of the
-procession, for it appeared he had been somewhat hurt
-when he went out of the door so quickly.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I was taken to Salem gaol, and when it was reached,
-the iron studded door swung open, and I was thrust
-among two score others, suspected of witchcraft, who were
-waiting trial. A groan went up as I was added to their
-company. The door banged shut, hiding from view the
-pleasant sun, which was just rising, and drowning the songs
-of the birds.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>My captors placed me on the floor with no gentle hands,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_145'>145</span>and went away. Some of the prisoners, however, lifted
-me up on a bench, so that I was more comfortable in body,
-though not so much so in mind.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>It needed but a little thought to tell me how the matters
-that had lately transpired had come about. I knew
-that Sir George at the present time did not dare to urge
-the old charge of treason against me because of my present
-loyalty to the King and the Colony. He was afraid to
-fight, I believed, and, desiring revenge for my blow, and
-at the same time to see me removed from where I might
-meet Lucille, he had hit upon this plan to have me killed
-as a witch. And his plot was like to work well.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I recalled what Willis had told me of the state of people’s
-minds in regard to those suspected of witchcraft. I could
-realize what it meant now. Though had I not seen some
-of the things I did I would not have believed them.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I saw men and women in that gaol, who had been among
-the best liked of the townspeople. Colonists of wealth,
-delicate mothers and men of culture were there, herded together
-like sheep, and treated like common felons. It
-was enough to make me cry out for shame for my countrymen,
-who could be so deluded and deceived. I forgot my
-own plight to see so many waiting to be sacrificed, for what
-afterward proved to be a most terrible error. Aye, it was
-many years ere the black memory of Salem witchcraft of
-1692 was forgotten.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Among the prisoners was Martha Cory, mother of my
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_146'>146</span>former Lieutenant. She cried when she saw me, and asked
-for tidings of her son. To my sorrow I could not give
-them, as Cory had been separated from me when we surrendered
-at Pemaquid, and I had not seen him since,
-though I told his mother I trusted he was safely exchanged.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>George Reed was also a prisoner. He was a brother of
-one of my recruits who had fallen at the battle of St.
-Johns, and when I told the brother in gaol his sorrows
-were added to. Dorcas Goode was there, and Sarah Osborn,
-and Mary Warren; women whose sons or brothers
-had marched with me to the war. Some did not return,
-and if they but knew they might count themselves well off.
-Those were dark days, indeed, in Salem town.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Presently I called to the jailer, and, upon my promise
-that I would not try to escape, he loosened my bonds so I
-could walk and move about with some freedom. Now I
-was not minded to be executed as a witch, and I wanted
-all my strength, and nimbleness of limb, for whatever
-struggle there might be ahead. Greatly did I desire to be
-within sword’s length of Sir George Keith for a little
-while, and I resolved that I would give him but one chance
-to draw his weapon.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I went about among the prisoners, and soon engaged one
-of the guards in talk. From him, and from what I could
-piece out in my own mind, I learned how my arrest had
-been brought about. Sir George, after his meeting with
-me, had gone to the home of Justice Hathorne, and had
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_147'>147</span>sworn to a complaint as to my witch powers. It was easy to
-find others as witnesses to whom ordinary events by reason
-of the excitement in the Colony, had become much changed
-in meaning. So that in simple happenings such as the loss
-of a cow or a sheep, the witchcraft of some neighbor was
-discernible. Sir George had learned of Benjamin Proctor
-and John Bly, who each had lost a cow from some disease.
-He had suggested that I might be the witch who had
-worked evil spells upon the animals.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>The two farmers, worrying over the loss of their cows,
-had eagerly seized on the explanation that I was the evil
-spirit responsible. Sir George had told how my strength
-was as the power of three men, though my body was not
-overly large. He had told of the great rock I had lifted
-after the mightiest man in the Colony had failed to budge
-it, and thus the charges against me had grown out of
-nothing.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>The two farmers and Deliverance Hobbs, who was an
-old woman, scarce knowing what she said, were sure I
-was a person in league with the devil. So they had prayed
-the judge, through Sir George Keith, that I might be
-apprehended and brought to trial.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Sir George had induced the constable to arrest me at
-dawn, saying I could be more easily taken if suddenly
-aroused from sleep. So, too, he had urged that I might
-be given a speedy trial, that the witchcraft in the land
-might be crushed out with a heavy hand, and the powers
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_148'>148</span>of evil made the less. He had talked with much cunning
-to the authorities, and he being, as they knew, in favor
-with the King and Governor, they had done all he wished.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Thus I was in Salem gaol, with little chance of leaving
-it, save at the trial, and then, perchance, it would be but
-a short shrift to the gallows.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>It was noon. The sun shone overhead and beat down
-on the prison, but to us inside, only the reflection of the
-golden beams came in through the iron barred window.
-Steps were heard coming toward the door, and, as it swung
-open the guards thrust some platters of food in to us.
-Some cakes of corn meal, with a bit of mutton, was all
-there was. Scarce sufficient for half that were there.
-When the jailer handed me my portion he muttered beneath
-his breath:</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Of what use to feed witches, when, if they so desired,
-Satan himself would bring them hell-broth through the
-very walls of this gaol.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Say you so?” I replied, laughing bitterly. “Say you
-so? Then why do we not have Satan bear us hence
-through these same walls if so be we are witches. One
-is as easy as the other.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“I had not thought of that,” he said, shrinking back,
-“the guard without must be doubled, and Dominie Parris
-shall offer fervent prayers that ye all may be safely
-held here.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>During the meal I talked with some of my companions
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_149'>149</span>and learned that they had been cast into prison on the
-most flimsy pretexts. One old woman, because she had
-passed through a field where sheep were feeding. She
-touched some of the lambs with her hand. The next day
-some of the sheep were dead, and Elizabeth Paddock was
-accused of bewitching them. Another woman was taken
-because, when she had baked some dumplings an apple
-was found whole inside of them, and it was said that Satan
-must have aided her. Still another lad, whose mother
-had been hanged as a witch, was in gaol. Grief and terror
-had made him out of his mind, and he continually called
-out that he had turned into a witch, and saw his mother
-riding through the air on a cloud of geese feathers. Salem
-gaol was a most fearsome place those days.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>After the rude meal, the constable, accompanied by his
-former bodyguard, came to bring me to the court house.
-It was with no very cheerful heart I made ready to go
-with him, for I could nearly guess how the trial would
-end with Sir George to urge on the witnesses. Still I
-could but take my chance, as I had many times before,
-and I trusted to my good fortune to bring me safely
-through.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>A man can die but once, and I wondered <a id='corr149.23'></a><span class='htmlonly'><ins class='correction' title='vaugely'>vaguely</ins></span><span class='epubonly'><a href='#c_149.23'><ins class='correction' title='vaugely'>vaguely</ins></a></span>, as I
-stepped out, whether Lucille would care if I died.</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_150'>150</span>
- <h2 class='c006'>CHAPTER XIV. <br /> <span class='small'>A SENTENCE OF DEATH.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c007'>When, after a walk through the town, during which
-our progress was delayed by a curious throng of people
-who stared at me as if I had been a wild animal, we came
-to the court house, there was another gaping crowd at
-the door.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Make way! Make way!” cried Constable Putnam.
-“Make way, good people, for the representative of His
-Most Gracious Majesty.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Another time his pompous air and his words might have
-called forth jibes and ridicule from the thoughtless, but
-now, such was the time and the occasion, and so deep in
-every heart was the fear of witchcraft, that not a soul
-smiled.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>The assemblage opened up in a living lane, and through
-it we passed into the court room. It was filled to overflowing,
-as it had been on another occasion, which I well
-remembered. I looked about me, noting little change
-since I had sat there as a spectator a few months back.
-And yet what a change there had been.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'><span class='pageno' id='Page_151'>151</span>The same judges were on the bench, their Honors, John
-Hathorne and Jonathan Corwin, while Master Stephen
-Sewall was there to act as clerk; to take down with quill
-scratchings, whatever words should fall from my lips.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>On the left of the judges sat the jury. All were men
-of grave mien, some of whom I knew well. They looked
-at me as I was brought in, and some whispered among
-themselves.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Then as I glanced hurriedly over the room I saw many
-of my old comrades. A few turned their heads away as
-if they feared I would cast the blight of the evil eye on
-them. Others looked more kindly at me. One man gazed
-fixedly into my face, and I was at a loss for a moment to
-recall who he was. Then after I had thought a bit I knew
-him for my former lieutenant, Giles Cory. He had grown
-a beard, and looked travel stained, as if he had just finished
-a journey around the world. I longed to ask of
-him what his adventures had been since we last saw each
-other in Pemaquid, and I wondered if he knew that his old
-mother was in gaol as a witch.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>As I looked at him some one whispered in his ear. It
-was evidently the news of his mother, for I saw Cory’s
-face pale, and he hastened from the room. Poor lad, he
-little knew then, nor did I, how soon he was to stand where
-I stood, and to suffer a terrible death that I came nigh to.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I marked on many faces looks of ill ease and fright,
-for no man knew whether he was safe from accusation.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'><span class='pageno' id='Page_152'>152</span>I looked for Lucille, though I knew no reason why she
-should be present. Thinking she might be hidden by some
-pillar, or by those in front, I stood up and gazed about me.
-At the time I was half minded to jump down among those
-who, with drawn swords and ready flint-locks, guarded
-me, and make a fight of it then and there. But my slightest
-move was watched, and the men closed up around me
-so that I saw nothing but death should I make the attempt.
-Then I resumed my seat.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>A moment later I observed, half hidden by one of the
-large upright beams, the devil’s face of my enemy. I
-caught but a passing glance, but even in that I saw him
-smile in triumph at me. His hand sought his sword hilt
-caressingly, and I thought of the day when my weapon
-was at his throat cursing the impulse that had halted me
-from driving it home.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>While I watched Sir George I saw a man come up behind
-him and whisper something. I marked the fellow
-and noted that he was the sailor who had been in the
-Governor’s ante-chamber, the same one who had been the
-first to cry out that we must give up Pemaquid. Now,
-when he came before me in my hour of trial, I began to
-believe him my evil genius. I was sure he was in the
-service of Sir George, and had followed me to the war
-merely to keep track of me for his master.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Sir George turned so that I could see his face as Simon,
-the sailor, spoke to him. And the eyes of my lord grew
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_153'>153</span>small, like the half closed orbs of a tiger about to spring,
-and he started, as if surprised, at the news his henchman
-brought him. Then the two hurried from the court room,
-leaving me to wonder what game was afoot now. Something
-that boded no good, I wagered, and I longed to be
-free that I might have a hand.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>But I must needs look to myself now, for the judges
-were ready to proceed, and the clerk was reading the
-charges against me. These were wordy with legal terms,
-whereby I was accused of witchcraft by Deliverance Hobbs,
-John Bly and Benjamin Proctor. When the reading was
-finished Judge Hathorne inquired of me whether I was
-ready to confess.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“What, your honor?” I asked. “Confess to this most
-foul lie? Not so. Set me before my accusers and I will
-answer them.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Now, had I been wise, I would have admitted that I
-was a witch, when, perchance, I would have gotten off
-with no more than some stripes, and being driven from
-the town. But I stood on my honor, as you shall see with
-what results.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Have your way, then,” replied the judge, shrugging
-his shoulders, as though, like Pilate, he washed his hands
-of all guilt of my blood.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Then came John Bly to the stand. He was a farmer,
-whose son had gone with me to the war.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'><span class='pageno' id='Page_154'>154</span>“Swear the witness,” said the judge, and Clerk Sewall
-did so.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“May it please your worships,” began John, “I did
-buy a pig of Master Edward Bishop some two months ago.
-As I was leading it to sell yesterday I passed Captain
-Amherst in the road nigh to the tavern of Samuel Willis.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Did I aught to you?” I asked from where I sat. “Did
-I more than bid you a good day and ask after your dame?”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Aye, that was all you did,” answered Bly, “but I recalled
-afterward that you did cast a longing look at my
-pig.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“’Twas because I had not yet eaten that day,” I said,
-smiling a bit at the remembrance, “and your <a id='corr154.13'></a><span class='htmlonly'><ins class='correction' title='poker'>porker</ins></span><span class='epubonly'><a href='#c_154.13'><ins class='correction' title='poker'>porker</ins></a></span> was a
-fine fat one. I wished for a bit of bacon from it.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Yea, he looked at the pig,” proceeded the witness, “and
-when I got the animal a little farther on it took strange
-fits. It leaped into the air, squealing most dreadful, and
-knocked its head against the fence. So I was sure it was
-bewitched, for never did pig of mine behave so before.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“What say you to that?” asked Judge Corwin.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Naught,” I made reply, “save that the animal had
-some distemper.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Then Benjamin Proctor took the stand. He eagerly
-related that when I had first come to Salem there had
-been the terrifying scarlet snow, which, though two women
-witches had doubtless caused it, might have had some
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_155'>155</span>of my handiwork in also, as I was the only stranger to
-arrive in town that night.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Next he related how I had such great strength that I
-could do feats no other man could attempt. I had taken
-a gun, Proctor said, with a seven-foot barrel, of so great
-weight that strong men could not with both hands hold
-it out steadily. Yet he had seen me make nothing of taking
-the weapon up and, by grasping it near the lock, hold
-it out as easily as a man would a pistol, discharging it at
-a mark.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Again, he said, he had seen me take a heavy fowling
-piece with a five-foot barrel, and lift it in the following
-marvelous manner. I thrust my forefinger down the
-muzzle and held the piece out at arm’s length. Other
-strong men had only been able to hold this gun out in the
-usual way, Proctor said, yet I supported the entire weight
-on one finger.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Master Proctor told how I had lifted a barrel of
-molasses high above my head, something no other man of
-those parts could do. Lastly he related, with much detail,
-how he and others had seen me cast the stone by the
-brook that May day. I had plucked the rock from its
-bed as though it was but a gun flint, he said, and had
-heaved it from me so that it rolled down the hill, striking
-another bowlder. The stone I cast had broken into a
-thousand pieces, some narrowly missing a maid of the
-Colony, one Lucille de Guilfort. I had been near to causing
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_156'>156</span>her death, Proctor said, which must have come speedily,
-amid the flying rock fragments, had I not been a
-witch, and made the stones to fall harmless all about the
-maid.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>The judges asked me if I had anything to say against
-these charges.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“They are true in the main,” I replied. “More than
-this. If your honors will but send for the guns I will
-repeat the feats that caused so much wonder here before
-your eyes. To show you that though they are not easy to
-accomplish, yet I can do them with the strength God has
-given me. What witchcraft is there in that? As for the
-great stone by the brook, so far from lifting it with ease,
-it took all my powers, and, had it weighed a pound more
-I must have failed. The maid escaped harm, and I thank
-God for it, though it was through no power of mine.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Then came Deliverance Hobbs. Her tale was strange
-enough. She had seen, she testified, a man, with my face,
-but with a monkey’s body, a dog’s feet and a peacock’s
-tail, riding in the air on a fence board, as she gathered
-up her wood one night. She said she knew it could not
-be me, for she had seen me sail with my company in the
-sloops a few days before. A day or so after she had
-seen me in the air a grievous sickness had fallen upon
-her daughter, she continued, and the child had cried out
-that a witch tormented her, thrusting pins and needles
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_157'>157</span>into her flesh. When they asked her to name the spirit,
-the girl had spoken my name.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>This ended the testimony. The judges urged me again
-to confess that I was in league with Satan and the powers
-of darkness. That the devil was my master, and that I
-had promised to serve him for worldly gain. If I admitted
-this with a penitent heart, I might go free, they
-said. For it was a well established fact, according to
-Judge Hathorne, that, if a witch confessed, the evil
-spirits no longer tormented such a one, nor could he work
-harm to others.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>But I refused to charge myself with such a crime, even
-to save my life. I told them all so, and said there were
-no witches, except those of a disordered mind.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>It was dark now. Fantastic shadows filled the room,
-and a sound, like a great sigh, went up from the lips of
-the people. Then, at the orders of the judge, came
-tip-staves, with lighted candles, which only served to
-dispel the gloom in a few places, making the remainder
-more dark.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>The jury filed out, and, though it seemed a year, they
-were back again, speedily.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Guilty,” said the foreman. I could hear those of
-the assemblage catch their breaths as one man.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Then the judges put on their black caps, while Justice
-Hathorne said:</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“And the sentence of this court is that you be taken
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_158'>158</span>hence, and hanged by the neck until you are dead, and
-may God have mercy on your soul.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I had expected it, yet it gave me a cold chill to hear
-the solemn words.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>They led me away, through the surging crowd, out
-of the dim lighted court room, back to the gaol I had left
-not long ago. The other prisoners crowded about me,
-eager to learn the outcome of the trial, and to ascertain
-what chance they stood. I was too heart-sick to talk
-much, and merely told them that I had been convicted,
-and was sentenced to die.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Then I cast myself into a corner, to wait, for--I scarce
-knew what. But I reflected that he who gives up hope
-has little left, and, that though I had submitted quietly,
-so far, that was no reason why I should do so further.
-If they were minded to kill me, I thought, they could
-doubtless accomplish their purpose, but I resolved that I
-would make some suffer before I died. I would not go
-empty handed across to the other shore.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I had strength, beyond the power of most men, and I
-would use it when the time came. If I only had some
-one beside myself to fight for. If I only had the right
-to battle for Lucille, then I felt that I could do wonders.
-But my heart was not in it.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I determined, if no better chance offered, that I would
-go even to the scaffold, quietly. Then, when I stood
-bound, waiting for the drop to fall, I doubted not I could
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_159'>159</span>burst my bonds, seize a sword from a guard, and leap
-among the people. Then I could at least die fighting.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>For I resolved I would not be swung off, like a pirate
-at the yardarm, if I was able to prevent it.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Several days passed. I partook heartily of the coarse
-food provided, for I knew I would need all of my strength
-to carry out my design. I endeavored to learn the date
-of my execution, but could not. All my questioning of
-the guards was turned aside.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>It was rumored that the regular gallows was deemed
-too frail for a man of my strength, so they had gone to the
-work of making another machine. What kind it was I
-learned later. Existence in the gaol had come to be such
-a hell to me now, that I prayed the day of death might
-arrive speedily.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>One morning, just a week after my arrest, I awoke with
-a start. Some one in the prison was singing, I could not
-catch all of the words, but the song was an old psalm
-tune, of the Lord, and of Isaac and of Jacob. I sat up
-on the narrow bench. Most of those poor wretches about
-me were still sleeping; breathing heavily. There was
-just the faintest gleam of daylight, as I could see through
-the high barred window. As I sat there a moment the
-sun rose, and the beams turned the iron bars above my
-head, into gleaming yellow gold.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>There was the tramp of feet outside. The day of my
-death had dawned.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'><span class='pageno' id='Page_160'>160</span>I stretched my arms upward, and I could feel the muscles
-firm and hard. I might have torn the iron bars
-loose, but I waited.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Let them come,” I said softly.</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_161'>161</span>
- <h2 class='c006'>CHAPTER XV. <br /> <span class='small'>PEINE FORTE ET DURE.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c007'>The heavy oaken door swung on its rusty iron hinges
-with many a squeak. I stood up, half dazzled by the
-sudden inrush of light. This time it was the Sheriff
-and his constables to greet me, together with a half score
-of guards to block the way. Ere I could make a move,
-had I desired to, I was overwhelmed by the men who
-crowded about me, while two of them quickly passed a
-rope around my chest, binding my arms fast to my sides.
-As I stood thus, the Sheriff drew from his jacket a document
-with its dangling seal. Was I never to have an end
-of parchment, I thought.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Whereas, you, Captain Edward Amherst”--he began.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Enough,” I interrupted. “It suffices that I must die.
-Let it be, if it must, I pray, without having to listen to
-more words. I’m not afraid, though it is a mean end for
-one who has served his King and his country ever faithfully.
-If I could but stand before you--aye, before you
-all--with my good sword in hand, I would have a different
-answer for you. Nor would I deem the odds too
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_162'>162</span>great. Such a death, borne down by weight of numbers,
-might be counted an honor by a soldier. But a dangling
-rope, in the hands of country bumpkins----”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Ha, a rope,” repeated the Sheriff. “You have not
-heard, then?”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“What!” I cried. “Has the Judge allowed me to be
-shot?”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Nay; not that, Master Captain,” answered the Sheriff.
-“You will see in good time, though. Meanwhile the law
-must take its course, and I am constrained, by it, to read
-this death warrant.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Have I not had enough of warrants of late?” I asked,
-but he paid no heed to me, and proceeded to read the dull
-legal terms.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Meanwhile many thoughts filled my mind. If I was
-not to be hanged, perhaps the awful torture of being
-burned at the stake awaited me. If so, I must make new
-plans, and act quickly.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>All the while the Sheriff was reading from the parchment.
-He stumbled over the law terms, and the Latin
-vexed him sorely. Then he came to the decree that I
-must die <span lang="la" xml:lang="la">“peine forte et dure,”</span> and, as I had small stock
-of Latin, I wondered what I was to meet with.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>At length there was an end to the reading. The guards
-advanced. I saw, among them, several who had served
-under me, yet never a one gave me a glance that was not
-tempered with fear or distrust. Some of them began to
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_163'>163</span>pull the rope tight about my arms, and this act quickened
-me to take some steps for escape.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>So I pretended that the cords cut into my flesh, and
-my sudden start, as if in pain, caused them to cease their
-efforts, leaving me a little room to move my muscles,
-which was what I wanted. When I had the chance I
-strained at the ropes, and I felt them stretch a trifle. I
-knew then, that the matter of bursting my bonds was a
-thing somewhat within my power.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>But that was the smallest part of the problem. I was
-a long way from freedom yet.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>On that morning it seemed as if the sun had never shone
-so brightly, nor had the sky been so blue, nor the birds
-so sweetly tuneful. I do not know why I noticed such
-things, for it was not usual to me. Perhaps the shadow of
-death made the brightness of life seem greater.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>They started off at a brisk pace, with me in the centre
-of the throng, and one man holding the ropes that passed
-about my arms. As we reached the foot of Witch Hill
-I looked up the slope, expecting to see the grim gallows
-crowning the summit. Then I recalled the Sheriff’s words
-that none was to be provided. A murmur swelled upward
-from the crowd, and the people pushed this way and
-that, trying to get a view of me, as I have seen country
-boys do at a London fair.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>We came, at last, to the place set for the execution.
-The crowd parted, and moved back, at the orders of the
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_164'>164</span>Sheriff, forming a living circle. Then, for the first time,
-I saw the machine of death.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>For a time I could not fathom its nature. It was of
-wood, the uprights and cross pieces being of heavy oaken
-beams. There were four posts, or uprights, and, on these
-appeared to slide, like the wooden covering on the hay
-ricks in the fields, a flat bed of hewn boards, as large, perhaps,
-as the top of the table at the inn. Out of this bed
-extended a long pole, threaded round and round with a
-screw thread. This screw passed through one of the cross
-pieces above. A long handle, extending either way
-through the spiral post, out beyond the machine, completed
-the instrument.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Like a flash in the pan, the truth came upon me.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I was to be crushed to death!</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Tied up like a bundle of faggots, and placed on the bed-plate,
-the boards above me, urged down by the screw
-turned by the long handle, would force out my life, as is
-the breath from a newly fledged bird, in the hand of a
-school boy. No wonder the Sheriff held his peace, when
-I asked if I was not <a id='corr164.21'></a><span class='htmlonly'><ins class='correction' title='o'>to</ins></span><span class='epubonly'><a href='#c_164.21'><ins class='correction' title='o'>to</ins></a></span> hang. A more horrible death
-could scarce be devised, for the torture of the Indians
-hardly passed it. Yet an Englishman planned it; an
-Englishman was to suffer by it. Well had Sir George said
-I would pay for the blow I gave him.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Oh! But I longed for a few minutes, with a sword in
-my hand, to spend with my lord.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'><span class='pageno' id='Page_165'>165</span>It was time for the next move, now that I, the chief
-personage in what was about to happen, had arrived.
-The tumult, of which there had been much, had grown
-less. Partly because the Sheriff had moved most of the
-crowd back, and partly because all desired to see and hear
-what would come next.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>My mind had become dazed. Where now was my plan
-of escape? Before I knew what was going on, two stout
-men advanced, and, by walking in a circle, they turned
-the cross bar, which worked the screw, and so raised the
-movable bed-plate. This made a space, so that my body
-could be put in the press. The great affair creaked and
-groaned, as if in mortal agony, and I could not help shuddering,
-as I thought of what little chance I would have beneath
-the oak beams.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Then I started. It was but a faint hope that came to
-me, yet it was a chance to escape death. It was a desperate
-move, but then I was in dire straits.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>At a signal from the Sheriff, half a dozen men sprang
-forward and seized me. They lifted me clear from the
-ground, and carried me like a child to the machine. Then
-they stretched out my legs, and thrust them beneath the
-bed-plate. Under went my body next, verily, as if I had
-been but a bag of apples in the cider press.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I was pushed along over the rough planks, and then
-something happened. The Sheriff, to better see that all
-was carried out according to his wishes, had come close
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_166'>166</span>to me. He even placed his hand on my shoulder, to help
-thrust me in.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>As he did so my boot top caught his sword hilt, half
-drawing the steel from the scabbard, as my body went
-forward. The keen edge of the weapon was uppermost,
-and, as I was pulled and hauled to the centre of the bed,
-the rope which bound my arms was drawn over the
-sword’s sharp blade. The steel bit deep into the hemp,
-but not all the way through by a good way. However, as
-I felt the rope being cut, I knew that, by using only my
-ordinary strength, I could burst my bonds. I swelled my
-muscles only a little, and with that I felt the cords give
-a trifle.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>All was now in readiness. I might, then, have burst
-the rope, slipped from the press, and tried to cut a way
-thorough the crowd. But I saw there were many men
-armed, and they looked as if anxious to see me die, so I
-resolved to try what I could do by another means.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>The Sheriff stepped back, all unaware of the good office
-his sword had done for me. At a sign from him, two
-men, stronger than those who had been at the cross-bar,
-emerged from the crowd, and took their places to twist
-down on the big screw. They stripped off their upper
-garments, and I saw the play of their muscles beneath the
-skin, like little waves on a stream.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>My eyes could not take in all of the scene, of which I
-was the centre, but I caught a glimpse of Sir George moving
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_167'>167</span>about. Once he looked full at me, twirling his moustache
-with one hand, while the other rested on his sword
-hilt. Seeing me watching him, he came a little nearer
-and called out softly in French:</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“What think you now, Monsieur Captain? Wilt wed
-Lucille?” And his voice was mocking.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Come, my lord,” I answered, banteringly, “accept her
-love from me. I know you have none for yourself.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>His face turned black, and there came a gleam into his
-eyes.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Give her my truest love, I pray you; when you find
-her,” I added, as a sort of afterthought.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Find her? What mean you?” he asked eagerly.
-“Know you whither she----?”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Then he stopped, biting his lips in confusion, for he
-feared he had betrayed himself. My heart gave a bound
-at that, for, though I knew naught of Lucille, my words
-having been spoken by chance, yet it seemed she had gone
-away.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>If she had, it meant that she cared little for her wifely
-duties, and that Sir George had not succeeded in winning
-back her affection, if, indeed, he had ever had it.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>But even that was like to avail me little now, unless I
-could escape.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>A great stillness came over the crowd. Scarce a sound
-was heard, and even the notes of the birds seemed hushed.
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_168'>168</span>I waited, breathless, almost. Then, from out of the centre
-of silence, came a voice.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Turn!” cried the Sheriff.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Turn!” echoed Sir George.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Then the heavy planks above me, forced down by the
-movement of the screw, began descending. Slowly, as do
-bearers at the bier of death, the men walked around and
-around, pushing, with their breasts, against the cross-bar.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Nearer and nearer came the weight that was soon to
-crush me. I must act with speed now. I would give them
-time to make one more turn, I thought. There. It was
-made.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Now the time had come!</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I commended my soul to God, as did Samson in the
-days of old, when he pulled the great pillars of the temple
-from their base. I strained at my rope bonds. The half
-cut cords held for a moment, and they bit into my flesh
-when I pulled on them, weak as I had deemed them.
-Again I put my strength into my muscles, until the blood
-seemed like to spurt from my finger tips.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Suddenly the bonds gave, bursting with a sound like a
-pistol with a little load in it, and my arms were free.
-There was a great shout from the multitude.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“The strength of Goliath is in him!” cried an old man
-in the front rank. “Satan is beside him, witch that he is,
-giving him the great power.”</p>
-
-<div class='figcenter id001'>
-<img src='images/p169.jpg' alt='' class='ig001' />
-<div class='ic002'>
-<p>“I PRESSED UPWARDS WITH MY ARMS AGAINST THE BOARDS.“</p>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c008'>The men at the ends of the bar had not stopped. The
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_169'>169</span>planks were coming nearer to my chest. I raised my hands
-and grasped the edges of the descending platform of wood
-above me. I drew up my knees, so that they, also, touched
-the planks.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I was now in the position of one lying on his back,
-holding up a weight that rested on his uplifted hands
-and bended knees. The men turning, noting my movements,
-had paused a moment, but, at a word from the Sheriff, they
-pushed the harder.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Down came the planks, farther, but more slowly. Then
-I did that which I count as the greatest feat of strength
-I ever did.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I pressed upward with my arms, and as the wood above
-me still came down, I could feel it nip my knees. The
-bones in my legs were of solid stuff, and I knew they could
-stand much pressure. The course of the descending platform
-was now stayed, and the men at the heavy press
-tugged and pushed at the cross-bar, without avail, for
-nearly a minute.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Push harder!” cried Sir George, stepping out from the
-crowd. “Are you babes, to let him prevail against you?
-Have you no strength?”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Thus urged, the sturdy men braced their feet in the
-earth, and bore hard against the bar. I summoned what
-I thought must be all my energy, and pressed upward with
-my arms against the boards. I could hear a small cracking
-sound, as when a tree in the forest feels the axes that have
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_170'>170</span>eaten into its heart, and it begins to sway earthward. The
-men at the bar were joined by others, and they pushed
-with all their might, but could not stir the screw.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I shut my eyes, breathed the name of Lucille--aye,
-though I had no right--and then, with an effort that
-brought beads of water to my brow, I pushed upward--upward--upward.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Never before nor since had I known such power as I
-possessed then. The veins on my arms were like to burst,
-and stood out under the skin as do welts on a lashed horse.
-My muscles seemed as if they would tear from their fastenings.
-My hands had no feeling; my knees were numb.
-Round went my head dizzily, and it was as if the world was
-dropping away from beneath me. All about was blackness,
-and I could not see the weight that was crushing me.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I heard the shouts of the Sheriff and Sir George, urging
-the men at the bar to turn, and the men strove mightily.
-The cross piece trembled with their efforts.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I had scarce another bit of strength left, but still I would
-not let them get the mastery, and I kept pushing upward.
-The darkness left me, in its place a great light seeming
-to shine.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Lord of Hosts,” I prayed, “let me be the victor.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I felt the solid planks give. They cracked and splintered,
-a little at first, as when a wedge first cleaves an entrance.
-I could not breathe. But, with fiercely beating
-heart, I heard the sound of rending wood, and it mingled
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_171'>171</span>in my ears with the roar of the blood surging through my
-head. My knees seemed crushed. My arms like two stone
-pillars.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Then, while all the crowd looked on in wonder, I did
-that, which, though I boast not of, no other man in the
-Colony could have done and lived after.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I broke the ponderous planks across the middle, as a boy
-might splinter a shingle across his knee.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Right through they cracked, where the big wooden screw
-was set in, and so heavy was the strain I had put upon
-them, the pieces flew high in the air.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>A great peace came over me, and I sank back on the
-rough wooden bed. I knew naught, save that I heard
-a loud shout go up, and many murmurs were heard on all
-sides.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Suddenly it was dark again, and my ears were filled with
-the noise of the sea dashing on the rocks. But above that
-I heard the people cry:</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“He has broken the press with his witch strength! Saw
-ever man the like?”</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_172'>172</span>
- <h2 class='c006'>CHAPTER XVI. <br /> <span class='small'>HOW WE BROKE GAOL.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c007'>When I had come to myself I was back again in gaol
-with those I had left, when I went forth, as they thought
-to death. Some news of how I had broken the press came
-in with me, and there was much wonder.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>As for myself I was, for a while, as helpless as a new
-born babe, because my strength had all gone from me. It
-was days before I recovered, and never since have I been
-able to lift as heavy weights as before that supreme test.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I began to think a little of the plight I was in now. I
-had supposed, when they saw that I was able to break the
-machine with which they hoped to torture me to death, they
-would release me. But I had reckoned little with whom
-I had to deal. Sir George was not yet satisfied. Now I
-might expect to again go up to death, this time with little
-chance to escape.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I talked with some of the prisoners on the matter, and
-they said there were points of law which might be used in
-my behalf. The death sentence, which was not completed,
-could no longer hold good, it was said, so that, shortly, I
-would go forth a free man. For I had gone through the
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_173'>173</span>manner of death prescribed, and had lived. Now it was
-written, so I was told, that a man might not be put in
-jeopardy of his life twice by the law.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I was bitter in heart, those days, I called myself many
-times a fool, when I thought how I might have killed Sir
-George, when I had the chance, and, by this time, be far
-away with Lucille. If I had known that I could trust her.
-But the feeling that she would cast me aside, as she seemed
-to have done in the case of her husband, halted me. I was
-torn between many impulses.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>The witch trials went on, for the accusations multiplied.
-At length Salem gaol held no less than four-score men and
-women, who had either been found guilty of witchcraft or
-who waited to be tried on the foul charges. Besides those
-in prison, there were double that number under suspicion.
-Not only in Salem, but in Andover, Gloucester, Ipswich
-and the neighboring towns. The infection had spread until
-the whole country was like a vast pesthouse, and the
-land was red with the blood of the slain.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Nineteen had been hanged in Salem, and two were
-burned at the stake. One man, swung from the gallows,
-was an aged clergyman. One day my former lieutenant,
-Giles Cory, was arrested as a witch, and cast into gaol
-with me. Only a few days before his aged mother had
-been hanged, and he was in sore distress. We two condoled
-with each other, until one morning, when I missed
-him.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'><span class='pageno' id='Page_174'>174</span>“Where is Cory?” I asked the guard.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Dead,” was the brief reply.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I learned that he had been crushed to death in the
-same machine that I had broken. The witch-finders had
-repaired it, making it very stout, for rumors had got
-about of Cory’s strength. Remembering my bursting of
-the ropes they bound the hapless man so that it would
-have taken a score of men, as strong as I, to have broken
-the bonds. In that manner my lieutenant met his death.
-Not that he did not struggle, beneath the cruel press.
-A guard, who watched him die, said Cory tore loose one
-muscle from his arm, as the planks came down.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Matters had come to such a pass now, that none of us
-was safe from death. So far from abating the witch fever
-had laid hold of the townsfolk more violently, so that
-they even meditated setting fire to the gaol, to burn us
-like rats in a <a id='corr174.17'></a><span class='htmlonly'><ins class='correction' title='tray'>trap</ins></span><span class='epubonly'><a href='#c_174.17'><ins class='correction' title='tray'>trap</ins></a></span>. When this news, told with brutal
-pleasure by the guards, came to us, myself and some of
-the bolder ones, resolved to sit tamely by no longer. We
-would break gaol.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>The prison we were in was not unlike a blockhouse save
-that the loops, or windows, were high up, out of reach
-of one standing on the floor. There was but one entrance,
-and that was closed by a heavy door, hung on
-massive iron hinges and studded with big nails. We
-knew that only an axe could open a way through that.
-Outside of this door was an apartment, two stories in
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_175'>175</span>height, where the jailer stayed. The guard was also quartered
-there.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>The gaol room was divided into two parts by a thin
-partition, the men being on one side, and the women on
-the other, with a door of communication between. There
-were always several men on guard in the jailer’s room,
-and they were fully armed.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>When we had talked over the situation we could but
-admit it was no small matter to escape. One plan after
-another we considered and, in turn, rejected, for, though
-we hungered for liberty, we did not wish to fail in the
-attempt and die by the musket or the sword.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>We decided that force, without some preparation beforehand,
-was not to be thought of, and it was voted strategy
-must serve our ends. So we sharpened what little wits
-we had left, and, at length, seemed to have hit on a plan
-which had its advantages.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>It was talked over, laid aside, and, as none better presented,
-we all agreed to it. That is, all but the women.
-We did not take them into our counsels, though we had in
-mind to release them with ourselves.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>The fifth night, after the full of the moon, was fixed
-on for the breaking of gaol. Anxious were the days and
-nights that intervened.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>It began to rain on the evening appointed, shortly after
-the last meal had been served. It was dismal within and
-not less gloomy without, but we welcomed that, for it
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_176'>176</span>would mean that few persons would be prowling about.
-There would also be complete darkness, and we needed
-that.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Now, when we had been given our suppers, I put by
-some of my bread and a cup of water. When night had
-fallen I mixed this into paste, and Elias Jenkins smeared
-it over my face, in accordance with our plan. I looked
-as though I had on a death’s mask.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>When this was done and it was near to midnight, at
-which hour the guard was to change, I went into a corner
-of the room, farthest removed from the door and huddled
-up like a man in great distress of body. Only I left
-my face visible, so that the light from the single candle
-in the apartment fell upon my dough-covered countenance.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>As the guard passed the door, one of the prisoners gave
-a knock.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“What now?” inquired the guard, thrusting his face
-up against an opening in the door, covered by iron bars.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“It is Captain Amherst,” spoke up John Lowden, feigning
-to be in great fright. “He is as pale as death, and
-mutters strangely. We fear he is like to expire in our
-midst.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>The trick worked. The guard peered over toward where
-I was lying, while the candle above me flickered on the
-paste on my face. Despite the need of maintaining the
-character I had assumed, I felt the dough cracking in a
-dozen places, as I tried hard not to laugh. It was solemn
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_177'>177</span>enough, but, somehow, I wanted to burst out in a roar, as
-I thought of how I must look.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>My appearance evidently disarmed the suspicion of the
-guard, for, with an exclamation of surprise, he threw
-open the door, and advanced a little way into the room,
-holding his tin-pierced lantern high above his head.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Yet he did not lose all caution, being alone. He kept
-hold of the edge of the door, ready to close it at a moment’s
-notice. But the few steps he came in served the
-purpose. Lowden, who had stepped to one side, silently
-and suddenly sprang for the guard, and grasped him by
-the throat. The cry the wretch would have given utterance
-to, was choked in his teeth, and was only a gurgle.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>The next instant I was up, and at his side. He seemed
-to lose his courage, when my pale face was near to his.
-Lowden gave place to me, and I crooked my fingers about
-the guard’s neck. He struggled so I was afraid he would
-get loose and make a noise that would have brought them
-all about us. So I was forced to grip the man rather
-tighter than I meant.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>He did not cease his efforts to free himself, and, being
-fearful that our plan would miscarry by reason of his
-continued struggle, I put forth a little too much muscle.
-I bent his head back, with great force,--there was a sudden
-ceasing of the guard’s resistance. I heard the bones
-and sinews snap. Then I knew I had broken his neck.
-He fell in a limp mass at my feet. I was somewhat sorry,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_178'>178</span>though he would have served me the same, and it was a
-fair war. However, there was no time for regret.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Quick, now!” I shouted. Lowden had swung the door
-open, and the prisoners, men and women, crowded into
-the outer room.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>The noise of the rush had alarmed the relief squad of
-guards on the second floor, and they ran down. Though
-most of them were stupid with sleep, some had their flint-locks,
-and these, without a moment’s hesitation, fired into
-our midst. Three fell dead, one a woman, and several
-were sorely hurt.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>The next instant the guards were down under our feet
-as we rushed onward. Some of the prisoners, who never
-hoped to see the outside of the gaol again, save on their
-way to the scaffold, were fairly mad with joy, and, in their
-hatred of the guards, they stamped on their upturned
-faces as they ran over them. Thus, as I learned afterward,
-several of those who had watched over us died.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>There was yet the outer door between us and liberty.
-Several of those in the van tried to burst it open. All
-the while the guards were shouting like mad behind us,
-while the prisoners, who had lost their heads, cried and
-screamed; the shrill voices of the women voicing high
-above the others. Again and again half a dozen men
-threw themselves against the door, but, in their excitement,
-they wasted their energies.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>The portal resisted, though it shook under the strain.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'><span class='pageno' id='Page_179'>179</span>“Ho, Captain!” several called. “Here is where your
-strength is like to serve us.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I pushed my way through the crowd, and tried my
-shoulder against the door. It was of considerable thickness,
-though not as heavy as the other. Once, twice and
-thrice, I hurled my body against the barrier. It held.
-Once more I made the attempt, and, this time, when I
-thought I would have brought down the very wall, I
-cracked the wood down the middle, and the door was there
-no more, though I bruised my shoulder greatly by the
-effort.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Others of the guard had secured their weapons by this
-time, and they fired once more into the helpless crowd.
-There were shrieks of mortal hurts from those in the rear,
-and curses from those in front.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“The women first,” I cried, blocking the splintered
-opening through the door, with my body. “Not a man
-passes until all the women are by.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>At that the men opened up a living lane, and the women,
-save three who were killed, ran screaming out.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Now, men!” I cried, and I stood aside, until the last
-one was out. Four guards, each swinging his musket as
-a club, came at me. I caught up a sword from the jailer’s
-table, and disabled the nearest guard. Then I leaped
-out through the splintered portal, and was in the midst
-of the crowd of those who, only a few minutes before, had
-little hope of life.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'><span class='pageno' id='Page_180'>180</span>On they fled, free, leaving behind, like a bad dream, the
-gaol room, with its witch memories. Men and women
-cried aloud in their joy. Once more they could look up
-and know that the sky was above them, even though from
-it came drops of rain, pitiless, yet seeming like tears of a
-great rejoicing. They held out their hands, and even
-opened their mouths, that the cool rain might refresh them.
-I looked about me, long enough to see that all who could
-had escaped, and then I turned to my own affairs.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I buckled the belt of the sword I had caught up about
-me. Something familiar about the hilt of the weapon
-drew my attention. Then, as I examined it as well as I
-could in the darkness, I found, with pleasure, that it was
-my own good steel, that had been taken from me. Now
-I was ready to meet the whole world, but, first of all, I
-wanted to stand before one man, and that one was Sir
-George Keith.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I washed the paste of bread from my face. I gave a
-look toward the gaol, which was now some distance behind.
-From the direction came a confused murmur of sounds. I
-was free; but whither should I go?</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I was like a ship without a compass. Salem was no
-longer a safe place for me. Lucille, whom I had hoped
-to wed, was the wife of another. My arrest as a witch
-was an end to any military preferment in the Colony. My
-life seemed to have come to an end, now.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I had hastened on, thus musing, until I found myself
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_181'>181</span>near to the inn of Master Willis. The rain came down
-softly, and the only creature stirring in the neighborhood
-seemed to be me. None of the prisoners had come that
-way.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Hark! What was that?</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>The echo of my footsteps died away. Then, from the
-stable, back of the inn, came the whinny of a horse.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Kit!” I exclaimed. I had almost forgotten my faithful
-little mare, which Willis had kept for me ever since I
-first came to Salem. There was one true friend at least.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Myself, my sword, my horse. What more could a soldier
-wish? Love? I had that too, it seemed, though it
-was not all mine. Strange, when I was loving Lucille, I
-never thought another might love her too. I never
-thought she might have loved another. She seemed all
-mine. ’Twas a hard nut to crack. If only there had been
-no marriage between Lucille and Sir George. But
-straightway I had wished that I wished it away; for what
-it meant to her.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Kit whinnied again. It was like a message to me. I
-must leave Salem, to go I knew nor cared not where.
-First of all to get Kit out. I walked around to the stable
-door and, with a stone, easily broke the lock. Kit knew
-me as soon as I stepped inside. I stroked her glossy neck,
-patted her moist nose, and, running my hands down her
-legs, knew that she was in good shape, and fit for a hard,
-fast ride.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'><span class='pageno' id='Page_182'>182</span>I found the saddle and bridle, put them on, and led her
-out into the road. Then I leaped upon her back, shook
-the reins, and we were off.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Good bye, Lucille,” I whispered, to the rain and darkness.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>And then, though I had said good bye to love, I felt a
-lighter heart than I had known for many a long day.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Kit’s muscles moved like steel bands, as she went galloping
-along the road to Boston, for thither had I guided her
-unconsciously. The sweet smell of the newly watered
-earth came up to my nostrils, and I breathed long and deep
-of the fresh night air. Kit’s hoofs beat a soft slushing
-tattoo on the muddy road.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>The rain fell gently.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Good bye, Lucille,” I whispered. A raindrop fell upon
-my lips, and it seemed as if she had kissed me in the night.</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_183'>183</span>
- <h2 class='c006'>CHAPTER XVII. <br /> <span class='small'>THE NEWS NANETTE BROUGHT ME.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c007'>Through the night I rode, until the darkness began
-to pale, and the dawn was heralded. Now and then, when
-the labored breathing of Kit told me the pace was too
-heavy for her, I pulled up a bit. We passed by silent cottages
-scattered over the country, here one alone, there
-several near together.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I galloped until morning was fairly upon the land.
-Then I drew rein at a white farmhouse, where I dismounted
-to get a bite to eat, and feed Kit. The farmer
-looked at my mud-soiled clothes, at the mare’s rough coat,
-and said:</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“You’ve ridden far and hard, the night, neighbor.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Aye,” I answered, “there was some need of it.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Perchance some one pursued you?” he ventured.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“No one but myself,” I said.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>With that he questioned no more, though he looked
-curiously at me, but led the way into the house, where his
-wife was preparing breakfast. I managed to make a
-hearty meal, and then I saw that Kit had her grain, after
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_184'>184</span>which I rubbed her down. When I would have paid for
-the fodder and my victuals the farmer would have none
-of my money, but bade me go on in good luck, for which
-I thanked him.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I was soon on the road again. It was better going now,
-though the roads were still heavy from the rain. Before
-another hour had passed I found myself in Boston town.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>People turned to stare at me, as I clattered through the
-streets, wondering, I suppose, why I was abroad in such
-a rig so early. I headed for a modest tavern I knew of.
-There, I thought, I would make some plan for my future
-conduct. For I had set my mind upon leaving New
-England. I had been through enough there, for one time.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I soon found the place I sought, and went in. The
-landlord knew me, and gave me a little room by myself,
-the while he brought some good ale. I drank a bit, feeling
-much refreshed, and then turned my mind to what I had
-better do. I had heard of the Virginia colony, and that
-it was a place where there was much of life and entertainment.
-There I might follow my soldier trade with
-honor, fearing no witch trial, nor the warrant held by Sir
-George.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>In Virginia I could forget, and leave behind, many bitter
-memories--and many sweet ones.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>There I could forget Lucille.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Forget her?</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>No!</p>
-
-<p class='c008'><span class='pageno' id='Page_185'>185</span>Not forget her. I never could do that. I might find
-other thoughts to take her place--for a time.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Bah! What a fool I was. A fool twice. A fool for
-loving her, a fool for giving her up so easily--giving up
-another man’s wife, forsooth, when I knew that she loved
-me at that. Of a truth, if Dicky Hall ever heard of this
-he would laugh me to scorn.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Well, let them laugh. The honor of the Danes could
-stand a little merriment, and it was the honor of the
-Danes I was upholding, though I lost my love for the
-honor.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Well, here’s to the death of love, and the honor of my
-name,” I said, softly, draining my last glass.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Now for Virginia!”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>As I set the mug down the sound of voices in the main
-room came to my ears. One was that of the landlord, the
-other a woman’s, and it was strangely familiar. She spoke
-part in French, with as much English as she could.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Now, now,” said the inn keeper, “don’t ye come botherin’
-again, mistress. I know nothin’ of Lucy nor Nancy
-either, though for that matter every sailor who lands here
-has that name on his lips, one way or another.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Not Lucy, m’sieur, not Lucy,” spoke the woman’s
-voice. “’Tis Lucille I been look for.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I started at the name.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Nor Lucille, either,” said the tavern keeper, testily.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'><span class='pageno' id='Page_186'>186</span>“But,” persisted the woman, “I have been tell zat she
-taked a bateau near zis tavern, m’sieur.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Well, mayhap she did, lass; lots of folk do, but I have
-not seen her,” and the landlord started away.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“You have no seen her, m’sieur? She was so much
-beautiful, my mistress, Lucille. Now she been lost to
-me,” and there came a trace of tears into the voice.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Where had I heard it before? The name--but then
-Lucille was a common enough name. Yet my heart beat
-a little more quickly. I went to where I could look in the
-room to see the woman. The landlord was on his way
-out, and the face of his visitor was toward me.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>It was Nanette, Lucille’s servant!</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>She saw me, and her face lighted up.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Oh, m’sieur Captain!” she exclaimed, fairly running
-toward me, and lapsing into rapid French. “You have
-found her then? Oh, I thought she was lost.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Who?” I asked, coldly.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Why, Lucille. Mistress de Guilfort; your--your--surely,
-Captain, you----”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“You mean Mistress Keith, the wife of Sir George
-Keith,” I interrupted, and was about to go away.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>At the name of Sir George, Nanette gave a start.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Is he here?” she cried, excitedly.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Aye. Here or somewhere with his wife, I make no
-doubt,” I said.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“His wife, m’sieur?”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'><span class='pageno' id='Page_187'>187</span>“Aye. His wife.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Never!”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“What?” I cried.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Never!” repeated Nanette.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Oh, the <a id='corr187.5'></a><span class='htmlonly'><ins class='correction' title='villian'>villain</ins></span><span class='epubonly'><a href='#c_187.5'><ins class='correction' title='villian'>villain</ins></a></span>,” she went on. “Has he told you that
-lie?”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Then it is not true?” I asked, trembling lest the
-answer would shatter newly raised hopes.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“No more than that I am his wife, Captain!” came the
-quick reply, and I could have hugged Nanette.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Here was a sudden and joyful change in my plans.
-There need be no Virginia now. Yet there was much
-to learn, and, it seemed, also, to find Lucille.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>The tavern keeper was staring at us curiously, so I
-motioned Nanette to come into the room I had, and,
-closing the door, I bade her tell me all she knew. First
-I repeated, briefly, how I had met Sir George; though
-I said nothing of the Royal warrant.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Then Nanette related how she had long been in the
-service of the de Guilfort family. Some years before,
-while in Paris, Sir George Keith had met Lucille, fallen
-in love with her, and they were engaged to wed. Then
-came the disclosure of how lightly Sir George held the
-honor of his promised wife. He had an affair with a
-notorious woman, and it was the talk of the court, in the
-circle of which the de Guilforts moved. Stung and
-ashamed at the effront, Lucille had quarreled with my lord,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_188'>188</span>and, with bitter words, the troth was broken. Then, smarting
-under the tongue of gossip, M. de Guilfort, with his
-daughter and niece, had set sail for the new land, and
-Nanette <a id='corr188.4'></a><span class='htmlonly'><ins class='correction' title='acompanied'>accompanied</ins></span><span class='epubonly'><a href='#c_188.4'><ins class='correction' title='acompanied'>accompanied</ins></a></span> them.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Then Lucille is not his wife?” I asked again, hardly
-able to believe the good news.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Never! Never! Never!” cried Nanette, with such
-earnestness that she could scarce cease her “nevers.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“But does she not love him?” I inquired, tortured by a
-new doubt.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Voila!” burst out Nanette, with a shrug of her shoulders.
-“You must know if she loves you, Captain, and that
-should be an answer enough for any man.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“It is,” I said, and I was as happy as I had been sad.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“But where is Mistress de Guilfort, now?” asked Nanette.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Where?” I exclaimed. “How should I know? I have
-not seen her since the day I sailed against St. Johns.
-You may have heard how, on the night of my return from
-Pemaquid, I was taken for a witch. I met Sir George that
-day, and learned from him that my promised wife was
-his wedded one.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Which was a lie,” broke in Nanette.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Aye, so it seems.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Then you have not seen her in Boston?” went on Nanette.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“In Boston? Here? Why, how should I, having only
-just arrived? But what would bring her here?”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'><span class='pageno' id='Page_189'>189</span>“Listen,” began the woman, speaking rapidly. “She
-heard of your arrival in Salem, and thought you would
-have come to her at once.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“So I would, but for what Sir George told me,” I
-answered.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“She sat long that night, expecting you,” said Nanette.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I choked back an exclamation. Lucille had been waiting
-for me when I looked in on her through the window,
-and whispered a good bye.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“The next morning,” Nanette continued, “word came
-of your arrest. My mistress, knowing full well, from a
-bitter experience, the temper of the witch-crazed people
-and that of the courts, wasted no time. She felt, she said,
-that reason would not prevail, and that you would be condemned,
-and so she resolved to go to Boston, and try to
-secure a pardon for you, from His Excellency, Governor
-Phips. This would be of more service than all the proofs
-of law, in freeing you from the sentence. She found a
-farmer who was going from Salem to Boston that day.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“So precious was the time,” proceeded Nanette, “that
-my mistress would not even delay to go to the gaol and
-see you. She sent a letter, however.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Where is it?” I asked, eagerly.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“I left it with the keeper for you.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“And he never gave it to me. But go on. There is
-much mystery. Go on. Talk faster, Nanette.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Patience, m’sieur. Well, Mistress de Guilfort, in great
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_190'>190</span>distress of mind for you, started for Boston. She said
-she would return the next day.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Did she?”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Nay. That afternoon you were tried, and the sentence
-of death passed. I was in sore heart at home, watching
-for the return of my mistress. Toward night a messenger
-on horseback rode to the door and inquired for her.
-Before I thought I told him she had gone to Boston. As
-he turned away I caught a glimpse of the messenger’s face.
-It was Sir George Keith. I knew him at once, though I
-had not seen him in five years.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“‘So my pretty Lucille has flown from me,’ he said,
-and I knew for the first time that he had previously found
-her out in Salem, which accounted for her strange terror
-at a certain time.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Go on!” I almost shouted. “I begin to see the end.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“That is all,” said Nanette, stopping suddenly.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“All?” I cried, blankly. “Where is Mistress de Guilfort?”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“That is what I am half wild about, Captain. I have
-not seen her since that day, three weeks ago, when she
-started for this place, after the pardon for you.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Yesterday I could stand the pain of waiting in idleness
-no longer, and I came here.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Gone three weeks,” I murmured.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Aye, and with that crafty villain, Sir George Keith,
-on her track,” and Nanette’s eyes filled with tears.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'><span class='pageno' id='Page_191'>191</span>“You have not found a trace of her, then, Nanette?”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Not a sign, Captain, since the day she rode off in the
-farmer’s cart, waving her hand good bye to me.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Now I have had many hard knots, in life, to untie. I
-had been put to much thought, at times, how to best approach
-an enemy, or how to escape from one. But this
-was something I could not fathom. I have no mind for
-book matters, nor am I handy with the pen. Yet there
-were certain points with which I might make a start, as
-I have seen learned professors do, when they draw strange
-squares and circles.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>The first point was that Lucille had left Salem for
-Boston. The next point, it would seem, should be to
-find if she arrived.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Nanette was watching me. When I had made what I
-might call a start to solve the riddle of Lucille’s long
-absence, my face cleared a bit. Nanette saw it, and cried:</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Then you can find her, Captain?”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“If any one can, I will,” I replied, and I felt the hope
-that comes from making a beginning at a hard matter.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“But now, Nanette, you must go back to Salem,” I said.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Oh, let me help you find her,” she implored.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“No. There is much to be done. I may have to ride
-far, by day and by night. You could do no good. Go
-back, and, when I have found her, you may come with us.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Then you will find her, Captain?”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“I will,” I said.</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_192'>192</span>
- <h2 class='c006'>CHAPTER XVIII. <br /> <span class='small'>HOW THE EAGLE SAILED.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c007'>Now it is an easy matter to say a thing will be done, but
-it is hard, sometimes, to carry out. However, I was so
-happy, when I felt I had not loved in vain, that I thought
-it would be but a little quest to find Lucille. She had,
-’twas likely, found friends with whom she was stopping,
-and I only had to search them out. First I must see if
-she had been to the Governor for a pardon. And, when I
-called to mind this act of hers, I was ashamed of the
-thoughts I had had concerning my dear one.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>So, having arranged to send Nanette back to Salem, I
-turned my steps toward the Governor’s, to make inquiries;
-for His Excellency had, doubtless, seen Lucille.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I was in little fear of arrest, on the charge of treason,
-for which Sir George held the Royal warrant, as I judged
-I could prevail on Sir William Phips to let so old a matter
-rest.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>As I walked up the broad steps, having left Kit in the
-roadway, I was met at the door by a very proud-looking
-serving man.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'><span class='pageno' id='Page_193'>193</span>“We want no beggars here,” he said, and I remembered,
-with a start, my disordered and mud-stained clothes. I
-was not at all nice in appearance; a veritable beggar on
-horseback, and wearing a sword at my side; a strange
-sight, doubtless.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“I am no beggar,” I said, roughly, for I was in no mood
-for trifling. “Stand aside,” I went on, placing my hand
-on my sword, “for I must see Sir William.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Then you must get wings,” answered the man, smiling,
-and becoming more respectful, “for the Governor sailed
-for London yesterday.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Here was something I had not counted on.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Is there no one here who knows aught of his affairs?”
-I asked. “I must make some inquiries concerning a certain
-person.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>The servant said I might see the Governor’s private
-clerk, and he ushered me into a room where a middle-aged
-man sat writing. To him I related how I had come to
-Boston seeking a maid, Lucille de Guilfort, who was my
-promised wife, and who, I said, I feared had met with
-some harm, or was detained, since she had not been heard
-of in three weeks. She would have called on the Governor
-on a private matter, I remarked, but I did not say what
-it was, for even in Boston some folks were witch-crazed.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>The Governor’s man listened carefully, and asked me
-to describe Lucille to him. When I had done so, he said:</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“I recall, now, that about three weeks ago, such a maid
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_194'>194</span>came here, and was closeted with His Excellency for about
-an hour. I remember, because that day, I had upset the
-hour glass, and also on that day----”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Yes, yes,” I interrupted, “tell me of that again, what
-of the maid?”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“I was coming to her,” he said, reproachfully. “Well,
-as I have said, she was with the Governor for an hour.
-There were tear traces on her cheeks when she went in,
-but a smile on her lips when she came out. I remember
-because I heard a bird----”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Never mind the bird,” I hastened to say. “She was
-smiling----”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Yes, but why do you break in on me? I was telling
-of the smile. She was all happiness, and in her hand she
-had a paper, sealed with the great seal of the Colony, and
-with the Governor’s own signet. Then, as she was going
-down the steps, having thrust the document into her
-bodice, she was met by a man.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“By a man?” I shouted. “What manner of man?”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Why, he was a man. I remember he was a man because----”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Aye, aye, because he was a man,” I cried, all on fire.
-“Never mind how you recall it, but tell me, quickly, as
-if you had but another minute to live, what manner of
-man he was.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Why, you are in great haste,” said the clerk, “you
-leave me no thoughts.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'><span class='pageno' id='Page_195'>195</span>“Never mind your thoughts,” I said, “tell me who was
-the man?”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Why, none other than Sir George Keith,” he answered,
-gazing with mild wonder at me. “I remember it was because
-I knew him well, having often seen him at the
-Governor’s house.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“What then?” I asked, trying to be calm, though I
-stormed within.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Oh, I looked no further, as I had many papers to prepare,”
-replied the clerk. “The last I saw was the maid
-going up the street with Sir George.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Did she go willingly?”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Aye, I thought so. Though now I call to mind that
-Sir George appeared to talk earnestly to her, pointing
-this way and that, ere she turned and went with him. Is
-there any more I can tell you?”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“No,” I said. “I thank you most kindly. I have heard
-too--too much already. Forgive my hasty words, I pray.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Then I went out to Kit.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>She rubbed her nose against my shoulder as I made
-ready to leap into the saddle. I wondered if she understood,
-and if it was the sympathy she could not speak, for
-it seemed she wanted to tell me she was still true.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Here was more than I had bargained for. Lucille was
-gone with Sir George, and there could be but one meaning
-to that. He had met her, having followed her from Salem,
-and had renewed his advances to her. With light words
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_196'>196</span>he had been sorry for the past, had won her forgiveness,
-and had awakened her old love for him.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Surely this was an end to it all now.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Though I had believed her his wife before, I felt I had
-her love. Now he had both her love and herself, and I
-had naught save bitter memories--and my love.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I cursed that, and tried to separate it from me--to cast
-it aside, but I could not. I knew, no matter what she did,
-no matter where she was, no matter were she now in his
-arms, with his kisses on her lips, that I loved her. For,
-when a man loves, he loves not always with wisdom.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I did not think of her as false to me. I believed she
-had fled with him after trying to elude his temptation.
-For it would appear she started from Salem loving me,
-and I hugged that cold comfort to my heart.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Despair, hope, then despair again had been my feelings
-that day. Now came a new one, revenge. If I could not
-have Lucille I would have her lover, and I laughed aloud
-as I thought how pleasant it would be to have him at my
-sword point.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I saw him shifting back from my attack. I saw the
-terror in his eyes, I saw his futile effort to parry my fierce
-thrust, I heard Lucille cry out, and then--and then I felt
-my keen weapon sheath itself in his heart.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Down he fell at my feet a shapeless mass, his red, warm
-lips, that she had kissed, growing cold and white.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>And I laughed aloud.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'><span class='pageno' id='Page_197'>197</span>A sorry uncanny mirth it must have been, for it made
-Kit prick up her ears and break into a trot.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Now I thought I would live but for one end--to kill Sir
-George. But to do that I must find him. I have ever
-believed that good wine is, in moderation, a safe friend.
-Over a glass or two I knew I could better think of what I
-might do next, for I had resolved to follow Sir George--and
-Lucille.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I went to the tavern I had left a little while before, and,
-while sipping my wine, I fell to thinking of a remark
-Nanette had made while there, of how she had heard that
-her mistress had taken a boat near the tavern. In the
-excitement of what she told me after that I had forgotten
-to ask the servant what she meant by it, and where she had
-heard the rumor.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>While thus musing and grumbling at my stupidity I
-heard two men talking in the room next to mine. The
-voices rose in anger now and then, and seemed to be in
-dispute over the division of some money. At length one
-of the men cried out:</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“The boat was more mine than yours. You were as anxious
-to sell to Sir George as was I, and I made the better
-trade. For I knew he must have the craft at any price, as
-it would not do to let the little lady wet her feet.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Sir George! A boat! A lady! Had I stumbled on
-what I wanted; the trail of my enemy?</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I listened with all attention, but I learned no more.
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_198'>198</span>Shortly after that I heard the men leaving, and I contrived
-to go out at the same time, and caught a glimpse of
-them.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>They appeared to be sailors, both roughly dressed, while
-one was taller than the other. I left my mare at the inn,
-and followed the men, not letting them see me, though.
-They separated after going a little way, and I kept after
-the taller one. In my eagerness I came too close to him.
-He turned, saw me following, and quickened his pace.
-But I went faster also, and, when he was at the edge of the
-town, I was close at his heels. He turned suddenly, picked
-up a heavy stick and snarled at me:</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Who are you and what do you want, following me?
-If it’s to rob----”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“I am not a highwayman,” I said. “I only want a
-word or two with you.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Suppose I have no words for you?”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Then I’ll find a way to make you.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Bold talk,” he sneered.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“I am a bold man,” I answered.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I saw his eyes shifting, first on one side of me and then
-on the other, as he sought a path of escape, but I stood
-in the way.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Go your journey, and let me go mine,” he said, “for
-I’m no pleasant person to provoke, mate.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Until I have done with you, our journey is together,”
-I remarked. “You may go when you have answered some
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_199'>199</span>of my questions.” Then assuming to know more than I
-did, I asked:</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Where did Sir George Keith and the woman sail to in
-your boat?”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>The sailor started back as if I had struck him, and his
-face grew white with fear.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Damn you!” he cried, raising his club.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I had drawn my sword, and with it I knocked the
-clumsy weapon from his hand. Before he could pick up
-another I had him by the shoulder, and my steel was at his
-throat.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Will you answer now?” I asked gently.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“I suppose I must,” he said <a id='corr199.13'></a><span class='htmlonly'><ins class='correction' title='sullenly'>sullenly.</ins></span><span class='epubonly'><a href='#c_199.13'><ins class='correction' title='sullenly'>sullenly.</ins></a></span></p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Unless you would rather lie here dead,” I responded.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Well, then, here is all I know,” was his answer, given
-with no very good grace. “It was this way. Some three
-weeks back my mate and I were in our boat at the end of
-the wharf. The Eagle was the name of the craft. We
-were mending a torn sail, me and my mate, when along
-comes a fine gentleman, Sir George Keith, no less, as we
-afterward learned. He had his sword dangling at his side,
-and was mincing his steps in the mud. He hailed us and
-wanted to know what we’d hire out the Eagle for?”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“‘How long?’ I says. ‘A year and a day,’ says he, and
-he looked at me, and smiled in a queer sort of a way. By
-that I knew he was bound on a voyage he couldn’t see the
-end <a id='corr199.27'></a><span class='htmlonly'><ins class='correction' title='of'>of.</ins></span><span class='epubonly'><a href='#c_199.27'><ins class='correction' title='of'>of.</ins></a></span></p>
-
-<p class='c008'><span class='pageno' id='Page_200'>200</span>“‘Oh, it’s to buy the boat you want,’ says I, smelling a
-bargain, and he nodded his head. Well, I asked him fifty
-pounds, and he gave it over with never a word. I asked
-him when he wanted the craft, and he says in an hour’s
-time. So me and my mate took ashore what baggage we
-had and went to the tavern, where we were lately, to drink
-to the success of our bargain. A little while after we seen
-a sailor with a cock eye come down to the wharf, and he
-begun to load provisions into the Eagle.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I stopped the progress of the tale.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Was the sailor one with a scar on the left cheek, and a
-blur or cock of the right eye?” I asked.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“He was that,” answered the former owner of the Eagle.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“My old acquaintance, Simon the sailor, who urged the
-men to force me to surrender Pemaquid,” I whispered to
-myself. Verily he was becoming my evil genius.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Being curious,” resumed the Eagle’s captain, “me and
-my mate hid where we could watch the boat. At dusk we
-saw Sir George come down to the wharf and he was leading
-by the hand a woman or maid, close wrapped in a gray
-cloak.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I could not repress a start.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Well, what then?” I asked.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Sir George says, he says, ‘Is all ready, Simon?’ ‘Yes,
-my lord,’ says the cock-eyed sailor, and then he hoisted the
-jib, while Sir George and the lady went down in the cabin.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Together?” I asked.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'><span class='pageno' id='Page_201'>201</span>“Surely, and why not?” replied the man. “It was
-getting dark, and there was a chill wind.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Well, what then?”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Why, the wind freshened and the Eagle stood out down
-the bay. That is the last I have seen of her or Sir George
-either.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“But her destination, man,” I cried. “Surely you must
-have heard some name mentioned. Some town on the
-coast to which they were bound.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>The sailor shook his head. Then, as if something had
-suddenly occurred to him, he said:</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“I recall now that when Sir George with the maid
-joined the cock-eyed sailor, my lord addressed some words
-to his man, but all I could catch was ‘Elizabeth.’ I took
-it to be the woman’s name, and paid no heed. After the
-boat had sailed me and my mate talked the whole matter
-over, and we liked its looks so little, we agreed to say nothing
-to nobody about it.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Elizabeth, Elizabeth,” I murmured, as the sailor, seeing
-I had turned aside from him, slunk away. “’Tis a
-woman’s name, sure enough, but I have heard it somewhere
-in the Colonies, too. I have a small notion there is
-a town called that.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I made a quick pace back to the centre of the town, and
-by inquiries along the wharves learned there was a settlement
-in New Jersey that went by the name of Elizabeth
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_202'>202</span>town. It was near to New York, they told me, down on
-the Jersey coast, but somewhat inland.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“That is the place,” I said to myself.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>How was I to get there? I wanted no companion, and
-I could not manage a boat alone. Clearly I must make
-the trip on horseback, and a long journey it would be. I
-felt there was no time to be lost. It was now growing
-dark, and I could not start until morning. I went back
-to the tavern, where I had left Kit, engaged a bed for
-myself, and then set about making ready for my trip. I
-got a flask of brandy and a good blanket. Next I laid
-out a good part of what little ready money I had on a
-serviceable flint-lock, a horn of powder, a pouch of bullets
-and some spare flints.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>The blanket I strapped back of my saddle, and the flask
-of brandy I put in the bags, together with some dry biscuits
-and a piece of bacon. I ate my supper and went to
-bed. I had a long journey before me. As the crow flew
-it was quite 200 miles, but with the turnings I must make
-’twould be a good 300. My plan was to ride along the
-coast all the way, for I thought that contrary winds might
-compel Sir George to lay to, at least for a time, and I
-might come up to him then.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I knew he dared not stand far out from the shore in
-so small a craft, because of storms. Likewise he would
-be obliged to come in to replenish his stock of fresh water,
-for he could not carry a large supply. So I was in hopes
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_203'>203</span>I could get some trace of the voyagers by picking my way
-along the coast.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>There would be hard riding by day and by night. Cold
-and hunger, doubtless, and wind and rain. Danger of
-attacks by Indians and wild animals. Yet I felt that I
-could persevere through it all for the sake of a sweet revenge.
-Would love, I wondered, serve to urge me on
-through such a journey as awaited me.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I awoke with the rising of the sun, made a hurried meal,
-and, leading Kit from the stable, vaulted into the saddle.
-The orb was well above the horizon, and the air was clear
-and cool when I looked back on the town I was leaving,
-thought of its bitter and sweet memories, and bade a glad
-good bye to Massachusetts and her witches.</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_204'>204</span>
- <h2 class='c006'>CHAPTER XIX. <br /> <span class='small'>HOW I FOUND LUCILLE.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c007'>Weary was my journey. There were rivers to ford,
-deep forests to traverse, and often only Indian paths to
-make my way along. I passed through towns and villages,
-eating and sleeping wherever I could. Once in the night
-I saw the watch fires of an Indian camp, and I hid deeper
-in the woods. The next morning the red men passed, not
-a rifle shot from me, yet they did not discover my presence.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Day followed day, and night came after night, and still
-I rode on.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>In a small town near the coast one day I heard that
-the Eagle had tied up at the wharf there, about two weeks
-past. This gave me hope that I was on the right path,
-and I pushed on anxiously. But to all my inquiries thereafter
-I learned nothing further.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Kit began to grow tired those days, for, though I spared
-her all I could, the way was hard. Through the wilderness
-and along the sea we journeyed, Kit and I, searching,
-ever searching for that which might, when found,
-only bring bitterness to my heart.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'><span class='pageno' id='Page_205'>205</span>My eyes grew tired with the sight of so much land and
-water, yet I could not give up. My body was weary with
-the long way. My heart was sad; aye, sad with love and
-hate.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I passed over a river called the Hudson, being ferried
-across it, Kit and I. Just below, the ferryman told me,
-was the village of New York. When I was on the west
-bank of the stream, I could see from the top of the bluff
-that the town was one of goodly size, larger than many
-villages in England.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I left New York behind, and plunged once more into
-the wilderness. Now, I was told, I was but three days’
-ride from Elizabeth, as the roads went, and how my heart
-beat as I heard that news.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>It had been a raw, blustering day, when, as the sun was
-beginning to sink down in the west, in a gloomy looking
-watery haze, I turned Kit’s head toward the sea that
-stretched in a vast expanse off to the left. I would scan
-the coast once more, I thought, ere I camped out for the
-night.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I had little hope of sighting the Eagle now, for, by this
-time, the voyagers must be far ahead of me. Yet I felt
-I should let slip by no chance of coming upon them. So
-it happened, as the day was slowly dying I drew rein on
-top of a little hill, whence I had a good view of the ocean.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I gazed out over the broad extent of water. The heaving
-billows looked like small waves from my perch, but
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_206'>206</span>the dull boom and roar that filled the air told me there
-was power in the green water that thundered down on the
-sands. Twice I looked along the line of the horizon for
-the sight of a sail, and I saw none. From the shore to the
-uttermost edge, where the plane of waters seemed to come
-to a sudden stop, I gazed and saw not a speck.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Wait, though. What was that out there to the left?</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Nothing but a lonely gull, flitting from wave crest to
-wave crest. I watched it in idleness, expecting every moment
-to see it dart down and arise with a fish. But the
-gull seemed content to float on the waves. It rose and fell
-with the heaving of the waters, becoming larger as it
-approached until I thought verily it must be the king of
-all gulls.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Then I rubbed my eyes and looked again. A last glint
-of the setting sun fell upon the object. I shaded my
-eyes and strained my sight.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Of a sudden I saw it was not a gull. It was a boat!</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Was it the Eagle?</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>The wind freshened, and the little craft crept nearer the
-shore. It seemed to make slow progress, and floated
-sluggishly in the water.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Now I was able to see more clearly. I noted that the
-sail was ragged and torn, also that from the mast head
-floated a bit of cloth like a piece torn from a woman’s
-dress. A signal of distress!</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>With anxious, beating heart I waited for the boat to
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_207'>207</span>draw nearer. It was, perchance, a vain hope, but I could
-not help thinking the craft contained those I sought. And
-if it should!</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I looked to my gun and saw that my sword was loose
-in the scabbard, for I would have two to contend with,
-Sir George and Simon.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Closer came the boat until I could distinguish three
-figures aboard, and one was a woman, as I could see by
-her dress. She stood for a moment in front of the companionway
-leading to the cabin, and then she vanished
-down it. The other figures were those of two men. They
-appeared to be much excited about something, moving
-here and there on the deck, and I was at a loss to account
-for their actions. Now they would be amidships, and
-then suddenly run to the side when they would empty a
-bucket of water overboard.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>As soon as I saw that I knew the boat was leaking, and
-that they were baling to keep her afloat. That was why
-they had headed in shore, for no other cause would have
-made them approach such a dangerous coast.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>The craft was now so near that I could plainly see one
-man baling while the other ran to the tiller, which was
-lashed, and cast off the ropes. Then he headed the boat
-up the coast, searching for a favorable place to put in.
-He saw none, after holding on that course for a time, and
-so came about and sailed down. Long and anxiously did
-he scan the shore and the line of breakers. So occupied
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_208'>208</span>was he that he did not seem to see me, though I was in
-bold relief against the western sky.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Twice did the helmsman beat up and down for a quarter
-of a mile each way. But all along was heavy surf,
-while at some places black and jagged rocks just showed
-their ugly heads above the water that washed over them.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>The second man had ceased baling now, and came to
-the aid of the steersman, who had evidently decided to
-make a landing in the best place he could. The man who
-had been at the tiller ran to the bow, leaped on the rail,
-and peered ahead, while his companion kept her prow to
-the waves. I gave one look at the man in the bow. I
-trembled lest I should be mistaken. No, it was he.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>There, like a carved figurehead on a ship stood my
-enemy! Sir George Keith! My journey was ended.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I could have shouted in gladness, was I not fearful that
-the sea might snatch him from me ere I had my revenge.
-For the time I forgot the danger that encompassed Lucille.
-My hate had overwhelmed my love.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I dismounted and led Kit back into some low bushes
-that grew on top of the hill. Then I went forward
-quickly to watch the progress of the boat.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Sir George was again at the helm. He had made up
-his mind where to land. And it was near time. The
-little craft was settling low in the water.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>On she came, lifting her bow to the waves, and then
-dipping deep into the froth of green liquid that hissed on
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_209'>209</span>either side. Nearer and nearer. They were almost in
-now. And then, while I stood there, watching like a
-sentinel guarding the land, I saw that which gripped my
-heart as if an icy hand had grasped it.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Directly in the course of the Eagle, and so close to her
-now that avoidance was impossible, was a pinnacle of
-rock. I had not seen it before, nor had Sir George, for
-he steered for it as if by card and compass.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“’Ware the rock!” I cried, and he heard me.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>He looked up, and by the shout he gave, I knew he
-recognized me. He was like one who sees a spirit. He
-lost his hold of the helm and ran to the stern. But the
-boat did not fall off. Instead she came on like a race
-horse straight for the rock. The waves lifted her high up,
-water logged though she was, until she showed part of her
-keel. Then, and I closed my eyes, the waters dashed the
-frail vessel down on that point of stone, as a man is impaled
-on a spear. The rock struck right through her
-bottom.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>The crash that followed found echo in my own heart,
-and the wild shouts of Sir George and Simon mingled with
-the screams of Lucille coming clear over the thunder of
-the surf.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>It was no time to stand idle. It was a steep path to
-the beach, but I got down somehow. The boat was still
-spitted on the rock, but the waters were dashing over it,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_210'>210</span>threatening every moment to break it in pieces and toss
-the occupants into the sea.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I had kept hold of my flint-lock, but now I laid it down
-on the sand, at the same time casting off my sword belt.
-As I discarded my jacket and boots, the boat gave a lurch
-to one side, and I heard Lucille scream. I took one look,
-so I might know in which direction to swim, and I saw
-the sailor Simon as he leaped overboard and struck out
-for the beach. Then I plunged into the surf.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I waded out as far as I had my depth, and I saw
-Simon’s head bobbing up and down. I marked Sir
-George tearing away at some of the deck boards, which had
-split, and I guessed he was trying to form a raft. Lucille,
-for I saw her face clearly now, was clinging to the mast,
-her dark hair blowing about her face, while the salt spray
-dashed over her until she was drenched.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I had found Lucille, but in what a sorry plight. She
-was mine no more. My enemy had won her. All I might
-have was revenge on him; a poor exchange.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Sir George gave one glance in my direction, and then
-worked with great haste to tear up the planks. Perhaps
-he feared my vengeance would strike him in the waters,
-though I had other plans. Mayhap he grudged me any
-share in the rescue of Lucille, which both of us were striving
-for now. Noting all this in one brief glance I found
-the water above my head now, so I plunged forward, and
-was soon swimming amid the breakers.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'><span class='pageno' id='Page_211'>211</span>It was hard work, indeed, to buffet those waves, and to
-avoid being cast against the rocks which abounded. How
-I did it, and came out scathless, I cannot tell. I know I
-managed to get near enough to the stern of the boat to
-grasp the rudder chains and pull myself aboard.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Slowly, for I was weary, I got over the rail, and found
-myself on the sloping deck, that every now and again was
-washed by the waves. Before the mast Sir George was
-lashing the planks he had torn up into the form of a rude
-raft.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Greeting,” I said to him.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>He started, as a man might, who hears a voice from the
-grave.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Then I went a little way farther until I stood before
-Lucille.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Edward! Oh, my God! Edward!” she screamed, and
-then she fell in a senseless heap at the foot of the mast.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I sprang toward her, as did Sir George, dropping the
-planks. We were at her side together.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Curse you!” he cried. “Have you come back from
-death to take her from me again?”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Even from death,” I said. “Even from death, my
-lord. I come, not to claim her, but to kill you. For she
-was mine by every right of heaven and earth, and you took
-her from me.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“I loved her first,” he almost shouted the words. “And
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_212'>212</span>she is mine now by the rights of man; that of possession.
-Make the most of that, you witch-traitor.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“You shall answer for your words later,” I said.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>So we stood thus, perchance while a man might have
-counted a score slowly. Around us was the waste of
-waters. Under our feet the quivering Eagle, that was like
-to go to pieces every second. Between us, as pale as death,
-was Lucille, the cause of both of us being there. Perhaps
-she was dead, and our bitter words were spoken in
-vain.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>The seas were calm for a little time while thus we stood,
-or we must have all been washed into the waves.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Then I saw the hand of Sir George steal to his sword.
-I clapped mine to my side only to meet with nothing. He
-smiled.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>A wave lifted the Eagle, and after it had passed the
-craft settled down more deeply in the water. We both
-started.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“There is no time for you and I to settle our hate and
-quarrel now,” I remarked. “We will need all our strength
-if we would save her.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Yes, yes,” he assented eagerly.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>So together we labored, he and I; as deadly enemies as
-ever two men could be, striving in harmony to save the life
-of a woman, who, hitherto, had brought us both little more
-than hate. And yet we loved her, both of us. I, perforce,
-because I could do no less.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'><span class='pageno' id='Page_213'>213</span>First we placed her where the waves could reach her as
-little as possible, for she was still as one dead. I passed
-a rope around the mast, and fastened one end about Lucille’s
-waist. And my hands trembled strangely as I
-touched her cold hand.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Quivers of the boat warned us that she would hold together
-but a brief spell now, and we worked with feverish
-haste, neither speaking a word.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>At length the few boards we could tear loose were bound
-together, and on them we must make the attempt to get
-Lucille to shore.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I paused to look at her, and the love grew in my heart.
-I gazed up and found Sir George at my side. He, too,
-looked down on her. Then we two glanced at each other,
-and the love in our eyes turned to hate.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Quick!” I said. “There is no time to wait.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>We had arranged the raft so that one of us could swim
-ahead and drag it by a rope, while the other could swim
-behind and push. A box lashed to the centre made a
-support for Lucille. We placed her on the planks, her
-shoulders against the box, so that her head would be above
-the waves. Then we made ready for our battle with the
-sea.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Sir George unbuckled his sword, and lashed it to the
-raft.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“I will go ahead,” said Sir George haughtily.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“No, I,” was my answer.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'><span class='pageno' id='Page_214'>214</span>“Damn you!” he cried. “You want to steal her from
-me and leave me here.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Nay,” I said gently, “look you. Whatever may be
-our differences we will settle them later, as men should
-with the sword. Now, however, there is work to be done.
-I know the shore better than do you, having seen it from
-above. Therefore I will take the lead. It will not be for
-long. Perchance I may be swallowed up in the waters.
-Then our quarrel will be ended.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>With that he agreed, though I could see the distrust in
-his eyes.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Slowly we shoved the raft with its precious burden off
-into the water, avoiding the rock on which the Eagle was
-impaled. Then fastening the rope about my shoulders
-I struck out for the shore. Sir George leaped in after me
-and swam behind, pushing the frail structure. It was a
-perilous moment.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>For a time it seemed that we would never succeed. But
-we strained with every muscle, and, gradually drew near
-shore. Then we had to beware of the dreadful undertow,
-which was strong at this point. With a few more strokes
-I let down my feet, and felt bottom. Then I waded up
-the beach, and pulled the raft high up out of reach of the
-waves.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Before I could get to Lucille Sir George was at her side,
-and with eager hands he began to unloosen the ropes that
-bound her.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'><span class='pageno' id='Page_215'>215</span>“Is she living?” I asked, yet feeling a strange indifference
-while I waited for the answer. What mattered
-it to me if she did live?</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“She breathes,” he said, and I noted a little trembling
-of the white lids that veiled her eyes.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“There are some spirits in my flask in the saddle bags,”
-I remarked, motioning to where I had tethered Kit.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Will you get the flask?” he asked, “unless, mayhap,
-you fear to leave her alone with me while you go. Though
-she was long enough with me in the Eagle.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>The words were not out of his mouth ere I stood beside
-him, and my hands were at his throat.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Recall that last,” I said, “or I will give you no chance
-to stand before me with sword in hand. Recall your
-words, my lord.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“I do,” he snarled, and he fell to rubbing his neck when
-I let go. As I turned to get the brandy a man came running
-down the sands. It was Simon.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“There is no need for either of us to go,” remarked
-Sir George. “Simon will get the flask if you tell him
-where it is.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I directed the sailor where to come upon Kit, and then
-fell to chafing Lucille’s hands, as did Sir George, and this
-we were at when Simon returned, neither of us speaking
-a word, though deep in our hearts were many things that
-might have found utterance.</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_216'>216</span>
- <h2 class='c006'>CHAPTER XX. <br /> <span class='small'>A WATCH IN THE NIGHT.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c007'>I was able to get a little of the brandy between Lucille’s
-lips, and she revived somewhat, opening her eyes. She
-caught sight of Sir George, and then she seemed to sleep
-again. When she awoke a second time and saw me standing
-near her, fright struggled with surprise in her look, so
-that I could not see whether she realized where she was.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>She murmured that she was cold. I called to Simon
-and had him get my tinder box from my coat. With the
-flint and steel I kindled the burnt linen to a glow, and
-soon was blowing to a flame some dry sticks. Then Sir
-George, Simon and I set about gathering driftwood, verily
-like three school boys at a bonfire, until we had a goodly
-pile on the sand, sending out a genial warmth. It was a
-welcome heat, for we were chilled by the water, and Lucille
-was trembling as one with ague. We carried her to
-the blaze, and I wrapped my dry jacket about her, so that
-with the comfort of the fire, some color returned to her
-cheeks.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'><span class='pageno' id='Page_217'>217</span>“Where am I?” she asked, passing her hand over her
-brow.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“With me,” said Sir George, quickly.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“God forbid,” spoke Lucille in an instant, and those
-few words gave me hope.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Sir George motioned to Simon, who ran to the raft,
-bringing back with him his master’s sword. Seeing that
-the wind lay in that direction, I hastened to where I had
-cast my blade. It was gone, as was my gun. I knew then
-that Simon must have hidden them when he came ashore.
-Lucille was watching us.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>She rose from her reclining position, and, seeing Sir
-George armed, and me without a sword, she ran between
-us.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Hold!” she cried. “Add not murder to your other
-crimes, my lord.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Murder,” he exclaimed; “it would not be murder to
-slay in fair combat. It is but the execution of justice on
-a traitor.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Traitor?” spoke Lucille, questioningly, while her head
-was lifted proudly in the air, and her voice rang with
-scorn. “Who is the traitor, when he stands face to face
-with you, my lord, chief of all traitors. For you were
-traitor to a defenseless woman. Captain Amherst is no
-traitor, but a true and honorable gentleman, and--and--I
-love him!”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Then, being a woman, Lucille’s spirit gave way, and she
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_218'>218</span>wept bitterly. I turned my head aside, for sometimes a
-woman’s tears are sorrowful to look upon. However, she
-soon regained her composure.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>A sudden silence fell upon us all. When Lucille had
-said “I love him,” I looked at Sir George, and he at me.
-Now such had been the turn of events of late, that I knew
-not what to think.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Had Lucille planned to sail with her former lover?
-Was she true to me, or a fickle jade, blown this way and
-that, like many women? These things I much desired to
-hear the truth of. But yet she had said of me, “I love
-him.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Madame,” I said, and at the formal word Lucille
-glanced, half frightened at me, “strange events have come
-to pass between us since last we met. You were my promised
-wife when I sailed against St. Johns. I returned to
-be cast into prison on a foul charge, but not before one had
-met me with the words that you were his wife, and that I
-had no right to your love, nor you to mine.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“His wife?” began Lucille, and Sir George smiled at
-the trick he had played.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Oh, of the falsity of that I soon learned,” I went on,
-“for I met Nanette in Boston. But no sooner do I learn
-you are not wedded to Sir George Keith than I hear that
-you have sailed with him. Perchance you have since
-thought better of your troth to me, and are, even now, his
-wife.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'><span class='pageno' id='Page_219'>219</span>“His wife? Never!” cried Lucille.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“No,” said Sir George slowly, “not my wife, but----”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I would have leaped at him, unarmed though I was, and
-though he held his sword so that I must have run upon
-it, had not Lucille grasped my arm.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Not--not--oh, my God, not his----” I could not finish
-for Lucille’s hand was over my mouth.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>The next instant I had my answer. For she placed her
-arms about my neck, and before him, before the man I
-believed she had cast me aside for, she kissed me full on
-the lips, and spoke my name.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Edward!”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Lucille!” I cried. “Lucille!” And the love in my
-heart surged up as do the waters at flood tide. “Then
-God has given you back to me, after all. Speak, love, are
-you mine, all mine; or has he any claim on you?” and I
-passed my arm about her, and looked at Sir George, as he
-stood there, sword in hand.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Edward,” said Lucille, and she clung to me as a
-frightened bird might nestle, “most grievous has been my
-plight, and cruelly has Sir George Keith treated a defenseless
-maid, yet I will do him this justice. Though
-ever did he protest his love in burning words, almost to
-insult, yet, as I stand before you both, he gave me no dishonor.
-And for this I thank him, that I am restored to
-you, my love, true as when he lured me away. So that
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_220'>220</span>while he remains not entirely guiltless, the great shame is
-not upon him.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“I thank you, madame,” spoke Sir George, bowing low,
-his hand on his sword, “most graciously do I thank you,”
-and his words became bitter, while his face grew cold and
-stern. “My poor love for you, poor in that ’tis all I have,
-is but my plea for that which I have done. I pray your
-forgiveness, though, perchance, I do not merit it. I would
-do again all that I have done, aye, a thousand times, if I
-stood but one chance of success, of even winning one loving
-word from you, madame.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“But you have spurned my love, as is your right, though
-once it was not so.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Lucille shrank closer to me at that, and the words
-pierced me with a jealous anger. He saw his advantage
-and went on:</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Once you thought it no great task to smile with me.
-My words did not turn you from me then. That was----”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Oh, my lord, I pray you to cease,” implored Lucille
-and Sir George became silent.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Your pardon, madame,” he continued, after a moment’s
-pause, “enough of that, then. But though I have lost your
-love, I cannot, as I am a gentleman and a soldier, let the
-matter rest there. My enemy shall not thus easily steal
-you from me. I have two quarrels with him now from
-divers causes. Of the one he knows well. Of the other--well,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_221'>221</span>I am ever willing to draw swords for a fair face,” and
-he bowed with mock courtesy.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“I would be weak, indeed,” he added, “did I give you up
-now after what I have gone through, and say to him,
-‘welcome. Take my love from me. Take also your life
-which, of right, belongs to the King and to me, and go in
-peace!’ Nay, I have blood in my veins, not water.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Three several times have I stood before you, Sir Francis
-Dane,” and he turned to address me. I marked that
-Lucille started at the name he gave me. “Three times
-you dared me to draw sword. Each time I held my hand,
-though my blade was ready. But I waited, for even bitter
-as my hate was, I had laid plans that might remove
-you from my path without need of open action on my part.
-I failed, you best know how and why. But think not that
-you will escape me, for the score is too heavy to forget
-now.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Sir George moved toward me, and I thought at first he
-meant to attack me, for I had no sword. I put Lucille
-behind me, and then he seemed to see I had no weapon.
-Simon said something to his master in a low tone.
-Sir George turned angrily, and, in another instant the
-sailor was running across the sands. Presently he returned,
-bearing my sword and gun, which he handed me
-without a word of explanation.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“I pray your pardon,” said Sir George, “I saw not that
-your sword was gone. Now that you have it, let us to
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_222'>222</span>work to see who shall kill the other,” and he laughed
-such a cold, heartless, mirthless laugh that Lucille shuddered.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Bah,” he went on, “what does it matter, after all. But
-come, ’tis cold standing idle after a bath in the sea, and
-I would be gone.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>He laughed again, perchance at the notion of going
-anywhere on the watery, sandy waste.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Ha! Ha! Gone. Yes, I would be away, far away
-from here, had not the Eagle proved such a sorry craft.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>He swung his sword about him in a circle so that the
-point enscribed a little furrow in the sand.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Lucille looked on with horror in her eyes.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Have no fear, love,” I said. “It will soon be over.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“But how?” she asked.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“God knows,” I said.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“On guard!” cried Sir George.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>But now a difficulty arose. The sun had gone down,
-though we had not observed it, and it rapidly became dusk.
-So that when we would have walked off a little way, out
-of sight of Lucille, to place ourselves, it was too dark for
-sword play. Sir George remarked it.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Why, it is night,” he said, “and there is need of light
-for what we have before us. However, to-morrow will be
-another day. There is little likelihood that our quarrel
-will cool in the darkness.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Not on my side, my lord,” I answered, bowing.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'><span class='pageno' id='Page_223'>223</span>“Enough, then. We will wait till sunrise. I will go
-with Simon to another part of the beach. We will meet
-again in the morning, and may the best sword win.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Say rather, may the right win,” was my reply, but he
-only laughed.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Well, then,” he went on, “good-night, madame, and you
-also, Sir Francis, though ’tis more like to be a bad one for
-all of us and for you, madame. I would we had some small
-shelter, or some food for you, but the poor Eagle’s wings
-are broken.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>We looked to where the boat had been, but it was gone.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Stay,” I said, remembering my saddle bags. “There is
-no need of hunger, at least, if Simon will go and bring
-what is on Kit’s back. We had better eat while we have the
-chance.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I told the sailor what to fetch, adding some instructions
-about tying the mare more securely.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Presently Simon returned, and we threw more wood on
-the fire. Then I gave Sir George and his man some of
-the biscuits and bacon, which I had purchased at my last
-stopping place. The meat we roasted before the blaze on
-sharpened sticks, eating it smoking hot. I prepared some
-for Lucille, giving them to her on a clean washed piece of
-drift-wood, that served for a platter.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Surely no stranger band ever gathered about a camp
-fire on that lonely Atlantic coast. Had any one seen us
-eating together he would have said that we were ship-wrecked,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_224'>224</span>but, for all that, merry adventurers, so well did
-the outward semblance conceal the bitter passions within.
-For there was in our hearts love, hate, fear, distrust, anger
-and envy, yet none of us betrayed by so much as a word
-while we were eating that there was aught but friendliness
-among us. Thus had so little a thing as hunger made
-us forget strong passions for a time.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>The fire crackled, the waves beat upon the sands with
-thunderous noise, and we four sat there. How many and
-how varied were the thoughts in each of our minds.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>For myself I rejoiced that I had found Lucille again,
-and found her with my love in her heart. Of the duel
-to take place on the morrow I gave little heed. For I
-had confidence in my sword and arm, though, as it afterward
-proved, I needed all my skill. Then I went back
-over my wanderings and my adventures since I had first
-ridden to Salem.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Of the others’ thoughts I could but guess. I fancied
-Sir George was very bitter of heart, and that he had great
-hate for me, though as to the rightful cause for it I differed
-from him. Lucille, rather than the death of his
-brother, was his reason now for wishing to kill me.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>When I recall all that happened to us both, knowing of
-the great passion which swayed him, as a blast does a sturdy
-tree, I can, in some measure, put myself in his place and
-know that he was sorely tempted. For he, too, loved
-Lucille.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'><span class='pageno' id='Page_225'>225</span>And of the thoughts of Lucille. She must have much
-hidden away in her heart, but what cared I so long as she
-loved me. I looked at her while the fire light played its
-shadows over her features. How thin and worn she had
-become since I saw her last. What must she have gone
-through. I was in impatience to hear from her all that
-had to do with her voyage on the Eagle.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>As for Simon he seemed to be eating more than he was
-thinking.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>So we sat thus silent, while the moon came peeping up
-from beneath the sea, silvering the dancing waves. Lucille
-drew my coat closer about her, for it was chilly, and
-she sighed, mayhap at what had gone before, perchance
-at what was yet to come; for who knows a woman’s
-thoughts?</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>It was growing late when I rose from my position by
-the fire. Sir George and Simon followed my example, and
-I helped Lucille to her feet. She was so weak that I put
-my arm about her waist to support her. Sir George turned
-away as if to view the moon, and I knew it was because it
-burned his heart to see me with her. But I was glad that
-it was so, for he had caused me much suffering, and this
-was some balm for it.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I picked up my flint-lock, and made as if to move off,
-Lucille and I up the beach. I had noticed an overhanging
-rock a quarter of a mile off, that I thought would serve
-as some protection from the night dew. Sir George, followed
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_226'>226</span>by Simon, walked off in the opposite direction. When
-they had gone a little way Sir George halted and retraced
-his steps.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“A word, Sir Francis,” he called to me.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I left Lucille and went back.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“There will be need of but little ceremony about our
-affair in the morning,” he said coldly. “Yet that no doubt
-may linger in your mind I will say that Simon is oath-bound
-to me not to raise a hand in the matter, no matter
-how it may go. You need fear no treachery, for he will
-keep his distance. So, if you kill me, Simon, though he
-is ever ready to stand between me and death, will not renew
-the quarrel. To this I have sworn him.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“If you should fall in the combat I will see that you
-have such burial as the place affords. Which courtesy I
-make bold to ask of you on my part. Is it agreed?”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Yes, my lord,” I replied.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>To talk thus of death.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“And that is all, I believe,” said Sir George, turning
-away. “I will meet you here at sunrise. And--and perhaps
-it would be as well not to awaken her. You understand?”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Perfectly, my lord.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Then good-night, Sir Francis.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Good-night, my lord.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>We parted, and thus began the vigil of the night.</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_227'>227</span>
- <h2 class='c006'>CHAPTER XXI. <br /> <span class='small'>OF THE VOYAGE OF LUCILLE.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c007'>Beneath the rock I had selected as our shelter for the
-night I kindled a fire, and the wind, taking the smoke
-away, made the place comfortable. The heat served to
-dry our garments and warmed our chilled blood. Lucille
-clung to me, trembling with the recollection of all she had
-passed through, and I held her in my arms and bade her
-be of better cheer, for the worst was now past.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“You had a long voyage,” I said, for I did not know
-how to begin so that she might tell me of the cruise of
-the Eagle.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“And a terrible one,” she answered, with a shudder.
-“Oh, Edward, my love, I thought never to see you again,
-and I wished myself dead a hundred times. There was
-naught but fear and misery in my heart, but now--now--I
-am so very happy. Yet not altogether happy,
-Edward.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“And why?” I asked.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Because I think of the morrow.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“So you fear for me, my sweet?”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Much, Edward, for he is a terrible man.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'><span class='pageno' id='Page_228'>228</span>“So am I, when I fight for love,” was my reply.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Then there was silence for a time, and she seemed to
-be thinking of something.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Why did he call you Sir Francis, Edward?” she asked,
-presently.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Because, dear, it is my name,” I said.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Why, I thought----” she began, but I was not ready
-to tell her all yet.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“To-morrow will do for my story,” I interposed. “The
-night is short, let me hear about yourself.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“There may be no to-morrow,” whispered Lucille.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“It is as God wills,” I said, simply, and I kissed her.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Then she told me of the voyage with Sir George.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“When I found that you were in Salem gaol, charged
-with witchcraft,” she began, “I recalled how few had
-come out of there alive, after such an accusation. I knew,
-as you did not, since you had been absent, how fierce was
-the hue and cry after witches, or those poor wretches so
-called. I knew how perilous was the time in Salem town.
-So I made up my mind that I must get you out, as you
-could not help yourself. I thought of the Governor, Sir
-William Phips, believing that he was my only hope. To
-see him, get a full and free pardon for you, was my only
-desire.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I could feel her hand, that I held beneath my coat, press
-mine. I answered the pressure, and drew Lucille near
-to me. She went on:</p>
-
-<p class='c008'><span class='pageno' id='Page_229'>229</span>“So, knowing there was little time to lose, I made a
-bargain with Master Richard Johnson, who lived on the
-road back of me, to take me to Boston in his big cart, as
-he was going there that day with some barrels of cider.
-Not even stopping to tell you good bye, so full was I of
-my project, I put on my best gown--’tis a sad sight now,
-though”--and Lucille sighed and looked down at her dress,
-all wet and torn--“pinned a ribbon in my hair, and was
-off to see His Excellency. We were two days on the road,
-because the cart broke.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Well, I found him at home, and, after some parley with
-his servant, who said his master was busy with noble lords
-from London, I was admitted to the presence of Sir
-William.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“I curtsied as best I knew, and looked about, half
-tempted to run out again, for the room was filled with
-men. Oh, but they stared so at me; verily, I thought none
-of them had scarce before seen a maid in her best gown.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Well I knew why they looked, I thought, for fairer face
-than Lucille’s there was not in Boston, or Salem--aye, in
-all of London.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“But,” she continued, “I did manage to stammer out
-what I had come for, and when His Excellency had gathered
-the import of my words, he became kindly at once
-and came near to me, while he left the noble lords, if
-such they were, to talk among themselves. I heard one of
-them say ‘Zounds! But would she not make some of our
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_230'>230</span>London beauties stare.’ So I looked him full in the face,
-and replied:</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“‘There be many others in Salem town, if it please
-you, sir,’ whereat they all laughed, save His Excellency,
-and he smiled at me. Then, Edward, I pleaded for your
-life.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“What did you say, sweet?” I asked.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“I begged that I might not be sent away without a pardon,”
-went on Lucille. “And, to show it was deserved, I
-told Sir William of the deeds you had done. How strong
-you were to cast the great stone, and how they said you
-were a witch because you had done that. Then I reminded
-him of St. Johns and Pemaquid, for I had heard somewhat
-of what took place there. I urged upon him that
-you were a good soldier, and a true one, serving His Gracious
-Majesty most faithful.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Then, when I could think of no more to say, I told
-His Excellency that--that I loved you better than any one
-else in the whole world, and that he must pardon you for
-me,” and Lucille leaned over and hid her face on my
-shoulder.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“All that for me,” I whispered. “I was not worth it.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Oh, but you are,” said Lucille, looking up quickly, “or
-I should never have been brave enough to do all I did.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“What said His Excellency, when you pleaded so well
-for me?” I asked.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Why,” continued Lucille, “he smiled, and wanted to
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_231'>231</span>know who it was I had come to save. ‘Captain Edward
-Amherst,’ I replied, and then all the men in the room,
-who had been talking about the custom-house, burst into
-shouts of laughter.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“One of them said: ‘Not the traitor Sir George is after,
-is it, Your Excellency?’ ‘The same,’ was the Governor’s
-answer.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“That angered me, to hear them call you a traitor,
-though I did not realize who Sir George was then,” went
-on Lucille. “I stamped my foot, forgetting that I was
-in the presence of the Governor, and cried out: ‘Captain
-Amherst is no traitor, but a true and honorable gentleman,
-and a brave soldier, which is more than can be said of
-many.’ The men turned aside at that, and Sir William
-led me to another room.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“There he told me he would grant a pardon from the
-charge of <a id='corr231.17'></a><span class='htmlonly'><ins class='correction' title='withcraft'>witchcraft</ins></span><span class='epubonly'><a href='#c_231.17'><ins class='correction' title='withcraft'>witchcraft</ins></a></span>, which he did not believe in, but he
-added that there were graver matters hanging over your
-head. I was so overjoyed at hearing him say he would
-give the pardon that I only heard him murmur something
-about fearing it would be of little service. He called his
-secretary to bring his quill, ink-horn and sand box. When
-he had them he indited a full and free pardon for Captain
-Amherst, from the charge of witchcraft, sealing it with his
-own hand.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“He bowed me out of the chamber, while all the men
-stared so again that my cheeks were burning. But I was
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_232'>232</span>out of the house at last, and so anxious to get back to you
-and have you released from Salem gaol, that I could scarce
-walk fast enough. As I was going down the steps I was
-startled by seeing a man in front of me. I looked up in
-fright, and there was one I least desired to meet--Sir
-George Keith.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Lucille glanced at me.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“I should have told you about him before,” she continued,
-“only I wanted to wait----”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“I know,” was my reply; “Nanette told me something
-of him, and I know more, of my own experience.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“He stood before me,” went on Lucille, “and, when I
-would have passed by him, never giving heed to him, he
-bowed, and said if I would deign to hear him he would
-deliver a message from you. I did not know that he was
-your enemy, as well as mine, or I would not have listened
-to him. But I was so anxious to do all I could for you
-that I never stopped to think that Sir George Keith
-would scarce do his rival a courtesy. So I bade him say
-on quickly, and told him I never would listen to him on
-my account.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Then he told me you had broken gaol early that morning,
-and were hiding in the woods to avoid capture. He
-said you had besought him, as a comrade in arms, to get
-him aid, and particularly to send word to me, so I might
-come to you.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“‘There is no cause for Captain Amherst to hide,’ I
-said, ‘for I have a pardon for him. He need fear no
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_233'>233</span>gaol.’ Sir George said it was not the witchcraft that was
-hanging over you now, but a charge of treason. That made
-me greatly frightened, and I suppose he saw it and knew
-he could tell me any lie and have it believed. He said, if
-I would consent to let him guide me to you, he could
-provide a way of escape for us both.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“I was afraid of him, but he spoke so gently, and was
-so courteous, never even referring to the hateful past, that
-I consented. Oh, how little I knew what was before me,”
-and Lucille shivered, not alone from the night wind. I
-knew now why Sir George had left the court room so suddenly
-the day of my trial. It was to get trace of Lucille.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“He said,” she continued, after a pause, “that it would
-not be safe for us to go directly to your hiding place, as
-we might be followed. There was a small boat, down at
-the wharf, he added, sailed by an honest man, and, if I
-would but trust myself in it, we could move along the
-shore until we had picked you up. Such, Sir George said,
-was the plan you had devised.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Though I wavered a bit, being friendless and alone in
-Boston town, in the end I yielded, and suffered him to lead
-the way to the boat. It was the Eagle, and Simon was the
-whole crew. When Sir George came to the end of the
-wharf with me, he said to Simon:</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“‘This is the lady you are to take to her lover.’</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“‘Aye, aye, sir,’ answered Simon, and he touched his
-hat, and held the steps steady for me to descend. Ah me,
-it was many a day ere I went up those same steps again.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'><span class='pageno' id='Page_234'>234</span>“At a signal from Sir George Simon cast off, and we
-were sailing smoothly down the bay, while I was all impatience
-until I should see you, as my heart misgave me.
-And I longed to show you the pardon I had, that you
-might know why I had not remained near you in Salem.
-See, here it is now.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Lucille took from her bosom a paper, all crumpled and
-stained and wet from the sea water. By the dim light of
-the fire I saw that it was the pardon she had obtained. I
-kissed it, for it was my first love letter from Lucille, verily
-a strange one. I would have kept it, but she said she
-would hold it until we reached some safe place, as it might
-yet be needed.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“We sailed on,” related Lucille, “until it grew dark, and
-then, in fright, I called from the cabin to know when we
-would land and find you. ‘Presently,’ answered Sir
-George, and I waited, with small patience. Simon lighted
-a lantern, so that its beams fell upon Sir George, as he
-stood at the helm. ‘Is it not true, my lord?’ I called
-to him. ‘Presently,’ he said again, and he smiled. In that
-smile I saw the trick he had played.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“I stood before him then, and, though I feared him, I
-demanded that he instantly set me ashore. At that he
-only smiled once more, and called to Simon to make sail.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“‘Put me ashore, my lord, as you are a gentleman and a
-soldier,’ I pleaded. ‘I had rather be alone in the woods
-than here with you.’ ‘You shall go ashore in good season,’
-he said. I begged and pleaded with him, until his smiles
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_235'>235</span>became frowns. Seeing that it was useless to beg him to
-release me, I cried out that I would throw myself into the
-sea. I ran to the rail, but Simon sprang after me and
-dragged me back. Sir George gave the tiller over to him,
-and, standing before me, said:</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“‘Lucille, I pray you to forgive me for what I have
-done, but I cannot let you go, now that I have found you
-again. Captain Amherst has not escaped; he does not wait
-for you, hiding in the woods. Ere this ’tis likely that he
-is no longer alive. But I am alive, I am here, and, Lucille,
-I love you. I have waited and searched for you many
-years,’ he went on, ‘and now I will not let you go. As
-there is a God above us I mean you no wrong. But I love
-you, oh, how I love you!’”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I must have shown the feeling in my heart as Lucille
-repeated the words of Sir George.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Heed not his words, Edward,” she said; “they were
-only words to me. He said we would sail far away from
-New England, to the New Jersey Colony, where he had
-friends. ‘There,’ he said, ‘you will have learned to care
-for me. And, if you do not, we will go down into the
-depths of the sea together, for, if I cannot have you in
-life I will have you in death.’</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Oh, how I was frightened, my love, but I thought of
-you, and how brave you were, and that gave me courage.
-I told Sir George I would never love him, in life nor
-death, and I said I would not even die with him, so much
-did I hate him. I said I would appeal for help to the
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_236'>236</span>first person I met when I reached shore. Whereat he
-laughed and said it would be many days ere we touched
-land. Then he begged me to enter the cabin, which had
-been fitted up with some degree of comfort, saying that he
-would not intrude himself upon me. More to escape him
-than because I was weary, I went down, and bolted the
-door.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Then Lucille told me of the long voyage that followed.
-Sir George was like a madman with one idea in his head.
-He never sailed near shore, save when supplies were needed,
-and then Simon rowed to the beach in a small boat. The
-two men were most gentle to her, and once, when Simon
-had grumbled at taking the meals to her in the cabin,
-Sir George felled him to the deck with a blow. After that
-the sailor had little to say. Sir George and his man
-steered the craft by turns, and the master stopped at no
-task, however mean, performing all, as did the man. To
-such will love or its counterfeit go.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>On they sailed, and never once did Lucille, by any
-chance, get near enough a passing vessel, or within distance
-of shore, so as to make a cry heard.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>When it was necessary to approach a town harbor to
-anchor from a storm, she was locked in the cabin. Thus
-she spent one month, longing night and day to be free,
-until the roses faded from her cheeks, and the love light
-from her eyes. Ever did Sir George protest his affection
-for her, begging that she would but give him a little hope.
-But never, even by a turn of the head, did she admit that
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_237'>237</span>she heard him, for, after the first few days when she
-demanded that he set her free, she held her peace and spoke
-no words to him.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>This was the tale Lucille related to me, as we sat under
-the ledge of rock by the waters I had saved her from.
-And, as the story grew, I longed for the morrow, that I
-might fight for her honor and my own. I put some driftwood
-on the fire, and it blazed up.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Of the storm, which blew the craft out to sea until the
-voyagers thought it would never return, Lucille told. Then
-provisions ran low, and for three days Sir George had nothing
-but a small crust of bread, and Simon had as little,
-because they put all aside for her. And this she never
-knew till after they had reached the vicinity of a town
-again, when by the ravenous hunger of Sir George and his
-man, she saw they had been near death.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>It seemed strange to me that this man could endure so
-much for love, could battle so to win it, and yet could not
-master himself. Of a truth, he was one who might have
-been great, had not his life been turned in the wrong
-direction.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>The last storm which blew had started the seams of the
-Eagle, and this had compelled Sir George to put in shore
-sooner than he intended, for he was near to his journey’s
-end.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>The remainder of the tale I knew, having seen the sinking
-of the Eagle.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“And now tell me of yourself, Edward,” commanded
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_238'>238</span>Lucille. “Tell me how you escaped from Salem gaol, and
-how you happened to be here, so far away, just as I was
-about to give myself up for lost. You must have had a
-wearisome search for me.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“I forget the weariness of it, now,” I whispered, “for
-I have found you,” and I held her close to me.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Mayhap, only to lose me again,” replied she, with a
-touch of sadness in her voice.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Not if there is still strength in my arm or temper in
-my sword,” I answered, cheerfully, for I am not one easily
-downcast, when I have a fight before me.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Oh, the terrible morrow, I wish it would never come,”
-Lucille whispered.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Have no fear,” I assured her. Then I told her of
-myself. How I with others had broken from Salem gaol
-after I had been near to death in the great press. I told
-of my journey, though I did not relate all my feelings
-when I knew she had sailed with Sir George, as I thought.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>The night wore on. Our fire grew dim, and I bade
-Lucille sleep, for I did not want her to be awake when
-I must go out to meet my enemy. But she said she could
-not slumber, and thus we sat in each other’s arms until
-a greater blackness gave warning that the dawn was at
-hand.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>It was cold and gray and still, save for the noise of the
-waves. Then the grayness became lighter in color.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>The stars that had been bright grew dim. Slowly the
-morning light came, a pale rosy flush in the eastern sky.
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_239'>239</span>Then the edge of the sun peeped up from beneath the
-waves.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I looked at Lucille. She was fast asleep on my arm.
-I placed her gently against the rock, my coat for a pillow.
-It was time to go now. I wondered if I would return, or
-would it be Sir George, who would be there when she
-awoke.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I leaned over and kissed her lightly on the half parted
-lips. Once, twice, three times.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>She stirred, and murmured my name.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Good bye, Lucille,” I whispered. “Good bye, my dear
-love, good bye.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Then I went out to meet my foe.</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_240'>240</span>
- <h2 class='c006'>CHAPTER XXII. <br /> <span class='small'>A DUEL ON THE SANDS.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c007'>My legs and arms were stiff from long sitting, and
-with the cold. When I was out on the sands, away from
-Lucille, I ran up and down the beach to start my blood.
-I beat my arms about my body to limber them, and
-rubbed my hands and wrists. Then when I was glowing
-from the exercise, I dashed the sea water over my face
-and neck until I tingled all over. On I hurried now to
-the place of meeting. I could see Sir George walking
-slowly along the beach, and I marked that Simon was left
-behind, near to where they had kindled their watch-fire
-the night before. As I went along I looked out on the
-sea, which had turned to a rosy golden color under the
-rays of the sun. The waves glistened and sparkled before
-they broke in foam and bubbles on the shelving
-beach, hissing as they rushed up the incline, and then,
-chasing each other back into the ocean again, they dragged
-with them bits of sea weed, little stones and tiny pieces
-of tinted shells. I walked just on the edge of the wet
-sand, for it was easier going there, being firm from the
-beating of the waves, and I saw that Sir George coming
-toward me did likewise.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'><span class='pageno' id='Page_241'>241</span>Now I had fought many duels, but never such a deliberately
-planned one as this was. Usually it was when
-my blood and that of my companion was hot. It was
-a blow, a curse, a rush to a secluded spot where we could
-indulge in a bit of sword play and not be interrupted,
-and in a little while a body with a sword thrust, lying
-on the sward. The slayer being hurried off to a wine
-house with his friends. At most times, too, there had been
-seconds, and a few onlookers, though, when occasion forbade
-them, we made shift to do without.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>There was the time I had met de Gloise, back of the
-chapel that stands on the left of the road, as you leave
-the northern road from Paris. We had no attendants
-then, but were able to accomplish some pretty sword
-strokes. He gave me a thrust in the shoulder, while,
-by some chance, my weapon went into his throat, and he
-never sang any more of those funny French songs.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>And there was Gandes, who was accounted an excellent
-blade. He and I had it out, early one morning.
-’Twas about whether he or I could drink the most red
-wine, if I recall the cause of the quarrel, for I was rather
-wild those days.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Neither of us was sober enough to do more than a
-slouchy bit of work with the weapons, for we had spent
-the night together at the Owl and Peacock, before we
-quarreled, as to which was the wiser bird of the twain
-painted above the inn door. We went out into the yard,
-where only the stable boys were rubbing their sleepy eyes,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_242'>242</span>and crossed swords. Poor Gandes. I thrust him through the
-body, though, sober, I would not have harmed him so
-much, as he was my best friend. He gave me a hasty cut
-in the side which made me stiff for many a day.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Then there was the time when I trod on a stranger’s
-toes, in Munich, he being, at the time, about to call on a
-lady. He called me a clumsy lout, and I replied with
-hot words. So we had it out there in the moonlight,
-behind a church. He was a most delightful man with
-a sword, and it was a real honor to engage him, for he
-had several passes that quite puzzled me for a time. But
-I managed to reach under his guard, and give him a
-wound in the arm pit, which must have prevented him
-from holding a blade for some time. On his side, he came
-near to catching me unawares, and, the result was a lunge,
-that, had it been six inches lower, must have ended my
-fighting days. As it was, I bear the scar on my left cheek
-yet.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Thus I mused as I walked along to meet Sir George.
-I knew this would be no boys’ affair, and I resolved to
-attempt none of those niceties of the fence, of which
-I am capable. For I was not in the mind to take chances
-on my life now, since it had become precious to me
-from yester eve, when I found my love again. I would
-let slip no chance, though, to kill my foe, as only his death
-could wipe out the insult to Lucille.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>We had now come so near that we could greet each
-other. I saluted with my sword, and Sir George returned
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_243'>243</span>the compliment gravely. The next instant we were both
-looking over the ground, whereon we were to engage.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>The place we had selected the night before, was on
-a sort of sandy knoll, and the height of it above the
-surrounding beach prevented the waves from washing up
-on it, save when the tide was full. The ground there
-seemed to be dry and rather shifting, offering no secure
-foot-hold.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“It is a little better in this direction,” said Sir George,
-indicating a shallow hollow place in the sand behind him.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I agreed with him, for there the waters of the tides
-had washed up on the sand, packing it firmly down.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>This place, however, lay a little farther toward the sea,
-and made it necessary for us, if we would fight there, to
-stand, at times, with our ankles in the wet. It seemed
-to be the nearest place that suited, and was, in truth,
-a choice spot for a bit of sword play.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>We threw off our upper garments. Our weapons were
-out of the scabbards as one, and we advanced until we
-stood facing each other. Sir George turned his gaze
-for an instant toward the rising sun on his left. Then
-he looked me in the eyes.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Guard,” he said, quickly.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“On guard,” said I.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Our swords crossed a second later, and the battle between
-us was on.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>For the first time I noticed how pale Sir George was.
-There were dark rings under his eyes, and his face bore
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_244'>244</span>marks of his passion and his recent sufferings, physical
-and mental. But it was no time for such observations
-as these. His steel clicked viciously on mine, and I knew,
-by the pressure and the way he lunged, that he was trying
-to make short work of it.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>The clash of our blades, both good ones, mingled with
-the roar of the surf. It was thrust and parry, parry
-and thrust, the keen pointed weapons gliding along their
-lengths like serpents. We circled about one another, each
-watching, with jealous eyes, for a false move, a misstep.
-Three times did he thrust at my heart, thinking to catch
-me off guard, but, each time, my blade was there before
-his, and the sword slipped off with a hiss as of hot iron.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I tried many a stroke and thrust that I had found of
-service heretofore, but ever did I find his wrist ready, and
-he turned aside my point once when I could have sworn
-that I would have ended it. He laughed at me.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>He thrust at my throat, and, when I would have parried
-it, he shifted his point, on a sudden, toward my heart.
-It was an old trick, and I knew how to meet it. When
-I had turned his blade away by a simple shift of my
-weapon, I laughed back at him, and responded with so
-quick a lunge that I pricked him in the shoulder, thus
-getting the honor of first blood. And I laughed again, as
-he frowned.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>But mortal arms and wrists could not stand the strain
-much longer, and we were both panting, while the sweat
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_245'>245</span>stood in beads on our brows. Through it all our eyes
-never for an instant left each other’s gaze.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Again and again I thrust, until I had his wrist weary
-turning them aside. Ever I sought to reach one spot, not
-that I hoped to wound him there, but I had a trick I
-wished to work. His lips opened, that he might breathe
-more freely, and I saw his chin quiver, while a drop of
-sweat, that had come out on his forehead, rolled down
-on his cheek. I knew the tide was on the point of turning
-now, and the struggle that had been an even one, was
-a jot in my favor. I had forced him to the defensive.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>He saw the gleam of triumph in my eye, and, as if to
-assure me and himself that he was as fresh as ever, he
-smiled and tossed back his head.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>We had circled about each other so often, neither giving
-a step, that there was a little ridge of sand made by
-our feet, enclosing a spot that bore no mark. Slowly, so
-slowly that to an onlooker it could not have been said
-when it happened, Sir George began to step back. It was
-but a slight shifting of the feet, a settling of the body on
-the right leg that did it, until, when another minute or
-two had passed he was without the ring, and I stood
-in the centre.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>The one sweat drop had been followed by others, and he
-was breathing with an effort. His face became paler, nor
-was his sword as quick to respond to the parry. I pressed
-him hard, with the result that I touched him in the arm
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_246'>246</span>twice. I felt, rather than saw, that I had him now
-at an advantage.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Ha! Another inch and I would have ended it then.
-But I had not given him credit for the knowledge of that
-trick. He met my lunge, and turned it off to such account
-that he nipped me in the neck; only a slight wound,
-however. The sight of my blood seemed to enrage him, for
-he came at me fiercely, and I was forced for a moment to
-adopt a defense.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Then, slowly but surely, I made him give ground again.
-I could see the fear and dread come into his eyes, as I
-had seen it in other eyes before.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“How long is it to last?” he muttered, foolishly using
-his breath in words. Yet, in his agony, and it was agony
-when he saw death in front of him, he smiled. And it
-seemed like the same smile I had seen, when he stood
-urging on the men, as I was beneath the great press.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I did not answer, but pushed my sword point more
-and more near to his heart. Twice I tried to reach over
-his guard, but each time he had been too quick for me,
-and my thrusts went high in the air. As I recovered my
-balance a curious thing happened.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>A wave, bigger than any that had come before, broke
-upon the beach and rushed toward us in a mass of foam
-and water. In an instant we were lunging at one another
-knee deep in the sea. As the water flowed down the incline
-again it swept the sand from beneath our feet, and
-we had hard work to stand upright. But even that did
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_247'>247</span>not stop him from making a fierce thrust at my throat
-so that I had to be on the alert to force his point away.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>The next instant came a woman’s scream. We both
-turned, forgetting for the time that our very lives depended
-on the watch we kept of the other.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Lucille was on the beach, running toward us!</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>My heart gave a throb, and I half turned myself about.
-The next moment I realized my folly, and was facing my
-enemy again. But that one moment was almost too long.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I had without thinking lowered the point of my weapon
-and given Sir George the very opening he wanted.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Like a snake his steel slipped half its length over mine,
-and the point was toward my heart. For the life of me
-I could not help the gasp that my breath gave. In my
-desperation I tried a parry that de Sceaul had once taught
-me. I dared not hope it would be effective, for I was
-too late with it.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>His sword drew sparks from mine as it rasped along
-the length; the point was before my eyes.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>With a last fearful lunge toward him I managed to
-force his weapon up, with my own pointing heavenward,
-and only just in time, for the point tore a furrow through
-the skin of my forehead.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>And then there was a sudden snap, and a sound of
-ringing steel. I saw in the hand of Sir George only the
-hilt of his sword. In his eyes was a look of wonder, and
-his head was thrown back, in the effort to see what had
-become of his blade.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'><span class='pageno' id='Page_248'>248</span>Next, ere either of us had time to move, the broken
-sword, whole from the point to where it joined the hilt,
-and which had been tossed high in the air by the force
-of my upward parry, and the spring of the broken steel,
-came down like an Indian arrow, point first.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>And it struck him in the throat, just where there is
-the hollow, scooped-out place, in the breast bone. It went
-in nigh a foot, and stuck up, a fearful thing to behold,
-while, for half the length that protruded the spurting
-blood dyed it red.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Sir George stood for an instant without a movement.
-Then he began swaying and struggling not to fall, as
-does a tree, part cut through. He tried to speak, through
-the blood that rushed to his lips. Then he staggered, and
-came down on his knees.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>He was close to death, and, strange chance, not so much
-by my hand as by his own. For a second I stood and looked
-at him, while he endeavored to regain his feet, but he
-only pitched forward, and lay prone upon the sand, crimson
-with his blood.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>At the same moment a wave came up, covering him
-from sight, and nearly washing me from where I was.
-Lucille, with a cry of horror at what she had seen, ran
-toward us. As the water receded it undermined the sand
-where I stood, so that I was hard put to retain my place.
-Then I saw that Sir George was like to be carried out
-to sea. He dug his hands frantically into the yielding
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_249'>249</span>beach, but his nails only tore deep furrows in the earth.
-His eyes sought mine.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I would not let a dog thus die. So I leaped out after
-him, catching him about the waist, and, after a struggle
-against the action of the undertow, that seemed bound to
-get us both, I managed to half drag, half carry him up
-the slope, out of reach of the water.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Then, as I stooped over, and drew the sword blade from
-his throat, to have a rush of blood follow, I looked up, and
-there stood Lucille.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Are you wounded, Edward?” she asked, her voice
-trembling.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Only a scratch,” I replied.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“And--and--Sir George?” she faltered.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“’Tis a grievous hurt,” I said, and with that Sir George,
-whose eyes had been closed, since I carried him out of
-the water, opened them.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“You have won,” he said, quietly, and he turned so
-that he might not look at either Lucille or me.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Oh, Edward, Edward,” sobbed Lucille. Then I led
-her away.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Simon, who had been absent all this time, came racing
-up the sandy stretch now. He cast himself down beside
-the body of his master, caressing him, and kissing his cold
-face.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Water,” gasped Sir George.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Before Simon could rise I ran to the spring near the
-rock and hurried back with my cap full of the liquid. As
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_250'>250</span>I neared the place where the dying man lay, I saw something
-white, like a piece of parchment, in Simon’s hand,
-and the sailor hurriedly thrust it into his pocket.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Sir George drank eagerly, and Simon and I bathed
-his face.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>The sun was fully up now, flooding us all in the golden
-light. The tide came farther on the sands, the gulls
-flitted out over the waves, and, in the woods back of
-us the birds were singing. It hardly seemed as if a few
-minutes ago that two men were battling there for each
-other’s lives, and that now one was dying.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I walked slowly away, as I thought Sir George might
-not like me near him in his last moments. But he raised
-his hand, and beckoned to me to approach. When I had
-leaned over him, for he could only whisper, I heard him
-say, between his gasps:</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Well--I have lost--but the stake--the stake was worth
-playing for. Had I my life to live over again, the chance
-to--to once more live and love--and--fight, I would not
-change one jot. I had deep laid plans, yet they failed.
-You were in my path, and, when I thought I had made
-an end for you--you came back to torment me, to rob me
-of my love.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Not to rob you,” I protested. “It was a fair fight,
-and she had a right to choose. ’Twas you who sought to
-rob me.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Well, it is all over now,” he rejoined. “We have been
-good foes, and you were a brave man. I honor you for it.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'><span class='pageno' id='Page_251'>251</span>“Nay, as for the honor of the sword, ’tis yours as
-much as mine,” I said. “Better blade have I never met,
-and I have crossed with many.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>He smiled, a little smile of contempt. A man who is
-done with this world can afford to laugh at the power of
-steel.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Let it pass,” he continued, speaking with greater ease
-now that he was near the end. “Let it pass. And now
-seeing that I have not much longer in the land, truly a
-most pleasant land, in spite of all that is said against it,
-dare I make bold to ask a favor?”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“I will serve you, if I may,” I answered.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Oh, it is only a small matter,” he rejoined. “’Tis
-this. When I am laid--laid away, let Simon accompany
-you to Elizabeth town. He has a mission for me there
-that I will not be able to accomplish.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Oh, my God!” he exclaimed suddenly, and his face told
-of the suffering he felt.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I started to raise him up, that he might rest more
-easily.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“It is nothing,” he said. “Dying is a little harder than
-I thought,” and he actually smiled at me.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Might I speak to--to her?” he asked, as a child would
-plead.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I started after Lucille, and found her weeping behind
-the knoll where we had appointed to fight.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Come,” was all I said.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>She followed me without a word, and, when we neared
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_252'>252</span>the place where Sir George was dying, I would have hung
-back, letting her go to him alone.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>However, he motioned me to approach with her, and
-so it was that we stood, Lucille and Simon and I, at his
-side.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Madame,” he said, “will you forgive me for all I have
-done? For the trick I played on you?”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Yes, my lord,” answered Lucille. “Though it was a
-grievous wrong, yet, since you are near to death I do
-forgive you, freely and fully.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“I thank you,” he said, simply.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“And you, sir?” looking at me.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“I, too, can afford to forgive and forget,” I replied, as
-I took Lucille’s hand.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“It is enough,” were his next words. Then a tremor
-seemed to pass over him. I turned Lucille away that she
-might not see the end.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Good bye--Lucille,” whispered, rather than spoke, Sir
-George.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Good bye, my lord,” came falteringly from Lucille’s
-lips, and she burst into tears, with her head on my shoulder.
-I led her away.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>When I turned to look at him I saw that the end was
-come. He had turned over on his face, and his head was
-resting on his folded arms, while a choking sob shook his
-body. He was weeping in death, this man who had dared
-so much for love, and lost.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Simon, who had knelt down by his master, leaned over
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_253'>253</span>him. He appeared to be listening. Then he arose, raised
-his hands to heaven and gave a great cry.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Thus died Sir George Keith, a brave man, a bold man,
-and--well, he is dead. May he rest in peace.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>And we covered him up with the sand, Simon and I;
-with the sand whereon he had fought his last fight.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I was anxious, now, to be away from the place, and
-to get Lucille to some shelter. We lighted a fire, and
-roasted some of the bacon, making a scanty meal, and,
-ere the sun was mid-day high, we were ready to start.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Come,” I said, cheerfully, “our path lies before us,
-and if we hasten we may reach Elizabeth town by night.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Any place away from this,” sighed Lucille. “I shall
-have unpleasant memories of it for many a day.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>We managed to scramble to the top of the cliff, and
-found the place where Kit was tethered. The mare was
-most glad to see me, and whinnied with delight, as I
-rubbed her nose. My saddle made a poor shift for Lucille,
-but I padded it with my coat, making the best seat I could.
-Then, with a last look at the beach, whereon so much had
-passed, I called to Kit, Simon and I stepped out, and we
-laid our course to the southwest.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>The way was rough and soon we had left the wood and
-were traveling over a marsh that required us to be careful
-where we stepped. Our progress was slow, but I hoped, if
-we could not reach Elizabeth, that we could get to a farm
-house, where we might spend the night. Simon walked
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_254'>254</span>on ahead, while I kept at Lucille’s side. We found much
-to talk of, for love furnishes many topics.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>The sun went lower in the west, yet we had not come
-upon sight of a dwelling. It was lonesome and dreary
-enough, and Lucille looked at me once or twice, with fear
-in her eyes.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“We will soon be there,” I said, though I did not believe
-so, for I feared we had mistaken the road.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>As it grew dusk we came to the edge of the marsh and
-entered the woods again. Still there was no sign of house
-or hut. I gave up then, convinced that we were off
-the trail, and must spend another night in the open. It
-was not a pleasant prospect, but there was no help for it.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>There was a sound in the underbrush, and a trapper
-came out. I was right glad to see him. After a little conversation
-I asked him the way to Elizabeth town, and he
-told me that we had come past it, that it was nearly a day’s
-journey to the northwest. I had circled around it in my
-wandering, and Sir George had sailed past it. Truly it
-was strange that we should have ever met.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Well,” I said as happily as I could, when the trapper
-had crashed away, “we must do the best we can. It is
-only one day lost.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I found a place where four trees grew together almost
-in the form of a square. Simon and I cut down cedar
-boughs, and made a rude roof between the trunks. Then
-we enclosed the sides, spread more branches and leaves
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_255'>255</span>on the ground, and had a forest bower, full of many cracks
-and chinks, but some shelter from the wind and dew.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Simon lighted a fire with my tinder box, and we cooked
-almost our last piece of bacon. We finished the meal in
-silence. I wrapped Lucille in my coat when she went inside
-the shelter we had made. She called a good-night to both
-of us.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Then Simon and I sat down beside the glowing embers
-for another night watch. We did not speak. The woods
-were deeply quiet, save for the hoot of an owl or the howl
-of a wolf.</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_256'>256</span>
- <h2 class='c006'>CHAPTER XXIII. <br /> <span class='small'>SHADOWS IN THE NIGHT.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c007'>The hours grew as we sat by the fire, and, presently, I
-noticed that Simon’s head was fallen forward, and he slept.
-I had hard work to fight off the slumber, as I had not
-closed my eyes for two nights, and was weary with my
-journey. I knew I dared not sleep, for, though I did not
-fear Simon, nor hardly an attack from the wolves, while
-the fire burned, yet there was a feeling of vague uneasiness
-with me, a dread that some nameless thing was abroad in
-the forest, and I could not shake it off.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Simon stirred uneasily, and then I heard a faint, far-off
-sound, as of some one walking cautiously through the
-underbrush. Could it be Indians? Our fire was not
-brilliant now, but, fearful that even its faint glow would
-betray us, I scooped up a handful of earth, and dashed it
-on the embers, extinguishing them.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Nearer and nearer came the sound until it was almost
-upon us. I reached over and touched Simon, who awoke
-with a start. Then he heard the sound and looked about
-in alarm. I took up my flint-lock and gave Simon one of
-the two pistols I had, at the same time motioning him to
-make no noise.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'><span class='pageno' id='Page_257'>257</span>“Indians,” he whispered, and I nodded.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>The next moment we saw through an opening between
-the trees not fifty feet away dim shadows in the night; a
-line of figures which we made out to be the red men of the
-woods. One behind the other they marched, silent, almost,
-as spirits, save for a little rustle of the leaves as they
-brushed by them.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Each warrior had a gun, and they wore their war
-feathers. I counted six score ere the last one passed and
-I knew there would be no peace in the land for a time.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>It was the beginning of the Indian uprising of which
-I had heard when near New York, and, with that savage
-band abroad our lives were scarce worth a flint.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Simon and I cowered in silence until we saw no more
-shadows, and then <a id='corr257.15'></a><span class='htmlonly'><ins class='correction' title='web reathed'>we breathed</ins></span><span class='epubonly'><a href='#c_257.15'><ins class='correction' title='web reathed'>we breathed</ins></a></span>, it seemed for the first time
-since the Indians had come into view. The sailor spoke
-no word, but he handed the pistol back to me, like a man
-who was glad he had had no use for it.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>With the savages on the war path it was little chance
-that Elizabeth would escape an attack.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Should we then push on there? I tried to think of a
-better plan, but there seemed none. We would be as much
-exposed to attack in retracing our steps, as in going on.
-If we could reach the town the block house might afford us
-protection until help came. Once in Elizabeth, too, Simon
-and I could aid the settlers in defending the place from the
-Indian attack. There was nothing to do but go on as soon
-as it was light.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'><span class='pageno' id='Page_258'>258</span>That it might be a race for life toward the end, seemed
-certain, as we could not travel without leaving a trail that
-even an Indian boy might follow.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I waited impatiently for the daylight, and it came so
-slowly that I was minded to wake Lucille, and start ere
-the dawn. But I feared to get on the wrong path, and so
-I waited, counting the minutes until the first flush in
-the east.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>No sooner had it tinged the sky than I roused Simon,
-who had fallen asleep again, and bade him get Kit in
-readiness. I entered the bower and kissed Lucille, whereat
-she awoke with a start.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Are we home, Edward?” she asked.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Almost,” I said, cheerfully.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I dared light no fire, for fear of the tale the smoke
-would tell, so we ate the remainder of our bacon cold, with
-the dry biscuit, washing the poor meal down with water
-from a near-by brook. Then observing all the caution we
-could we took up our journey again.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>There seemed to be a better path now, though it was far
-from easy traveling. When we had occasion to speak it
-was in whispers. I watched with jealous eyes every bush
-and tree, starting at each sound, while Lucille on Kit’s
-back was pale with fear.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>The morning had turned to noon. Our only meal was
-water, drunk from oak leaves, that I fashioned to form a
-cup. The spirits I saved, for there was no telling when I
-could get more. Most anxiously did we strain our eyes for
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_259'>259</span>the sight of a house. Yet we went fully two miles after
-our halt at noon, ere we found one. It was Simon who
-first saw it. He pointed between the trees and said:</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Look.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“What is it?” asked Lucille.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“A place where some one lives, I hope,” was my reply.
-We increased our pace. As we came nearer the house I
-thought that it was strangely still and quiet about the spot.
-Kit, too, pricked up her ears, and sniffed as if she did not
-like the air. It was a time to be cautious and so I led the
-mare with Lucille behind a clump of trees. Bidding
-Simon take one of the pistols, and stay there on guard, I
-went forward. I looked on every side of me.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Though it was a farm house there seemed to be no evidence
-of life. There were no cows in the meadow that
-stretched out in back, and not even a dog ran out to bark.
-The chickens and ducks appeared to have flown away. I
-saw that the barn door was open.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>It was a strange house with no one on guard at such a
-time. I proceeded more slowly until I reached the kitchen
-door, which was unlatched. A woman’s dress on the floor
-caught my eye. Thinking now that all was right, and that
-I would find the family within I crossed the threshold,
-giving a knock to announce my coming.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Then such a sight of horror as met my gaze!</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>On the floor were the dead bodies of a man, a woman
-and two little girls. Their heads were away from me, but
-when my eyes had become accustomed to the dimness of the
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_260'>260</span>room, I saw that each one had been scalped. It needed no
-writing on the wall to tell that Indians had been there, and
-recently. With fear-blanched face I ran back to where I
-had left Lucille and Simon. The latter saw the cause of
-my return in my manner, but Lucille asked:</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Were the people there, Edward?”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“No,” I said, “they had gone out.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I knew now that our only hope lay in pushing on with all
-speed, and without stopping to explain further I led Kit
-out into the road, which was fairly good.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“We must hasten, Simon,” I said, and under my breath
-I told him what I had seen.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Kit trotted off, and Simon and I had to run to keep
-up with her. Lucille inquired, with fright showing in her
-eyes, why we had so suddenly left the vicinity of the farm.
-I told her I had learned at the house that by hastening on
-we could reach Elizabeth ere dark, and I was anxious to
-do so.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Already it was getting dusk. We passed by farm houses
-at short distances apart now, so I knew the town must be
-near. There was no sign of life in any of the dwellings,
-however, and in fancy I saw within them such a scene as I
-had first come upon. At other places there were household
-articles scattered about, which showed how the families
-must have fled at the first alarm of the Indians.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Copper kettles, warming-pans, a spinning wheel, now and
-then a chest of linen, strewn along the road, told how the
-colonists had packed whatever of their possessions they
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_261'>261</span>could in a cart and hurried off to the block house, to be
-safe from attack. What they did not take with them the
-Indians carried off or burned.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I glanced on all sides of us. It was so dark that I could
-scarce see, though I made out the village a short distance
-ahead. The log block house stood on top of a little hill,
-and a fire burned on one corner of the roof, a signal to
-refugees.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>My eye had no sooner caught sight of this, and I turned
-to tell Lucille that our journey was at an end, than Simon
-gave a cry. He pointed behind us, terror in his face.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I looked, and there, on the brow of the hill we had just
-descended were the figures of a score of Indians!</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>They were a quarter of a mile behind us, and we were
-half a mile from the fort.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I gave Kit a blow across the flank with my sword scabbard.
-She sprang forward. At the same time Simon and
-I broke into a run. A yell from the savages told us we had
-been observed, and that they were in hot pursuit.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>They were afoot, and I knew that Lucille was safe from
-them, for Kit would carry her to the block.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Ride on ahead,” I called to her. “Simon and I will
-hold them in play until you are safe, Lucille. Ride on
-for your life!”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“I will not leave you, Edward,” she called back, and she
-tried to pull the mare up.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“On, Kit, on!” I shouted.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>The mare heard and started at a sharp gallop.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'><span class='pageno' id='Page_262'>262</span>Lucille clung to her seat, and waved her hand back at
-me.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Though Simon and I had made good speed the Indians
-were now within range. They shot a flight of arrows, and
-several, who had muskets, discharged them. They did not
-hit either of us, and Lucille was now out of danger. Not
-so, however, Simon and I. On came the savages, running
-with great speed, and uttering their war cries.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>There were three fleeter of foot than the others, and they
-were in the lead. I saw if we were to gain the block house
-we must dispose of these or halt them for <a id='corr262.11'></a><span class='htmlonly'><ins class='correction' title='atime'>a time</ins></span><span class='epubonly'><a href='#c_262.11'><ins class='correction' title='atime'>a time</ins></a></span>. Bidding
-Simon halt we drew up short in the road. I told him to
-fire at the one on the left with his pistol, while I took the
-one on the right with the flint lock.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Two quick shots rang out in the darkness. Simon only
-wounded his man, but I had better luck, and the ball went
-through his body, so that he fell doubled up in a heap, and
-then was still.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>The enraged yells of his companions told us he was dead.
-The whole party stopped short and that gave us the chance
-we wanted. At top speed we resumed the race to the fort.
-Lucille was almost there now, and we could see the gate
-cautiously opened to let her in.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Quick, Simon,” I called, for the Indians were after us
-again, and we could not hope with but a single charge in
-a pistol to halt them.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Poor Simon was almost done for with the run. His
-breath came in gasps. I caught him by the arm, and was
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_263'>263</span>helping him along. The nearest Indian was not a rod
-away. With head down, panting from the exertion and
-almost ready to give up I half led, half dragged Simon on.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Then, and it was a welcome sight, the heavy log gate of
-the block house swung open. A score of armed men in
-close formation emerged. I could see the matches of some
-of the muskets burning. The Indians saw them, too.
-With a final yell of rage and defiance they abandoned the
-chase, turned back, and were soon lost to sight in the darkness,
-which had now fallen.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Simon and I reached the gate, the men opening to let
-us pass inside. One, who wore a sword, and who seemed
-to be in command, said:</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“You were only just in time, sir. Had the maid not
-ridden up when she did and warned us of your approach
-we might not have made the sally, for we were deep in
-council, planning how best this uprising of the savages can
-be met.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“I give you thanks,” I said, noting that Lucille had dismounted,
-and was with some of the women.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Few are needed,” rejoined the man who had first
-spoken, “seeing that you are two men, one with a goodly
-weapon; for we have need of fighters now. As for your
-companion I note that he carries a pistol with the powder
-pan empty. We will give him a musket that he may do
-his share in the defense. The smaller weapons carry only
-a little way. I am in command here,” he went on. “Perhaps
-you may have heard of me?”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'><span class='pageno' id='Page_264'>264</span>“I have not the honor,” I said, “having but just arrived
-from a distance, and indeed coming here by a mere chance.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Well, then,” went on the commander of the little fort,
-“I am Captain Philip Carteret, brother to His Excellency,
-Sir George Carteret, Governor of the Jersey Province.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“My brother sailed for London a month ago,” went on
-the Captain, “leaving me in charge of the Colony. Much
-have I found to do, settling the disputes among the people,
-and now with this uprising of the savages, there is like to
-be more work. But you have a soldierly bearing and, I
-doubt not, will be glad of a chance to fire a gun at the red
-men.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“That I will,” was my answer. “You guessed right
-when you spoke of my bearing. I am Captain Edward
-Amherst, late of Salem town, in Massachusetts, whence I
-led a company against St. Johns. This is Simon Rogers,
-a sailor who has business of his own here, and is only a
-fellow traveler with me, though we have fought together.
-The maid who rode up on the mare is my promised wife,
-whom I have brought here that we may wed.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>The introductions being over Captain Carteret led the
-way into the block, and the door was carefully secured.
-Pine torches gave a ruddy, smoky light to the scene, which
-was of great confusion.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Men were here and there, some looking to see that their
-weapons were loaded, others mending a broken stock or
-whetting up rusty sword blades. Women were huddled
-in corners, some weeping, some gazing on with frightened
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_265'>265</span>eyes, and some trying to comfort crying children. All
-about were scattered household goods, through the piles of
-which soldiers made their way to the various parts of the
-block house. I had hardly time to take this all in and see
-that Lucille was being cared for by some of the calmer
-women, when a messenger bade me to supper with Captain
-Carteret. Right glad I was of the invitation, too.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>The Captain’s voice told me to enter when I had knocked
-at the door the messenger indicated. On the rough table
-was a smoking hot meal. Of all the confused assemblage
-the cook, it seemed, had kept his head. I did full justice
-to the roast deer’s flesh, and the fish with the yellow corn
-bread that went with it. When the edge had gone from my
-appetite the Captain told me of the situation. A friendly
-savage had brought word of the Indian uprising two days
-ago. <a id='corr265.16'></a><span class='htmlonly'><ins class='correction' title='Messenger'>Messengers</ins></span><span class='epubonly'><a href='#c_265.16'><ins class='correction' title='Messenger'>Messengers</ins></a></span> were sent to as many of the outlying farm
-houses as possible, and the people made all haste to the
-fort.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Can you stand a siege?” I asked, wishing to know for
-Lucille’s sake, how matters stood.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“The place is stout enough,” said the Captain, “and we
-have men in sufficient numbers, with a goodly supply of
-powder and ball. But the provisions are a point of worry
-to me. There was not time enough to lay in a full larder,
-and, with all the women and children to feed beside the
-men at arms, I fear it will go hard if we are cooped up
-here for any time. But we will do the best we can.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“How many men have you?”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'><span class='pageno' id='Page_266'>266</span>“There are four score fit for fighting,” was the Captain’s
-answer.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>At the close of the meal I made my excuses and went to
-find Lucille. She met me at the entrance of the women’s
-apartment, having come out to learn where I was. I told
-her how strong the fort was, how we had plenty of men
-to defend it with, and enough of ammunition for all the
-Indians in Jersey. She had recovered somewhat from her
-recent fatigue, and looked more beautiful than ever, with
-her hair tossed about, and the roses in her cheeks.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>The women, she said, had been most kind to her.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“It is a comfort to speak to some one in petticoats again,”
-she said. “Just think, I have been over a month, and could
-not even learn if my skirt hung properly.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“A most woeful lack,” I said mockingly. For there was
-no immediate danger now, and we could afford to jest.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Truly a great deprivation,” said Lucille, laughing.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I left her after a time, kissing her good-night, and bidding
-her be of cheer. Then I went back to Captain Carteret,
-to consult with him about the defense of the block.</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_267'>267</span>
- <h2 class='c006'>CHAPTER XXIV. <br /> <span class='small'>HOW SIMON KEPT HIS OATH.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c007'>Summed up our situation was this. We had a few more
-than four score men with which to stand against an attack
-of ten times that number of Indians. And, as we would
-need to detail some men to put out fires, started by blazing
-arrows, it would reduce our fighting force to about eighty
-men.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Fortunately we had plenty of arms, powder was in
-abundance, and we had lead enough to make all the balls
-we could fire. There were a number of women, Captain
-Carteret said, who could mould bullets, and some who were
-able to load muskets.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>The block house was a strong and well built place consisting
-of an upper and lower story, well pierced with loops,
-and comfortable quarters for men and women. All about
-the place was a stout palisade of tough green timber. We
-did not fear that the block nor the palisade could be set on
-fire from the ground, but, as the roof slabs were dry from
-the sun, there was some danger that an arrow, carrying a
-flaming bunch of tow, might start a blaze over our heads.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>However, there was a little place, like a watch tower,
-on the southeast angle of the fort, and we reckoned that if
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_268'>268</span>we placed two men there they could quench any fire which
-started on the roof.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>These matters having been talked of, Captain Carteret
-tallied the men. He gave me charge of two squads to look
-after the north and west sides of the block, while he took
-care of the others. Ammunition was dealt out, instructions
-given and a watch set, for though we did not expect a
-night attack it was as well to be prepared. Then I went
-to the room where the men not on duty were to sleep, and
-lay down on a rude couch.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>It seemed that I had been slumbering but a little while,
-during which I thought I was back in Salem gaol, ere there
-came a thundering summons at the door, and I leaped up
-to find it almost dawn. Once more came the knock, then
-the warning:</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“The Indians! The Indians! Hurry!”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I needed no second telling. It was the message I had
-been waiting for, and it meant there was sharp work ahead.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I drew on my boots, buttoned my coat about me, and,
-wondering how Lucille had fared, grabbed up my sword
-and gun, to hasten where I might find Captain Carteret.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I met him in the main room, where all was confusion.
-Men were getting in each other’s way, some were looking
-for their garments, and many for their weapons, so that
-little speed in preparation resulted. Had the enemy been
-more alert they would have had us at a disadvantage. But
-the red men were wary about rushing the palisades when
-they knew, as they must, what force was behind them.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'><span class='pageno' id='Page_269'>269</span>Captain Carteret was busy answering a dozen questions
-at once. His lieutenants were issuing guns to those who
-had neglected to secure them the night before. Powder
-horns were being filled from casks of the black mixture,
-bullet moulds were gotten ready, and some women were
-melting lead, while a number were dishing up the breakfast.
-It was a cold gray dawn, hardly light enough to
-see by.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Hot work,” was the Captain’s greeting to me, as he
-waved half a dozen men with inquiries aside, to drain a
-mug of ale. “The scouts came in an hour ago with the
-news that the skulking devils were moving about in all
-their war paint, getting ready for an attack. The most of
-them are well armed too, having as good muskets as we
-have. Well, ’tis as I often remark, those in authority will
-never seem to learn that they are putting weapons into the
-hands of devils, when they supply guns and ammunition
-to the Indians.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“How many are there?” I asked.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“About four hundred out there now as near as could be
-made out. There are some of the Assumpinks, a few
-Roanokes, plenty of Mingoes, a score of Andastakas and
-the rest Nashaimes and Shackamaxons. They will not be
-here for an hour yet, since an Indian loves not to fight on
-an empty stomach, when he can sound his war whoop on
-a full one.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“The devils know they have us cooped up here where
-we cannot get away,” I remarked.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'><span class='pageno' id='Page_270'>270</span>“Aye, that they do, Captain,” agreed the acting Governor.
-“And, if we do not stand them off until help arrives
-from Newark, it will go hard with us who are alive after
-the place is taken.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Something like order now began to make itself felt.
-Breakfasts were hastily eaten, and the men sent to which
-ever side of the palisade they were to defend. The muskets
-were all loaded, pails of water set handy and boys were
-appointed to carry the discharged guns from the men to
-the women, bringing back loaded ones in their place. Oh,
-how I wished for a cannon or two on top of the block.
-Captain Carteret and I were about to leave the main room,
-and go to our stations, when there came a knock at the
-door. Simon entered as the Captain called out “come in.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>The sailor looked at the commander, but did not appear
-to see me. He seemed to be excited about something, and
-was fumbling in his jacket pocket.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“I have business with you, Captain Carteret,” he said.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I started to leave.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“It concerns you also, Captain Amherst,” went on the
-sailor, so I remained wondering what was to come. Doubtless
-a request concerning his position in the block.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>But Simon pulled from his inner pocket a folded parchment,
-which, by certain stains of sea water on it, I knew
-must have been on board the Eagle, probably a document
-that Sir George Keith carried, and had desired Simon to
-deliver for him, when he found himself unable.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“When I have told what I have to tell,” began Simon,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_271'>271</span>“and so fulfilled my oath, I pray that there may be holden
-no enmity against me. For I only do what I am bound
-to do.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Say on,” came from Captain Carteret. “If you are in
-no fault none will bear you ill will. Be brief, for time
-presses.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I stood there, wondering how Simon’s oath could have
-aught to do with me.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Well, then,” went on Simon, “I am, or was a servant
-to Sir George Keith, who lately died.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“What, Sir George Keith, of Lincolnshire?” interrupted
-Captain Carteret, “was he in these parts?”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“He--he was,” said Simon, with such a hesitation over
-the words that the commander cried out:</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Do you mean that he is dead?”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Simon nodded.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Dead,” the sailor continued, “and lying beneath the
-sands, unless, as is no doubt the case, the waves have ere
-this washed his body out to sea.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>The Captain looked at Simon curiously and then at me.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Before my lord died,” resumed Simon, “he called to me,
-and with almost his last words swore me that I would do
-as he bade me, so that he might be revenged on the man
-who had slain him.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I started at this, for I began to see which way the wind
-blew.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Having given my oath,” went on Simon, “I left my
-master, after he had been foully slain----”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'><span class='pageno' id='Page_272'>272</span>“’Tis a lie!” I cried, white with anger. “Sir George
-was killed in a fair combat, and he would have made an
-end of me had not his sword broke.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>In great wonder Captain Carteret held up his hand to
-end our dispute, and Simon resumed.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“He gave me a message,” he said, like a child who repeats
-a lesson well learned, “and it was of this import.
-‘Say to Sir George Carteret, or to his representative, that
-a traitor walks abroad in the land. I pray you to see to
-it that he is taken and sent to England to answer for the
-crime against His Majesty. As you are my friend fail not.’
-And I took an oath that I would do this, which I have done.
-Before he died Sir George Keith gave me a parchment to
-give to the Governor, when I should find him, as I have
-now, or one who stands for him. Therefore I have kept
-my oath.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“And the document, the parchment,” said Carteret
-hastily, “where is it, man? What is it all about, now that
-you have done talking?”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“This is the document,” said the sailor, and he gave a
-water stained parchment to the commander.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Now there was silence in the apartment, while a man
-might have counted a score.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Warrant, royal warrant,” read the Captain, bringing
-his eyes close to the writing, while I listened, my heart almost
-ceasing to beat. Had I fought so hard only to lose
-all at the end?</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Hum, what is this? ‘Warrant from His Majesty----’”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'><span class='pageno' id='Page_273'>273</span>The reading was not finished, for it was interrupted by
-such a chorus of savage yells sounding hideously from without,
-that it seemed the Indians must be at the very door.
-At the same time we heard our men shout a defiant reply,
-and then began shooting apparently on all sides at once.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Quick!” cried the Captain, “to your men, Amherst.
-The imps have begun the attack. This matter can wait,”
-and he thrust the warrant into his pocket. “Join the defense,”
-to Simon. “I will see you again. Hurry now.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Out ran Carteret, while I followed at his heels. There
-were many emotions in my heart. As I passed the women’s
-quarters I saw Lucille standing in the doorway. I blew a
-kiss to her from my finger tips as I had no time to stop.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Keep up a good spirit,” I shouted.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>She waved her hand in reply, and I went to the fight
-with a happier mind. A minute later I was among my
-men at the palisade, cautioning them not to waste powder
-and ball.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>That there was need of all our defenders I saw as soon
-as I peered through a loop. For though not a foe was in
-sight save now and then when one stepped from behind a
-tree or stone to deliver a shot, yet the puffs of smoke all
-about us told me the scouts had not correctly rated the
-strength of the enemy. They numbered nearer to twenty
-score than to eight. The war party must have been joined
-by another band in the night.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Never had I heard such a din before. It seemed like
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_274'>274</span>one long endless screech that rose and fell as might a
-weird song of death.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>The savages would remain concealed while loading their
-guns. Then they would peer out unexpectedly from behind
-some tree stump or stone, fire, and drop back again
-before our men had time to take aim. It was like shooting
-at quail.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>This kind of firing kept up for some time with little advantage
-to our side. We had four men badly hurt by bullets
-that came in the loops, or by splinters knocked from
-the logs. And, as far as I could see, we had not killed a
-single Indian. I ordered my men to cease firing, as it was
-but a waste of good powder and ball, and the women were
-weary reloading the guns. I noted that Carteret’s men
-had likewise held their fire.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“We will try an old trick and see how it works,” I remarked
-to my squad. “It may be we can teach these red
-men something of the arts of war.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I told off twenty of the best shots, and stationed them
-at the farther ends of the sides of the palisade where I was
-in charge, leaving the middle undefended. I gave four
-men two long sticks each, and had them place hats and
-caps on the ends. These men I bade lie down on the
-ground, about the centre of the palisade.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>The score with the guns I had stationed at the upper
-loops, where they stood on a little ledge of wood, built
-there for that purpose. Each man had two loaded guns
-with him. The rest of my defenders I grouped near the
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_275'>275</span>loops where the men with the caps on the sticks were. I
-told them, when I gave the word, to fire as quickly as
-they could, but not to be particular whether they aimed or
-not, as long as they kept up a steady fusillade. All was
-now arranged to my satisfaction.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Ready!” I called.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Up went the long sticks with the hats on the ends, and,
-at the same time the guns of the men near them rattled
-out with flame and smoke. To the Indians it must have
-looked just as I intended it should, as if we were desperate
-and were attempting a sally under the protection of
-the fire of a few of the men. The sight of the dozen caps
-at the top of the palisade must have looked like the heads
-of men trying to climb over.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>As there was no firing from the two ends of the stockade
-where I had stationed the score of men, the Indians
-were deceived into believing that part deserted. Those
-savages opposite the loops there at once leaped out from
-behind their cover to take part in the fight they looked for
-in front of the middle of the palisade, as soon as our soldiers
-should have climbed over.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>They uttered yells and whoops, and half the caps were
-riddled with bullets. But half a hundred red skins were
-in the open now in front of my marksmen.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Let them have it all together!” I cried. “In the name
-of the King and Elizabeth! Fire!”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>There was a burst of fire and a hail of lead into the
-half naked ranks, and the screeches that followed told us
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_276'>276</span>we had done some scath. Ere they had time to recover
-from their surprise my men let them have the contents of
-the second guns right in their midst.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>When the smoke blew away we counted twenty-three
-dead bodies, while several more were desperately wounded.
-We had struck them a hard blow with no loss to ourselves,
-and they retreated to cover again.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Ha, that was well done; most excellently done,” I heard
-a voice behind me say.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I turned about.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Traitor, or no traitor, that was as prettily planned and
-executed as I could do myself,” and Carteret stood beside
-me.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“I am no traitor,” I said sternly, but, when I would
-have said more he stopped me.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“They have learned a lesson that will serve them for
-some time,” the Captain went on. “But, Amherst, grave
-matters press on the two sides I command. I have lost
-three men killed, and the rest seem afraid to fight, saying
-there is some mischief in the air. I think the devils are
-massing to rush the place. At least there is something
-afoot, for they have not fired a shot for the last five minutes.
-That is why I came here.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I went with the Captain to the south side and looked
-from a loop. There was not an Indian in sight, nor were
-there any of the wicked puffs of smoke to tell where they
-hid. It was puzzling.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Have you noticed any suspicious movement?” I asked.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'><span class='pageno' id='Page_277'>277</span>“None,” he said, “save that one of my men remarked
-not long since that he never knew before how many stumps
-there were in the open space between the block and the
-forest.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Stumps?” I said, and then I looked out again.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Aye, stumps,” said Carteret. “For myself I cannot
-call to mind when there were so many there, but, perchance
-I never noticed it closely.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I saw what it meant now.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“They are stumps that have put forth green shoots since
-morn,” I said. “And, mark you how those same stumps
-seem to have legs?”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Green sprouts? Legs?” repeated the Captain, like a
-man sorely puzzled.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Yes,” I said, “look.” Then I showed him that, though
-the body of the stump was black and dead, yet on the
-top were bright green little twigs.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Carteret rubbed his eyes to see better.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Note,” I went on, “that large stump with knobs on
-it, which give it the appearance of a man’s face.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“I see it,” he replied.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“There was a stone beside it three minutes ago,” I proceeded,
-“but it is gone now.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Did the stone move?” he asked.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Or the stump,” I suggested, and then he knew what
-I meant.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Every stump, and there were three score, hid an Indian.
-As the red men slowly wiggled along after the manner
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_278'>278</span>of snakes, they pushed the dead wood ahead of them to
-deceive us and protect themselves. It was a clever ruse,
-but we must consider how to beat it. We could not hope
-to hit the savages while they were so well protected. I
-said so, and the Captain agreed with me. Then I called
-to mind his remark about traitors.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“It is perhaps ill for one accused of treason to advise
-what to do,” I said stiffly.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Tut, tut, man, I have not judged you yet,” he spoke
-quickly. “Every man is innocent until he is proved
-guilty. To me you are what you seem, a brave soldier.
-That is enough for us now.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I liked him better after that, and told him a plan I
-had formed. It would need to be put into operation
-quickly, as the stumps were approaching nearer.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>It was the plan of the Indians to get as near to the
-stockade as possible under cover of the stumps, and then
-to make a rush. Then the block would be turned to a
-shambles, for we could not cope with the overwhelming
-numbers that would clamber in, once all our force was
-engaged on one side. The only way I saw to defeat the
-enemy was to fire as many volleys as we could just as they
-charged on us, throwing them into a panic as quickly as
-<a id='corr278.24'></a><span class='htmlonly'><ins class='correction' title='possibly'>possible</ins></span><span class='epubonly'><a href='#c_278.24'><ins class='correction' title='possibly'>possible</ins></a></span>, and breaking up their ranks.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I thought, as did the Captain, that we could safely draw
-most of the men to the south side of the stockade, leaving
-a few on the other sides to keep up a slow fire, so that
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_279'>279</span>the Indians would not see that we had discovered their
-ruse. Carteret agreed that this was the best to be done.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Accordingly most of the force was summoned quietly
-to the south face, and all the available muskets were
-collected, so that there was three for each man. The
-guns were all loaded, one being held ready to fire when
-the word was given, the other two being on the ground
-back of each defender. I had the women loaders come
-as near to the men as was safe, so that they could be on
-hand to charge the first gun as soon as it was fired, and
-the second one taken up. They could do the same with
-the second gun, and, as they were quick fingered, we would
-be able to fire five volleys so rapidly that I did not believe
-the line of Indians would be able to travel more than half
-way to the palisade from the place where they emerged
-from behind the stumps. Then having sent two more
-men to the little watch tower to pick off the Indians who
-might get to the top of the stockade I reckoned that we
-were all prepared.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>It was a pity, I thought, that the block was not built
-with bastions, so that we could deliver a cross fire. But
-I nearly secured this effect by having the men cut the loops
-slanting so that the gun barrels could be pointed in to the
-left and right from either side.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Closer and closer came the stumps. We could see now
-that the twigs of green extended back beyond the logs,
-trailing on the ground. Beneath this green bower was
-the Indian. On they came slowly, like emerald serpents,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_280'>280</span>with huge black heads. Of a sudden I noted that the forward
-movement had ceased. There were undulations of
-the trailing twigs.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Make ready!” I shouted. “Here they come!”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>And on they came with a rush. Whooping, yelling and
-screaming like so many imps of darkness, nigh a hundred
-of them, and each one with a gun or tomahawk.
-The dead stumps had come to life.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Fire!” shouted the Captain and I in the same breath.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>The volley that answered laid many of the savages low.
-Backward each man threw his discharged piece, to have
-it snatched up by the waiting women, who braved death
-in their own defense. Up were caught the second guns.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Fire!” I called again.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Once more the muskets spat out death. A score of red
-men toppled over on their faces, their dying yells sounding
-high above the din. The useless guns were tossed
-aside, and the third musket thrust through the loops.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>The bullets of the attackers rattled on the logs of the
-palisade as hail in winter. Several of our men were killed
-because the loops were so large.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>The triple rain of lead had cut a wide swath in the
-Indians’ ranks, but they never seemed to heed, and came
-on as fiercely as at first. They were so near now that
-when the men tried to draw back the discharged guns from
-the loops some of the enemy seized them by the barrels
-and tried to pull them through the slits.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'><span class='pageno' id='Page_281'>281</span>By this time the women had the first lot of muskets
-reloaded. It was almost our last hope.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Fire!” I called again, drawing my sword, in anticipation
-of a rush of savages over the palisade.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>The fourth volley pealed out. As the smoke rolled
-away I saw a few hideous faces, surrounded with feathers,
-thrust over the top of the logs. The men in the tower
-fired, and they dropped back.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Four more of our men fell away from the loops; three
-dead, the other sorely wounded. The remainder of the
-defenders seized the muskets they had fired the second
-time, which would have made the fifth round. If it went
-out, and did not stay the assault, then it was all over with
-us.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>But it did.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I peered out and saw the Indians on a dead run for the
-forest. They had enough of the white man’s leaden medicine.
-And they did not stop to take their dead with them,
-in such great haste were they. But they could scarce
-have done so, had they desired, for the dead far outnumbered
-the living. Our volleys had mowed them down as a
-reaper does the ripe grain.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>For a time we were safe, but at great cost, for we had
-lost ten men, and there was much sorrow in the block.</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_282'>282</span>
- <h2 class='c006'>CHAPTER XXV. <br /> <span class='small'>IN THE NAME OF THE KING.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c007'>Captain Carteret and I clasped hands when we saw
-that the enemy had been repelled for the time. They
-hardly would renew the fight for a few hours, I thought,
-and we would have a chance to rest and get something to
-eat, for it was now afternoon, and we all knew that breakfast
-had been a long way back. So leaving a sentinel on
-guard at each face of the palisade, we sent the other men
-away. Carteret and I went to his quarters.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>As the door opened I saw Simon standing in the centre
-of the room.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Have you been here since the fighting began?” asked
-the Captain of him.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“I have,” answered Simon. “My life was not my own
-to lose it by a stray bullet. When my oath is fulfilled I
-will fight.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“There was need of every man,” replied Carteret sternly,
-“oaths or no oaths. I like not cowards, even though they
-come with warrants from the King.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Simon made no response.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Now, as concerns this matter,” continued the commander,
-“which we had to break off when the battle began.
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_283'>283</span>Sir George Keith, and a braver man there never
-lived, was my boyhood friend, Amherst, and I am much
-grieved to learn that he is no more. I would have served
-him living, and, if I can I will do so dead. It seems, Amherst,
-you are interested in the affair, the nature of which
-is not clear to me. Let us see what is in the royal warrant,”
-and he drew the parchment from his pocket.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“What is it about, Simon, for I am no hand at the law.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Thereupon Simon related the tale, as he had it from his
-master, I suppose, of how I had fought on the side of
-Duke Monmouth, and had been adjudged a traitor, but
-had escaped ere I could be sold to slavery. As Simon
-progressed I saw the Captain’s face grow grave and stern,
-for, it seemed, he was a great friend at court, and all his
-people had been against Monmouth. Therefore he had
-little liking for a rebel like myself, and one who was accused
-of treason.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“What have you to say?” asked Carteret, when Simon
-had finished.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Much,” I replied, and I began to think.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Truly I seemed to be in sore straits. If there was but
-some way out of it with honor, most gladly would I have
-welcomed it. For I could not let myself be taken now,
-and separated from Lucille, just when I had found her
-again. If I was sent back to England under arrest as a
-traitor (though I never admitted I was one, for I had no
-mind to betray my own country) I might count on a long
-imprisonment, if not death, and I would never see my
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_284'>284</span>love more. Then I hoped that a plan of escape might
-come to me, and so, after all, foil Simon.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“The matter need not be decided now,” I said as though
-I had my case all prepared, but only waited convenience
-to try it. “There is no occasion for haste, as I promise I
-will not run out among the red devils howling for our
-scalps. Let it rest.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Suppose you are killed?” suggested Simon. “What
-then becomes of the warrant?”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Why, you may keep it, Simon,” I said. “There is no
-law that will reach the dead.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“But I am under oath to a dead man to see the warrant
-properly served on a live man,” expostulated the sailor,
-“and you are the person mentioned.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“’Tis a serious matter,” spoke up the Captain, “and
-one, the like of which I never knew before. To be strictly
-within the law I must arrest you, though you need not
-hand over your sword, nor suffer imprisonment. For we
-need your counsel and stout arm in the defense of the
-block. The Indians have only tasted blood, and want
-more. Our stubborn defense has roused them to a pitch
-of fury, and they will soon be swarming about our ears
-again.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Then I am to consider myself a prisoner,” I said, as
-calmly as I could; for I did not like Captain Carteret’s
-easy compliance with Simon’s demands.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“A prisoner, if you please,” replied the Captain. “The
-other details may wait until the more pressing matter of
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_285'>285</span>the Indian attack is settled. After that we may have no
-need of captors or prisoners, either.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“’Tis very likely,” I said grimly, “seeing that we have
-but seventy fighting men left to stand against more than
-seven hundred.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>But I was not as easy as I pretended about the matter
-of the royal warrant. I knew it would not dared be
-ignored by Carteret, and Simon would see to it that the
-Captain did not fail to execute it.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Yes, it is necessary that you be considered under
-arrest,” went on the commander, “though never did a jailer
-serve a warrant with less liking for the task. For, mark
-you, Amherst, I had a liking for you as soon as you and
-the sweet maid came in, and the affection has grown when
-I see how well you can fight,” and all the while he was
-turning the document over and over in his hand, as if he
-had hold of an unpleasant object. He looked on both sides
-of the parchment, but made no move to open it and
-learn the contents. Simon was watching both of us with
-a pleased light in his eyes.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Since then you are under arrest,” proceeded the Captain,
-“I believe it is in accord with the law that I read the
-warrant to you. I am not very well versed in legal lore,
-but, mayhap, I can make some small shift at this.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Thereupon Carteret, assuming a dignified air, that was
-in strange keeping with his powder-grimed face, and his
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_286'>286</span>battle-torn clothing, opened the warrant. He read over
-the first few lines to himself, and then burst out with:</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Providence preserve us! But this is more than passing
-wonderful and strange! Can it be that I read
-aright?”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>And while Simon watched him eagerly, and I with fear
-at what was to come, the Captain read what was written,
-skipping half a dozen words, every now and then.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“‘Warrant--hum--for one Captain Edward Amherst--hum--did
-on divers occasions--hum--practice the said detestable
-arts, wickedly and feloniously and traitorously,
-upon and against--hum--the deponents John Bly, Deliverance
-Hobbs and Benjamin Proctor.’ What is this?
-‘Wherefore, that is to say, the said--in manner following--hum--is
-hereby charged with witchcraft.’</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Witchcraft!” he fairly shouted at the end. “Witchcraft?
-Has that vile malady come among us?”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Witchcraft?” faltered Simon, his face white with fear.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Witchcraft?” I cried out, wondering what would happen
-next.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Witchcraft? Who talks of witchcraft?” asked a sweet
-voice behind us, and we turned to behold Lucille, who had
-come in unobserved.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Aye, witchcraft,” replied Captain Carteret, the first to
-recover from the surprise. “’Tis little, madame, that you
-can have to do with this crime, which makes the bravest
-and boldest to shudder in fear. For the evil repute of it
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_287'>287</span>and the terror it has wrought, has spread to Elizabeth
-town, even from Salem.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Perchance I may have more to do with it than at first
-appears,” said Lucille. Then I happened to remember
-something of a certain document she had.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Let us consider,” went on Carteret, moving a little
-away from me, and taking care not to look me in the eye.
-“Simon, you had this warrant, and when you gave it to me
-I supposed it was for treason against His Most Gracious
-Majesty, as you stated. ’Tis so endorsed on the outside.
-How came you by it?”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“From Sir George Keith,” answered Simon, “as he lay
-dying on the sands, slain----”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Nay, not slain,” I interrupted sternly, “speak the
-truth. Not slain, but killed in a fair fight, though it was
-not my sword that dealt the fatal blow.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“When he lay dying,” went on Simon, correcting himself,
-but, otherwise, not heeding me, “he called me, his
-bond servant, to him, and made me swear an oath that I
-would take the warrant, and following Captain Amherst,
-command the first King’s representative I met, to serve
-it. This I did, for Sir George obtained permission from
-Captain Amherst, that I might accompany him to this
-place.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Said he what the warrant was for?” asked Carteret.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Only that it was for treason,” responded Simon. “I
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_288'>288</span>marked that he pulled two documents from his pocket,
-looked at them both, and giving me one, replaced the
-other in his breast. Then he died, and we buried him in
-the sands.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I knew then what had occurred. Sir George had made
-an error. He possessed the original warrant of treason
-against me, and also the one for witchcraft that he had
-been at pains to secure in Salem. The two documents
-were together, and, knowing that the charge of being a
-witch had failed, he sought, even though he knew he would
-be dead, to have me apprehended on the other. But he
-had given the wrong warrant to Simon. So that now the
-only document I feared was buried with the dead. Ere
-this the sea had probably washed away all trace of the
-grave, and, mayhap, the silent occupant.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I was a free man!</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Sir George had overreached himself, and set me at
-liberty, when he meant to send me to prison.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Know you aught of this witchcraft?” asked the Captain
-of Simon, never looking at me.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“I heard somewhat of it,” was the sailor’s answer.
-“There was talk, when I left Salem, that Captain Amherst
-and others had done many grievous wrongs to innocent
-persons. I heard something, too, of a warrant for
-him, but I was not there at the time, being away on business
-for my lord. Doubtless Captain Amherst fled ere
-the warrant could be served. But ’tis strange, though,”
-went on Simon, “that Sir George should speak of a charge
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_289'>289</span>of high treason against the King, and give me only a warrant
-for witchcraft.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“His mind may have played him false,” suggested Carteret.
-“This often occurs to those about to die.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Perchance,” said Simon, gloomily.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>But I knew what had happened.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“No matter,” came from Carteret, “the wording of the
-warrant is of small consequence. Witchcraft being a
-crime, may well be considered treason against His Majesty,
-and that is what Sir George meant, I suppose. So, albeit
-I am little versed in the manner of apprehending spirits,
-yet I must do my duty, for I am the Governor now, and
-the representative of the King. ’Tis ill to judge a man
-ere he is tried, and you may prove no witch, Captain Amherst,
-but an honest gentleman, and a soldier. Therefore
-assuming that you are such, yet I want your promise, or,
-seeing that it savors of war now, your parole, that you will
-not escape.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Escape?” I inquired. “Escape? Where to? How?”
-for I was not yet ready to tell certain things.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“You must promise that you will not try to get away
-by any means such as witches use; the riding of broom
-sticks, of fence rails, or on the back of a black cat (though
-I do not believe we have one in the place) since I have
-heard all these means mentioned as being of service to
-witches when they wish to escape through the air.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“I promise,” I replied, as gravely as I could.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“And also promise that you will work no harm to any
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_290'>290</span>in the block house by the black art,” went on Carteret.
-“Though it might serve, could you practice some devil’s
-trick on those red servants of His Majesty of the lower
-regions, who howl without. Say, Captain,” he continued,
-eagerly, and looking at me for the first time since he had
-read the warrant, “would it not be within your province
-and power to summon a horde of witches and have them
-torment the Indians? That would be fine. The savages
-would be filled with fear and trembling and the terror of
-death, and leave us alone.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Could you not work some such black art as that,” he
-went on earnestly. “’Twould be a noble use for your
-powers, and might even serve to absolve you when it comes
-to trial. What say you?”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Why do you speak like a child?” I answered with some
-anger. “Enough of this. I give the promises you want
-readily, because there is no need to make them. I have
-no more power as a witch than have you or Simon or----”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“The Lord forbid!” exclaimed Carteret, with fervor.
-And he shrank back as if to escape contact with me.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Then you cannot ride a fence rail?” he asked when he
-had studied over the matter a while longer.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Nay,” I said, mockingly, for I was weary of the farce.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Nor a broom stick?”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Nay.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Nor a black cat?”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Peace! Peace!” I cried; “this is worse than to fight the
-Indians.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'><span class='pageno' id='Page_291'>291</span>“And you can work no magic on them, then?” persisted
-Carteret.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Not so much as would cause a papoose to cry out.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I thought the commander looked disappointed, forgetting
-his fear of my witch powers in his desire to see them
-worked on the savages.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Well, you may consider that you are on parole,” he
-went on after a pause.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“And you will see, will you not, Captain Carteret, that
-he is sent back to Governor Phips?” asked Simon. “For
-that was the last wish of Sir George.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Tut, tut, Simon,” said Carteret, “the matter is out of
-your hands now, though you did your part, and kept your
-oath as you should. Captain Amherst is my prisoner on
-parole, and I will consider what further to do, when we
-have more time, and a greater security in which to discuss
-it.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“But I have somewhat to say now, if it please you, Captain
-Carteret,” I broke in, at the same time stepping forward.
-Lucille kept near me. “It will not be much.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Well?”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Since it seems that Simon has this warrant against
-me,” I began, “I will tell you that in Salem town, whence
-I came I was arrested as a witch about a month back.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Carteret started as though to leave the room.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Bah!” I cried, “are you afraid of that man? Why,
-you would have laughed had you been there to have heard
-the tales of witchcraft related as evidence in court.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'><span class='pageno' id='Page_292'>292</span>And then I told Carteret all that had happened, save
-only about the first warrant Sir George had, which was
-for treason, sure enough, though I did not hold it so.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“You seem to have suffered much, you and Mistress Lucille,”
-said the commander, when I had finished, “and
-your tale savors of the truth. But as I am only acting
-as Governor, and the representative of the King in the
-absence of my brother, I must move cautiously in the
-matter. If I did not serve the royal warrant, even though
-it be for witchcraft, which you say does not exist, I may
-be held to strict account. So though I am loath to so do
-I must hold you as a prisoner under the aforesaid parole.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Lucille had been listening to all that was said. At the
-last words of Carteret she took a step forward, and drew
-from the bosom of her dress a sea-stained document, the
-import of which I knew. She held it out to Carteret.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“What? More warrants?” he asked, smiling a little.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Read,” said Lucille.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>He unfolded the parchment.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“‘Royal’--hum--there is a blot here,” he read, “‘royal,’
-oh yes, ‘pardon,’ that is it. ‘Royal pardon given by His
-Excellency, Sir William Phips, Governor of Massachusetts,
-to one Captain Edward Amherst, of Salem town, who is
-accused of the crime of witchcraft.’ Why--why----”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Aye, ‘why, why,’” mimicked Lucille. “What now of
-prisoners and paroles?”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Carteret stared at the pardon in his hand.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'><span class='pageno' id='Page_293'>293</span>“Why, this nullifies the warrant,” he said slowly, “if it
-be a true pardon.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“True?” exclaimed Lucille. “You will find it true
-enough. I saw it written. Read to the end.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Captain Carteret read:</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“‘Witness our hand and seal, in the name of His
-Majesty the King.’”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Then while we stood silent, there arose a terrible cry
-outside. It was followed by musket shots, and then we
-heard the Indian war whoop.</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_294'>294</span>
- <h2 class='c006'>CHAPTER XXVI. <br /> <span class='small'>THE LAST FIGHT.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Another attack!” exclaimed Carteret. “Quick, Amherst,
-or they’ll be swarming about our ears. Take charge
-of your men again. It is our last chance!”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“And my parole?” I asked, coldly.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Is not required. You are not on parole. You are
-free.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Out dashed Carteret, tossing the pardon to Lucille.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“It will be a battle to the death,” he called back.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Simon, who looked the picture of disappointed rage,
-hurried from the room. I had only time to embrace and
-kiss Lucille, to tell her to keep up a brave heart, and then
-I rushed out to take my place among my men.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>The din was terrific. Added to the yells of the savages,
-and the gun shots, were the cries of defiance from those
-within the stockade who had rallied to the fight, discharging
-their muskets as fast as they could load. So quickly
-had the attack of the Indians been met, due to the vigilance
-of the sentinels, that only a few of the red men
-gained the top of the palisades. These had been shot
-down, and the van of the storming force had been obliged
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_295'>295</span>to retreat, but they fired from behind rocks and trees, some
-of the bullets wounding our soldiers.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I reached the stockade at a point where there were none
-of my men, just as one savage, his scalp lock gay with
-feathers, gained the top of the posts, and with reckless
-bravery leaped down inside. No sooner had he recovered
-his footing than he dashed straight at me. I was so surprised
-at the suddenness of his appearance and action, that
-I stood still for a moment.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>The Indian raised his arm, there was a flash of light,
-and his tomahawk grazed my temple, cutting the skin
-slightly. Then the fellow sprang at me. But my sword
-was out, and ere he reached me I had run him through the
-body. So he never threw any more tomahawks.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>The attack on the fort was becoming more fierce every
-second. I was startled to see that the sun had gone down,
-and that it would be dark in a little while. This was
-borne upon me when I saw the ruddy reflection of a fire
-which the Indians had kindled in front of the block. It
-shone on the logs, but cast into shadow the savages who
-were behind it. Thus they could see whatever went on in
-the place, while we were blinded by the glare, and could
-not observe them.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Our only hope lay in keeping up a rapid fire, so that
-they might not get near enough to <a id='corr295.25'></a><span class='htmlonly'><ins class='correction' title='charge'>charge.</ins></span><span class='epubonly'><a href='#c_295.25'><ins class='correction' title='charge'>charge.</ins></a></span> And this hope
-was bound to become futile soon. Indeed our position
-was most trying. I was encouraging my men all I could,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_296'>296</span>firing a musket every time I saw so much as a finger of
-the enemy exposed, and all the while trying to devise some
-plan to beat off the foe when Captain Carteret sent a messenger
-to bid me come to him. Telling the men to be as
-sparing of the powder as they could, and to never leave
-the loops for an instant, I went to the commander.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I found him loading and firing away at a great rate.
-He took me to one side.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“I’ve been noticing some sort of a movement among the
-Indians at the rear of the place,” he said. “I fear they
-are up to some trick. It looks as if they were carrying
-brush and branches of trees about.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“That means but one thing,” I said.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“What?”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“They are going to smoke and burn us out. Going to
-try us by fire as well as by bullets.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“To the tower,” he rejoined, “we can see what they are
-doing from there.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>It was as I had said. Already the savages had piled
-up a big heap of brush within a short distance of the north
-wall of the palisade.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Well,” said Carteret grimly, “I guess they mean to get
-at us after all.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“It looks so,” said I.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Have you any plan?” inquired the Captain.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Have you?” I asked, but he made no reply.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>The sight of one of our men rolling out a keg of powder,
-from which to distribute a supply, gave me an idea.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'><span class='pageno' id='Page_297'>297</span>“How much powder have we?” I asked of Carteret.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Three kegs,” he answered. “Two of a hundred and
-fifty pounds’ weight each, and one smaller.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“It might serve,” I said, half to myself.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“What?” asked my companion.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Then I told him a plan I had. We went down from the
-tower.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Bring the powder here,” I said, “the two large barrels,”
-and it was fetched by four men, two carrying a keg between
-them. At my direction they also got some strong
-rope. I called Carteret out of hearing of the men.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“What I am going to do has some danger in it,” I said,
-“and, seeing that I may not return, I charge you to care
-for--for Mistress Lucille, after--well--after I am dead.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“She shall be to me as my own daughter,” he exclaimed,
-grasping my hand heartily.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“This is what I will do,” I said. “The Indians are so
-busy carrying brush now that they are giving little heed
-to aught else, even to each other. I believe I can go out
-among them under cover of the dark, escape detection,
-and help them at their work.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“What serves that?”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Much, I hope,” was my reply. “I did not tell you all
-of the plan before. My brush will be of good barrel staves,
-and within those same staves will be powder. I will hide
-the two barrels in the brush-heap, which I can easily do in
-the confusion, light the slow matches fastened to them,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_298'>298</span>come back to the block--if I can--then wait for what
-happens.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“What will happen?”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“If all goes as I hope,” I said, “the Indians will be
-gathered about the brush heap setting it on fire. Then
-will come my explosion.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Good!” exclaimed Carteret. “That ought to serve our
-purpose. If it only kills enough of the devils the rest will
-be so frightened that they will not remain long in the
-neighborhood of Elizabeth. But can you unaided carry
-those two barrels over the palisade?”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“I have done heavier things,” I answered, thinking of
-the Salem press.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“It is a risk,” remarked the Captain. “Once among
-them it will go hard with you if their lynx eyes spy you
-out.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Which is just what I do not intend them to do,” I
-said. “There is a dead Indian within the stockade. I
-will put on his feathers, adopt his style of dress, and
-play at being a savage.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“’Tis somewhat foolhardy,” commented Carteret, “but
-you are a brave man, and we have need of such now.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Any man would be brave, if he fought for what I
-do,” was the reply.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Then go,” responded the commander, “and may the
-Lord go with you.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>So I made my preparations.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>It was a matter of a few minutes to strip from the
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_299'>299</span>dead Indian his feathered head-dress with which I managed
-to decorate myself so that, in the dark, I might
-pass for a red man. I took off my jacket and trousers,
-slipping on the breeches of the savage, and, when thus
-attired I rubbed the upper part of my body, my face and
-hands, with damp powder, so that my white skin might
-not betray me.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>During this time the firing was not so brisk, either
-within or without, for our men were saving their powder,
-and the Indians were busy heaping up brush. The
-pile was now as large as a house, being within a few feet
-of the stockade. It was between us and the foe, so we
-had little chance to fire at them on that side of the block.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>It was fairly dark now, but we saw the savages snatching
-up brands from the fire they had kindled in front
-and running with them to the large heap.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Carteret helped me make my last arrangements. I selected
-a place to get over the stockade, that seemed to be
-somewhat screened from observation. The powder kegs
-were tied to a rope. I scaled the logs, got on top, hauled
-the barrels up, and let them down on the outside. Then
-I scrambled down. For the first time I was a little afraid.
-Not so much for what might happen to me, as for those
-I had left behind--for Lucille. It was no small risk,
-too, this taking of nearly all the powder from the fort.
-But it seemed the best we could do.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>At the foot of the stockade I fastened the kegs over
-my shoulders with the rope, one keg behind and the other
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_300'>300</span>in front. Up to this time I had been hidden by the
-black shadow of the stockade, but now I was to emerge
-into the open, when the deception I was practicing might
-be evident. The barrels on my back and breast bulged
-out like some deformity; no light load, either. I gathered
-up some brush, arranged it over the kegs as well
-as I could and stepped boldly out.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Before I had gone far, I picked up a large branch that
-some Indian had dropped. This served as a screen for me,
-as I held it over my shoulder, and stooped as I plodded
-on. I must have borne some resemblance to the dusky,
-brush-laden figures all about me, for several savages passed
-close by me, and gave no sign that I was not one of them.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I nearly dropped my load, when, as I was near the pile,
-a tall Indian, who seemed to be a chief, addressed some
-words to me. I recalled that there were red men from
-several different tribes mingled together, so I merely
-grunted in my throat, which sounds, I hoped, he would
-take for an answer in his tongue. He appeared to do so,
-for he passed on, leaving me alone, though in a cold sweat
-from the danger.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I was now in the midst of the Indians. They were
-all about me, hurrying to and fro, getting in each others’
-way, all the while adding to the size of the pile of brush
-and wood. I crouched lower and lower, as I neared the
-common centre, seeming to stoop under the weight of
-my burden. The middle of the outer circle of the stack
-was where I wanted to put the powder, that its force
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_301'>301</span>might be extended over a large space. As I neared the
-spot I noted but one Indian near me. He had a small
-tree-top, which he cast on the heap. As he turned away
-to get more fuel, I managed to get rid of the kegs of
-powder. I rolled them under the edge of the brush, working
-quickly and in silence. The fuses, which were made
-of a number of slow matches fastened together, I trailed
-out on the ground as far as they would go.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>A loud call in the Indian tongue was now given. It
-was taken up, being repeated from mouth to mouth, with
-different inflections. Soon I saw what seemed like fireflies
-moving about in the darkness. But they were human insects,
-and the lights they bore were brands to ignite the
-<a id='corr301.14'></a><span class='htmlonly'><ins class='correction' title='hugh'>huge</ins></span><span class='epubonly'><a href='#c_301.14'><ins class='correction' title='hugh'>huge</ins></a></span> pile of brush, which was so large that it needed to be
-set ablaze in many places at once.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I lighted the fuse, the flash of my tinder-box being unnoticed
-amid so many lights. There were no less than
-two hundred savages in a circle about the heap, many
-busy setting it on fire. From the forest all around more
-Indians were hastening to be ready for the rush, when the
-flames had burned a way for them. I saw the spark of
-the fuse spluttering along the ground, eating its way to
-the powder. It would burn for two minutes. Then I
-ran for the stockade. As I did so I went, full-tilt, into a
-half-naked savage.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>He held a torch, the light of which must have showed
-him I was not of his people. He opened his mouth to
-yell an alarm, but I knocked the brand from his hand;
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_302'>302</span>then, while he stood still in surprise, I struck him in the
-face with my fist. He staggered back, but before he could
-recover, I was at the foot of the palisade. I heard him
-yell, as I grasped the rope I had left dangling, but there
-was so much shouting and crying out, that his was unnoticed.
-As I went up, hand over hand, I saw that the
-pile was on fire in many places.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Down I jumped inside the stockade. Carteret met me.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“What success?” he asked quickly.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“All is well so far,” I said.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Edward!” exclaimed a voice.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I turned, to see Lucille standing behind the Captain.
-I caught her in my arms.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“To the block!” I cried. “The explosion will occur
-in half a minute.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Lucille clung in fright to me.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Are all the men back away from the north wall?”
-I called to Carteret.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Yes,” he shouted back.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“What is it, Edward?” sobbed Lucille.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“It is life or death,” I answered, as I ran with her
-into the block house.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>The savages were yelling in chorus, like ten thousand
-devils now. The flames were beginning to take hold of
-the dry brush, which was crackling and snapping as if
-hungry to get at us. Inside the little fort were huddled
-all that was left of the defenders, men, women and children.
-I set Lucille down, but kept my arm about her.
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_303'>303</span>The fuses should have burned to the end by this time.
-We could hear ourselves breathing while we waited. Carteret
-turned to speak to me.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>The next instant there was a glare that lighted up the
-sky, turning the space between the palisade and the block
-from darkness into a noon-day brightness!</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Then a crash so loud, so terrifying, so awful, that the
-very earth and sky seemed rent asunder as by a hundred
-thunderbolts. The solid ground rocked; a very cradle in
-the hand of a giant. A great wind blew, howling through
-the openings in the logs.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>The sound deafened us. The blast swayed us as if a
-hurricane had swooped down from the sky. Men caught
-their breath. Women screamed. Children wailed as in
-fright at some unseen spirit of the night.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>We heard the north wall of the stockade give a rending
-crack, succeeded by a mighty crash. Then it fell outward,
-where the pile of brush had been.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>As for the block it pitched and seemed to toss--a frail
-ship on the billows of the earth.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>To the terrible noise and glare succeeded silence and
-darkness as of the tomb. Slowly our sight and hearing
-came back.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Carteret and I staggered from the block and looked to
-where the north wall had been. It was not there. In its
-place was a chasm, so deep that it would have hidden the
-fort. Its sides were lined with blazing brands from the
-scattered brush-heap. By the light of these, and by the
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_304'>304</span>glimmer of the stars, we observed scores upon scores of
-silent dark forms in the big hole, or near it on the earth.
-Toward the edge of the forest we saw crouching forms hurrying
-off to bury themselves deeper in the woods, away
-from the terror behind them.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>We were saved!</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>The savages not killed had fled away, but of all that
-band scarce a quarter lived to tell the tale.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>A great cheer went up from the crowd within the block,
-when it was seen what had occurred. Men cast their
-muskets aside, embraced their wives and kissed their little
-ones.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“May the Lord bless you,” said Carteret to me, “it was
-you who saved us.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Aye! Aye! A cheer for Captain Amherst!” cried
-several men. They gave it, crowding about, trying to clasp
-me by the hand.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“It was nothing--nothing,” I protested, “any one of you
-would have done the same, had you the chance.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>But they would not have it so, and, at length, weary
-of the praise, I slipped away, to resume my own civilized
-dress.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>The women busied themselves getting a late supper,
-which was eaten with thankful hearts. After it was over,
-Lucille made me tell her all that had taken place.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“And who <a id='corr304.26'></a><span class='htmlonly'><ins class='correction' title='caried'>carried</ins></span><span class='epubonly'><a href='#c_304.26'><ins class='correction' title='caried'>carried</ins></a></span> out the powder?” she asked when
-I had finished.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“That was a small matter,” I said. “Having a little
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_305'>305</span>strength, more, perhaps, than some of the others, I did
-it,” was my answer.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Were you not afraid?” she inquired.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Only that I might not again look into your dear eyes.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>She hid them from me with her hand. I pulled the little
-palm away, kissing her on the lips.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>So we sat talking until it was late. The block became
-quiet, for it was filled with weary men and sorrowful women,
-who needed rest. We bade each other good-night, Lucille
-going to the women’s apartment, while I started
-for Captain Carteret’s room, where I was to sleep.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>As I walked along the passage, I thought I heard a
-footstep behind me. I turned quickly. At the far end
-of the corridor, where a single candle threw a fitful gleam,
-I saw Simon.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>He appeared to be gliding along, as if afraid of being
-seen. He slipped in an open doorway when he saw me
-turn.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Was he following me? What did he want?</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Carteret was not yet in. I threw myself down on a
-bench, meaning but to rest until the Captain arrived.
-But, so weary was I, that, no sooner had my head fallen
-back than I was asleep.</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_306'>306</span>
- <h2 class='c006'>CHAPTER XXVII. <br /> <span class='small'>SIMON.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c007'>There seemed to be much tumult in the block when I
-awoke. Captain Carteret was writing at a small table,
-as I sat up, rubbing my eyes.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Well, have you slept enough?” he asked.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“I could rest longer,” I said, “but it is not my habit
-to sleep much after the sun is first up in the morning.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Morning,” he laughed. “Why, man, ’tis long past noon
-now. I would not let them disturb you, though many were
-clamoring for a look at the hero of the occasion.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Enough,” I said. “I had much rather have a breakfast
-than pose as a hero, which I am not.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Breakfast in the afternoon?”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Are you jesting?”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Look at the sun,” was his reply.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I glanced from a window. It was half way down in the
-west. I had slept nearly eighteen hours.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“We will soon have supper,” went on the Captain.
-“Meanwhile I’ll let you know how matters stand.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Scouts had been sent out, he said, and, for miles around
-had found no trace of Indians, save the dead ones. One
-wounded savage had been brought in. With what little
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_307'>307</span>English he had, he told how the war party had fled to
-the four winds. They had been given a severe lesson, he
-said, and one that would put an end to Indian uprisings
-in New Jersey for many years.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Men had been set at work burying the bodies. Others
-were rebuilding the stockade, and some were detailed to
-lay to rest our dead.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Many families, who lived near by, had gone back to
-their homes, to begin life where they had left off when
-the Indians came. Wagons laden with household goods
-were leaving the fort. Only a few farmhouses had been
-burned by the savages.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“I am writing to Governor Phips,” said Carteret, “to
-tell him you are here, and send him back the warrant
-for witchcraft, which is of no use, since he has pardoned
-you. That was a marvelous tale you told, of the days
-in Salem.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Do not recall them,” I begged. “They were days of
-sorrow and peril.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Lieutenant Jenkins is about to sail for Boston in a
-few days,” went on the Captain, “and he will take this
-missive to Sir William Phips. So that matter is ended.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“What of Simon?”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“I have not seen him since that time we were all in
-the room together,” said Carteret, “but he is doubtless
-about somewhere. He will probably want to leave this
-place now. If you wish I will offer him passage to Boston
-with Master Jenkins. He can join his friends there.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'><span class='pageno' id='Page_308'>308</span>“I think I should like that,” I replied. “For, somehow,
-I am not at ease while he is about, particularly as Mistress
-Lucille is here.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Then he goes to Boston, friend Amherst.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>The Captain and I fell to talking of the future. Supper
-was served ere we had finished, and we continued over the
-meal. He asked me if I would not like to settle in Elizabeth.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Or there is a little town, called Newark, on the Passaic
-River,” he added, “not far from here. That is a
-pleasant place, I am told. The Indians, I hear, are most
-kind and trustworthy, as they were here before this uprising,
-trading with the settlers in land and furs, greatly
-to the advantage of the town folk. You might like it
-there.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“I will make no plans until I have talked with Mistress
-Lucille,” I replied.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“That reminds me,” exclaimed Carteret. “She sent in
-three times, while you were asleep, to have me let her
-know the instant you were awake. I forgot all about it.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I did not stay to eat more, when I heard that. I found
-Lucille sitting alone in the doorway of the women’s room,
-looking at the men repairing the stockade.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“It seemed as if you were never coming,” she said, when
-I had greeted her. “Captain Carteret would not let me see
-you. But never mind, you are with me now,” and she
-blushed at her boldness.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“I wanted to talk to you, Edward, and see if you had
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_309'>309</span>made any plans for the future,” went on Lucille, after a
-pause. “Have you thought that our coming here was an
-accident, and that I can scarce go traveling about with you
-as if--as if----”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Her face crimsoned again.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Aye, we are like strangers in a strange land,” I said
-bitterly, for now that the strain of battle was over, I saw
-the plight in which we were; myself penniless.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“I have the clothes I stand in,” I added.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Nothing more?” asked Lucille, softly.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“My sword,” I answered, not looking up, for my mind
-was busy.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“No more?”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“My horse.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“No more?”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Her voice went so strange that I looked at her. Her
-eyes were dim with tears.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Forgive, me, sweetheart,” I cried, clasping her close
-to me. “I have you, and, with you, more than all the
-world.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“You were near to forgetting your great wealth,” she
-said, mockingly, while she struggled to free herself. “Perchance
-’tis of little value, after all.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Nay, sweet,” I replied. “’Tis so great that I wonder
-at myself for possessing it.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Yet you thought of your sword first.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Forgive me.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“And then your horse.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'><span class='pageno' id='Page_310'>310</span>“Will you not forgive?”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“And of me last,” she persisted, trying to escape from
-my arms.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“It was because with them I won you,” I whispered.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“I shall be jealous of your sword.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“No more,” I cried, drawing it from the scabbard.
-“’Tis a pretty piece of steel, but, if it should come between
-us, see----”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I raised it high in the air, my hands on either end.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“I’ll snap it in twain.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I brought the weapon half way down, as though I would
-break it across my knee.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Nay! Nay! Edward!” she exclaimed, catching my arm.
-“I did but jest. Put it up. There is need of a sword in
-this land.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I sheathed my blade, sitting down beside Lucille.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Seriously, now, what is to become of me?” she asked.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Why,” I answered, as gaily as I could, “since you are
-mine, you must follow my poor fortunes, it would seem;
-that is, if you are willing to follow one who has but----”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“But his sword,” she broke in, smiling at me.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Nay, I had not finished. But his love, his sword, his
-horse, and the clothes on his back.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Except for my love, I am even poorer than that,” confessed
-Lucille, “unless I could go back to Salem, and that
-I will not. There was some little money that my father
-left, but it was nearly spent. I have no sword, no horse,
-and only this poor sea-stained dress.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'><span class='pageno' id='Page_311'>311</span>“Yet in it I would rather have you than the most richly
-robed lady in all the world,” I cried.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Come,” I went on, “we are betrothed,” and I took her
-by the hand. “Let us go to the good dominie here, ask him
-to join us in wedlock, then we may seek our fortune as
-man and wife.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“What? Wed in this frock?” Lucille looked at it as
-if it was all rags, but indeed it was a pretty dress.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“What matters the gown?” I asked.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Why, I would be the laughing stock of the Colony if
-I plighted my troth in this,” responded Lucille. “We must
-wait until I can get some new garments.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“From where?”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Then we both laughed, for, between us we had not so
-much as a shilling, I having spent my last on my journey.
-The laugh did us good, and we felt brighter after it.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>While we were talking Captain Carteret passed. He
-was not going to stop, but I called to him.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“What now?” he asked.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“We were talking of the future, Lucille and I. We are
-betrothed, as you know, Carteret, and I have just urged her
-to come with me to the dominie’s.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Surely,” he exclaimed. “That would be fine. We could
-trim up the block house, and have a regular wedding feast.
-Mistress Carteret would be glad to help, for there has been
-very little merrymaking, of late, and a wedding would be
-the very thing to take the gloom away. When can it be?
-Next week, or the week after.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'><span class='pageno' id='Page_312'>312</span>“Next week!” cried Lucille, with such an accent of
-horror in her voice that Carteret and I had to laugh.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Why, you see, Captain,” I went on, never heeding Lucille’s
-sly punches in my ribs, “she says she has no clothes;
-a woman’s ever ready excuse. Her gowns were left behind
-in Salem town. She will not be wed in the garments
-which were drenched by the sea. So, I fear, we must wait
-until I can raise a few pounds, and then----”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>But Lucille, with a reproachful glance at me, ran away,
-leaving the Captain and I alone.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“I marvel at you,” said Carteret.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Why?”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Talking of raising a few pounds. There is not a man
-in the Colony, myself included, who would not be glad to
-give you----”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I stopped him with a look.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Tut, tut, man, do not go off half-cocked, I was not
-going to offer you charity. But if I can put you in the
-way to get a position that pays----”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“My everlasting thanks are yours,” I interrupted.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“I am about to resign the command of the forces here,”
-Carteret went on, “for my brother, the Governor, has some
-plans afoot, and needs my aid elsewhere. I have talked
-with the men, and they all agree that, after I left, they
-would have no other captain than yourself. The pay is
-not large, for the Colony is young yet, but you and Mistress
-Lucille could live in such comfort as there is here, on it.
-What say you? Will you take it?”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'><span class='pageno' id='Page_313'>313</span>I could not answer at first. It seemed almost too good
-to be true. After all our troubles to find a haven at last,
-and one that promised so much.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Carteret,” I began, brokenly, “I cannot thank you
-enough. I----” but there was something in my voice that
-would not let me go on.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Then do not try,” he said, cheerfully. “I know how
-you feel. I will carry your answer to the men. They are
-waiting for it. The sooner I turn the command of the
-Colony over to you, the quicker I can get away. Is it
-yes or no?”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Yes, with all my heart,” I said, giving him my hand,
-and there was a lump as big as an egg in my throat.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Carteret turned away, while I hastened to find Lucille
-and tell her the good news. She could have her wedding
-gown now, I told myself.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>She was not in the room with the other women. It was
-getting dusk, and I hastened through many apartments
-in search of her. Once or twice I called her name, but
-there was no answer. I went out of the block. Near the
-door I confronted Simon. His face was so pale that I
-was startled.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“What is the matter, man? Are you ill?” I asked.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“No,” he answered, huskily. “I am not sick. I was
-thinking of Sir George. I am without a master now.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“I hear you are to leave us, Simon,” I said.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Yes,” he replied, “Captain Carteret has been kind
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_314'>314</span>enough to get me passage to Boston. Thence I can sail
-for England, to Sir George’s kinfolk.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Well, a pleasant voyage,” I called, as I was about to
-pass on.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Wait,” he said, thickly.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I turned around.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Captain Amherst,” he began, “you have much reason
-to hate me.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Oh, that is past and gone,” I responded, as heartily
-as I could, for I did not like the man, and indeed, though
-he only acted for another, he was a bitter foe.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Perhaps I should not have done what I did,” he went
-on, “but Sir George swore me to an oath.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“’Tis past,” I said. “You only served your master.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Then you forgive me?”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Aye, surely,” I murmured, impatient to be away and
-find Lucille.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Simon came toward me, holding out his hand. I marked
-that it was his left, but I was too hurried to give it a
-thought, so I clasped it firmly.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>His fingers closed over mine with the grip of a vise.
-He pulled me near him. His right hand shot out from his
-jacket, beneath which it was hidden. In it I caught the
-glitter of a knife. I saw him raise it above my head.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>There was no time for me to draw my sword. I threw
-up my left arm to protect my head. Simon’s hand came
-down.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>There was a pain in my arm, as if a hot iron had seared
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_315'>315</span>me. Then I felt it, ten times as hot, in my side. My ears
-rang with the roar of waters; my eyes saw only blackness.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I felt a warm gush of blood; I heard a confused murmur,
-a woman’s shrill scream--Lucille’s voice. Then Simon
-leaned over me, as I was falling--falling--falling--down
-into some bottomless pit.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Traitor and murderer!” he cried. “I have kept my
-oath!”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>It was night.</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_316'>316</span>
- <h2 class='c006'>CHAPTER XXVIII. <br /> <span class='small'>THE END OF CAPTAIN AMHERST.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c007'>For weeks and weeks, it seemed to me, I was living over
-again the scenes through which I had passed in later years.
-Now I was charging at the battle of Sedgemoor, then before
-Judge Jeffreys, with my comrades. Next came wanderings,
-fightings, travelings. In my delirium I went
-through the witch press once more, with many a struggle
-to escape. I fought the French and Indians; I swam in
-the sea to save Lucille. I went down in great caverns of
-the ocean to bring her back to me, and saw her lying amid
-rainbow colored shells, tangled weeds weaving their long
-green sinuous lengths into her hair.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I fought the duel with Sir George, feeling his <a id='corr316.13'></a><span class='htmlonly'><ins class='correction' title='teel'>steel</ins></span><span class='epubonly'><a href='#c_316.13'><ins class='correction' title='teel'>steel</ins></a></span> pierce
-my side like a big knife which was turned ’round and
-’round. Horrible red Indians, with fierce painted faces
-came to torment me, though I fought them off time after
-time. I heard over again the explosion of the powder kegs;
-felt the mighty wind swoop down; was rocked to and fro
-by the blast.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I listened to my voice shouting out, only it did not
-sound like me, but as some one else afar off. At intervals
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_317'>317</span>I went floating through the air, a very bird on wings.
-Then I looked back to see a body that looked like mine
-lying on a bed. And the features were changed; the
-frame that had been robust was like a boy’s.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Then gradually all these things passed away, so that
-there was nothing but darkness and daylight; daylight
-and darkness. Ever through it all, a dear dim ghost of
-one I loved came and went--a woman. When she was
-near, whether it was day or night, I was at ease; her cool
-hand chilled the fever that burned in my brain. When
-she was gone it was dark, though it was day.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Out of all this peace came at length.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>One day I opened my eyes seeing aright.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I was in a room which the sun entered to make bright
-and cheerful. The beams overhead reflected back the
-light, a fire on the hearth threw out a genial warmth, the
-kettle on the hob hummed and hissed, a great mother
-cat, by the chimney place, purred in contentment.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>There was a movement in the room. A woman stood
-over me looking down. I seemed to know, rather than
-see, that she was the woman of my dreams--Lucille.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I glanced up at her. Her face was alight with love
-and tenderness. I tried to speak--to rise--but the
-strength, of which I used to boast, had left me. I could
-only murmur her name.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Dear heart,” she whispered. “Thank God, you know
-me. Oh, Edward, it was so long--oh! so long--that I
-stood by you, only to hear you fighting all your battles
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_318'>318</span>over again, with never a sign to show that you knew I was
-near. Oh, I am so glad!”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Then, woman like, she burst into tears, which she tried
-in vain to check.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“My, my! What’s this?” called a cheery voice. “Come,
-Mistress Lucille, have you no better caution than to weep
-in here. Fie upon you. All hope is not gone yet.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>A woman in a gray dress with a spotless apron over it,
-bustled to my bed.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“I am not crying, Madame Carteret,” said Lucille with
-indignation in her tone.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“’Tis much like it,” said the other.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Well, then, if I am, it is for joy. Edward--I mean
-Captain Amherst--is sensible again. He tried to speak
-my name, for he knew me when I turned his pillow.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Is it possible?”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Madame Carteret, wife of the Captain, in whose house
-I was, came over to look down on me. I smiled; it was
-all I could do, but that was as good to me as a hearty
-laugh, since I had come back from the land of terrible
-dreams. The Captain’s wife bustled away. Lucille, drying
-her eyes, smiling through her tears, came to stand near
-me.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“What has happened?” I whispered, but she prevented
-any more questions by placing her fingers on my lips. I
-kissed the rosy tips, whereat she drew them quickly away.
-Then I repeated what I had said.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'><span class='pageno' id='Page_319'>319</span>“Hush,” she replied. “You are not to talk. The doctor
-says you are too weak.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Indeed I was, as I found when I tried to rise, for I fell
-back like a babe. Just then Madame Carteret came back
-with some broth in a bowl. It tasted so well that I disposed
-of all of it. She laughed as one well pleased.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>The last drop gone I sighed from very comfort. Lucille,
-taking pity on the anxious look of inquiry I turned
-on her, related all that had transpired.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“I was coming through the corridor in the dark,” she
-said, “and I saw Simon strike at you. Oh I was so
-frightened! I screamed when his knife glittered. He
-started, moving his hand just a trifle as he heard me.
-Perchance that saved your life, for Doctor Graydon, who
-has been in long attendance on you, said that had the point
-gone an inch higher it would have touched the heart, and
-that would have been an end of Captain Amherst.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I looked the love and devotion at Lucille I could not
-express in actions.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Even at that,” she went on, “there was a grievous
-wound in your arm and one in your side. For six weeks
-you have been in that bed, knowing none of us, and at
-times so far away from us, that we feared to see you travel
-off altogether.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“But I came back to you,” I said softly.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Yes, dear; but you must not talk now. I will tell you
-the rest.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“After he had stabbed you Simon dropped his knife and
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_320'>320</span>fled. I ran to you, but you were as one dead. Captain
-Carteret and some of the men carried you into the house.
-We have nursed you ever since, Madame Carteret and I.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I looked at Lucille’s face, noting that she had grown
-thin and pale, but yet more beautiful. I pressed her hand
-to my lips.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Simon did not escape,” she went on after a pause.
-“Not long afterward his body was found in the woods, an
-Indian arrow through his heart. So now, dear, horrible
-as it all was, our enemies are gone. We have only ourselves
-left.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Then while the shadows began to lengthen, the day to
-die, I fell asleep again. Not as before, disturbed by unpleasant
-dreams, but as a tired child. When I awoke in
-the morning I felt like a new man. The blood of health
-flowed through my veins; I felt the strength coming back
-to me. Lucille entered; a streak of sunshine. She smiled
-at me. I had propped myself up in bed, and that sign
-that I was on the mend seemed to give her pleasure.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“We must have Master Graydon in to see the improvement,”
-she said. “He will doubtless change the physic,
-giving you some herbs that will put you quickly on the way
-to recovery.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“I pray so,” I answered, “for I am full sick of staying
-here like a woman.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Are you then so ready to leave us?”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Only that I may make ready to stay with you forever,”
-at which Lucille blushed prettily.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'><span class='pageno' id='Page_321'>321</span>We talked, or rather Lucille did, and I listened, of many
-things. She told how she had heard I was to be in command
-of the military force of Elizabeth; that I was already
-considered the Captain. Every day since I had
-been wounded some of the men had called to see how I
-was. As for Captain Carteret, he had gone to London
-on business, and would not return to the Colony until
-spring.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Matters were progressing well in the town. The Indians
-had buried the hatchet, having had enough of fighting,
-and were at peace with the settlers. The crops, too,
-though suffering somewhat from the depredations of the
-red men, were plenty, so fertile was the land. The store-houses
-and barns were better filled than any year since
-the Colony had been in existence, and winter, which was
-already at hand, would find the village in good shape.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>The repairs to the block house had been finished, the
-few houses in the town that had been burned by the Indians
-were being rebuilt. A band of settlers had come
-from Pennsylvania, so that we now numbered some two
-hundred men, and nearly half as many women.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>It was late in November, the leaves were all off the
-trees, there had been little flurries of snow, the winds were
-mournful, and on every side one could see that winter
-was fairly come. I had been able to leave my bed. One
-afternoon, when the sun was setting behind a bank of
-gray clouds that promised a storm Lucille and I stood at
-the west window looking out.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'><span class='pageno' id='Page_322'>322</span>“It is going to snow,” said she, mournfully.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“I love the white flakes,” I said cheerfully.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“They are so cold, so cheerless, so dead, so cruel to the
-flowers and birds. Why do you love them?”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Because they dance down so merrily. Because they
-cover up the dull brown earth from us until it blossoms
-out again. Because,” and I took her hand, “it was through
-a snow storm that I went to find my love.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Poor reason, Edward.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“The best of reasons, sweetheart.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Days came and went, bringing me back health and
-strength. Slowly I walked about the house until I came
-to venturing out into the snow when the weather was
-fine. I became acquainted with the towns-folk, a thing I
-had not had time to do before. To while away the hours,
-some of the men who had fought with me in the block
-would come in. Then, sitting beside the blazing logs on
-the hearth, we would fight the battle all over again.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Lucille was ever near me, her sweet face always in view,
-when I looked up, smiling with the love in her eyes.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>The winter snows melted. Green grass and shrubs began
-to peep up through the warm earth. The buds on the
-trees swelled with the sap, bears crawled from hollow logs,
-the birds flew northward.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>The songsters of early spring flitted about the house as
-I sat in front one day watching them gather material for
-their nests. It reminded me that I had better see to providing
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_323'>323</span>a nest for my song bird. Lucille sat near me. I
-had not spoken for a space.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Are you watching the birds?” she asked.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Aye. Thinking that I might well be about their
-trade.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Lucille did not answer.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Sweetheart,” I said softly, “’tis little time we have
-had for love since I found you the second time, and I
-would know whether you are of the same mind that you
-were. For I love you now; I will love you always, I love
-you more and more every day. Tell me: Do you love
-me yet? Has the time brought no change?”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>How anxiously did I wait for the answer. Now that I
-was broken in strength, with not the prospect of attaining
-distinction in arms that I once had, sick, enfeebled in
-body, but not in spirit, could I hope that she still loved
-me?</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Tell me,” I whispered softly, “has time wrought no
-change, Lucille?”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>She let the lids fall over her eyes, then with a little
-tremor, she looked into my face. Sweetly as the murmur
-of a south wind in the trees she said:</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Time has wrought no change.” A pause. “I love you,
-with all my heart.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Then, ere she could answer more, I had her in my arms,
-from which she struggled to be free, at first, but, when she
-found I held her close, she was quiet. I kissed her on the
-mouth.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'><span class='pageno' id='Page_324'>324</span>“Don’t, Edward,” she cried in sudden terror, “some one
-is coming.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I resumed my seat on the bench.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“I have something to tell you,” I said, after a little.
-“You must not call me Edward.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Oh, then,” with a mock air of admiration, “Captain
-Amherst, Your Excellency, I pray your pardon.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Nor yet Captain Amherst,” I went on, smiling.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“What then, may it please you, sir?”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“That is it.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“What?”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Sir.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Sir who or what?”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Sir Francis Dane,” I replied, with as grand a manner
-as I could assume, having a deep cut in my side.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>For a moment Lucille glanced at me, then I saw that
-she feared my mind was wandering again.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Come into the house,” she said, soothingly, “’tis too
-chilling out here. Come in, and Master Graydon shall
-prescribe for you. Come, Edward.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Not Edward.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Well, then, Sir Francis Dane,” spoken as one might
-to a peevish child. “The strain has been too much for you,
-Ed--Sir Francis. Go and lie down, until you are recovered.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I burst into a laugh, whereat Lucille seemed all the
-more frightened. I could not cease from laughing as I
-looked at her.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'><span class='pageno' id='Page_325'>325</span>She took me gently by the arm, and tried to lead me
-in, but I stooped over, kissing her.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Do not be frightened, sweet,” I said. “I am not wandering
-in my mind. I have a secret to tell you.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Will it frighten me?”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“I hope not.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Then I told her of the cause for my coming to America,
-because I wished to escape those who would imprison me
-for having fought on the side of the defeated King Monmouth.
-I was Sir Francis Dane, I said, but had taken
-the name of Captain Edward Amherst, as a measure of
-safety. When I had made an end I smiled down on her.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Then it is good bye to Captain Amherst,” she remarked.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Aye, ’tis the end of him,” I said.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“I am not sure but that I liked him better than I will
-Sir Francis Dane,” went on Lucille. “For the latter is
-much of a stranger to me.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Will you have to begin to love over again?” I asked.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Nay,” was her only reply, in a low voice.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Sir Francis, Sir Francis,” she continued, after a
-moment’s pause. “Hum, ’tis a rather nice name.” Then
-she seemed to be thinking.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Why,” she exclaimed, suddenly, “it is a titled name,
-is it not? You must be a person of distinction over in
-England.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“I was,” I replied, dryly. Sedgemoor had taken all the
-distinction from me, depriving me of lands and title.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Hum, Sir Francis Dane. I wonder if he will care
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_326'>326</span>for plain Lucille de Guilfort,” with a playful air of sadness.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>My answer was a kiss.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“I love you, Lucille,” I said fervently, when she had
-escaped from me.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Well,” she remarked, plaintively, “I loved you as plain
-Captain Amherst, perforce I must do so, since you are
-now Sir Francis Dane, accustomed to being obeyed, I
-presume.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“To the letter,” I answered, sternly.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Now that is over,” I went on, “when are we to wed?”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Not too soon. Wait until spring.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“That will be in March.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Oh! ’Tis too early. There is much to be done. Linen
-to make up, dresses to fashion and, indeed, if it were not
-for the kindness of Madame Carteret I would have no
-gown now, but the sorry garment you found me in.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“That is more precious to me than cloth of gold would
-be,” I replied. “The flutter of it, as the Eagle headed
-for shore, seemed to tell me you were there. But, since
-March is too early, it must be the next month,” I said,
-firmly.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Let it be so,” she responded, with a little sigh. “In
-April then; the month of tears and sunshine.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Let us hope that ours will all be sunshine,” I suggested.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“We have had enough of tears to make it so,” was her
-reply, as she smiled brightly.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'><span class='pageno' id='Page_327'>327</span>That matter being settled we had much more to talk
-of, the day and many succeeding ones, seeming all too
-short for us. I was recovering slowly, and was able to
-be all about. I took an active charge of the military
-matters of the town, for my wound was healing, and I
-hoped in a short time that I would be nearly as strong
-as I was before. I took up my abode with the innkeeper,
-for Lucille said it was not seemly that we should dwell
-under the same roof longer. She, however, remained with
-Madame Carteret, weaving and spinning in preparation
-for the spring.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>It was close to the first of April when news came one
-day that there was a ship down the bay, and that Captain
-Carteret had returned on her. This was a glad message
-for me, and I prepared to take a few of the men, marching
-down to meet him.</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_328'>328</span>
- <h2 class='c006'>CHAPTER XXIX. <br /> <span class='small'>AN ORDER FROM THE KING.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c007'>I was half way on the road to the block house, to see
-if I could muster up a guard, with which to go down and
-meet the Captain, when I spied him coming along at a
-quick pace.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Well-a-day,” he cried, when he had caught sight of
-me. “This is quite a change, since I last saw you. Come,
-man, your hand.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Why,” he exclaimed, when I had gripped his palm, “you
-have some of your strength back again, I see--and feel.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“A little,” I replied, as I grasped his other hand, in
-heartiness to have him back once more.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>There were tears in my eyes. I did not try to hide
-them, for Carteret had been more than a brother to me;
-his good wife a very mother to Lucille. I think he felt
-my gratitude, for he did not speak, only returning my
-hand pressure.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Well,” he said again, after a little pause, while we
-walked on together toward his house, “this is better than
-being cooped up in the block, with those devils howling
-on the outside. Though,” he added, with a laugh, “we
-soon made them change their tune.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'><span class='pageno' id='Page_329'>329</span>He asked me how long I had suffered from the attack
-of Simon, and what had become of the sailor. I told him
-what I had heard.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“I did not like to leave you,” he said, “but the call for
-me was urgent. I thought I left you in safe hands, when
-Mistress Lucille took charge of the nursing.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“You did, indeed,” I replied.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“How is she; and how progresses your courtship?”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Very well, to both questions. Since your kindness in
-turning this command over to me I have been assured of a
-livelihood; quiet, perhaps, compared to what I hoped for,
-but a sure one. ’Tis a place befitting a man who is about
-to take unto himself a wife.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Then you are soon to wed?”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Within a fortnight. Lucille is busy now, preparing
-what she is pleased to term her linen. As for me I have
-little to get. I trust that from my wage here I can fit up
-some small house that will do for a time. I had hopes of
-taking her to a place befitting her station, to a fine home.
-But poverty is a hard taskmaster.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Yet he drives light when love holds the reins.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“True,” I assented. “We shall not fare so badly, I
-hope.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Then Mistress Lucille is prepared to face poverty with
-you?”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“She is,” I said, “and seems happy in the prospect.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>The Captain was laughing now. I looked at him to find
-the cause, but was at a loss.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'><span class='pageno' id='Page_330'>330</span>“You know I have been to London?” he inquired, after
-his merriment had spent itself.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Aye, so I heard.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“And to Colchester also.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Nay; were you?” I asked, suddenly. That had been
-the home of the Danes for centuries.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“To Colchester?”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Aye. And while there I heard somewhat of you.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“’Twas likely,” I answered, “seeing that my father, Sir
-Edward Dane, owned quite an estate there.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“It is of that same estate I would speak,” went on Carteret.
-“I found out more of your story than you had time
-to tell me hurriedly ere I sailed. Your offense against the
-crown had been nearly forgotten at court. Learning which,
-while I was in London, I set certain influences to work.
-I am not without friends in the King’s circles, and, between
-us we began planning to get back what of your father’s
-wealth we could, that you might enjoy it.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“First, and it was a matter of no little difficulty, we had
-you granted a full and free pardon for all acts of treason
-of whatever nature. To bring this about after the way had
-been paved, I sought an audience with His Majesty. I
-have a little gift of eloquence, so I described to the King
-how you blew the heathen into the air. He listened to me
-more kindly after that. Being fond of fighting he made
-me tell him the whole circumstance, which I flatter myself
-I did with some credit to you. When I had finished
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_331'>331</span>the King clapped his hand down on his thigh, bursting
-out with:</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“‘By my sword, Carteret, but I could hardly have
-planned or executed it better myself,’ which you may take
-as a fine compliment, for His Majesty thinks himself a
-great soldier.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“’Twas as much your credit as mine,” I said to the
-Captain.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Well, never mind that. The King inquired all about
-you, also of Sir George Keith, whose acts I in no way
-glossed over, though he was my friend. His Majesty cut
-me short with: ‘Enough, enough, Carteret.’ Calling for
-a quill and ink horn, he had signed a pardon ere I knew
-what he was about. There it is,” exclaimed Carteret,
-thrusting a legal looking paper, covered with red seals,
-into my hand. I took it, hardly able to speak a word.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Once that was done I breathed easier,” continued the
-Captain. “But His Majesty did not stop there. He called
-his secretary, who told the King, in answer to a question,
-that your father’s lands had been confiscated to the crown.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“‘It is needful that we recompense your bold soldier
-somewhat,’ said His Majesty to me, when he had whispered
-for a time with his officers. ‘I have signed an order on
-my treasurer for ten thousand pounds, which you will convey
-to Sir Francis Dane, with my best wishes.’</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“I must have shown some surprise when His Majesty
-gave you the ‘sir,’ for he said:</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“‘I have restored his title to him, Carteret. As for his
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_332'>332</span>estates, it is not likely that he would come back to claim
-them now, so I have given you, for him, what they are
-considered by my treasurer to be worth--ten thousand
-pounds. If, when you reach America, you find that he
-desires more----’</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“‘Oh, ’tis enough, Your Majesty,’ I said quickly, lest
-he might change his mind.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Then I bowed myself out, after thanking him most
-warmly in my name and your own.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“I lost little time in hastening to the treasury in the
-palace where the King’s order was honored. I soon transacted
-what business I had in London, set sail again, and,
-after a pleasant voyage, here I am. As for the money, it
-is safe in my strong box at home. I stopped there ere I
-went in search of you. Mistress Lucille told me where
-you had started for.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Now, is not that good news?”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I was beyond speaking, though I tried to thank him.
-I could only hold out my hand.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“I’ll not grasp it until you promise to remember that
-it is a hand and not a sword hilt,” said the Captain, so
-earnestly, that I laughed ere I assured him that I would
-not grip him as hard as I did at first.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Joy lent me such speed as we walked to the house, where
-I knew I would find Lucille, that Carteret called on me
-several times to halt, and to walk more slowly.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“When you get as old as I am,” he said, “you will be
-glad to travel less speedily.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'><span class='pageno' id='Page_333'>333</span>“Not with such good news as I carry,” was my answer.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“I found him,” cried the Captain, as we entered the
-room where Lucille and Madame Carteret were seated.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>He went out for a minute. When he returned he had
-in each hand a stout sack. It was the money, some of
-it in gold, that clinked right merrily. Carteret came over,
-holding out the bags to me.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I took one, laid it at Lucille’s feet, saying, as I smiled
-at her:</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“With all my <a id='corr333.10'></a><span class='htmlonly'><ins class='correction' title='wordly'>worldly</ins></span><span class='epubonly'><a href='#c_333.10'><ins class='correction' title='wordly'>worldly</ins></a></span> goods I thee endow.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>The other sack I held out to Carteret.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“It is yours,” I said, “according to all the laws of arms.
-Take it.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Law or no law, I’ll have none of it,” he answered
-gruffly, I believe, to hide his feelings. “Begone with it.
-Place it with the other beside Mistress Lucille. Why,”
-he went on, “I have enough now to do the good wife and
-myself as long as we live, and there’s not a soul I care to
-leave any wealth to. Put it with the other. You will
-find a use for all of it--when you are wed.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I was forced to obey him, though I felt that he should
-have had a half share of what he got for me, but all my
-argument was in vain.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Lucille and I were left alone in the room. She looked
-down on the sacks of gold, then up at me.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“So you are Sir Francis, after all?” she asked.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“It seems so,” was my reply. “How do you like the
-name?”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'><span class='pageno' id='Page_334'>334</span>“It has a wholesome sound,” she answered, repeating
-it over and over again. “But Edward was not so poor
-a one. It did much for me.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“So will Sir Francis, sweetheart,” I said.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“However, since the King has given it back to you, I
-suppose you will keep it?”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“I will, indeed. It is a proud name, and many brave
-men and fair women have been known by it.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>It was getting late when we ceased talking, though we
-had said scarce half of what was in our minds.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>A week passed. There were but seven days more ere
-we would be wed. The block house had been fixed on as
-the place where the brief ceremony might fittingly be held.
-We had decided to make it a merry gathering, where all
-who would, might come and be happy.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>The weather was now that of a mild early spring. The
-tender green of the trees and shrubs, made the land a mass
-of verdure. Gardens were being made, farms plowed,
-sheep let out to pasture, and the colonists all around were
-busy. The town was prospering under the hand of Providence.
-All that remained to bring to mind the late Indian
-uprising were the ruins of a burned dwelling here and
-there. Back on the hillside was a sadder recollection;
-a few rough stones to mark the graves of those who had
-fallen in the great battle. To me there remained the scars
-on my arm and side, where Simon’s knife had entered,
-and the furrow of a bullet across one cheek.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I would that some other pen could set down what is to
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_335'>335</span>follow. For, though I can tell poorly enough, perhaps,
-concerning battles, sieges and fighting, with which I am
-somewhat familiar, it is hard to tell of scenes of baking,
-stewing, cooking and sewing, which now seemed to centre
-about me. Verily it appeared, that last week, as if I
-might as well bid my sword farewell, to take up a bodkin
-or a ladle in its place, so little use did I seem to have for
-the weapon.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Every time I went to Captain Carteret’s house, to have
-a few minutes with Lucille, I found her busy with either
-a stew-pan or a needle. From a maid, that had been wont
-to pay some small heed to what I said, she had come, almost,
-to hold me in as little importance as any man in
-the Colony. She would leave me in a moment, no matter
-what we were talking of, if Madame Carteret, or one of the
-women, called her.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>What I did say she either heard not, or forgot as speedily
-as I had spoken.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Such bustling about as there was in the kitchen. I
-made bold to poke myself in, once, but quickly drew out
-again. For in that short space I nearly received a blow,
-accidental though it was, with a wooden pestle on one side
-of my head, while another woman was within an ace of
-dousing me with a jar of molasses she carried.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>It seemed that Lucille’s wedding (I dared not call it
-mine) was the first one in the Colony in a number of years,
-and the women folk were so distracted by the thoughts of
-it, that they were at their wits’ end. They made plans by
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_336'>336</span>the dozens, as they did cakes, only to unmake them ere
-night. Indeed, next to myself, whom nobody consulted,
-Lucille had as little to say as if she was but to be an onlooker.
-I was hard put, at times, when I was ordered
-around like a school boy by the women. But Lucille, who
-had more of it than I did, took it with good grace, just
-as if she had been used to it all her life.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>While the women were thus making ready the kitchen
-and gown part of the affair, the men, who were pleased
-to call me Captain, had taken such command of the block
-house, that I was hardly welcome there. The main room
-I was by no means allowed to enter. It was the largest in
-the place, and the door was kept carefully barred to me.
-There was much coming and going, bringing in of evergreen
-boughs, foliage, and small branches of trees, covered
-with bright red berries.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Several friendly Indians were seen about the town, bearing
-bundles, that I could note, by an occasional glimpse,
-contained goods of their workmanship. Stag horns polished
-until they glistened in the sun, soft tanned skins
-of the deer, furry hides of the bear and wild-cat, all these
-were carried into the block, and hidden in the room that
-was closed to me.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>So busy was every one but myself that I wandered about
-the settlement, like a man without friends. I had a few
-matters to look after, though.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>With my wealth, so strangely restored to me, I purchased
-a roomy and comfortable house, the best in the town,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_337'>337</span>save Carteret’s, which one of the settlers was anxious to
-sell. There was a cunning cabinet maker and carpenter
-in the village, and I had them alter the dwelling to suit
-my ideas. I sent privately to New York for some furnishings,
-hired a man and maid servant, and the place began
-to look like a home, only lacking a mistress. I laid
-out a good-sized garden, had the farm plowed and sowed,
-and supplied with horses and cows, so that there was a
-promise of plenty to eat and drink. On the day before
-the one set for the ceremony, I sat down, tired but happy,
-to spend the last few hours of my life as a lone man. I
-was glad that the time was so short.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'><span class='pageno' id='Page_338'>338</span>CHAPTER XXX.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>LOVE, HONOR AND OBEY.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>It was the 26th day of April. The air smelled of
-balmy spring, a warm sun was overhead, a gentle breeze
-stirred the leaves amid which the birds sang, and the whole
-earth seemed a happy place. I jumped out of bed to look
-over the new suit, which I had, after much time and
-thought, managed to get together. It was of dark plum-colored
-stuff, soft to the touch, and became me as well as
-any coat and breeches I ever had. I laid out a new pair
-of boots, the pliable leather black and shiny, spread out
-my cloak on the bed, and was ready to dress for the wedding.
-I strapped my sword on, feeling that I was now
-in proper trim for the occasion. The weapon was the
-same good one which had stood me in such stead all along.
-It had received many a hard knock, the scabbard was not
-as free from dents as when I had it from the maker,
-it was rather rusty, too, I thought, the blade being stained
-here and there.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I sent to the innkeeper for some rags and rotten stone,
-that I might polish the steel up. Master Aleworthy appeared
-himself with the stuff. When he saw my fine
-looks (for I do myself that credit) he would not let me
-burnish up the weapon, but insisted on doing it for me.
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_339'>339</span>A very proper attempt he made of it, too, for, when he
-had finished it shone like a new shilling.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Now for breakfast,” he said.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Not for me,” I replied, “there will be plenty of fodder
-when this affair is over.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“But, Sir Francis, ’twill be a long time to then.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Short enough,” was my answer.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I strode out across the fields to the Captain’s house,
-hoping I might get a glimpse of Lucille. But if she had
-been hard to see a week ago, she was ten times more so
-now. At every door I tried I was bidden to take myself
-off, and call again. Finally, being somewhat vexed,
-I called to one saucy hussy:</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Know, madame, that I am to wed to-day. That I
-am the groom.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Aye, I know it,” she responded, as cool as you please.
-“You will be sent for when you are wanted.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>With that I had to be content, kicking my heels up and
-down the garden path. Noon was the time. It wanted
-two hours yet.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>It seemed a month that I was in the garden. At last
-some one beckoned to me, and I was admitted in to see
-Lucille.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>I would have gone up, before them all, to kiss her heartily,
-but she held me off with her little hands, while a chorus
-of protests from all the women told me I must respect
-the manner in which she was adorned. Indeed, she made
-a handsome appearance. The dress was of soft, gray-white,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_340'>340</span>shimmering silk, with pieces of lace as long as
-my gun barrel all about it, hung on after the manner of
-the clinging vine that twines about a tree. The sleeves
-had it in, I think, also, the neck, while there was a plenty
-trailing down the front and lower edge. She wore a
-crown of glossy green leaves, a single white flower in her
-dark hair.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>The plan was for the party to go to the block house
-in carts, half a score of which, festooned with evergreens,
-were in waiting. Instead of letting Lucille and me go
-on together, which seemed to me to be the most sensible
-way, she rode with James Blithly, a great booby of a chap,
-while I had to sit in the cart with Mistress Alice Turner,
-a sweet enough maid. She was talkative, and I was not
-so, on the way, I had to keep answering “yes” and “no”
-to her questions.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>It looked as though all the Colony and the folk from
-ten miles around had come to the wedding. There were
-nearly three hundred people in view when we neared
-the place where Dominie Worthington was awaiting us.
-There were a number of Indians and their squaws, friendly,
-all of them, who had gathered to see how the pale
-faces took their brides. They laughed, smiled and greeted
-me with “How, Cap’n,” while some held out their pipes,
-which, as was their custom, I puffed a few whiffs from,
-to show that we were at peace, though indeed, the ceremony
-lacked much of the solemnity usually associated
-with it.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'><span class='pageno' id='Page_341'>341</span>The block house at last. The drum beat as Carteret, in
-my honor, drew the men up in double file. Lucille and
-I, with those who were to attend us, dismounted from the
-carts, marching between the lines of soldier-colonists into
-the main room. Then I was allowed to move up beside
-Lucille, while both of us looked about in wonder.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Never had such a bower for the plighting of love been
-constructed before. The rough hewn walls had been covered
-with green boughs, red berries gleaming amidst the
-foliage. On the floor the boards were hidden from view
-by furs in such quantity that they overlapped. The stag
-antlers, fastened here and there, served as hooks, whereon
-were suspended bows, arrows, swords, guns, powder-horns,
-Indian shields, curious stone hatchets, and many of the red-men’s
-household implements. Gay colored baskets added
-to the color of the scene.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>A little wooden altar had been made, but it was almost
-hidden from view by trailing, green vines. The men-at-arms
-filed in, taking their places on either side of the
-chamber. Then came the town-folk, and the friendly
-Indians, squaws, and even settlers from Newark, so that
-the place was well nigh filled.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Dominie Worthington took his place. Lucille and I
-stood together, with Alice Turner and James Blithly on
-either side. Then, ere he began to say the words that
-would unite us, Master Worthington lifted up his voice in
-prayer.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Then came the promises, the pledges--“Love, Honor and
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_342'>342</span>obey”--“till death do you part”--solemn yet sweet.
-“Whom God hath joined together, let not man put asunder.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>We were man and wife.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Then indeed came happy confusion and laughter. We
-were overwhelmed, Lucille and I. But Carteret charged
-down on us, in the nick of time, to rescue us from the
-friendly enemy that swarmed about us. How quick was
-the journey back to the Captain’s house, and what a feast
-was there spread out for all who wished to come.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>So often was the health of Lucille and myself proposed
-and drunk, that I lost track of those who did me the honor
-to touch glasses. There was gay laughter, songs and talk,
-merrymaking among the young people, and over all good-fellowship
-and much cheer, with Lucille happiest of the
-women, and I of the men. It grew night, but hundreds
-of candles chased the gloom away.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>So it had come about, after many days, with force
-and with arms I had won my bride.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>We were to go to the home I had prepared. Lucille
-kissed Madame Carteret and others of her women friends,
-while I had my own cart and horses brought up to the
-door.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>There were farewells by the score, laughter and tears
-from the women, cheers from the men. The driver spoke
-to his team, they leaped forward. Lucille and I had begun
-our life’s journey together.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'><span class='pageno' id='Page_343'>343</span>It was not far to the house. The door was opened on a
-blaze of candles.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Welcome home, sweetheart,” I said, kissing her.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Oh, Francis,” she exclaimed, looking about. “It is
-perfect. How good of you to do all this for me.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“Do you like it?”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>“It is more than I dreamed.”</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>A little wind, coming in the windows, flickered the
-candles. The breeze seemed to sigh in contentment at
-our happiness. The servants closed the door. We were
-alone--my wife and I.</p>
-
-<div class='nf-center-c0'>
-<div class='nf-center c017'>
- <div>THE END.</div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<div class='nf-center-c0'>
-<div class='nf-center c018'>
- <div><span class='pageno' id='Page_345'>345</span><b><span class='xxlarge'>“More Ex</span>=<span class='xxlarge'>Tank Tales”</span></b></div>
- <div class='c000'>By CLARENCE LOUIS CULLEN.</div>
- <div class='c000'>With Introduction by the Author.</div>
- <div class='c000'><span class='small'><em>12mo, 250 Pages. Cloth Bound. Price, One Dollar.</em></span></div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<hr class='c004' />
-
-<p class='c008'><span class='small'>Some readers will wonder what is meant by “More Ex-Tank
-Tales.” In explanation would say that the stories compiled
-in the book under the above title appeared in the <cite>New York
-Sun</cite> from time to time, and they have achieved well-merited
-notoriety. They are sketches about men who have indulged
-in spirituous liquors to such an extent as to cause their comrades
-to term them “tanks.” Having overcome the desire for
-intoxicating beverages (reformed in fact), they take great
-pleasure, and give the same to the reader, in recounting some
-of their adventures. Following is the <b><em>Table of Contents</em></b>:</span></p>
-
-<p class='c019'>TALE THE FIRST.--Wherein Ex-Tank No. 18 Marvelously Winneth Out
-as ye Auctioneer of Antiques.</p>
-<p class='c019'>TALE THE SECOND.--In Which Ex-Tank No. 17 Meeteth Up With ye
-Renowned Singer and Yodler, “Fritz” Emmet, and the Consequences.</p>
-<p class='c019'>TALE THE THIRD.--Wherein Ex-Tank No. 11 Ascertaineth the Advantages
-of Being Mistaken for ye Wearer of the Senatorial Toga.</p>
-<p class='c019'>TALE THE FOURTH.--Which Sheweth Ex-Tank No. 28 as the Natural
-and Successful Enemy of ye Guileful Gold Brick Purveyor.</p>
-<p class='c019'>TALE THE FIFTH--Wherein is Depicted the Woe of Ex-Tank No. 7
-Growing Out of His Being Mistaken for ye Doppelgaenger.</p>
-<p class='c019'>TALE THE SIXTH.--Wherein Ex-Tank No. 10 Mournfully Portrayeth
-the Difficulties he Encountered in Forsaking ye Golden Pacific Sands.</p>
-<p class='c019'>TALE THE SEVENTH--In Which Ex-Tank No. 23 Sheweth the Possibilities
-Lurking in the Involuntary Handling of ye “Ringer.”</p>
-<p class='c019'>TALE THE EIGHTH--Describeth, Through the Lips of Ex-Tank (Ultlander)
-No. 37, the Manifold Woes of Him Who First Butteth into
-ye Burg of New York.</p>
-<p class='c019'>TALE THE NINTH.--Wherein Ex-Tank (Hoodoo) No. 13 Hath a Good
-Word to Say of ye Slumbersome Burg, Philadelphia-by-Schuylkill.</p>
-<p class='c019'>TALE THE TENTH--In Which Ex-Tank No. 22 Narrowly Escapeth the
-Dangers of ye Vasty Deep.</p>
-<p class='c019'>TALE THE ELEVENTH.--Wherein Ex-Tank No. 14, by Means of ye
-Raffling Stunt, Returneth to His Home Like Santa Claus.</p>
-<p class='c019'>TALE THE TWELFTH.--Wherein Ex-Tank No. 12 Starts on a Journey
-from Denver to Manhattan Beach.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'><span class='small'>Sent by mail, postpaid to any address, upon receipt of price,
-$1.90. Address all orders to</span></p>
-
-<div class='lg-container-r'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'><b>J.S. OGILVIE PUBLISHING COMPANY,</b></div>
- <div class='line in11'><b>57 ROSE STREET, NEW YORK.</b></div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c020'><span class='pageno' id='Page_346'>346</span><span class='xxlarge'><b><em class='u'>It is possible</em></b></span></p>
-<p class='c021'>That you are tired of hearing and reading about the
-<b>Letters of this one and that one</b>, but we desire to call
-your attention to the fact that</p>
-
-<div class='nf-center-c0'>
- <div class='nf-center'>
- <div><b><span class='large'>“THE LETTERS OF MILDRED’S MOTHER TO MILDRED”</span></b></div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c021'>are entirely different from any that you have thus far
-read. Mildred is a girl in the chorus at one of New
-York’s famous theatres, and her mother is a woman
-who “travels” with a friend by the name of Blanche.
-The book is written by <b>E.D. Price</b>, “The Man Behind
-the Scenes,” one well qualified to touch upon the
-stage side of life.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>The following is the Table of Contents:</p>
-
-<div class='column-container'>
-
-<div class='left'>
-
-<p class='c008'>Mother at the Races.
-Mother at a Chicago Hotel.
-Mother Goes Yachting.
-Mother Escapes Matrimony.
-Mother Meets Nature’s Noblemen.</p>
-
-</div>
-<div class='right'>
-
-<p class='c008'>Mother Joins the Repertoire Company.
-Mother in the One Night Stands.
-Mother and the Theatrical Angel.
-Mother Returns to Mildred.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-</div>
-
-<p class='c008'>Read what Blakely Hall says of it:</p>
-
-<p class='c008'><span class='small'>“I don’t know whether you are aware of it or not, but you
-are turning out wonderful, accurate and convincing character
-studies in the Mildred’s Mother articles. They are as refreshing
-and invigorating as showers on the hottest July day.”</span></p>
-
-<p class='c008'>The book is well printed on fine laid paper, handsomely
-bound in cloth, with attractive side stamp,
-and has already run into its third edition. For sale
-everywhere, or it will be sent by mail, postpaid, to
-any address upon receipt of price, $1.00. Address
-all orders to</p>
-
-<div class='lg-container-r'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'><span class='large'><b>J.S. OGILVIE PUBLISHING COMPANY,</b></span></div>
- <div class='line in10'><span class='large'><b>57 ROSE STREET, NEW YORK.</b></span></div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<div class='nf-center-c0'>
-<div class='nf-center c018'>
- <div><span class='pageno' id='Page_347'>347</span><span class='xlarge'>Don’t Fail</span></div>
- <div><span class='xlarge'>To Read</span></div>
- <div class='c000'><span class='xxlarge'><b>RESURRECTION,</b></span></div>
- <div class='c000'>BY</div>
- <div class='c000'><span class='xlarge'><b>COUNT LEO TOLSTOI,</b></span></div>
- <div class='c000'>and considered by critics to be his <b>MASTERPIECE</b>.</div>
- <div class='c000'><span class='large'><b>Special Limited Edition.</b></span></div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<div class='sans'>
-
-<div class='nf-center-c0'>
- <div class='nf-center'>
- <div><span class='xlarge'>Bound in Paper Covers, Price 50 Cents.</span></div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class='nf-center-c0'>
- <div class='nf-center'>
- <div>Sent by mail, postpaid, on receipt of price.</div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<hr class='c022' />
-<div class='sans'>
-
-<div class='nf-center-c0'>
- <div class='nf-center'>
- <div><span class='xlarge'>FOR SALE EVERYWHERE!</span></div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-</div>
-<hr class='c022' />
-
-<div class='nf-center-c0'>
- <div class='nf-center'>
- <div><b>J.S. OGILVIE PUBLISHING COMPANY,</b></div>
- <div><b>57 ROSE STREET,&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;NEW YORK.</b></div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<div><span class='pageno' id='Page_348'>348</span></div>
-<div class='sans'>
-
-<div class='nf-center-c0'>
-<div class='nf-center c018'>
- <div><b><span class='xxlarge'>THE KNIGHTS OF THE CROSS.</span></b></div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class='nf-center-c0'>
- <div class='nf-center'>
- <div><span class='large'>By HENRYK SIENKIEWICZ,</span></div>
- <div class='c000'>Author of “Quo Vadis,” “With Fire and Sword,” Etc.</div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<hr class='c004' />
-
-<div class='nf-center-c0'>
- <div class='nf-center'>
- <div>Translated Direct from the Polish by BASIL DAHL.</div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<hr class='c004' />
-
-<div class='nf-center-c0'>
- <div class='nf-center'>
- <div><em>1 vol. 12mo. 400 pages. Price, Bound in Paper</em></div>
- <div><em>Cover, 50 Cents; Bound in Cloth, $1.00.</em></div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c008'><span class='small'>A book that holds your almost breathless attention as in a
-vise from the very beginning, for in it love and strife, the most
-thrilling of all worldly subjects, are described masterfully.--<cite>The
-Boston Journal.</cite></span></p>
-<p class='c016'><span class='small'>It seems superior to “Quo Vadis” in strength and realism.--<cite>The
-Churchman.</cite></span></p>
-<p class='c016'><span class='small'>Presenting scene after scene of exceptional power and
-beauty.--<cite>Saturday Evening Post</cite>, Philadelphia.</span></p>
-<p class='c016'><span class='small'>The rushing life of the tale is as resistless as a force of nature.--<cite>San
-Francisco Call.</cite></span></p>
-<p class='c016'><span class='small'>We say “great” advisedly, for Mr. Sienkiewicz here equals
-in force, variety and tremendous exposition of primitive passions,
-his famous Polish trilogy, “With Fire and Sword,” “The
-Deluge,” and “Pan Michael.”--<cite>The Outlook.</cite></span></p>
-<p class='c016'><span class='small'>The construction of the story is beyond praise. It is difficult
-to conceive of any one who will not pick up the book
-with eagerness.--<cite>Chicago Evening Post.</cite></span></p>
-
-<hr class='c004' />
-
-<p class='c008'>Price, bound in paper covers, 50 cents; handsomely
-bound in cloth, one dollar. Sent by mail,
-postpaid, to any address, on receipt of price. Address
-all orders to</p>
-
-<div class='nf-center-c0'>
- <div class='nf-center'>
- <div>J.S. OGILVIE PUBLISHING COMPANY,</div>
- <div>P.O. Box 2767.&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;57 ROSE STREET, NEW YORK</div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<div class='nf-center-c0'>
-<div class='nf-center c018'>
- <div><span class='pageno' id='Page_349'>349</span><b><span class='xxlarge'>When Shiloh Came,</span></b></div>
- <div class='c000'><b>BY</b></div>
- <div class='c000'><b><span class='large'>Ambrose Lester Jackson.</span></b></div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<hr class='c004' />
-
-<div class='nf-center-c0'>
- <div class='nf-center'>
- <div><b><em>12mo, 320 Pages. Bound in Extra Cloth, $1.50.</em></b></div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<hr class='c004' />
-
-<div class='nf-center-c0'>
- <div class='nf-center'>
- <div><b>Seven Full-page Illustrations by the Author.</b></div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<hr class='c004' />
-
-<p class='c008'><span class='small'>This book is not a religious novel of the style and quality usually
-offered to the public. It is rather a prose poem, in which the
-splendid decadence of an ancient idolatry is pictured with rare
-felicity by a new writer of brilliant promise.</span></p>
-
-<p class='c008'><span class='small'>The book will be read with deep interest, because there is a
-certain power in its pages that will impress and fascinate the mind.
-It contains enough of plot, mystery, adventure, and the like, to hold
-the attention, while the underlying thought of dissatisfaction with
-the heathen gods, and expectation of something better, lifts it far
-above the level of mere sensational fiction. Moreover, its locale is
-new. The usual background of stories of the times antecedent, or
-subsequent, to the birth of Christ, is either Rome, or Jerusalem;
-but the scene of this charming romance is in that far removed
-region of the Orient known to the ancients as Magog and Shem,
-and to modern geographers as Beloochistan.</span></p>
-
-<p class='c008'><span class='small'>The prologue to the story is a masterpiece of poetic imagery;
-the story itself is an idyl of surpassing beauty.</span></p>
-
-<p class='c008'><span class='small'>We anticipate a very large sale for this work among all denominations
-of religious people.</span></p>
-
-<p class='c008'><span class='small'>It is handsomely bound in the highest style of the bookmaker’s
-art, and is illustrated by seven full-page unique illustrations from
-original designs by the Author who is not only an able author, but
-also an artist of unequalled ability.</span></p>
-
-<p class='c008'><span class='small'>The book is for sale by all bookdealers everywhere, or it will
-be sent by mail, postpaid, on receipt of price, $1.50.</span></p>
-
-<p class='c008'><span class='small'><span class='large'>☞ </span><b>Agents Wanted</b> to sell this book in every church and
-community, to whom we offer very liberal terms. Address</span></p>
-
-<div class='lg-container-r'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'><b>J.S. OGILVIE PUBLISHING COMPANY,</b></div>
- <div class='line in11'><b>57 ROSE STREET, NEW YORK</b></div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<div><span class='pageno' id='Page_350'>350</span></div>
-<div class='cursive'>
-
-<p class='c020'><span class='xxlarge'><em class='u'>When an Author</em></span></p>
-
-</div>
-<p class='c021'>has finished his work he is sometimes at a loss
-to know just how or where to get it published
-upon the best terms.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>To all such we desire to offer our services
-<em>free of charge</em> so far as giving advice, information,
-hints and helps to get a publisher who
-will publish and put the book on the market.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>We are in want of first-class manuscripts,
-and if accepted will publish them for authors
-upon very favorable terms, will purchase them
-outright, or publish them on royalty.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>We will examine manuscripts, and make
-some definite business proposition for their publication
-within two weeks after receiving them.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>We have been in the Publishing business
-twenty-five years, and authors may depend upon
-fair and honorable treatment from us.</p>
-
-<p class='c008'>Correspondence solicited, and it will <em>be answered
-promptly</em>. Address all manuscripts and
-communications to</p>
-
-<div class='nf-center-c0'>
- <div class='nf-center'>
- <div><span class='sc'>J.S. Ogilvie Publishing Company</span>,</div>
- <div>P.O. Box 767.&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;<span class='sc'>57 Rose Street, New York.</span></div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<div class='pbb'>
- <hr class='pb c000' />
-</div>
-<p class='c008'><a id='endnote'></a></p>
-<div class='tnotes'>
-
-<div class='nf-center-c0'>
- <div class='nf-center'>
- <div><span class='large'>Transcriber’s Note</span></div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c008'>On p. 212, the printer transposed the third and fourth lines of the
-paragraph beginning: “So we stood thus....”</p>
-<p class='c023'>As printed:</p>
-
-<div class='quote'>
-
-<p class='c008'>So we stood thus, perchance while a man might have
-counted a score slowly. Around us was the waste of
-<b>[to go to pieces every second. Between us, as pale as death,]</b>
-<b>[waters. Under our feet the quivering Eagle, that was like]</b>
-was Lucille, the cause of both of us being there. Perhaps
-she was dead, and our bitter words were spoken in
-vain.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p class='c021'>Corrected:</p>
-
-<div class='quote'>
-
-<p class='c008'>So we stood thus, perchance while a man might have
-counted a score slowly. Around us was the waste of
-<b>[waters. Under our feet the quivering Eagle, that was like]</b>
-<b>[to go to pieces every second. Between us, as pale as death,]</b>
-was Lucille, the cause of both of us being there. Perhaps
-she was dead, and our bitter words were spoken in
-vain.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p class='c008'>Errors deemed most likely to be the printer’s have been corrected, and
-are noted here. The references are to the page and line in the original.
-The following issues should be noted, along with the resolutions.</p>
-
-<table class='table1' summary=''>
-<colgroup>
-<col width='12%' />
-<col width='69%' />
-<col width='18%' />
-</colgroup>
- <tr>
- <td class='c010'><a id='c_30.24'></a><a href='#corr30.24'>30.24</a></td>
- <td class='c010'>Lord prevent that they cast their eyes this way[?/!]”</td>
- <td class='c024'>Replaced.</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c010'><a id='c_55.26'></a><a href='#corr55.26'>55.26</a></td>
- <td class='c010'>I had to rout up Wil[l]is,</td>
- <td class='c024'>Added.</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c010'><a id='c_127.26'></a><a href='#corr127.26'>127.26</a></td>
- <td class='c010'>as though they were [p/b]ut pebbles.</td>
- <td class='c024'>Replaced.</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c010'><a id='c_149.23'></a><a href='#corr149.23'>149.23</a></td>
- <td class='c010'>and I wondered va[ug/gu]ely</td>
- <td class='c024'>Transposed.</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c010'><a id='c_154.13'></a><a href='#corr154.13'>154.13</a></td>
- <td class='c010'>and your po[r]ker was a fine fat one</td>
- <td class='c024'>Added.</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c010'><a id='c_164.21'></a><a href='#corr164.21'>164.21</a></td>
- <td class='c010'>when I asked if I was not [t]o hang</td>
- <td class='c024'>Added.</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c010'><a id='c_174.17'></a><a href='#corr174.17'>174.17</a></td>
- <td class='c010'>to burn us like rats in a tra[y/p].</td>
- <td class='c024'>Replaced.</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c010'><a id='c_187.5'></a><a href='#corr187.5'>187.5</a></td>
- <td class='c010'>“Oh, the vill[ia/ai]n,”</td>
- <td class='c024'>Transposed.</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c010'><a id='c_188.4'></a><a href='#corr188.4'>188.4</a></td>
- <td class='c010'>and Nanette ac[c]ompanied them.</td>
- <td class='c024'>Added.</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c010'><a id='c_199.13'></a><a href='#corr199.13'>199.13</a></td>
- <td class='c010'>“I suppose I must,” he said sullenly[.]</td>
- <td class='c024'>Added.</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c010'><a id='c_199.27'></a><a href='#corr199.27'>199.27</a></td>
- <td class='c010'>a voyage he couldn’t see the end of[.]</td>
- <td class='c024'>Added.</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c010'><a id='c_231.17'></a><a href='#corr231.17'>231.17</a></td>
- <td class='c010'>from the charge of wit[c]hcraft</td>
- <td class='c024'>Added.</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c010'><a id='c_257.15'></a><a href='#corr257.15'>257.15</a></td>
- <td class='c010'>and then we[b / b]reathed, it seemed</td>
- <td class='c024'>Transposed.</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c010'><a id='c_262.11'></a><a href='#corr262.11'>262.11</a></td>
- <td class='c010'>or halt them for a[ ]time</td>
- <td class='c024'>Added.</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c010'><a id='c_265.16'></a><a href='#corr265.16'>265.16</a></td>
- <td class='c010'>Messenger[s] were sent</td>
- <td class='c024'>Added.</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c010'><a id='c_278.24'></a><a href='#corr278.24'>278.24</a></td>
- <td class='c010'>into a panic as quickly as possibl[y/e]</td>
- <td class='c024'>Replaced.</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c010'><a id='c_295.25'></a><a href='#corr295.25'>295.25</a></td>
- <td class='c010'>they might not get near enough to charge[.]</td>
- <td class='c024'>Added.</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c010'><a id='c_301.14'></a><a href='#corr301.14'>301.14</a></td>
- <td class='c010'>to ignite the hug[h/e] pile of brush</td>
- <td class='c024'>Replaced.</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c010'><a id='c_304.26'></a><a href='#corr304.26'>304.26</a></td>
- <td class='c010'>“And who car[r]ied out the powder?”</td>
- <td class='c024'>Added.</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c010'><a id='c_316.13'></a><a href='#corr316.13'>316.13</a></td>
- <td class='c010'>feeling his [s]teel pierce my side</td>
- <td class='c024'>Added.</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c010'><a id='c_333.10'></a><a href='#corr333.10'>333.10</a></td>
- <td class='c010'>“With all my wor[l]dly goods I thee endow.”</td>
- <td class='c024'>Added.</td>
- </tr>
-</table>
-
-</div>
-
-
-
-
-
-
-
-
-<pre>
-
-
-
-
-
-End of the Project Gutenberg EBook of With Force and Arms, by Howard R. Garis
-
-*** END OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK WITH FORCE AND ARMS ***
-
-***** This file should be named 54371-h.htm or 54371-h.zip *****
-This and all associated files of various formats will be found in:
- http://www.gutenberg.org/5/4/3/7/54371/
-
-Produced by KD Weeks, David Edwards and the Online
-Distributed Proofreading Team at http://www.pgdp.net (This
-file was produced from images generously made available
-by The Internet Archive)
-
-
-Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions will
-be renamed.
-
-Creating the works from print editions not protected by U.S. copyright
-law means that no one owns a United States copyright in these works,
-so the Foundation (and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United
-States without permission and without paying copyright
-royalties. Special rules, set forth in the General Terms of Use part
-of this license, apply to copying and distributing Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works to protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm
-concept and trademark. Project Gutenberg is a registered trademark,
-and may not be used if you charge for the eBooks, unless you receive
-specific permission. If you do not charge anything for copies of this
-eBook, complying with the rules is very easy. You may use this eBook
-for nearly any purpose such as creation of derivative works, reports,
-performances and research. They may be modified and printed and given
-away--you may do practically ANYTHING in the United States with eBooks
-not protected by U.S. copyright law. Redistribution is subject to the
-trademark license, especially commercial redistribution.
-
-START: FULL LICENSE
-
-THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE
-PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK
-
-To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free
-distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
-(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg"), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full
-Project Gutenberg-tm License available with this file or online at
-www.gutenberg.org/license.
-
-Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-
-1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
-and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
-(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
-the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or
-destroy all copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your
-possession. If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a
-Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound
-by the terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the
-person or entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph
-1.E.8.
-
-1.B. "Project Gutenberg" is a registered trademark. It may only be
-used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
-agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
-things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
-paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works if you follow the terms of this
-agreement and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works. See paragraph 1.E below.
-
-1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation ("the
-Foundation" or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection
-of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual
-works in the collection are in the public domain in the United
-States. If an individual work is unprotected by copyright law in the
-United States and you are located in the United States, we do not
-claim a right to prevent you from copying, distributing, performing,
-displaying or creating derivative works based on the work as long as
-all references to Project Gutenberg are removed. Of course, we hope
-that you will support the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting
-free access to electronic works by freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm
-works in compliance with the terms of this agreement for keeping the
-Project Gutenberg-tm name associated with the work. You can easily
-comply with the terms of this agreement by keeping this work in the
-same format with its attached full Project Gutenberg-tm License when
-you share it without charge with others.
-
-1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
-what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are
-in a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States,
-check the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this
-agreement before downloading, copying, displaying, performing,
-distributing or creating derivative works based on this work or any
-other Project Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no
-representations concerning the copyright status of any work in any
-country outside the United States.
-
-1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
-
-1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other
-immediate access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear
-prominently whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work
-on which the phrase "Project Gutenberg" appears, or with which the
-phrase "Project Gutenberg" is associated) is accessed, displayed,
-performed, viewed, copied or distributed:
-
- This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and
- most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no
- restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it
- under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included with this
- eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the
- United States, you'll have to check the laws of the country where you
- are located before using this ebook.
-
-1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is
-derived from texts not protected by U.S. copyright law (does not
-contain a notice indicating that it is posted with permission of the
-copyright holder), the work can be copied and distributed to anyone in
-the United States without paying any fees or charges. If you are
-redistributing or providing access to a work with the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg" associated with or appearing on the work, you must comply
-either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 or
-obtain permission for the use of the work and the Project Gutenberg-tm
-trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted
-with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
-must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any
-additional terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms
-will be linked to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works
-posted with the permission of the copyright holder found at the
-beginning of this work.
-
-1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm
-License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
-work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm.
-
-1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
-electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
-prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
-active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm License.
-
-1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
-compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including
-any word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access
-to or distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format
-other than "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other format used in the official
-version posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm web site
-(www.gutenberg.org), you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense
-to the user, provide a copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means
-of obtaining a copy upon request, of the work in its original "Plain
-Vanilla ASCII" or other form. Any alternate format must include the
-full Project Gutenberg-tm License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
-
-1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
-performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works
-unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
-access to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-provided that
-
-* You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
- the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method
- you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is owed
- to the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he has
- agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments must be paid
- within 60 days following each date on which you prepare (or are
- legally required to prepare) your periodic tax returns. Royalty
- payments should be clearly marked as such and sent to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the address specified in
- Section 4, "Information about donations to the Project Gutenberg
- Literary Archive Foundation."
-
-* You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
- you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
- does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm
- License. You must require such a user to return or destroy all
- copies of the works possessed in a physical medium and discontinue
- all use of and all access to other copies of Project Gutenberg-tm
- works.
-
-* You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of
- any money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
- electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days of
- receipt of the work.
-
-* You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
- distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works.
-
-1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work or group of works on different terms than
-are set forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing
-from both the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and The
-Project Gutenberg Trademark LLC, the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm
-trademark. Contact the Foundation as set forth in Section 3 below.
-
-1.F.
-
-1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
-effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
-works not protected by U.S. copyright law in creating the Project
-Gutenberg-tm collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may
-contain "Defects," such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate
-or corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other
-intellectual property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or
-other medium, a computer virus, or computer codes that damage or
-cannot be read by your equipment.
-
-1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the "Right
-of Replacement or Refund" described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
-liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
-fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
-LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
-PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
-TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
-LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
-INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
-DAMAGE.
-
-1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
-defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
-receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
-written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
-received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium
-with your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you
-with the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in
-lieu of a refund. If you received the work electronically, the person
-or entity providing it to you may choose to give you a second
-opportunity to receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If
-the second copy is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing
-without further opportunities to fix the problem.
-
-1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
-in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS', WITH NO
-OTHER WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT
-LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
-
-1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
-warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of
-damages. If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement
-violates the law of the state applicable to this agreement, the
-agreement shall be interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or
-limitation permitted by the applicable state law. The invalidity or
-unenforceability of any provision of this agreement shall not void the
-remaining provisions.
-
-1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
-trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
-providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in
-accordance with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the
-production, promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works, harmless from all liability, costs and expenses,
-including legal fees, that arise directly or indirectly from any of
-the following which you do or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this
-or any Project Gutenberg-tm work, (b) alteration, modification, or
-additions or deletions to any Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any
-Defect you cause.
-
-Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of
-electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of
-computers including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It
-exists because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations
-from people in all walks of life.
-
-Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
-assistance they need are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm's
-goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will
-remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
-and permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future
-generations. To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation and how your efforts and donations can help, see
-Sections 3 and 4 and the Foundation information page at
-www.gutenberg.org Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg
-Literary Archive Foundation
-
-The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non profit
-501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
-state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
-Revenue Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification
-number is 64-6221541. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent permitted by
-U.S. federal laws and your state's laws.
-
-The Foundation's principal office is in Fairbanks, Alaska, with the
-mailing address: PO Box 750175, Fairbanks, AK 99775, but its
-volunteers and employees are scattered throughout numerous
-locations. Its business office is located at 809 North 1500 West, Salt
-Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887. Email contact links and up to
-date contact information can be found at the Foundation's web site and
-official page at www.gutenberg.org/contact
-
-For additional contact information:
-
- Dr. Gregory B. Newby
- Chief Executive and Director
- gbnewby@pglaf.org
-
-Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg
-Literary Archive Foundation
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without wide
-spread public support and donations to carry out its mission of
-increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
-freely distributed in machine readable form accessible by the widest
-array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
-($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
-status with the IRS.
-
-The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
-charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
-States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
-considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
-with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
-where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To SEND
-DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any particular
-state visit www.gutenberg.org/donate
-
-While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
-have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
-against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
-approach us with offers to donate.
-
-International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
-any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
-outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
-
-Please check the Project Gutenberg Web pages for current donation
-methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
-ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations. To
-donate, please visit: www.gutenberg.org/donate
-
-Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works.
-
-Professor Michael S. Hart was the originator of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm concept of a library of electronic works that could be
-freely shared with anyone. For forty years, he produced and
-distributed Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of
-volunteer support.
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed
-editions, all of which are confirmed as not protected by copyright in
-the U.S. unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not
-necessarily keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper
-edition.
-
-Most people start at our Web site which has the main PG search
-facility: www.gutenberg.org
-
-This Web site includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm,
-including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
-subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.
-
-
-
-</pre>
-
- </body>
- <!-- created with ppgen.py 3.56k on 2017-03-16 15:56:52 GMT -->
-</html>
diff --git a/old/54371-h/images/cover.jpg b/old/54371-h/images/cover.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index d2c16d7..0000000
--- a/old/54371-h/images/cover.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/54371-h/images/frontis.jpg b/old/54371-h/images/frontis.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 5408106..0000000
--- a/old/54371-h/images/frontis.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/54371-h/images/p070.jpg b/old/54371-h/images/p070.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index a132fd2..0000000
--- a/old/54371-h/images/p070.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/54371-h/images/p169.jpg b/old/54371-h/images/p169.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 425f85c..0000000
--- a/old/54371-h/images/p169.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ